AN EXPOSITION OF THE SYMBOL OR CREED OF THE APOSTLES, ACCORDING TO THE TENOR OF the Scriptures, and the consent of Orthodox Fathers of the Church: By William Perkins. They are good Catholics, which are of sound faith and good life. August. lib. quaest. in Matth. cap. 11. Printed by john Legatt Printer to the University of Cambridge. 1595. And are to be sold at the sign of the Sun in Paul's Churchyard in London. TO THE RIGHT honourable, Edward Lord Russell, Earl of Bedford. Grace, and peace, etc. RIght Honourable, excellent is the saying of Paul to Titus, To the pure all things are pure: Tim 1.15. but to the impure and unbelieving is nothing pure, but even their minds and consciences are defiled. In which words he determines three questions. The first, whether things ordained and made by God may become unclean or no? his answer is, that they may: & his meaning must be conceived with a distinction. By nature, things ordained of God are not unclean: for Moses in Genesis saith, that God saw all things which he had made, & they were very good: yet they may become unclean either by law, or by the fault of men. By law, as when God forbids us the things which in themselves are good; without whose commandment, they are as pure as things not forbidden. Thus for the time of the old Testament God forbade the jews the use of certain creatures; not because they were indeed worse than the rest, but because it was his pleasure upon special cause to restrain them, that he might put a difference between his own people and the rest of the world, that he might exercise their obedience, and advertise them of the inward impurity of mind. Now this legal impurity was abolished at the ascension of Christ. By the fault of men things are unclean when they are abused, and not applied to the ends for which they were ordained. The second question is; to whom things ordained of God are pure? he answers, to the pure: that is, to them whose persons stand justified & sanctified before God in Christ in whom they believe: Act. 15.10. 1. Tim. 4.3. who also do use God's blessings in holy manner to his glory and the good of men. The third question is, who they are to whom all things are unclean? his answer is, to the unclean: by whom he understands all such I. whose persons displease God, because they do not indeed believe in Christ: II. who use not the gifts of God in holy manner, sanctifying them by the word and prayer: III. who abuse them to bad ends, as to riot, pride, and oppression of men, etc. Now that to such, the use of all the creatures of God is unclean, it is manifest: because all their actions are sins, in that they are not done of faith: and a man's person must first please God in Christ, Rom. 14.23. before his action or work done can please him. Again they use the blessings & creatures of God with evil conscience, because so long as they are forth of Christ, they are but usurpers thereof before God. For in the fall of the first Adam we lost the title and interest to all good things: and though God permit the use of many of them to wicked men; yet is not the former title recovered but in Christ the second Adam, in whom we are advanced to a better estate than we had by creation. Hence it follows necessarily; that, to omit all other things, Nobility though it be a blessing and ordinance of God in itself, is but an unclean thing, if the injoyers thereof be not truly engrafted into Christ, and made bone of his bone and flesh of his flesh. The blood unstained before men, is stained blood before God by the fall of Adam, if it be not restored by the blood of Christ the lamb of God. And hence it follows again, that Nobility must not dwell solitary, but combine herself in perpetual fellowship with hearty love & sincere obedience of pure & sound religion; without the which all pleasant pastimes, all sumptuousness of building, all bravery in apparel, all glistering in gold, all delicate fare, all delightful music, all reverence done with cap and knee, all earthly pleasures and delights that heart can wish, are but as a vanishing shadow, or like the mirth that gins in laughing & ends in woe. A happy thing were it, if this consideration might take place in the hearts of all noble men: it would make them honour God that they might be honoured of God with everlasting honour: 1. Sam. 2.22, 26. Psal. 2.12. and it would make them kiss the son lest he be angry, and they perish in the way. I speak not this, as though I doubted of your Lordship's care in this very point: but mine only meaning is to put you in mind, that as you have begun to clean unto Christ with full purpose of heart; so you would continue to do it still, and do it more: and withal to manifest the same to the whole world, by honouring Christ with your own honour, Prov. 3.9, 10. and by resembling him specially in one thing, in that as he grew in stature and years, Luk. 2.25. he also grew in grace and favour with God and men. And for this very cause (without any consideration of earthly respects) I further present unto you an Exposition of an other part of the Catechism, namely the Symbol or Creed of the Apostles: which is indeed the very pith and substance of Christian religion, taught by the Apostles, embraced by the ancient fathers, sealed by the blood of Martyrs, used by a Socrat. hist. ec●. l. 5. c. 10. Theodosius the Emperor as a means to end the controversies of his time: and hereupon it hath been called the b August. de Temp. ser. 119. rule of faith, the c Ambr. serm. 38. kay of faith. And furthermore I hope that your Lordship will accept the same in good part; the rather because you vouchsafed when you were in Cambridge to be an hearer thereof when it was taught and delivered. Thus craving pardon for my boldness, I take my leave, commending your L. and yours to the protection of the Almighty. Ann. 1595. April 2. Your Lordships to command, William Perkins. The Contents of the book. The Creed. pag. 1. Faith. 3. God. 19 The three persons. 25 The Father. 31 Gods omnipotency. 43 The Creation. 52. & 58 Gods counsel. 54 The creation of heaven. 68 The creation of Angels. 73 The creation of man. 81 Gods providence. 91 Adam's fall. 106 The covenant of grace. 118 The title jesus. 122 The title Christ. 129 The title Son. 136 The title Lord. 145 The Incarnation of Christ. 148 Christ's humiliation. 174 Christ's passion. 176 Christ's arraignment. 182 Christ's execution. 226 Christ's Sacrifice. 260 Christ's triumph. 270 Christ's burial. 287 The descension of Christ. 297 Christ's exaltation. 305 Christ's Resurrection. 307 Christ's ascension. 333 Christ's sitting at the right hand, etc. 351, 363 Christ's intercession. 355 Christ's kingdom. 367 The last judgement. 372 Of the holy Ghost. 397 The Church. 420 Predestination. 423 The mystical union. 477 The communion of Saints. 506 The forgiveness of sins. 516 The resurrection of the body. 521 Life everlasting. 532 THE RESOLUTION OF THE CREED. 〈◊〉: One, of the Actions of faith, which are To believe in God: which hath three parts: I. To believe God as he hath revealed himself in his word. II. To acknowledge him in particular to be my God. III. To put my confidence in him. To believe a thing: and this action hath two parts: I. To acknowledge the thing. II. To apply the thing to myself; as to believe the Church is to acknowledge the Church, & that I am a member of it. The second the Object, which is God, distinguished into 3. person. I. The first is described by his I. Name, Father. II. Attribute, Almighty. III. Work, Creator of heaven and earth. II. The second is described by his I. Titles, which are four. I. jesus. II. Christ. III. His Son. FOUR Our Lord. II. Incarnation, & it hath 2. parts: The conception, where consider the parts The personn all union. The sanctification of that mass or lump whereof the body of Christ was framed. The cause efficient, the H●gh●st. The birth, where is mentioned the mother of Christ, described by her Name; Marry. Quality; a virgin. III. Estate afterward of Humiliation set down Generally in these words, Suffered under, etc. where is noted the time of his suffering when P. Pilate was precedent of jury. By parts, which are 4. I. His crucifying. II. His death. III. His burial. FOUR His descending into hell. Exaltation having 3. parts. I. His resurrection. II. His ascension. III. His sitting at his father's right hand: & it is set forth by the Place, Heaven. The effect, his coming to judgement. III. The third person described by his name, Holy Ghost, enfolding his office. The Church, described by his Qualities, Holy. Catholic. Prerogatives which are 4. I. Communion of saints. II. Forgiveness of sins. III. Resurrection of the body. iv Life everlasting. AN EXPOSITION OF THE CREED. I believe in God, etc. NO man justly can be offended at this, that I begin to treat of the doctrine of faith without a text; though some be of mind, that in catechizing the minister is to proceed as in the ordinary course of preaching, only by handling a set portion of scripture: & therefore that the handling of the Creed being no scripture, is not convenient. Indeed I grant, that other course to be commendable: yet I doubt not, but in catechizing the minister hath his liberty to follow or not to follow a certain text of scripture, as we do in the usual course of preaching. My reason is taken from the practice of the Primitive Church; whose Catechism (as the author of the Epistle to the Hebrews showeth) was contained in six principles or grounds of religion, which were not taken out of any set text in the old Testament: but rather was a form of teaching gathered out of the most clear places thereof. Hence I reason thus: Heb. 6.1, 2, 3. That which in this point was the use and manner of the Primitive Church, is lawful to be used of us now: but in the Primitive Church it was the manner to Catechize without handling any set text of scripture: and therefore the ministers of the Gospel at this time may with like liberty do the same: so be it they do confirm the doctrine which they teach with places of scripture afterward. Now to come to the Creed, let us begin with the name or title thereof. That which in English we call the Apostles Creed, in other tongues is called Symbolum, that is, a shot or a badge. It is called a shot, because as in a feast or banquet every man payeth his part: which being all gathered, the whole (which we call the shot) amounteth: and so out of the several writings of the Apostles ariseth this Creed or brief confession of faith. It is a badge, because as a soldier in the field by his badge & livery is known of what band he is, & to what captain he doth belong: even so by this belief a Christian man may be distinguished & known from all jews, Turks, Atheists, & all false professors: & for this cause it is called a badge. Again it is called the Creed of the Apostles, not because they were the penners of it, conferring to it besides the matter a Ruffin. in expos. Symb. & Hierony. ad Pam. the very style & frame of words, as we have them now set down. Reason. I. there are in this Creed certain words and phrases which are not to be found in the writings of the Apostles, and namely these: He descended into hell; the Catholic Church. The latter whereof no doubt b Pacianus epist. 1. ad Sympro. first began to be in use, when after the Apostles days the Church was dispersed into all quarters of the earth. II. Secondly if both matter and words had been from the Apostles, why is not the Creed Canonical scripture, as well as any other of their writings? III. The Apostles had a summary collection of the points of Christian religion which they taught, and also delivered to others to teach by; consisting of two heads, faith and love: as may appear by Paul's exhortation to Timothy, 2. Tim. 1.13. wishing him to keep the pattern of wholesome words: which he had heard of him in faith and love, which is in Christ jesus. Now the Creed consists not of two heads but of one, namely of faith only and not of love also. Wherhfore I rather think, that it is called the Apostles Creed because it doth summarily contain the chief and principal points of religion, handled and propounded in the doctrine of the Apostles: and because the points of the Creed are conformable and agreeable to their doctrine and writings. And thus much of the Title. Now let us hear what the Creed is? It is a sum of things to be believed concerning God and concerning the Church, gathered forth of the scriptures. For the opening of this description. First I say, it is, a sum of things to be believed, or an abridgement. It hath been the practice of teachers both in the new and old Testament to abridge and contract summarily the religion of their time. This the Prophets used. For when they had made their Sermons to the people they did abridge them and penned them briefly: setting them in some open place, that all the people might read the same. So the Lord bad Habakuk to write the vision which he saw, and to make it plain upon tables, that he may run that readeth it. Hab. 2.2. And in the new Testament the Apostles did abridge those doctrines, which otherwise they did handle at large, as may appear in the place of Timothy afore named. 2. Tim. 1.13. Now the reason why both in the old & new Testament the doctrine of religion was abridged, is that the understanding of the simple, as also their memory might be hereby helped, & they better enabled to judge of the truth, & to discern the same from falsehood. And for this end the Apostles Creed being a summary collection of things to be believed, was gathered briefly out of the word of god b Aug. serm. 119. de temp. Cassian. li. 6. the Incarnate. domini. for the helping of memory & understanding of men. I add that this Creed is concerning God and the church. For in these two points consisteth the whole sum thereof. Lastly, I say, that it is gathered forth of the scripture, to make a difference between it & other writings, and to show the authority of it. There be two kind of writings in which the doctrine of the church is handled, & they are either divine or Ecclesiastical. Divine, are the books of the old & new Testament penned either by Prophets or Apostles. And these are not only the pure word of God, but also the scripture of god, because not only the matter of them, but the whole disposition thereof with the style & the phrase was set down by the immediate inspiration of the Holy Ghost. And the authority of these books is divine, that is, absolute and sovereign, & they are of sufficient credit in and by themselves needing not the testimony of any creature, not subject to the censure either of men or angels, binding the consciences of all men at all times, & being the only foundation of faith, & the rule & canon of all truth. Ecclesiastical writings are all other ordinary writings of the church consenting with scriptures. These may be called the word or truth of God, so far forth as their matter or substance is consenting with the written word of God: but they cannot be called the scripture of God because the style and phrase of them was set down according to the pleasure of man. And therefore they are in such sort the word of god, as that also they are the word of men. And their authority in defining of truth & falsehood in matters of religion is not sovereign, but subordinate to the former: and it doth not stand in the authority & pleasures of men & counsels, but in the consent which they have with the scriptures. Ecclesiastical writings are either general, particular, or proper. General, are the Creeds and confessions of the Church dispersed over the whole world, and among the rest the Creed of the Apostles, made either by the Apostles themselves, or by their hearers & disciples, apostolical men, delivered to the Church, & conveyed from hand to hand to our times. Particular writings are the confessions of particular Churches. Proper writings, are the books & confessions of private men. Now between these we must make difference. For the General Creed of the Apostles, (other universal Creeds in this case not excepted) though it be of less authority than Scripture; yet hath it more authority than the particular and private writings of Churches and men. For it hath been received and approved by universal consent of the Catholic Church in all ages, and so were never these: in it the meaning and doctrine can not be changed by the authority of the whole Catholic Church: and if either the order of the doctrine or the words whereby it is expressed, should upon some occasion be changed, a particular Church of any country can not do it, without Catholic consent of the whole Church: yet particular writings & confessions made by some special Churches may be altered in the words & in the points of doctrine by the same Churches without offence to the Catholic Church. Lastly it is received as a rule of faith among all churches to try doctrines & interpretations of scriptures by, not because it is a rule of itself, for that the scripture is alone; but because it borroweth his authority from scripture with which it agreeth. And this honour no other writings of men can have. Here some may demand the number of Creeds. Answ. I say but one Creed, as there is but one faith: and if it be alleged that we have many Creeds, as besides this of the Apostles, the Nicene Creed, and Athanasius Creed, etc. I answer, the several Creeds and confessions of Churches contain not several faiths and religions, but one and the same; and this called the Apostles Creed is most ancient, & principal: all the rest are not new Creeds in substance, but in some points penned more largely for the exposition of it, that men might better avoid the heresies of their times. Futther, it may be demanded, in what form this Creed was penned? Answ. In the form of an answer to a question. The reason is this. In the Primitive Church, when any man was turned from Gentilism to the faith of Christ, and was to be baptized, this a Cyril. Catec. 1. Mystag. Tertull. de resurrect. Origen. bon. 5. in Num. question was asked him, What believest thou? then he answered according to the form of the Creed, I believe in God, etc. And this manner of questioning was used even from the time of the Apostles. When the Eunuch was converted, by Philip, he said, What doth let me to be baptized? Philip said, If thou dost believe with all thine heart, thou mayest. Then he answered, Act. ●. 38. I believe that jesus Christ is the son of God. By this it appears, that although all men, for the most part, amongst us can say this Creed, yet not one of a thousand can tell the ancient and first use of it: for commonly at this day of the simpler sort it is said for a prayer, being indeed no prayer: and when it is used so, men make it no better than a charm. Before we come to handle the particular points of the Creed, it is very requisite that we should make an entrance thereto by describing the nature, properties, and kinds of faith, the confession and ground whereof is set forth in the Creed. Faith therefore is a gift of God, whereby we give assent or credence to God's word. For there is a necessary relation between faith & gods word. The common property of faith is noted by the author of the Hebrews, when he saith, Faith is the ground of things hoped for: and, Hebr. 11.1. the demonstration of things that are not seen. For all this may be understood, not only of justifying faith, but also of temporary faith, and the faith of miracles. Where faith is said to be a ground, the meaning is, that though there are many things promised by God, which men do not presently enjoy, but only hope for; because as yet they are not: yet faith doth after a sort give subsisting or being unto them. Secondly it is an evidence or demonstration etc. that is, by believing a man doth make a thing as it were visible, being otherwise invisible & absent. Faith is of two sorts: either common faith, or the faith of the elect: as Paul saith, he is an Apostle according to the faith of Gods elect: which also is called faith without hypocrisy. The common faith is that, Tit. 1.5. which both elect and reprobate have, and it is threefold. I. is historical faith, which is, when a man doth believe the outward letter and history of the word. It hath two parts; knowledge of God's word, and an assent to the same knowledge: & it is to be found in the devil and his angels. jam. 2.19. So S. james saith, the devils believe and tremble. Some will say, what a faith have they? Answ. Such as thereby they understand both the Law and the Gospel: beside they give an assent to it to be true: and they do more yet, in that they tremble and fear. And many a man hath not so much. For amongst us, there is many a one, which hath no knowledge of God at all, more than he hath learned by the common talk of the world: as namely, that there is a God, and that he is merciful, etc. and yet this man will say, that he believeth with all his heart: but without knowledge it can not be that any should truly believe & therefore he deceiveth himself. Quest. But whence have the devils historical faith? were they illuminated by the light of the spirit? Answ. No: but when the Gospel was preached, they did acknowledge it, and believed it to be true, & that by virtue of the relics of God's image, which remained in them since their fall. And therefore this their faith doth not arise from any special illumination by his spirit, but they attain to it by the light of nature, which was left in them from the beginning. The second kind of faith is Temporary faith: so called because it lasteth but for a time and season, and commonly not to the end of a man's life. This kind of faith is noted unto us in the parable of the seed, that fell in the stony ground. And there be two differences or kinds of this faith. The first kind of temporary faith hath in it three degrees. The first is, to know the word of God and particularly the Gospel. The second, to give an assent unto it. The third, to profess it, but to go no further: and all this may be done without any love to the word. This faith hath one degree more than historical faith. Examples of it we have in Simon Magus, Acts. 8.13. who is said to believe, because he held the doctrine of the Apostle to be true▪ and withal he professed it: and in the devils also, who in some sort professed, that Christ was the son of the most highest, & yet looked for no salvation by him, Mark. 5.7. Act. 19.14. And this is the common faith that abounds in this land. Men say they believe as the prince believeth, and if religion change, they will change. For by reason of the authority of princes laws, they are made to learn some little knowledge of the word: they believe it to be good, & they profess it: & thus for the space of thirty or forty years they will hear the word preached, and receive the sacraments, and yet be as void of grace as ever they were at the first day: & the reason is, because men do barely profess it, without either liking or love of the same. The second kind of temporary faith hath in it five degrees. For by it first a man knows the word. Secondly, he assenteth unto it. III. he professeth it. FOUR he rejoiceth inwardly in it. V he bringeth forth some kind of fruit: and yet for all this hath no more in him, but a faith that will fail in the end; because he wanteth the effectual application of the promise of the gospel, & is without all manner of sound conversion. This faith is like corn in the house top, which groweth for a while, but when heat of summer cometh, it withereth. And this is also set forth unto us in the parable of the seed, which fell in a stony ground, Luk. 8.13. which is hasty in springing up: but because of the stones, which will not suffer it to take deep root, it withereth. And this is a very common faith in the Church of God: by which many rejoice in the preaching of the word, and for a time bring forth some fruits accordingly with show of great forwardness, yet afterward shake of religion and all. But (some will say) how can this be a temporary faith, seeing it hath such fruits? Answ. Such a kind of faith is temporary, because it is grounded on temporary causes which are three. I. A desire to get knowledge of some strange points of religion. For many a man doth labour for the five former degrees of temporary faith, only because he desires to get more knowledge in scripture, than other men have. The second cause is a desire of praise among men, which is of that force that it will make a man put on a show of all the graces, which God bestoweth on all his children, though otherwise he want them: and to go very far in religion; which appeareth thus. Some can very bitterly weep for the sins of other men, and yet have neither sorrow nor grief for their own: and the cause hereof is nothing else but pride. For he that sheds tears for another man's sins, should much more weep for his own, if he had grace. Yet thus are many men disposed even of pride and nothing else. Again, a man for his own sins will pray very slackly and dully, when he prayeth privately: and yet when he is in the company of others will pray very fervently and earnestly. From whence is this difference? surely often it springeth from the pride of heart and from a desire of praise among men. The third cause of temporary faith is profit, commodity, the getting of wealth and riches. These make man to receive religion, and if other religion come, they will receive it aswell as this. But such studies not the gospel, because it is the gospel, but because it brings wealth, peace, and riches with it. And these are the three causes of temporary faith. The third kind of faith is the faith of Miracles: when a man grounding himself on some special promise or revelation from God, doth believe, that some strange & extraordinary thing, which he hath desired or foretold, shall come to pass by the work of God. This must be distinguished from historical & temporary faith. For Simon Magus had both these kinds of faith, Acts. 8.19. but yet wanted this faith of miracles, & therefore would have bought the same of the Apostles for money. Yet this faith of miracles may be in hypocrites, as it was in judas, & at the last judgement it shall be found to have been in the wicked & reprobate; which shall say to Christ, Lord, in thy name we have prophesied, Mat. 7.22. 1. Cor. 13.2. and cast out devils, and done many great miracles. And thus much for the three sorts of common faith: Now we must come to the true faith, which is the faith of the elect. It is thus defined: Faith is a supernatural gift of God in the mind, apprehending the saving promise with all the promises that depend on it. First, I say, it is a gift of God, Phil. 1.29. to confute the blind opinion of our people, that think that the faith whereby they are to be saved, is bred & borne with them. I add that it is a gift supernatural; not only because it is above that corrupt nature in which we are borne, but also because it is above that pure nature, in which our first parents were created. For in the state of innocency they wanted this faith, neither had they then any need of faith in the same God as he is Messiah: but this faith is a new grace of God added to regeneration after the fall, & first required in the covenant of grace. And by this, faith differeth from the rest of the gifts of God, as the fear of God, the love of God, the love of our brethren, etc. for these were in man's nature before the fall, and after it they are but renewed: but justifying faith admits no renewing. For the first in grafting of it into the heart, is in the conversion of a sinner after his fall. The place and seat of faith (as I think) is the mind of man, not the will: for it stands in a kind of particular knowledge or persuasion, and there is no persuasion but in the mind. Paul saith indeed, that we believe with the heart, Rom. 10. but by the heart he understands the whole soul without any limitation. Some do place faith partly in the mind, and partly in the will, because it hath two parts; knowledge, and affiance: but it doth not stand greatly with reason, that one particular and single grace should be seated into diverse parts of the soul. The form of faith is, to apprehend the promises, Gal. 3.14. that we might receive the promise of the spirit through faith. and john 1.12. to receive Christ, and to believe, are put one for another; and to believe, is to eat and drink the body and blood of Christ. To apprehend properly, is an action of the hand, which lays hold of a thing, and pulls it to it: and by resemblance it agrees to faith, which is the hand of the soul, receiving and applying the saving promise. This apprehension of faith, is not performed by any affection of the will, but by a sound and particular persuasion, whereby a man is resolved that the promise of salvation belongs unto him. Which persuasion is wrought in the mind by the holy Ghost, 1. Corint. 2.12. And by this, the promise which is general is applied particularly to one subject. By this, saving faith differeth from all other kinds of faith. From historical; for it wanteth all apprehension, & standeth only in a general assent. From temporary faith, which though it make a man to profess the Gospel and to rejoice in it, yet doth it not thoroughly apply Christ with his benefits. For it never brings with it any thorough touch of conscience or lively sense of God's grace in the heart. And the same may be said of the rest. The principal and main object of this faith is, the saving promise, God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten son, that whosoever believes in him, shall not perish, but have everlasting life. But some will say, Christ is commonly said to be the object of faith. Answ. In effect it is all one to say the saving promise, and Christ promised, who is the substance of the covenant. Christ then as he is set forth unto us in the word and sacraments, is the object of faith. And here certain questions offer themselves to be scanned. The first, What is that particular thing which faith apprehendeth? Answ. Faith apprehendeth whole Christ God and man. For his Godhead without his manhood, and his manhood without his Godhead doth not reconcile us to God. Yet this which I say must be conceived with some distinction according to the difference of his two natures. His Godhead is apprehended not in respect of his essence or nature, but in respect of his efficacy manifested in the manhood: his manhood both in respect of the substance itself, and also in respect of the efficacy and benefits thereof. The second, In what order faith apprehends Christ? Ans. First of all it apprehends the very body & blood of Christ: & secondly the virtue & benefits of his body and blood: as a man that would feel in his body the virtue of meat and drink, must first of all receive the substance thereof. To go forward. Besides the main promise, which concerns righteousness & life in Christ, there be other particular promises touching strength in temptations, comfort in afflictions, & such like, which depend on the former: & they also are the object of justifying faith: & with the very same faith we believe them, wherewith we believe our salvation. Thus Abraham by the same faith wherewith he was justified, believed that he should have a son in his old age. Rom. 4.19.22. And No by that faith whereby he was made heir of righteousness, believed that he & his family should be preserved in the flood. And hereupon it comes to pass that in our prayers, besides the desire of things promised, we must bring faith whereby we must be persuaded, that God will grant us such things as he hath promised: and this faith is not a new kind or distinct faith from justifying faith. Thus we see what saving faith is. Whereas some are of opinion, that faith is an affiance or confidence, that seems to be otherwise: for it is a fruit of faith, Eph. 3.12. & indeed no man can put any confidence in God, till he be first of all persuaded of God's mercy in Christ towards him. Some again are of mind, that love is the very nature and form of faith: but it is otherwise. For as confidence in God, so also love is an effect which proceeds from faith. 1. Tim. 1.5. The end of the law is love from a pure heart and good conscience & faith unfeigned. And in nature they differ greatly. Christ is the fountain of the waters of life. Faith in the heart is as the pipes & ledds that receive in & hold the water: & love in some part is as the cock of the conduit, that lets out the water to every comer. The property of the hand is to hold; & of itself it cannot cut: yet by a knife or other instrument put into the hand, it cuts: the hand of the soul is faith; & his property is to apprehend Christ with all his benefits, & by itself it can do nothing else: yet join love to it, & by love it willbe effectual in all good duties. Gal. 5.6. Now to proceed further: first we are to consider, how faith is wrought: 2. what be the differences of it. For the first, faith is wrought in & by the outward ministry of the gospel accompanied by the inward operation of the spirit, & that not suddenly, but by certain steps & degrees: as nature frameth the body of the infant in the mother's womb, 1. by making the brain and heart, 2. by making veins, sinews, arteries, bones. 3. by adding flesh to them al. And the whole operation of the spirit stands in two principal actions. First, the enlightening of the mind: the second, the moving of the will. For the first, the holy Ghost enlightens men's minds with a further knowledge of the law than nature can afoard; and thereby makes them to see the sins of their hearts and lives with the ugliness thereof, and withal to tremble at the curse of the law. Afterward the same spirit opens the eye to understand and consider seriously of righteousness & life eternal promised in Christ. This done, then comes the second work of the holy Ghost, which is the inflaming of the will, that a man having considered his fearful estate by reason of sin, and the benefits of Christ's death, might hunger after Christ; and have a desire not so much to have the punishments of sin taken away, as God's displeasure: & also might enjoy the benefits of Christ. And when he hath stirred up a man to desire reconciliation with God in Christ, then withal he gives him grace to pray not only for life eternal; but especially for the free remission and pardon of all his sins: and then the lords promise is, Knock and it shall be opened, Matth. 7.7. seek and ye shall find. After which he further sends his spirit into the same heart that desireth reconciliation with God, and remission of sins in Christ, and doth seal up in his heart the lively and plentiful assurance thereof. The differences and degrees of faith are two: I. a weak faith: II. a strong faith. Concerning the first, this weak faith shows itself by this grace of God, namely an unfeigned desire, not only of salvation (for that the wicked and graceless man may have) but of reconciliation with God in Christ. This is a sure sign of faith in every touched and humbled heart, and it is peculiar to the elect: and they which have this, have in them also the substance of true saving faith: which afterwards will grow up to a strong faith. Reasons, I. Promise of life everlasting, is made to the desire of reconciliation, Psal. 10.17. Lord, thou hast heard the desire of the poor. Psal. 143.6. My soul desireth after thee, as the thirsty land. Psal. 145.19. He will fulfil the desire of them that fear him. Matth. 5.6. Blessed are they that hunger and thirst after righteousness, for they shallbe satisfied. Revel. 22.6. I will give unto him which is a thirst of the well of the water of life freely. II. The hungering desire after grace is a sanctified affection: where one affection is sanctified, all are sanctified: where all are sanctified, the whole man is sanctified: and he that is sanctified, is justified and believes. III. God accepts the will and desire to repent and believe, for repenting and believing indeed: wherefore this desire of reconciliation (if it be sound wrought in the heart) is accepted even as faith before God. But carnal men will say, If faith, yea true faith show itself by a desire of reconciliation with God in Christ for all our sins, than we are well enough, though we live in our sins: for we have very good desires. I answer, That there be in many men sundry fleeting motions and desires to do good things which grow to no issue or head, but in time vanish as they come. Now such passions have no soundness in them, & must be distinguished from the desire of reconciliation with God, which comes from a bruised heart, which brings always with it reformation of life: therefore such as live after the couse of this world, and think notwithstanding that they have desires that are good, deceive themselves. Now faith is said to be weak, when a man either fails in the knowledge of the Gospel; or else having knowledge, is weak in grace to apply unto himself the sweet promises thereof. As for example, we know that the Apostles had all true saving faith (except judas) and when our Saviour Christ asked them, Matt. 16.16. whom they thought that he was; Peter in the person of the rest, answered for them all, and said: Thou art Christ, the Son of the living God: for which our Saviour commended him, and in him, them all, saying: Thou art Peter, & upon this rock, (that is, upon Christ, which Peter did profess in the name of them all) will I build my Church. And yet after we shall find in the Gospel, that they are called men of little faith. Mat. 8.26. & 16.8. Now they failed in knowledge of the death of Christ, and of his passion, and resurrection; and were carried away with a vain hope of an earthly kingdom. And therefore when our Saviour showed them of his going down to jerusalem and of his sufferings there, Peter a little after his notable confession began to rebuke Christ, & said, Master, have pity on thyself, this shall not be unto thee. And until he had appeared to them after his death, they did not believe his resurrection. Again, weak faith though it be joined with knowledge, yet it may fail in the applying or in the apprehension and appropriating of Christ's benefits to a man's own self. This is to be seen in ordinary experience. For many a man there is of humble and contrite heart, that serveth God in spirit and truth, yet is not able to say without great doubtings and waver; I know and am fully assured that my sins are pardoned. Now shall we say, that all such are without faith? God forbidden. Nay, we may resolve ourselves, that the true child of God may have a hungering desire in his heart after reconciliation with God in Christ for all his sins with care to keep a good conscience, and yet be weak some time in the apprehension of God's mercy and the assurance of the remission of his own sins. But if faith fail either in the true knowledge, or in the apprehension of God's mercies, how can a man be saved by it? Answ. We must know that this weak faith will as truly apprehend Gods merciful promises for the pardon of sin, as strong faith, though not so sound. Even as a man with a palsy hand can stretch it out as well to receive a gift at the hand of a king, as he that is more sound, though it be not so firmly and steadfastly. The Church of Rome bears men in hand, that they are good Catholics, if they believe as the Church believes; though in the mean season they can not tell what the Church believes. And some Papists commend this faith by the example of an old devout father, who being tempted of the devil, was asked how he believed, he answered that he believed as the Church believed: being again asked how the Church believed, he answered, as I believe: whereupon the devil (as they say) was faint to departed. Well, this fond and ridiculous kind of faith we renounce, as being a means to nozle men in blindness, superstition, & perpetual ignorance: yet withal we do not deny but that there is an implicit or folded faith; which is, when a man as yet having but some little portion of knowledge in the doctrine of the Gospel, doth truly perform obedience according to the measure thereof; and withal hath care to get more knowledge, and shows good affection to all good means whereby it may be increased. In this respect a certain ruler, who by a miracle wrought upon his child, was moved to acknowledge Christ for the Messiah, and further to submit himself to his doctrine, joh. 4.53. & 42. is commended for a believer, and in the like case the Samaritans. And thus much of weak faith: which must be understood to be in a man not all the days of his life, but while he is a young babe in Christ. For as it is in the state of the body, first we are babes & grow to greater strength as we grow in years; so it is with a Christian man. First he is a babe in Christ, having weak faith, but after grows from grace to grace, till he come to have a strong faith: example whereof we have in Abraham, who was strong and perfect both in knowledge and apprehension. This strong faith is, when a man is endued with the knowledge of the Gospel & grace to apprehend and apply the righteousness of Christ unto himself for the remission of his own sins: so as he can say distinctly of himself and truly, that he is fully resolved in his own conscience, that he is reconciled unto God in Christ for all his sins, & accepted in him to life everlasting. This degree of faith is proper to him that gins to be a tall man and of ripe years in Christ. And it cometh not at the first calling of a man unto grace. And if any shall think that he can have it at the first, he deceiveth himself. For as it is no nature: first we are babes, and then as we increase in years, so we grow in strength: so it is in the life of a Christian; first ordinarily he hath a weak faith, and after grows from grace to grace, till he come to stronger faith: and at the last he be able to say, he is fully assured in his heart & conscience of the pardon of his sins & of reconciliation to God in Christ. And this assurance ariseth from many experiences of God's favour and love in his life and preservation, which brings a man to this, that he is fully persuaded, that God is his God, and God the father his father, and jesus Christ his redeemer, and the holy Ghost his sanctifier. Now howsoever this faith be strong, yet is it always imperfect, as also our knowledge is; and shall so long as we live in this world be mingled with contrary unbelief and sundry doubtings more or less. A great part of men amongst us, blinded with gross ignorance, say they have faith, & yet indeed have not. For ask them what faith they have, they will answer, they believe that God is their father, & the Son their redeemer, etc. ask them how long they have had this faith, they will answer, ever since they could remember: ask them whether they ever doubt of God's favour? they will say, they would not once doubt for all the world. But the case of these men is to be pitied: for howsoever they may persuade themselves, yet true it is, that they have no sound faith at all: for even strong faith is assaulted with temptations and doubtings: and God will not have men perfect in this life, that they may always go out of themselves, and depend wholly on the merit of Christ. And thus much of these two degrees of faith. Now in whom so ever it is, whether it be a weak faith, or a strong, it bringeth forth some fruit, as a tree doth in the time of summer. And a special fruit of faith, is this confession of faith, I believe in God, etc. so Paul saith, With the heart a man may believe unto righteousness, Rom. 10.10. and with the mouth man confesseth to salvation. Confession of faith is, when a man in speech and outward profession doth make manifest his faith for these two causes. I. That with his mouth outwardly he may glorify God both in body and soul. II. That by the confession of his faith, he may sever himself from all false Christians, from Atheists, hypocrites, and all false seducers whatsoever. And as this is the duty of a Christian man, to make profession of his faith; so here in this Creed of the Apostles, we have the right order and form of making it set down, as we shall see in handling the parts thereof. The Creed therefore sets down two things concerning faith, namely the action of faith and his object, which also are the parts of the Creed. The action in these words, I believe: the object in all the words following, in God the Father almighty, maker etc. And first let us begin with the action. I believe in God.) We are taught to say, I believe, not we believe, for two causes. First (because as we touched before) in the Primitive Church this Creed was made to be an answer made unto a question, which was demanded of every particular man that was baptised: for they asked him thus; What dost thou believe? then he answered, I believe in God the Father, etc. and thus did every one of years make profession of his faith: and it is likely that Peter alluded hereunto, saying, 1. Pet. 3.21. the stipulation or answer of a good conscience maketh request to God. The second cause is, howsoever we are to pray one for another, by saying, O our father, etc. yet when we come to years, we must have a particular faith of our own: no man can be saved by another's man's faith, but by his own, so it is said: The just shall live by his faith. But some will say, this is not true. Habac. 2.4. For children must be saved by their parent's faith: the answer is this; the faith of the parents doth bring the child to have a title or interest to the covenant of grace and to all the benefits of Christ: but yet it doth not apply the benefits of Christ's death, his obedience, his merits, and righteousness unto the infant: for this the believer doth only unto himself & to no other. Again some may say, if they do not apprehend Christ's benefits by their parent's faith, how then is Christ's righteousness made theirs? Answ. By the inward working of the holy Ghost, who is the principal applier of all graces, whereas faith is but the instrument. And this is true, men of years are justified by their own faith; & the infant by some other special working of God's holy spirit. Furthermore, to believe signifieth two things; to conceive or understand any thing, and withal to give assent unto it to be true: and therefore in this place, to believe signifieth to know and acknowledge that all the points of religion which follow, are the truth of God. Here therefore we must remember, that this clause (I believe) placed in the beginning of the Creed, must be particularly applied to every article following. For so the case stands, that if faith fail in one main point, it faileth a man in all: and therefore faith is said to be wholly copulative. Fides est tota copulativa. It is not sufficient to hold one article, but he that will hold any of them for his good, must hold them all: and he which holds them all in show of words, if he overturn but one of them in deed, he ouerturnes them all. Again, to believe is one thing, & to believe in this or that is another thing: and it containeth in it 3. points or actions of a believer. 1. to know a thing: 2. to acknowledge the same: 3. to put trust and confidence in it. And in this order must these three actions of faith be applied to every article following which concerneth God. And herein is contained a special matter. For always by adding them to the words following, we do apply the article unto ourselves in a very comfortable manner. As I believe in the father, and do believe that he is my father; and therefore I put my whole trust in him, and so of the rest. Now we come to the object of general faith, which is either God or the Church; in handling of both which, I will observe this order. I. I will speak of the meaning of every article. II. Of the duties which we ought to learn thereby. III. And lastly, of the consolations which may be gathered thence. Concerning God, three things are to be considered. And first by reason of manifold doubtings that rise in our minds, it may be demanded, whether there be a God? many reasons might be used to resolve those that have scruple of conscience: otherways we are bound to believe that there is a God without all doubting. As for those Atheists which confidently avouch there is no God, by God's law they ought to die the death: nay, the earth is too good for such to dwell on. Malefactors, as thieves and rebels, for their offences have their reward of death: but the offence of those, which deny that there is a God, is greater; and therefore deserves the most cruel death. The second point followeth, namely what God is? Answer. Moses desiring to see God's face, was not permitted but to see his hinder parts: Exod. 32. and therefore no man can be able to describe God by his nature, but by his effects & properties; on this or such like manner: God is an essence spiritual, simple, infinite, most holy. I say first of all, that God is an essence, to show that he is a thing absolutely subsisting in himself & by himself, not receiving his being from any other. And herein he differeth from all creatures whatsoever, which have subsisting & being from him alone. Again I say that he is an essence spiritual, because he is not a kind of body, neither hath he the parts of the bodies of men or other creatures, but is in nature a spirit invisible, not subject to any of man's senses. I add also, that he is a simple essence, because his nature admits no manner of composition of matter or form or parts. The creatures are compounded of divers parts, & of variety of nature, but there is no such thing in God: for whatsoever thing he is, he is the same by one & the same singular and indivisible essence. Furthermore he is infinite; and that divers ways: infinite in time, without any beginning and without end: infinite in place; because he is every where and excluded no where, within all places, and forth of all places. Lastly he is most holy, that is, of infinite wisdom, mercy, love, grace, goodness, etc. and he alone is rightly termed most holy, because holiness is of the very nature of God himself; whereas among the most excellent creatures it is otherwise. As for example, a man is one thing, and the holiness of man is another. Thus we see what God is: and to this effect god describes himself to be jehovah Elohim; Exod 3.6, 14. 1. Tim. 1.17. & Paul describes him to be a King everlasting, immoral, invisible, & only wise, to whom is due all honour & glory for ever. The third point is, touching the number of Gods, namely whether there be more Gods than one or no. Ans. There is not, neither can there be any more Gods then one. Which point the Creed avoucheth, in saying, I believe in God, not gods: and yet more plainly the Nicene Creed and the Creed of Athanasius, both of them explaining the words of the Apostles Creed on this manner, I believe in one God. Howsoever some in former times have erroneously held, that two Gods were the beginning of all things, one of good things, the other of evil things: others, that there was one God in the old testament, an other in the new: others again, namely the Valintinians, that there were 30. couple of gods: and the heathen people (as Augustine recordeth) worshipped 30. thousand gods: yet we that are members of God's Church, must hold and believe one God alone, & no more, Deut. 4.39. Understand this day and consider in thine heart, that jehovah he is God in heaven above and upon the earth beneath: there is none other. Eph. 4.8. One God, one faith, one baptism. If it be alleged that the Scripture mentioneth many gods, because a Psal. 82.6. Magistrates are called gods, b Exo. 4.16. Moses is called Aaron's god, c 2. cor. 4.4. the devil and all idols are called gods. The answer is this: They are not properly or by nature gods, for in that respect there is only one God: but they are so termed in other respects. Magistrates are gods, because they be Vicegerents placed in the room of the true God, to govern their subjects: Moses is Aaron's god, because he was in the room of god to reveal his will to Aaron: the devil is a god, because the hearts of the wicked would give the honour unto him, which is peculiar to the everliving God: idols are called gods, because they are such in men's conceits and opinions, who esteem of them as of gods. Therefore Paul faith, an idol is nothing in the world, 1. Cor. 8.4. that is, nothing in nature subsisting, or nothing in respect of the divinity ascribed unto it. To proceed forward, to believe in this one God, is in effect thus much. 1. to know and acknowledge him as he hath revealed himself in his word: 2. to believe him to be my God: 3. from mine heart to put all mine affiance in him. To this purpose Christ saith, This is eternal life to know thee the only God, and whom thou hast sent jesus Christ. joh. 17.2. Now the knowledge here meant, is not a bare or general knowledge, for that the devils have, but a more special knowledge whereby I know God not only to be God, but also to be my God, and thereupon do put my confidence in him. And thus much of the meaning of the first words, I believe in God, etc. Now follow the duties which may be gathered hence. First of all, if we are bound to believe in God, than we are also bound to take notice of our natural unbelief, to check ourselves for it, and to strive against it. Thus dealt the father of the child that had a dumb spirit, Lord, (saith he) I believe, Lord help mine unbelief. And David, Marc. 9.2, 4. Why art thou cast down my soul? and why art thou so disquieted in me? wait on God. Psal. 42.12. And that which our Saviour Christ said once to Peter should a man say every day to himself: O thou of little faith, why hast thou doubted? But some may say, wherein stands our unbelief? Answer. It stands in two things I. In distrusting the goodness of God, that is, in giving to little or no affiance to him; or in putting affiance in the creature. For the first, few men will abide to be told of there distrust in God: but in deed it is a common and rife corruption: and though they sooth themselves never so, yet their usual dealings proclaim their unbelief. Go through all places, it shall be found that scarce one of a thousand in his dealings makes conscience of a lie: a great part of men gets their wealth by fraud and oppression and all kind of unjust and unmerciful dealing. What is the cause that they can do so? Alas, alas, if there be any faith, it is pinned up in some by-corner of the heart, and unbelief bears sway as the lord of the house. Again, if a man had as much wealth as the world comes to, he could find in his heart to wish for an other, and if he had two worlds, he would be casting for the third, if it might be compassed: the cause hereof is, men have not learned to make God their portion, and to stay their affections on him: which if they could do, a mean portion in temporal blessings would be enough. Such men will not yield that they do indeed distrust the Lord, unless at some time they be touched in conscience with a sense of their sins, and be thoroughly humbled for the same: but indeed distrust of God's goodness is a general and a mother sin, the ground of all other sins, and the very first and principal sin in Adam's fall. And for the second part of unbelief, which is an affiance in the creature, read the whole book of God, and we shall find it a common sin in all sorts of men, some putting their trust in riches, some in strength, some in pleasures, some placing their felicity in one sin, some in an other. When King Asa was sick, 2. chron. 16.12. he put his trust in the Physicians, and not in the Lord. And in our days the common practice is, when crosses and calamities fall, then there is trotting out to that wise man, to this cunning woman, to this sorcerer, to that wizard, that is, from God to the devil, and their counsel is received and practised without any bones making. And this shows the bitter root of unbelief, and confidence in vain creatures; let men smooth it over with goodly terms as long as they will. In a word, there is no man in the world, be he called or not called, if he look narrowly unto himself, he shall find his heart almost filled with manifold doubtings and distrusting, whereby he shall feel himself even carried away from believing in God. Therefore the duty of every man is, that will truly say that he believes in God, to labour to see his own unbelief and the fruits thereof in his life. As for such as say they have no unbelief, nor feel none; more pitiful is their case. For so much the greater is their unbelief. Secondly, considering that we profess ourselves to believe in God, 2. Duty. we must every one of us learn to know God. As Paul saith, How can they believe in him, of whom they have not heard? Rom. 10.14. and how can they hear without a preacher? therefore none can believe in God but he must first of all hear and be taught by the ministery of the word to know God aright. Let this be remembered of young and old. It is not the pattering over of the belief for a prayer, that will make a man a good believer, but God must be known of us and acknowledged as he hath revealed himself partly in his word and partly in his creatures. Blind ignorance and the right use of the Apostles Creed will never stand together. Therefore it stands men in hand to labour and takes pains to get knowledge in religion, that knowing God aright, they may come steadfastly to believe in him. Thirdly, because we believe in God, therefore another duty is to deny ourselves utterly, 3. Duty. and to become nothing in ourselves. Our Saviour Christ requires of us to become as little children, if we would believe. The beggar depends not on the relief of others till he find nothing at home: and till our hearts be purged of self-love and pride, we can not depend on the favour and goodness of God. Therefore he that would trust in God, must first of all be abased and confounded in himself, and in regard of himself be out of all hope of attaining to the least spark of the grace of God. Fourthly, in that we believe in God, and therefore put our whole trust and assurance in him: we are taught, 4. Duty. that every man must commit his body, his soul, goods, life, yea all that he hath into the hands of God, and to his custody. So Paul saith, I am not ashamed of my sufferings, for I know whom I have believed, 2. Tim. 1.12. and am persuaded that he is able to keep that which I have committed unto him against that day. A worthy saying: for what is the thing which Paul committed unto the Lord? surely his own soul and the eternal salvation thereof. But what moves him to trust God? surely his persuasion whereby he knows that God will keep it. And Peter saith: 1. Pet. 4.19. Let them that suffer according to the will of God, commit their souls to him in well doing as unto a faithful creator. Look as one friend layeth down a thing to be kept of another: so must a man give all that he hath to the custody of God. few or none can practise this, and therefore when any evil befalls them either in body or in goods, or any other way, than they show themselves rather beasts than men in impatience. For in prosperity they would not trust in God, and therefore in adversity when crosses come, they are void of comfort. But when a man hath grace to believe and trust in God, than he commits all into God's hands: and though all the world should perish, yet he would not be dismayed. And undoubtedly if a man will be thankful for the preservation of his goods, or of his life, he must show the same by committing all he hath into God's hands, and suffer himself to be ruled by him. Comforts. Now follows the consolations and comforts which Gods Church and children reap hereby. First, he that believes in God, and takes God for his God, may assure himself of salvation, and of a happy deliverance in all dangers and necessities. When God threatened a plague upon Israel for their idolatry, 2. Chron. 34.27. 2. Chr. 32. good king josiah humbled himself before the Lord: and he was safe all his days. And so King Hezekiah, when Senacherib the king of Ashur offered to invade judah, he trusted in the Lord, and prayed unto him, and was delivered. Whereby we see, if a man trust in God, he shall have security and quietness, 2. chron. 20.20. as jehosaphat said to the men of judah. And our Saviour Christ when he was upon the cross, and felt the whole burden of the wrath of God upon him, cried, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me. And it appeareth in the Epistle to the Hebrews, that Christ was heard in that he feared: Heb. 5.7. whereby we are given to understand, that they shall never be utterly forsaken that take God for their God. Psal. 22. And King David having experience of this, useth most excellent speeches for this end, to show that the ground of his comfort was, that God was his God. And it is said that Daniel had no manner of hurt in the lions den; Dan. 6.23. because he trusted in the Lord his God. And contrariwise, such as distrust God are subject to all miseries and judgements. The Israelites in the wilderness believed not God, and trusted not in his help, therefore God was angry, Psalm. 78.21, 22. and his fire was kindled in jacob, and wrath came upon Israel. God, the Father Almighty. Some have thought that these words are to be coupled with the former without distinction, as if the title of God had been proper to the first person the Father, and not common to the rest: and thus have some heretics thought. But indeed there must a pause or distinction be made, that the name or title of God may be set in the forefront, as common to all the three persons following. For that is the very intent of the order of this Creed, to teach us to believe in one God, who is distinct into three subsistances or persons called the Father, the Son, the Holy Ghost. And here offers itself to be considered even one of the greatest mysteries of our religion: namely, that God is the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost: and again, that the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost are one and the same God. Some at the first may possibly say, that this cannot stand because it is against all reason that one should be three, or three one. The answer is, that indeed if one and the same respect be kept, it is not possible, but in diverse considerations and respects it may. And thus the Father, the Son, & the Holy Ghost are three, namely in person; and again, they three are one, not in person, but in nature. By nature is meant, a thing subsisting by itself, that is common to many: as the substance of man consisting of body and soul common to all men, which we call the humanity of a man, is the nature of man. By person is meant, a thing or essence subsisting by itself, not common to many, but incommunicable: as among men, these particulars, Peter, john, Paul, are called persons. And so in the mystery of the Trinity the divine nature is the godhead itself simply and absolutely considered; and a person is that which subsisteth in this godhead, as the Father, the Son, the Holy Ghost. Or again, a person is one and the same godhead not absolutely considered, but in relation, and as it were, restrained by personal or characteristical proprieties: as the Godhead or God begetting is the father, God again considered not simply but so far forth as he is begotten is the Son; and God proceeding of the Father and the Son, the Holy ghost. And if any man would conceive in mind rightly the divine nature, he must conceive God or the Godhead absolutely: if any of the persons, than he must conceive the same godhead relatively with personal proprieties. Thus the godhead considered with the propriety of fatherhood or begetting is the father: & conceiving the same godhead with the propriety of generation, we conceive the son, & the godhead with the propriety of proceeding, & we conceive the Holy Ghost. Neither must it seem strange to any that we use the names of nature and person to set forth this mystery by: for they have been taken up by common consent in the primitive Church, & that upon weighty consideration to manifest the truth, & to stop the mouths of heretics: & they are not used against the proper sense of the scriptures, nay they are therein a Heb. 1.3. Gal. 4.8. contained. Thus we see how it comes to pass that the three things signified by these names, Father, Son, holy Ghost, are each of them one & the same God. And this mystery may well be conceived by a comparison borrowed from light. The light of the sun, the light of the moon, & the light of the air for nature and substance are one & the same light: & yet they are 3. distinct lights. The light of the sun being of itself & from none, the light of the moon from the sun, & the light of the air from them both. So the divine nature is one, and the persons are three, subsisting after a diverse manner in one and the same nature. And for the further clearing of the point, we must yet further mark & remember two things: namely, the union & the distinction of the persons. The union is, whereby three persons are one not simply, but one in nature, that is, coessential or consubstantial; having all one godhead. For the father is God, the son is God, & the holy ghost is God: now there are not 3. distinct Gods, but one God, because there is one God & no more in nature; considering that the thing which is infinite is but one & is not subject to multiplication: & the Father is this one God, as also the Son and the holy ghost. And as these three persons are one in nature, so whatsoever agrees to God simply considered, agrees to them all three. They are all coequal and coeternal: all most wise, just, merciful, omnipotent by one & the same wisdom, justice, mercy, power. And because they have all one godhead, therefore they are not only one with another, but also each in other, the father in the son, & and the son in the father, and the holy ghost in them both. And we must not imagine that these three are one god, as though the father had one part of the godhead, the son an other part, & the holy ghost a third. For that is most false, because the infinite and the most simple godhead is not subject to composition or division: but every person is whole god, subsisting not in a part, but in the whole godhead: & the whole entire godhead is communicated from the father to the son, & from both father & son to the holy ghost. But some may yet say, that this doctrine seems to be impossible; because three creatures, as for example, Peter, Paul, Timothy being three persons, & so remaining, cannot have one and the same nature, that is, the same body & the same soul. Ans. Three or more men may have the same nature a Specie. in kind, but the truth is, they cannot possibly have a nature which shallbe one & the same b Numero. in number, in them all three. For a man is a substance created & finite, & the bodies of men are quantities, & therefore divisible & separable one from another. Hereupon it comes that the persons of men are not only distinguished by proprieties, but also divided & sundered one from another. And though Peter, Paul, Timothy, have all one common & universal form, yet they three are not one man, but 3. men. Now it is otherwise with the divine nature or godhead which is uncreated and infinite, and therefore admits neither composition nor division, but a distinction without any separation: so as the three persons subsisting in it, shall not be three gods, but one and the same god. Yet further some will object, that it is truly said of the father, that he is god, but the same godhead is not in the son, nor in the holy ghost; for the son and the holy ghost have their beginning from the father. Answer, The son and the holy ghost have not a beginning of their nature or of their godhead from the Father, but of their person only: the person of the Son is from the Father; and the person of the Holy ghost, is both from the Father and from the Son: but the Godhead of all three persons is uncreate and unbegotten, and proceeding from none. Yet some may say, both the Son and the Holy Ghost have received from the Father all their attributes, as wisdom, knowledge, power, etc. Now he that receiveth any thing from another, is in that respect inferior to him that giveth it: and therefore the son and the Holy ghost are not God as he is. Ans. We must know, that, which the Son receiveth of the Father, he receiveth it by nature, and not by grace; & he receiveth not a part but all that the Father hath, saving the personal propriety. And the Holy Ghost receiveth from the Father and the Son by nature and not by grace: and therefore though both the Son and the Holy Ghost receive from the Father, yet they are not inferior to him but equal with him. And thus much is necessary to be learned of the union between the three persons in Trinity, whereby they being three have all one and the same godhead. The second point to be considered is, that though these three have but one godhead, and all make but one God: yet they are distinguished one from another: for the Father is the Father, and not the Son, nor the Holy Ghost: the Son is the Son and not the Father nor the Holy ghost: and the Holy Ghost is the Holy ghost, not the Father nor the Son. This distinction of the persons is notably set forth unto us in the baptism of our Saviour Christ: where it is said, Matt. 3.16, 17. that when jesus was baptised, he came out of the water: there is the second person: and the Holy ghost descended upon him in the form of a dove: there is the third person: and the Father the first person pronounced from heaven, that he was his beloved Son in whom he was well pleased. And we must not conceive this distinction in such manner as though these three, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost were three names of one God. For the three persons do not in name or word, but really in truth distinctly subsist in the same divine nature. Neither must we imagine that the three persons are three forms or differences of one god, as some heretics have dreamt, who taught that the father alone is God, and that he is called a Father in one respect, the Son in another, and the Holy ghost in a third. For this were nothing else but to make the personal proprieties to be nothing but imaginary accidents, which indeed, or at the least, in man's conceit, might come and go, and be either in the persons or forth of them. For the personal relations though in a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. mind they may be distinguished from the divine essence, yet b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. indeed they are one with it. But some will say, if they make this distinction, there is rather a quaternity then a trinity: for the godhead is one, the father an other, the son a third, and the holy ghost a fourth. Thus some heretics have objected against the distinction of the trinity: but it is untrue which they say▪ for the godhead must not be severed from the father, nor from the son, nor from the holy Ghost: for the father is God or the whole godhead, so also is the son and the holy ghost: and the godhead likewise is in every one of these three persons, and every one of them subsisting in the godhead, and the godhead must be conceived to be in them all, and not as a fourth thing out of them. And therefore we must still maintain, that these 3. persons are distinguished and not divided, as three men are divided in being and substance: for this division can not be in them, because all three have one divine nature and one godhead. This is the mystery of all mysteries to be received of us all, namely, the trinity of the persons in the unity of the godhead. This doctrine must be retained and holden for these causes. I. because by it we are able to distinguish this true God from all false Gods and Idols. II. Because among all other points of religion this is one of the chiefest, being the very foundation thereof. For it is not sufficient for us to know God as we can conceive of him in our own imagination: but we must know him as he hath revealed himself in his word. And it is not sufficient to salvation to believe in God confusedly, but we must believe in one god distinct into three persons, the Father, the Son, the holy Ghost: yea & more than this, we must hold & believe that God the father is our father, the son our redeemer, the holy ghost our sanctifier & comforter. Well then, if we must in this manner believe in god, than we must also know him: for we can have no faith in the thing which is utterly unknown. wherefore if we would believe in the father, son, or holy ghost, we must know them in part, joh. 17. This is life eternal to know thee the only God, and whom thou hast sent jesus Christ. joh. 14.17. The world can not receive the spirit of truth because it hath neither seen him nor known him. 1. joh. 2.23. Whosoever denieth the son hath not the father. Thirdly, this doctrine directs us in worshipping God aright: for unity in trinity, & trinity in unity is to be worshipped: one God must be worshipped in the father, in the son, and in the holy ghost: & if we worship God the father without the son & the holy ghost: or if we worship the son without the father and the holy ghost: and the holy ghost without the father & the son, we worship nothing but an Idol. Again, if we worship the 3. persons not as one God, but as three gods, than likewise we make three Idols. Note further, that of all the three persons, the first person the father is set in the first place, and is described to us by three things. I. by his title that he is a father. II. by his attribute that he is Almighty. III. by his effect, that he is maker of heaven and earth: of these in order as they lie in the Creed. And first of the title (father.) It may seem that he hath some prerogative over the son and the holy ghost, because he is set before them: but we must know he is set before them neither in regard of time, nor of dignity, for therein all three are equal; but in regard of order only. The father is the first, the son the second, and the holy ghost the third: as may appear by this similitude. If three Emperors equal in dignity should meet all in one place, being equal also in power and majesty, if all three should sit down, though one be no better than an other; yet one of them must needs sit down the first, and another in the second place, and then the third: but yet we can not say, that he which sat down first is the chiefest. And so it is in the Trinity, though none be greater or above another; yet the Father is in the first place, not because he is before the son, or the holy ghost in dignity or honour, but because he is the fountain of the deity, the son being from him, and the holy ghost from them both. Now let us come to the title of the first person. The meaning. The name Father in Scriptures is ascribed either to God taken indefinitely, and so by consequent to all the three persons in Trinity: or particularly to the first person alone. For the first, God is a Father properly and principally, according to the saying of Christ, Call no man father upon earth, for there is but one your father which is in heaven: that is, a Mat. 23.9. principally: whereas earthly parents, whom we are commanded to worship and honour are but certain images or resemblances of our heavenly father, having this blessing that they are fathers from him. And hereupon this title agrees in men, not simply, but so far forth as God honoureth them with fatherhood in calling them to be fathers, whereas god himself receives this honour from none. God is termed a father in respect both of nature and grace. He is a father in regard of nature, because he created and governeth all things. In this regard he is called the b Heb. 12.9. father of spirits, and c Luk. 3.38. Adam is called the Son of God. He is a father in respect of grace, because we are regenerate by him, and accepted to be his sons by adoption through the merit of Christ. And in this respect the second person as well as the first is called d Esa. 9.6. a Father, and said to have an offspring e Esa 53.10. or seed and f Esa. 8.18. children. But when the name of Father is given to the first person, 〈◊〉 is done upon a special consideration, because he is a father by nature to the second person begetting him of his own substance before all worlds. By this it appears, that out of the title of the first person, we may fetch a description thereof on this manner. The Father is the first person in Trinity, begetting the son. Now to beget is the personal propriety whereby he is distinguished from the other two. If it be said that the creatures do beget, & that therefore to beget is not proper to the father: the answer is, that in this point there are many differences between God the father & all creatures. First the father begets the son before all eternity: and therefore God the Father begetting, and the son begotten are equal in time, whereas in earthly generation the father is before the son in time. Secondly, God the father begets his Son by communicating unto him his whole essence or godhead, which can not be in earthly parents, unless they should be abolished and come to nothing. Whereas nevertheless, God the Father giving his whole nature to his son, retains the same still, because it is infinite. Thirdly, the father begets the son in himself & not forth of himself: but in earthly generation the father begetting is forth of the child, and the child forth of the father. And that must not trouble us which heretics allege against this doctrine, namely, that if the father who is of one nature with the son, did beget the son, than he did beget himself: for the godhead of the father doth not beget either the godhead or the person of the son: but the person of the father begets the person of the son, both which in one godhead are really distinct. Thus we see what the father is. Now to believe in the father, is to be persuaded, that the first person in Trinity, is the father of Christ, ●er. 3.4▪ 19 Matth. 6.4. and in him my father particularly, and that for this cause I intend & desire for ever to put my trust in him. The duties which we may learn hence are manifold. And here we have occasion offered first of all to consider who is our father by nature. job. 17.14. I shall say to corruption (saith job) thou art my father▪ and to the worm, thou art my mother seeing god vouchsafeth this great prerogative to them that love him, that he will be their father: therefore job in consideration hereof would have every man to have recourse to his own natural condition, to see who is his father by nature. job saith, corruption is his father: but if we mark the condition of our nature, we shall further see every man is by nature the child of wrath, and that Satan is his father: for so long as a man walks in his sins (which every man doth by nature) so long doth he show himself to be the lively child of the devil. And thus Christ reasoneth against the Scribes and Pharisees. Ye are of your father the devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do. And true it is, john. 8.44. that no child is so like his father that begat him, as every man by nature is like the devil: and the whole tenor and course of his natural life without grace is a lively resemblance of the disposition of Satan. Secondly, every one that believes God to be a Father, and in Christ his father, 2. Duty. must as a good child be obedient to his fathers will. So Solomon saith, A wise son maketh a glad father. How? Prov. 10.1. by doing his will: and therefore when one told our Saviour Christ that his mother and brethren stood without, desiring to speak with him, he said, Mat. 12.50. Whosoever shall do my father's will which is in heaven, the same is my father, my sister, and mother: where we may note, that he that will have God the Father to be his Father, and Christ jesus his brother, must do the will of God the father. And hence God saith, If I be a master, where is my fear? If I be a father, where is my honour? Mal. 1.6. Where is plainly taught this second duty; that if God be our father, then as good children we must show obedience unto him: but if we be disobedient unto him, than we must know, that that former saying of Christ will be verified upon us: that because men do the lusts of the devil: therefore they are the children of the devil. But least this fearful sentence be verified of us, it is the duty of every man that maketh this confession, that he believes God to be his father, first to labour to know God's will; and secondly, to perform continual obedience unto the same. Like unto a good child that would feign please his father, and therefore is always ready to do the best he can. And without doubt that man which unfeignedly takes God for his father, is then most grieved, when as by any sin he displeaseth him, & no other cross or calamity is so grievous unto him. The greatest grief that the prodigal son had, was that he had offended his father by sinning against heaven, & against him: the same also must be our grief: and all our care set on this, how we may be obedient children to this our loving father. Thirdly, that man that believes God to be his father, 3. Duty. must imitate and follow him: for it is the will of God that his children should be like unto himself. Now we follow God especially in 2. things. I. In doing good to them that persecute us: so saith our Saviour Christ, Mat. 5.45. Pray for them that hurt you, that you may be the children of your father which is in heaven: for he maketh the sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and unjust. II. Our heavenly father is merciful: for he is a father of the fatherless: Psal. 68.5. and therefore he that will be a son of this father must be merciful to his poor brethren, as job saith of himself, I was the eyes to the blind, & I was the feet unto the lame: job. 29.15, 16. 4. Duty. I was a father unto the poor. Fourthly, seeing we believe God to be our father, we are hereby taught only to use moderate care for the things of this life: for if a man know himself to be the child of God, than he also knows that God will provide for him, as we know in a family the father provideth for all. Now God is a father, and his Church is his family; therefore if thou wilt be a member of God's Church, & a child of God, thou must cast thy care on god, Mat. 6.26. & follow the counsel of Christ: Be not to careful for your life what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink. And mark his reason drawn from the point which we have in hand. The fowls of the heaven (saith he) they neither sow nor reap, nor carry into barns: and yet your heavenly father feedeth them: are not ye much better than they. But alas, the practice of the world is contrary: for men have no care for the knowledge of God's word, nor the means of their salvation: all their minds are set on the things of this life: when as Christ saith, First seek the kingdom of heaven, and the righteousness thereof, and all these things shall be ministered unto you. If you should see a young man provide for himself, and no man else for him, we would say, surely his father is dead: even so, when a man's care is set wholly both day and night for the things of this life, it argues that God hath either cast him off, or else that he takes him for no father of his. Fiftly, if God he our father, than we must learn to bear any cross patiently that he shall lay upon us, either in body or in mind, 5. Duty. and always look for deliverance from him▪ for whom the Lord loveth, them he chastiseth: and if ye endure chastising (saith the Apostle) God offereth himself unto you as unto children: Heb. 12.7. which may appear more plainly by this comparison. If two children should fight, and a man coming by, should part them, and after beat the one, and let the other go free: every man that seethe this will say, that that child which he beats is his own son. Even so, when God chastiseth us, he showeth himself unto us as a father, if we submit ourselves. Now if our earthly fathers corrected us, and we gave them reverence, taking it patiently: should we not much rather be in subjection to the father of spirits that we may live. Therefore the conclusion is this: if we displease God, be ye sure, he will correct us; & when his hand is upon us we must not murmur against him, but bear it with a mild spirit: and furthermore, when we are under the cross, we must always look for deliverance from this our father only. If a son when he is beaten should flee to his father's enemies for help and counsel; it would argue that he were but a graceless child. Sundry and diverse calamities and crosses befall men in this life, which they can not brook; and therefore it is a common practice of many among us in these days, when God's hand is upon them, to go for help to the devil; they seek for counsel at witches and wise men, (as I have said) but let them look unto it, for that is the right way to double their misery, and to show themselves lewd children. Lastly, if we confess and believe god to be the father of Christ, 6. Duty. and in him our father also; then in regard of our conversation, we must not frame ourselves like unto the world: but the course of our lives must be in righteousness, and true holiness. Paul exhorteth the Corinthians to separate themselves from Idolaters, 2. Cor. 6.18. alleging the place out of the old Testament, where the Lord biddeth the Israelites to come out from Idolaters, Isa. 22.11. and to touch no unclean thing: and the reason followeth out of jeremy, jer. 31.1. that if they do so, then God will be their father, and they shall be his children, even his sons and daughters: which reason Paul urgeth in the next chapter to this effect: 2. Cor. 7.1. considering we have these promises, that therefore we should cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, and grow up unto holiness in the fear of the Lord: where, if we mark the place diligently, we shall find this lesson, that every man who takes God for his father, must not only in this sin of Idolatry, but in all other sins separate himself, that men by his godly life may know whose child he is. But some will say, this exhortation is needless amongst us; for we have no cause to separate ourselves from others, because all amongst us are Christians, all believe in God and are baptized, and hope to be saved by Christ. Answer. In outward profession, I confess, we carry the show of Christians, but in deed and truth, by our lives and conversations, very many among us deny Christ: for in every place the common practice is, to spend the time in drunkenness and surfeiting, in chambering and wantonness; yea, great is the company of those that make a trade of it: take this conversation from many men, and take away their lives. And on the lords day it may be seen both publicly and privately, in houses and in the open streets, there is such revel, as though there were no God to serve. In the six days of the week, many men walk very painfully in their callings: but when the lords day cometh, than every man takes licence to do what he will: and because of the prince's laws, men will come formally to the Church for fashion's sake: but in the mean time, how many do nothing else but scorn, mock, and deride, and as much as in them lieth, disgrace both the word and the ministers thereof? so that the common saying is this: oh he is a precise fellow, he goes to hear Sermons, he is too holy for our company. But it stands men in hand to take out a better lesson, which is, if we will have God to be our father, we must show ourselves to be the children of God by repentance and newness of life: he can not be but a graceless child, that will lead a rebellious life flat against his father's mind. Let us then so behave ourselves, that we may honour our father which is in heaven, and not dishonour him in our lives and callings: rather let us separate ourselves from the filthiness of the flesh, loathing those things which our father loatheth, and fleeing from those things which our father abhorreth. And thus much for the duties. Now follow the consolations which arise from this point. Consolations. But first we are to know that there are three sorts of men in the world. The first are such as will neither hear nor obey the word of God. The second sort are those which will hear the word preached unto them but they will not obey: both these sorts of men are not to look for any comfort hence. Now there is a third sort of men, which as they hear God's word; so they make conscience of obeying the same in their lives and callings: and these are they to whom the consolations that arise out of this place do rightly belong, and must be applied unto. First therefore, seeing God the father of Christ, and in him the father of all that obey and do his will, is our father, here note the dignity and prerogative of all true believers: for they are sons and daughters of God as saith S. john, So many as received him to them he gave a prerogative to be the sons of God: even to them that believe in his name. joh. 1.12. This privilege will appear the greater if we consider our first estate; for as Abraham saith, We are but dust and ashes, and in regard of the depravation of our natures, Gen 18.27. we are the children of the devil: therefore of such rebels to be made the sons of God, it is a wonderful privilege and prerogative, & no dignity like unto it. And to enlarge it further, he that is the son of God, is the brother of Christ, & fellow heir with him; and so heir apparent to the kingdom of heaven: and in this respect, is not inferior to the very angels. This must be laid up carefully in the hearts of God's people, to confirm them in their conversation among the company of ungodly men in this world. Secondly if a man do endeavour himself to walk according to God's word, than the Lord of his mercy will bear with his wants: for as a father spareth his own son, so will God spare them that fear him. Mal. 3.17. Psal. 103.13. Now a father commands his child to write or to apply his book: though all things herein be not done according to his mind, yet if he find a readiness with a good endeavour, he is content, and falls to praise his child's writing or learning. So God giveth his commandment, and though his servants fail in obedience; yet if the Lord see their hearty endeavour, and their unfeigned willingness to obey his will, though with sundry wants, he hath made this promise and will perform it, that as a father spareth his son, so will he spare them. If a child be sick, will the father cast him off? nay, if through the grievousness of his sickness he can not take the meat that is given him, or if he take it, & for faintness pick it up again, will the father of the child thrust him out of doors? no: but he will rather pity him. And so when a man doth endeavour himself through the whole course of his life to keep God's commandments, God will not cast him away, though through weakness he fail in sundry things and displease God. This prerogative can none have, but he that is the child of God: as for others when they sin, they do nothing else but draw down God's judgements upon them, for their deeper condemnation. Thirdly hence we learn, that the child of God can not wholly fall away from God's favour, I do not say, that he can not fall at all: for he may fall away in part, but he can not wholly: and so oft as he sins, he deprives himself in part of God's favour. David loved his son Absalon wonderfully, but Absalon like a wicked son played a lewd prank, & would have thrust his father out of his kingdom: And David although he was sore offended with Absalon, & showed tokens of his wrath, yet in heart he loved him, and never purposed to cast him off. Hereupon when he went against him, 2. Sam. 18.5. he commanded the Captains to entreat the young man Absalon gently for his sake. And when he was hanged by the hair of the head in pursuing his father, than David wept and cried. O my son Absalon, my son Absalon, would God I had died with thee, Absalon my son. And so it is with God our heavenly father, when his children sin against him, and thereby lose his love and favour, and fall from grace, he forsakes them: but how far? Surely he shows signs of anger for their wickedness, & yet indeed his love remains towards them still: and this is a true conclusion, the grace of god in the adoption of the elect is unchangeable, & he that is the child of God can never fall away wholly or finally. On the contrary, that is a bad and comfortless opinion of the Church of Rome; Torren. confess. Aug. which holdeth that a man may be justified before God: and yet afterward by a mortal sin, finally fall from grace and be condemned. Fourthly, the child of God that takes god the father for his father, may freely come into the presence of god, & have liberty to pray unto him. We know it is a great privilege to come into the chamber of presence before an earthly prince: and few can always have this prerogative though they be great men: yet the kings own son may have free entrance, & speak freely unto the king himself, because he is his son. Now the children of God have more prerogative than this: for they may come into the chamber of presence, not of an earthly king, but of Almighty God the king of kings, and as they are the sons of god in Christ, so in him they may freely speak unto God their father by prayer. And this overthrows the doctrine of such as be of the Church of Rome, which teach and hold, that a man must come to speak to god by prayer through the intercession of saints: for say they, the presence of god is so glorious, that we may not be so bold, as of ourselves to speak unto him; but needs must have the intercession of others. Lastly, God will provide for all his Church and children all things needful both for their bodies and souls: so our Saviour Christ bids his disciples take no thought what they should eat, or what they should drink, or wherewith they should be clothed, adding this reason, For your heavenly Father knoweth all your wants. And if we take thought, it must be moderate, and not distrustful: it is a part of the father's duty to provide for his family and children, and not the children for the father. Now shall an earthly father have this care for his children: and shall not our heavenly father much more provide for those that fear and love him? Nay mark further, in God's Church there be many hypocrites which receive infinite benefits from God, by reason of his elect children with whom they live: and we shall see this to be true, that the wicked man hath ever fared better for the godly man's cause. Sodom and Gommorrha received many benefits by reason of righteous Lot: and when the Lord was purposed to destroy Sodom, he was feign to pull Lot forth of the city: for the text saith the angel of the Lord, Gen. 19.22. could not do any thing till he was come out of it. So also in Paul's dangerous voyage towards Rome, all the men in it fared better for Paul's company: for the Lord told Paul by an angel, that there should be no loss of any man's life, for the Lord had given to him all that sailed with him. Act. 27.24. And undoubtedly if it were not for some few that fear God, he would pour down his vengeance upon many nations and kingdoms, there is such excess of wickedness in all sorts. Again, if the Lord do thus carefully provide for his children all kind of benefits; what a wonderful wickedness is this, for men to get their living by ungodly means: as usury, carding, dicing, and such like exercises. If a man were persuaded that God were his father, and would provide sufficiently both for his body and soul; so that using lawful means he should ever have enough: out of all doubt he would never after the fashion of the world use unlawful and profane means to get a living. But this proveth, that howsoever such men say, God is their father, yet indeed they deny him. And thus much of this title, father, the first thing whereby the first person is described. Now followeth the second point, namely his attribute of omnipotency in this word almighty. And whereas the father is said to be almighty, it is not so to be understood as though the Son were not almighty, or the holy Ghost not almighty: for every property and attribute (save the personal properties) is common to all the three persons. For as God the Father doth impart his Godhead unto the Son, and to the holy Ghost; so also he doth communicate the proprieties thereof to them. God is omnipotent two ways: I. Because he is able to do whatsoever he will. II. Because he is able to do more than he will do. For the first, that God is able to do whatsoever he will, David saith: Our God is in heaven, and he doth whatsoever he will: for there is nothing that can hinder God; but as he willeth, so every thing is done. Secondly, that God can do more than he willeth to be done, it is plain where john Baptist saith: Matth. 3.9. God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham: though God can do this thing, yet he will not do it. So likewise when Christ was betrayed, the Father could have given him more than 12. legions of Angels to have delivered him out of their hands, but yet he would not: and the like may be said of many other things. The father is & was able to have created another world, yea a thousand worlds; but he would not, nor will not. And likewise Christ being upon the cross, was able at their bidding to have come down, and saved himself from death; but he would not: and therefore this is true, the Lord can do any thing that he willeth to be done actually, yea and more than he will. But some will say; God can not do some things which man can do, Ti●. 1.2. 2. Tim. 2.13. as God can not lie, nor deny himself▪ and therefore he is not omnipotent. Answ. Although some have thought God could do these things; and that he did them not, because he would not: yet we must know and believe that God can neither lie, nor deny himself: indeed man can do both, but these and many other such things, if he could do them, he could not be God. God indeed can do all things which show forth his glory and majesty: but such things as are against his nature, he can not do, as for example: God can not sin, and therefore can not lie: and because he can not do those things, therefore he is omnipotent: for these and such like, are works of impotency: which if God could do, he were but an impotent God. Secondly, he can not do that which implies contradiction: as when a thing is, to make it at the same time to be, and not to be: as when the sun doth shine, to make it at the same instant to shine and not to shine. And therefore false is the doctrine of the Church, which in their transubstantiation make the body of Christ, (whose essential property is to be only in one place at once) to be circumscribed, and not to be circumscribed; to be in one place, and not to be in one place. And thus much for the meaning. Now follow the duties whereunto we are moved by this doctrine, of God's omnipotency. Duties. First, whereas God the Father is said to be Almighty, we are taught true humiliation: Humble yourselves under the mighty hand of God, 1. Pet. 5.7. saith Peter: where he giveth an exhortation to humility, & allegeth the cause, because God is almighty. To make this more plain: Every one of us was borne in sin, and by nature we are most wretched in ourselves: now what an one is God? Surely he is able to do whatsoever he will, yea and more than he will, and is able to destroy such as rebel against him every moment. Therefore our duty is, to cast down ourselves for our sins in his presence. This true humiliation was that, which our Saviour Christ would have brought the young man in the Gospel unto, when he bade him go sell all that he had, and give to the poor. Therefore whosoever thou art, take heed thou must: for if thou run on in thy wickedness, and still rebel against God, it is a thousand to one at length he will destroy thee. For he is an almighty God, and able to do whatsoever he will: his hand is mighty, it boots not a man to strive with him: for he was never yet overmastered, and for this cause we must needs cast down ourselves under his hand. It is a fearful thing (saith the holy Ghost) to fall into the hands of the living God: Heb. 10.31. therefore if we would escape his heavy & terrible displeasure, the best way for us is, to abase ourselves, and be ashamed to follow our sins. Christ biddeth us not to fear him that is able to kill the body, and can go no further: but we must fear him that is able to cast both body and soul into hell fire. Mat. 10.28. Example of this we have in David, who when he was persecuted by his own son Absalon, he said unto the Lord, If he thus say, 2. Sam. 15▪ 26. I have no delight in thee, behold here I am, let him do to me as seemeth good in his eyes. But some will say, I will live a little longer in my sins, in lying▪ pride, Sabbath-breaking, in swearing, dicing, gaming, and wantonness: for God is merciful, and in my old age I will repent. Answ. Well, sooth not thyself: but mark, usually when God holds back his hand for a season, he doth, as it were, fetch a more mighty blow, for the greater confusion of a rebellious sinner; therefore humble, submit▪ and cast down thyself before God, and do not strive against him: his hand is mighty, and will overthrow thee. Though thou hadst all learning, wisdom, might, riches, etc. yet (as Christ said to the young man) one thing is wanting, that thou shouldest be humbled; & until thou be humbled, nothing is to be looked for, but God's judgement for sin. Secondly, seeing God is almighty; we must tremble and fear at all his judgements, we must stand in awe, quake, and quiver at them: as the poor child doth, when he seethe his father come with the rod. Example of this we have often in God's word: as when the sons of Aaron offered strange fire before the Lord, he sent fire from heaven, and burned them up. Lev. 10.3. Now Aaron he was very sorry for his sons: but when Moses told him, that the Lord would be glorified in all that came near him, than the text ●aith, Aaron held his peace. So also we read that the Apostles reproved Peter, for preaching unto the Gentiles: Act. 11.18. but when Peter had expounded the things in order which he had seen, than they held their peace, and glorified God. As also David saith: I h●ld my tongue, O Lord, because thou didst it. Psal. 39.10. Isaiah saith, In hope & silence is true fortitude. Isa. 50. If a man be in trouble he must hope for deliverance, and be quiet and patiented at God's judgements. But the practice of the world is flat contrary. For men are so far from trembling at them, that they will pray to God that plagues, curses, and vengeance may light upon them, and upon their seruan●s and children. Now the Lord being a mighty God, often doth answerably bring his judgements upon them. Again, many carried with impatiency, wish themselves hanged or drowned: which evils they think shall never befall them: yet at the length God doth in his justice bring such punishments upon them. Nay further in all ages there are some, which do scorn and mock at God's judgements. Hereof we had not far hence a most fearful example. One being with his companion in a house drinking on the Lord's day, Anno 1592. in Camebridgeshire. when he was ready to departed thence, there was great lightning and thunder: whereupon his fellow requested him to stay, but the man mocking and jesting at the thunder and lightning, said (as report was) it was nothing but a knave cooper knocking on his tubbs, come what would, he would go: and so went on his journey; but before he came half a mile from the house, the same hand of the Lord which before he had mocked, in a crack of thunder struck him about the girdlestead, that he fell down stark dead. Which example is worthy our remembrance, to put us in mind of God's heavy wrath against those which scorn his judgements: for our duty is to tremble and fear: and it were greatly to be wished, that we could with open eye behold the terribleness and fearfulness of God's judgements: it would make a man to quake and to leave off sin. If a man pass by some high and dangerous place in the night when he cannot see, he is not afraid; but if ye bring him back again in the day, and let him see what a steep and dangerous way he came, he will not be brought to go the same way again for any thing: so it is in sinning; for men living in ignorance and blindness, practise any wickedness, and do not care for God's judgements: but when God of his goodness bringeth them back, and openeth their eyes to see the downfall to the pit of hell, and the judgements of God due to their sins: then (they say) they will never sin as they have done, but become new men, and walk in the way to eternal life. Thirdly, we are taught by the Apostle Paul, that if we be to do any duty to our brethren, as to relieve them, we must do it with cheerfulness: for he laboureth to persuade the Corinthians to cheerful liberality; and the reason of his persuasion is, because God is able to make all grace to abound towards them. 2. Cor. 6.7, 8. Where also this duty is taught us, that seeing God is omnipotent and therefore able to make us abound, therefore we must give cheerfully to our poor brethren which want. Fourthly, whereas there are many in every place, which have lived long in their sins, even from their cradle; some in wantonness, some in drunkenness, some in swearing, some in idleness, and such like: out of this place, to all such there is a good lesson, namely that every one of them do now become new men, and repent of all their sins, for all their life past. For mark what Paul saith of the jews, which cut off from Christ through unbelief, & have so continued in hardness of heart, and desperate malice against him, almost 16. hundredth years: Rom. 11.23. If (saith he) they abide not still in unbelief, they may be grafted into their olive again: and his reason is this, because God is able to graft them in again. Even so though we have lived many years in sin, (and sure it is a dangerous and fearful case for a man to live 20, 30, or 40, years under the power of the devil:) yet we must know that if we will now live a new life, forsake all our sins, & turn to God, we may be received to grace, & be made a branch of the true olive, though we have borne the fruits of the wild olive all our life long. But some will object, that they have no hope of God's favour, because they have been so grievous sinners, and continued in them so long. Answ. But know it, whosoever thou art, God is able to graft thee in; & if thou repent, he will receive thee to his love & favour. This must be observed of all, but especially of such as are old in years, and yet remain ignorant without knowledge; they must turn to the Lord by repentance: otherwise, if they continue still profane and wicked, they must know this, that their damnation comes post haste to meet them, and they to it. Consolations. And thus much for the duties. Now follow the consolations which Gods Church reap from this, that God the father is omnipotent. First, the wonderful power of God serveth to strengthen us in prayer unto God; for he that will pray truly, must only pray for those things for which he hath warrant in God's word: all our prayers must be made in faith, and for a man to pray in faith, it is hard: therefore a special means to strengthen us herein, is the mighty power of God. This was the ground and stay of the leper whom our Saviour Christ cleansed: Lord (saith he) if thou wilt, Matth. 8. thou canst make me clean. And in the Lord's prayer, when our Saviour Christ hath taught us to make six petitions; in the end he giveth us a reason, or motive to induce us to stand upon, and to wait for the benefits before craved, in these words: Thine is the kingdom, thine is the power, etc. Secondly, hence we learn this comfort, that all the gates of hell shall never be able to prevail against the least member of Christ. I do not say they shall never be able to assault, or tempt them, for that may be: but they shall never overcome them. How (will some say) may we be resolved of this? I answer, By reason of faith: for if a Christian man do believe that God the father, and in Christ his father, is almighty, no enemy shall ever be able to prevail against him. So S. john reasoneth: Little children, ye are of God, and have overcome them, 1. joh. 5.4. that is, all false teachers, because greater is he that is in you, that is, Christ jesus by his holy spirit, who is God, and therefore almighty, than he that is in the world, that is, the spirit of Satan: therefore you need not to fear. So David compareth himself to a silly sheep, and saith: Though I should walk through the valley of the shadow of death, that is, Psal. 23. as it were in the mouth of the lion, yet I will fear none evil: why so? because the Lord is with him: thy rod (saith he) and thy staff comfort me. Thus much for the benefits. Now whereas it is said the first person is a father, as also almighty: join these two together, and hence will arise singular benefits and instructions. First, whereas we are taught to confess, that the first person is a father almighty, we and every man must learn to have experience in himself, of the mighty power of this almighty father. Why, will some say, that is nothing, for the devil and all the damned souls feel the power of the Almighty? True in deed they feel the power of God▪ namely as he is an almighty judge condemning them▪ but they feel not the power of an almighty father: this is the point whereof we must learn to have experience in ourselves. Paul prayeth that the God of our Lord jesus Christ the father of glory, Eph. 1.19. would give unto the Ephesians the spirit of wisdom, to see what is the exceeding greatness of his power in them which believe, according to the working of his mighty power which he wrought in Christ. Which place must be considered: for here the Apostle would have us have such a special manifestation of God's power in ourselves, like to that which he did once show forth in Christ. But how did Christ see and find the power of God as he was man? Answ. divers ways: I. On the cross he died the first death; which is the separation of body and soul: and he suffered the sorrows of the second death. For in his soul he bore the whole wrath of God, and all the pangs of hell, and after was buried and laid in the grave, where death triumphed over him for the space of three days. Now in this extremity God did show his power, in that he raised Christ from death to life. And look as his power was manifested in Christ the head: so must it be manifested in all his members: for every man hath his grave, which is natural sin and corruption, which we draw from our first parents, and look as a man lies dead in the grave, and can move neither hand nor foot: so every man by nature lieth dead in sin. Now as God did show his power in raising Christ from death: so every one must labour to have this knowledge and experience in himself of the mighty power of God, in raising him from the grave of sin to newness of life. For thus Paul makes a special request, that he might know Christ, and the virtue of his resurrection, that is, Phil. 3. ●0. that he might feel in himself that power whereby Christ was raised from death to life, to raise him also from the bondage of his sins to a new life more & more. Furthermore, when Christ was upon the cross, and all the gates of hell were open against him, than did▪ he vanquish Satan; he bruised the serpent's head, and as Paul saith, he spoilt principalities and powers, and made a show of them openly, and hath triumphed over them in the cross: Col. 2.15. he overcame the devil, and all his angels by the power of his almighty father, and by his own power as he is God. And even so must Christian men labour to find the same power in themselves of this almighty father, by which Christ did triumph over satan's that by it they may tread him under their feet, which men can never do by any power in themselves. Again, Christ prayeth that that cup might pass from him: and yet he saith; Luk. 22.42. Not my will, but thy will be fulfilled. For it was necessary that Christ should suffer. And this request was heard, not because he was freed from death: but because God his father Almighty gave him power and strength in his manhood to bear the brunt of his indignation. Now look as this power was effectual in Christ jesus the head, to make him able and sufficient to bear the pangs of hell: so the same power of God, is in some measure effectual in all the members of Christ, to make them both patiented, and of sufficient strength to bear any affliction, as Saint Paul saith: being strengthened with all might through his glorious power unto all patience and long suffering with joyfulness. Col. 1.11. And this is a notable point which every one ought to learn: that whereas they confess God to be their almighty father, they should here withal labour to feel and have experience in themselves, that he is almighty in the beginning and continuing of grace unto them, and in giving them power and patience to suffer afflictions. Further, Christ jesus when the work of our redemption was accomplished, Eph. 1.20, 21. was lifted up into heaven, and set at the right hand of God in heavenly places, far above all principalities and powers, etc. even by the power of his father: well, as this power was made manifest in the head: so must it be in the members thereof. Every child of God shall hereafter see and feel in himself the same power, to translate him from this vale of misery in this life, to the kingdom of heaven. Wherefore to conclude, we have great cause to be thankful and to praise God for this privilege, that he showeth his power in his children in regenerating them, in making them die unto sin, and to stand against the gates of hell, & to suffer afflictions patiently: as also that he translates them from death to life. And every one should show his thankfulness in labouring to have experience of this power in himself, as Paul exhorteth us in his epistles to the Colossians & Ephesians: yea, read all his epistles, & we shall find he mentioneth no point so often as this, namely the mighty power of God, manifested first in Christ, & secondly in his members: and he accounteth all things loss that he might know Christ, & the virtue of his resurrection. Phil. 3.10. This point is the rather to be marked, because his power in the matter of grace is not to be seen with eye; & few there be in respect that have felt the virtue thereof in themselves: for the devil doth mightitily show his contrary power in the greatest part of the world, in carrying them to sin and wickedness. Secondly, hence we learn that which Paul teacheth, namely to know, Rom. 8.28. that all things work together for the best unto them that love God. God is almighty, & therefore able to do whatsoever he will: he is also a father; & therefore is willing to do that which is for our good. But some will say, we are subject to many crosses, yea to sin: what? can our sins turn to our good? Ans. If God almighty be thy father, he will turn thine afflictions, yea thy sins which by nature are evil, beyond all expectation unto thy salvation. And this God will do to all such as be obedient unto him: yet no man must hereupon presume to sin. Thirdly, whereas we believe that God is a mighty father, it serves to confirm God's children in the promises of mercy revealed in his word. The chiefest whereof is, that if men will turn from their sins, and believe in Christ, they shall not perish, but have life everlasting. I know some men will make it an easy thing to believe, especially those which never knew what faith meant. But such persons need no means of confirmation of faith: therefore let all those which have tasted of the hardness of attaining unto it, learn how to 'stablish their wavering hearts in the promises of God, by the consideration of these two points: God is a father; and therefore he is willing: he is also almighty, and therefore he is able to perform his promises. He that will be truly resolved of God's promises, must have both these settled in his heart, and build on them as on two foundations. It followeth, Creator of heaven and earth] We have spoken of the title of the first person, & of his attributes: now we come to speak of his effect, namely the creation: but before we come to it, we are to answer a certain objection which may be made. At the first it may seem strange to some, that the work of creation is ascribed to the first person in Trinity the father: whereas in the Scripture it is common to them all three equally. And first that the father is Creator, it was never doubted: as for the second person the Son, that he is Creator, joh. 1.3. it is evident: all things are made by it, that is, by the Son, who is the substantial word of the father, & without it was made nothing that was made. And again, it is said, that God by his Son made the world. As for the holy Ghost, Heb. 1.2. the work of creation is also ascribed unto him, and therefore Moses saith, the spirit moved upon the waters: and job saith: Gen. 1.2. his spirit hath garnished the heavens: How then is this peculiar to the father, being common to all the three persons in trinity? I answer, the actions of God are twofold: either inward, or outward. The inward actions are those, which one person doth exercise towards another: as the father doth beget the son, & this is an inward action peculiar to the father: for all inward actions are proper to the persons from whom they are. So the Son doth receive the godhead from the father; & the holy Ghost from them both; & these are inward actions peculiar to these persons. So likewise for the father to send his son, it is an inward action proper to the father, & cannot be communicated to the holy Ghost: & the son to be sent by the father only is a thing proper to the son, & not common to the father, or to the holy Ghost. Now outward actions are the actions of the persons in the Trinity to the creatures: as the work of creation, the work of preservation, & of redemption. These & all such actions are common to all the three persons: the father createth, the son createth, & the H. Ghost createth: & so we may say of the works of government, & of redemption, & of all outward actions of the persons to the creatures. But some again may say, how then can the work of creation, being an outward action of God to the creature, be peculiar to the first person the father? I answer, the work of creation is not so proper to the first person the father, as that it cannot also be common to the rest: for all the three persons jointly created all things of nothing; only they are distinguished in the manner of creating. For the father is the cause that beginneth the work, Basil. de spir. sanct. c. 16. the son puts it in execution, the holy Ghost is the finisher of it. And again, the father createth by the a Col. 1.16. Rom. 11.36. son & by the H. Ghost: the son createth by the holy Ghost, & from the father: the H. Ghost createth not by the father, nor by the son; but from the father & the son. And this is the reason why the work of creation is ascribed here unto the father, because he alone createth after a peculiar manner, namely by the son, and by the holy Ghost: but the son and the holy Ghost create not by the father but from him. Thus having answered the objection, we come to speak of the creation itself. In handling whereof, we must withal treat of the Counsel of God, as being the cause thereof, & of the Government of the creatures, as being a work of God whereby he continues the creation. And the order which I will observe, is first to speak of the Counsel of God, and secondly of the execution of his Counsel, which hath two special branches, the first the creation, the second the preservation or government of things created. The Counsel of God, is his eternal & unchangeable decree, whereby he hath ordained all things either past, present or to come, for his own glory. First I call it a decree, because God hath in it set down with himself & appointed as sovereign Lord, what shall be, what shall not be. I add further, that all things whatsoever come under the compass of this decree; as Paul saith, He worketh all things according to the counsel of his wil Eph. 1.11. And our Saviour Christ saith, that a sparrow cannot fall on the ground without the heavenly father: Mat. 10.29. vers. 30. yea further, he tells his disciples, that the very hairs of their heads are numbered, meaning that they are known and set down in the counsel of God. And considering that God is King of heaven and earth; and that most wise, yea wisdom itself; and most mighty, yea might and power itself: it must needs b● that he hath determined how all things shall come to pass in his kingdom, with all their circumstances, time, place, causes, etc. in such particular manner, that the very lest thing that may be, is not left unappointed and undisposed. The counsel of God, hath two properties, eternity, and unchangeableness. It is eternal, because it was set down by God from everlasting before all times, as Paul saith, God hath chosen the Ephesians to salvation before all worlds. Eph. 1.4. 2. Tim. 1.9. Mal. 3.6. jam. 1.17. And he saith of himself, that he was called according to the purpose of God, which was before all worlds. Again, the same counsel once set down, is unchangeable. God saith, I am jehovah, and I change not. With God (saith S. james) there is no variableness, nor shadow of change. Now such as God is, such is his decree and counsel. And he being unchangeable, his counsels also are unchangeable. God's counsel hath two parts, his foreknowledge, and his will or pleasure. His foreknowledge, whereby he did foresee all things which were to come. His will, whereby in a general manner he wills and ordains whatsoever is to come to pass: and therefore such things as God altogether nilleth, can not come to pass. Now these two parts of the counsel of God must be joined together, and not severed. Will without knowledge is impotent, and foreknowledge without will is idle. And therefore such as hold that God doth barely foresee sundry things to come, no manner of way either willing or decreeing the issue and event of them, do bring in little better than Atheism. For if we say that any thing comes to pass either against God's will, or God not knowing of it, or not regarding it, we shall make him either impotent or careless, & raze the very foundation of God's providence. And this decree of God must be conceived of us as the most general cause of all things subsisting: being first in order having all other causes under it, and most principal, overruling all, overruled by none. Thus we see what is to be held touching God's counsel: now for the better clearing of the truth, three objections of some difficulty are to be answered. First may some man say, if God decree and ordain all things whatsoever, than he decreeth and ordaineth sin. But God decrees not sin in as much as it is against his will: and therefore he decrees not all things. Answ. We use not to say, that God doth simply will or decree sin, but only in part, adding with all these caveats. I. That God willeth and decreeth sin, not properly as it is sin, but as it hath in it sundry regards & respects of goodness, so farforth as it is a punishment, or chastisement, or trial, or action, or a Quatenus habet rationem entis, non quatenus habet rationem defectus. hath any existence in nature. II. God can so use evil instruments, that the work done by them being a sin, shall nevertheless in him be a good work: because he knows how to use evil instruments well. If it be further alleged, that God willeth no wickedness, Psal. 5.5. we must know, that Gods will is twofold, general, & special. General, whereby God willeth & decreeth that a thing shall be: & by this kind of will he may be said to will sin; & that without sin. For though he decree it thus, yet he doth not instill wickedness into the heart of any sinner, & his decree is only for a most excellent end. For in regard of God which decreeth, it b Bonum & ut sit malum. Aug. Euchr. ad Laur. cap. 101. is good that there should be evil▪ To this purpose Augustine saith excellently, By an unspeakable manner it comes to pass, that that which is against God's will, is not without his will. c Voluntate permissiva vult: approba●●va non vult. Now the special will of God is that whereby he willeth any thing in such manner, that he approveth it, & delighteth in it. And thus indeed we can not say without blasphemy, that God willeth sin. Thus than we see in what manner and how farforth God may be said to decree sin. Again it may be objected thus. If all things be determined by the unchangeable decree of God, than all things come to pass by an unchangeable necessity: and men in their actions have no free-will at all, or liberty in doing any thing. Ans. This must be learned as a certain rule, that the necessary decree of God, doth not abolish the nature of the second causes, and impose necessity upon the will of man, but only order & incline it without any constraint, to one part. As for example: when a people is gathered together to hear God's word, there is none of them but they know that they come thither by God's providence (and in that respect necessarily) yet before they come, they had all freedom and liberty in themselves to come or not to come: & Gods eternal counsel did not hinder the liberty of our wills, in coming or not coming, nor take away the same: but only incline and turn them to the choice of one part. another example hereof we may have in our Saviour Christ, whose state and constitution of body, if we regard, he might have lived longer: yet by the eternal counsel of God, he must die at that place, at that time, at that hour where and when he died. Whereby we may see, that God's counsel doth not hinder the will of man; but only order & dispose it. Which answer being well marked, we shall see these two will stand together: the necessary and unchangeable counsel of God, and the free will of man. And again, that the same action may be both necessary and contingent: necessary in regard of the highest cause, the counsel of God; not necessary but contingent in respect of the second causes as among the rest, the will of man. Thirdly, some will yet object against this doctrine, that if all things come to pass according to gods unchangeable decree, than what needs the using of any means? what needs the preaching of the word, & receiving of the sacraments? what needs any laws, princes, magistrates, or government? what needs walking in men's ordinary callings? all is to no end: for let men play or work, sleep, or wake; let him do what he will, all is one: for God's eternal counsel must needs come to pass: therefore it may seem in vain for men to busy themselves about such things. Ans. But we must know, that as God hath appointed all things to come to pass in his eternal and unchangeable counsel; so in the same decree, he hath together set down the means & ways whereby he will have the same things brought to pass: for these two must never be severed: the thing to be done, & the means whereby it is done. We may read in the Acts in Paul's dangerous voyage towards Rome, an Angel of the Lord told Paul, Act. 27. that God had given him all that sailed with him in the ship: now the soldiers and mariners hearing this, might reason thus with themselves; Seeing God hath decreed to save us all, we may do what we will, there is no danger, for we shall all come to land alive: but mark what Paul saith, except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be safe: ver. 31. where we may see, as it was the eternal counsel of God to save Paul, & all that were with him: so he decreed to save all by this particular means of their abode in the ship. King Ezechias was restored to his health, & received from God a promise that he should have 15. years added to his days, 2. King. 20. & the promise was confirmed by sign: now, what doth he? cast off all means? no: but as he was prescribed, so he apply a bunch of dry figs to his sore, and useth still his ordinary diet. Therefore it is gross ignorance & madness in men to reason so against God's decree; God in his unchangeable counsel, hath decreed & set down all things how they shall be; therefore I will use no means, but live as I list: nay rather we must say the contrary; because God hath decreed this thing or that to be done: therefore I will use the means which God hath appointed to bring the same to pass. Now follows the Creation, which is nothing else but a work of the blessed Trinity, forming & framing his creatures which were not before, & that of nothing. The points to be known concerning the creation, are many. The first, is the thing by which God did begin & finish the creation. And we must understand, that at the first God made all things, without any instrument or means, & not as men do which bring to pass their business by servants & helps; but only by his word & commandment: as the Psalmist saith, He commanded, and all things were made. In the beginning God said, Psal. 148.3. Let their be light, & there was light: & by the same means was the creation of every creature following. Gen. 1.3. The very power of the word and commandment of God was such, as by it that thing was made & had a being, which before was not. It may be demanded, what word this was by which God is said to make all things. Ans. The word of God in scripture is taken 3. ways: for the substantial word: for the sounding or written word; for the operative or powerful word. The substantial word, is the second person begotten of the substance of the father. Now howsoever it be true, that God the father did create all things by his word, that is, by his Son: yet doth it not seem to be true that by these words [God said, let there be, this or that] that the Son is m●nt. For that word which God gave out in the creation was in time, whereas the Son is the word of the father before all times: and again, it is a word common to the three persons equally, whereas the Son is the word of the father only. Furthermore, it is not like that it was any sounding word standing of letters & syllables, & uttered to the creatures after the usual manner of men, that was the cause of them: it remains therefore that all things were made by the operative word, Heb. 1.3. which is nothing but the pleasure, will, & appointment of God, & is more powerful to bring a thing to pass, than all the means in the world beside. For God's willing of any thing is his effecting & doing of it And this is proved by David, when he saith, He spoke the word, and they were made: he commanded, and they were created. Hence we must take out a special lesson, needful to be learned of every man. Look what power God used & showed in making the creatures when they were not, the same power he both can & will show forth in recreating & redeeming sinful men by the precious blood of Christ. By his word he created man's heart when it was not; & he can & will as easily create in any of such a new heart, Psal. 51.10. specially when we use the good means appointed for that end. As, when Christ said to dead Lazarus, joh. 11.44. Lazarus come forth, he arose & came forth of his grave, though bound hand & foot: so when the Lord speaks to our dead hearts by his word & spirit, we shall rise forth of the graves of our sins & corruptions. In the creation of the great world, God said let there be light, & presently darkness gave place: & the same he can do to the little world, that is, to man. We are by nature darkness, & let God but speak to our blind understandings, our ignorance shall departed, & we shall be enlightened with the knowledge of the true God and of his will: as Paul saith, 2. Cor, 4.6. God that commanded the light to shine out of darkness is he which hath shined in our hearts to give the light of the knowledge of the glory of God in the face of jesus Christ. Secondly, God made all creatures, without motion, labour, or defatigation; for his very bidding of the work to be done, was the doing of it. And this thing no creature can do, but God only, though unto Adam labour was without pain before the fall. Thirdly, the matter & the first beginning of all creatures was nothing, that is, all things were made, when as there was nothing whereof they might be made, as Paul saith, God calleth those things which be not, as though they were. Rom. 4.17. And indeed in the first creation, all things must be made either of the essence of God or of nothing: but a creature can not be made of the essence of God, for it hath no parts, it is not divisible, and God made all things that were made out of himself or his own essence: the conclusion than is, that the framing of the creatures in the beginning, was not of any matter, but of nothing. This must teach us to humble ourselves: Many there be that stand upon their ancestors: but let them here look whence they came first, namely, as Abraham saith of himself, of dust and ashes. And what was this dust and ashes made of? Surely of nothing: wherefore every man's first beginning is of nothing. Well then, such men as are carried away with their pedigree and descent, if they look well into it, they shall find small cause to boast or brag. And this consideration of our first beginning must move us to true humiliation in ourselves. Fourthly, God in framing his creatures, in the beginning made them good: yea, very good. Now the goodness of the creature is nothing else, but the perfect estate of the creature, whereby it was conformable to the will and mind of the Creator allowing and approving of it when he had made it: for a creature is not first good, and then approved of God: but because it is approved of God, therefore it is good. But wherein will some say, stands this goodness of the creature? I answer, in three things. I. in the comeliness, beauty, and glory of every work in his kind both in form and constitution of the matter. II. in the excellency of the virtue which God hath given to it: for as he hath appointed every creature for some especial end: so he hath fitted and furnished it with sufficient power and virtue for the accomplishing of the same end. III. in the exceeding benefit and profitableness that came by them to man. But since the fall of man this goodness of the creature is partly corrupted and partly diminished. Therefore when we see any want, defect or deformity in any of them, we must have recourse back again to the apostasy of our first parents, and remember our fall in them, and say with a sorrowful heart, this comes to pass, by reason of man's most wretched sin which hath defiled heaven and earth, and drawn a curse not only upon himself, but upon the rest of the creatures for his sake, whereby their goodness is much defaced. Fiftly. the end of creation, is the glory of God, as Solomon saith, God made all things for his own sake: yea even the wicked for the day of evil. Prov. 16.4. And God propounds this principal end to himself, not as though he wanted glory, and would purchase it unto himself by the creation; for he is most glorious in himself, and his honour and praise being infinite, can neither be increased nor decreased: but rather that he might communicate and make manifest his glory to his creatures, and give them occasion to magnify the same. For the reasonable creatures of God beholding his glory in the creation, are moved to testify and declare the same among men. The sixth shall be touching the time of the beginning of the world, which is, between five thousand and six thousand years ago. For Moses set down exactly the computation of time from the making of the world to his own days: and the Prophets after him have with like diligence set down the continuance of the same to the very birth of Christ. But for the exact account of years Chronologers are not all of one mind. Some say there be 3929. from the creation to Christ's birth, as Beroaldus: some 3952. as Hierome and Bede: some 3960. as Luther and Io. Lucidus: some 3963. as Melancthon in his Chronicle & Functius: some 3970. as Bullinger and Tremellius: some towards 4000 as Buntingus. Now from the birth of Christ to this day are 1592. years, and adding these together, the whole time amounteth. And God would have the very time of the beginning of the world to be revealed, 1. that it might be known to the Church, when the covenant of grace was first given by God to man, and when it was afterward renewed, and how Christ came in the fullness of time, Gal. 4. 2. that we might know that the world was not made for the eternal and everliving God, but for man. 3. that we might learn not to set our hearts on the world and on the things therein which have beginning and end, but seek for things eternal in heaven. And before the time which I have named began, there was nothing beside God, the world itself and all things else were uncreated. Some men use to object and say, What did God do all that while before the world was? how did he employ himself? what was he idle? Answer. The jews to this bad question make as bad an answer. For they say he was continually occupied in making many little worlds, which he continually destroyed as he made them, because none pleased him till he made this. But we must rather say, that some things are revealed which God did then, as that he decreed what should come to pass when the world was: & that then the blessed persons in Trinity did take eternal delight each in other. If any man will needs know more, Prov. ●. 30. let him hear what Moses saith, Secret things belong to the Lord our God, Deut. 29. 2●. but things revealed to us and to our children for ever: and let him mark what one eluding the question, answered: namely, August. lib. 1. confess. c. 12. that God was making hell fire to burn all such curious persons as will needs know more of God than he hath revealed to them: for where God hath not a mouth to speak, there we must not have an ear to hear: therefore we must let such curious questions pass. Seventhly, some may ask in what space did God make the world? I answer. God could have made the world, and all things in it in one moment: Gen. 1. but he began and finished the whole work in six distinct days. In the first day he made the matter of all things and the light: in the second the heavens: in the third day he brought the sea into his compass, and made the dry land appear, and caused it to bring forth herbs, plants, and trees: in the fourth he made the Sun, the Moon, & the Stars in the heaven: in the fifth day he made the fishes of the sea, the fowls of the heaven, and every creeping thing: in the sixth day he made the beasts of the field, and all cattle, and in the end of the sixth day he made man. Thus in six distinct spaces of time, the Lord did make all things: and that especially for three causes. I. to teach men that they ought to have a distinct and serious consideration of every creature: for if God had made the world in a moment, some might have said, this work is so mystical, that no man can speak of it. But for the preventing of this cavil, it was his pleasure to make the world and all things therein in six days: and the seventh day he commanded it to be sanctified by men, that they might distinctly and seriously meditate upon every work of the creation. II. God made the world, and every thing therein in six distinct days, to teach us, what wonderful power and liberty he had over all his creatures: for he made the light when there was neither Sun nor Moon, nor stars: to show, that in giving light to the world, he is not bound to the Sun, to any creature, or to any means: for the light was made the first day: but the Son, the Moon, and the Stars were not created before the fourth day. Again, trees and plants were created the third day: but yet the Sun, Moon, and the Stars, and rain which nourish and make herbs, trees, and plants to grow were not created till after the third day: which shows plainly, that God can make trees, plants, & herbs to grow without the means of rain, and without the virtue and operation of the Sun, the Moon, & the Stars. III. he made the world in six distinct days, and framed all things in this order, to teach us his wonderful providence of his creatures: for before man was created he provided for him a dwelling place, and all things necessary for his perpetual preservation, and perfect happiness and felicity. So also he created beasts and cattle: but not before he had made herbs, plants, and grass, and all means whereby they are preserved. And if God had this care over man when as yet he was not: much more will God have care over him now when he is, and hath a being in nature. And thus much concerning the points of doctrine touching the creation. The duties follow. And first by the work of creation we may discern the true jehovah from all false gods & idols in the world. This Esaiah maketh plain, bringing in the Lord reasoning thus: I am God, and there is no other God besides me. How is that proved? thus: I form the light, and create darkness, I make peace, and create evil: Isa. 45.6, 7. I the Lord do all these things. If a man ask thee how thou knowest the true God from all false gods: thou must answer, by the work of ●●eation: for he alone is the maker of heaven and earth, and all things in them. This property can not agree to any creature, to any man, saint, or Angel: nay, not to all men and all Angels they can not give being to a creature which before was nothing. Secondly, whereas God the Father is the Creator of all▪ things, and hath given unto man reason, understanding, and ability, more than to other creatures, we are taught to consider and meditate of the work of God's creation. This the wise man teacheth us, saying, Consider the work of God. And indeed it is a special duty of every man which professeth himself to be a member of God's Church, Eccles. 7.15. as he acknowledgeth God to be the Creator, so to look upon his workmanship and view and consider all creatures. A skilful workman can have no greater a disgrace, then when he hath done some famous thing▪ to have his friend pass by his work, and not so much as look upon it. If it be demanded for what end must we look upon the work of God's creation? I answer, that in it we may see and discern God's power, wisdom, love, mercy, and providence, and all his attributes, and in all things his glory. This is a most necessary duty to be learned of every man: we think nothing too much or to good to bestow on vain shows, & plays, idle sports and pastimes, which are the vanities of men, and we do most willingly behold them: in the mean season utterly neglecting and contemning the glorious work of God's creation. Well, the Lord God hath appointed his Sabaoth to be sanctified not only by the public ministery of the word, and by private prayer, but also by an especial consideration and meditation of gods creatures: and therefore the duty of every man is this, distinctly and seriously to view and consider the creatures of God; and thereby take occasion to glorify his name, by ascribing unto him the wisdom, glory, power, and omnipotency that is due unto him for the same. Thirdly, we must give God the glory in all his creatures, because he is the creator of them all. So in the Revelation the four and twenty Elders fall down before him, and say, Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive glory and honour, Revel. 4.11. and power: giving this reason: for thou hast created all things, and for thy wills sake they are and have been created. Read the Psalms 147. and 148. both which tend to this, that God may be praised, because he is the Creator of all things, and therefore must have all the glory. We know, that when men behold any curious work of a cunning and skilful craftsman, straightway they will leave the work, and inquire after him that made it, that they may praise his skill. The same is our duty in this case, when we come abroad, and behold every where in all the creatures the admirable and unspeakable wisdom, goodness, and power of God, than we must make haste from the creature, and go forward to the Creator, to praise and glorify him: and herein must we show ourselves to differ from bruit beasts, in that in the use and view of God's creatures, we do return due glory, praise, and honour unto the creator. Our fourth duty is set down by the Prophet Amos, who moving the people to meet God by repentance, addeth a reason taken from the creation: Amos. 4. ●. He that formeth the mountains & createth the winds, which declareth unto man what is his thought, which maketh the morning darkness, etc. the Lord God of hosts is his name. The meaning of the Prophet is this, God is a terrible judge, & we are as traitors & rebels against him: therefore the best way that we can take is this: he is coming to judgement, let us therefore meet him & fall down before him, & humble ourselves under his mighty hand. And the holy ghost by the prophet would move the people to meet God by serious repentance, by a reason framed thus: If God who is their judge, be able to create the winds, and to form the mountains, & to make the morning darkness: then he is also able to make an eternal judgement for their confusion. And therefore all such as be impenitent sinners, let them prepare themselves to turn unto him: & surely if men had grace to lay this to their hearts, they would not live so long in their sins without repentance as they do: nay rather, they would prepare themselves to meet him in the way before he come to judgement, because he is a creator, & therefore able to bring infinite punishments upon them at his pleasure, and to bring them to nothing as he made them of nothing. And let them know it, whosoever they be that go forward in their sins, that God the creator whensoever he will, can open hell to devour them: & that he can show himself as mighty in his judgement to men's destruction, as he was in the beginning in giving us a being when we were nothing. Wherefore notable is the practice of David, who ineures himself to the fear of god by the consideration of his creation, saying, I am fearfully and wonderfully made, etc. Psal. 139.14. Lastly, those which have been impenitent sinners all their life past▪ must not only learn to repent for their sins; but also endeavour to perform obedience unto god's word. God is a creator, and the thing created should in all respects be conformable to his will: for David saith, Thine hands have fashioned me, & framed me, Psal. 119.73. give me understanding therefore that I may learn thy commandments. And good reason, for there is no man of any trade, but he would feign have all that he maketh and deviseth to be used: but yet so as the use thereof must be conformable to the will of the maker. For this cause Moses that faithful servant of God saith, that the people of Israel dealt wrongfully with the Lord, why? For he hath created them, and proportioned them, he is their father and he bought them: yet they have dishonoured him by corrupting themselves towards him by their vice. All creatures in heaven and in earth do the will of the Creator, except man, and the devil and his angels: for the Sun, the Moon, and the stars, they keep that course which God hath appointed them: but man though he be bound to do the will of God, because god is his Creator, yet he rebels against him. The potter if in tempering his clay he can not make and frame it according to his mind, at length he will dash it in pieces: so God, he createth man, not that he should do his own will, but gods will: and therefore that man whosoever he be that followeth the lusts of his own wicked heart, and will not be brought to be conformable to gods will, but continues rebellious still, the Lord in his wrath will confound him eternally. Therefore it stands every man in hand to yield himself pliable unto gods will, & to endeavour to obey it by keeping a good conscience before god and all men, and by walking faithfully in his calling: otherwise the end will be confusion. If a man have a trade and other men come into his shop, and use such instruments as be there to a wrong end, though they were their own, yet it would grieve him to see it: so god created all things for his own use, and for the accomplishing of his will: but rebellious man conforms himself to the devils will, and thereby no doubt he grievously offendeth god. And thus much of the duties. Now in the third place follow the consolations unto God's Church and people. Consolations. 1. Pet. 4.19. First as S. Paul saith, God is a creator, yea a faithful creator. The properties of a faithful creator are two. I. he will preserve his creature: no man is so tender over any work as he that made it, for he can not abide to see it any way abused. Now God being a faithful creator, tenderly loves all his creature. So job reasoneth with God, that he will not cast him off, because he is the work of his hands. II. God will bear with his creature, job. 10.3. to see whether it will be brought to any good end and use before he will destroy it. And to use the former comparison: The potter will turn and work the clay every way to make a vessel unto his mind: but if it will frame no way, than he will cast it away and dash it against the wall. And so God who created man and still preserveth him, and useth all means to make him conformable to his will, before he cast him away. The Lord did long strive with men in the old world, to turn them from their wickedness: but when nothing would serve them, it is said, Gen. 6.3.6. It repent the Lord that he had made man on the earth. Amongst us every one is the creature of God: now if we shall rebel against this our creator, it may be, he will bear with us for a time: but if we continue therein, and do not turn to him by repentance, he will bring upon us a final destruction both in body and soul. Yet I say, before he do this he will try all means to preserve us, and turn us unto him: and afterward, if nothing will serve, than he will show forth his power in men's confusion: & therefore it stands us in hand to look unto it. Secondly, look what power the Lord did manifest in the creation of all things, the same power he both can and will make manifest in the redemption of mankind. In the beginning God made all things by his word; and so likewise he is able still to make by the power of his word, of a wicked man that is dead in sin, a true and lively member of Christ: which the Prophet Isay signifieth when he saith, The Lord that created the heavens and spread them abroad, he that stretcheth forth the earth and the body thereof, etc. Isai. 45.5, 6. I the Lord have called thee in righteousness. This must not encourage evil men in their wickedness, but it serveth to comfort the people of God, considering that the same God which once created them, is also as able to save them: and will show himself as mighty in their redemption, as he did in creating them of nothing. And thus much of the Creation in general. Now it followeth that we come to the handling of the parts thereof. For it is not said barely that God is a creator; but particularly that he is a creator of heaven & earth: of both which we will speak in order: and first of the creation of heaven. Heaven] in God's word it signifieth all that is above the earth: for the air wherein we breath is called Heaven. And according to this acception of the word, there are three heavens, as Paul saith, He was taken up into the third heaven. The first of these Heavens is that space, 2. Cor. 12.2. which is from the earth upward unto the firmament, where the stars are. Thus we read often in the Psalms, the birds which fly in the air between the earth and the stars, are called the fowls of the heaven: and when God sent the flood to drown the old world, Moses saith, the windows of heaven were opened: Gen. 7.11. meaning, that God powered down rain from the clouds abundantly, for the making of a flood to drown the world. The second heaven is that which containeth the Sun, the Moon, and the stars: so Moses saith, that God in the beginning created the Sun, the Moon, Gen. 1.14. and the Stars, and placed them in the firmament of heaven. Besides these two heavens, there is a third which is invisible: and yet it is the work of God's hands: and it is that glorious place where Christ in his manhood sitteth at the right hand of the father: and whether the souls of the faithful departed are carried, and placed: and in which at the end of the world shall all the elect both in body and soul, have perfect joy and bliss in the glorious sight and presence of God for ever. But for the better conceiving the truth, we are to scan and consider three questions. First, whether this third heaven be a creature; for many have thought it was never created, but was eternal with God himself: but it is a gross error contrary to God's word. Heb. 11.10. For the Scripture saith, Abraham looked for a city (meaning the heavenly jerusalem, this third heaven) having a foundation whose builder and maker is God. Further, if it be eternal, it must either be a creator or a creature: but it is no creator, for than it should be God: and therefore it must needs be a creature. But some will say, the Lord is eternal, and this third heaven hath always been the place of the Lords abode, and therefore it is also eternal. Answer. True it is that God doth show his glory and majesty in the third heaven: but yet that cannot obtain his godhead: as Solomon saith, Behold the heavens, and the heavens of heavens are not able to contain thee. 1. King. 8.27. Wherefore though God doth manifest his eternal glory in this third heaven: yet it doth not follow that therefore it should be eternal: for he needs no place to devil in: for he is every where filling all things with his presence excluded from no place. The second question where this third heaven is? Answer. There are some protestants say, it is every where: and they hold this opinion, to maintain the real presence of the lords body in or about the Sacrament. But if it were every where, than hell should be in heaven which no man will say: but heaven indeed is above these visible heavens which we see with our eyes: so the Apostle saith, Eph. 3.7.10. Christ ascended on high far above all heavens, etc. And again it is said of Steven, that being full of the holy ghost, He looked up steadfastly into the heavens, Acts. 7.55, 56. and saw them open, and the son of man standing at the right hand of God. Thirdly it may be demanded, why God created this third heaven? Answer. God made it for this cause, that there might be a certain place, wherein he might make manifest his glory and majesty to his elect angels and men: for the which cause it was created a thousand fold more glorious than the two former heavens are▪ in which respect it is called Paradise, Luk. 23. by reason of the joy and pleasure arising from God's glorious presence. And our Saviour Christ calleth it the house of God his father; joh. 14.2. because into it must be gathered all God's children. It is called the kingdom of heaven, because God is the King thereof, and ruleth there in perfect glory. True it is, God hath his kingdom here on earth: but he ruleth not so fully and gloriously here, as he shall in heaven: for this is the kingdom of grace, but that is the kingdom of his glory, where he so reigneth, that he will be all in all, first in Christ, and then in the elect both Angels and men. Now follows the duties whereunto we are moved principally in consideration of the making of the third heaven. First, if God created it especially for the manifestation of his glory unto men, that at the end of this world, by the fruition of Gods most glorious presence, there they might have perfect joy and felicity: we have occasion here to consider the wonderful madness of the world that reigneth every where among men, which only have regard to the state of this life, and cast all their care on this world: and never so much as dream of the joyful and blessed estate which is prepared for God's children in the highest heaven. If a man having two houses, one but a homely cottage, and the other a princely palace, should leave the better, and take all the care and pains for the dressing up of the first, would not every man say, he were a mad man? yes undoubtedly. And yet this is the spiritual madness that reigneth every where among men: for God hath prepared for us two houses, one is this our body which we bear about us, which is an house of clay, as job saith, We devil in houses of clay whose foundation is dust, job. 4.19. which shall be destroyed before the moth: 2. Pet. 1.14. and as Peter saith, a Tabernacle or tent, which we must shortly take down; and wherein we abide but as pilgrims and strangers. 1. Pet. 2.12. Again, the same God of his wonderful goodness hath provided for us a second house in the third heaven, wherein we must not abide for a time and so departed: but for evermore enjoy the blessed felicity of his glorious presence. For all this mark a spiritual frenzy possessing the minds of men; for they employ all their care and industry for the maintaining of this house of clay, whose foundation is but dust: but for the blessed estate of the second house, which is prepared for them in the kingdom of heaven, they have no regard or care. They will both run and ride from place to place day and night, both by Sea and land: but for what? Is it for the preparing of a mansion place in the heavenly jerusalem? Nothing less, for they will scarce go forth of the door to use any means whereby they may come unto it: but all their study is to patch up the ruins and breaches of their earthly cabbine. Now let all men judge in their own consciences, whether as I have said, this be not more than senseless madness? Again, the body is but a tabernacle, wherein we must rest as it were for a night, as a stranger doth in an Inn, and so away: but the second house is eternal in the heavens, an everlasting seat of all felicity. And therefore our duty is above all things, to seek the kingdom of heaven and the righteousness thereof as Christ himself biddeth us. Matt. 6.33. And if the Lord have there prepared such a place for us, than we must in this world use all good means, whereby we may be made worthy the fruition of it: & also fit and ready at the day of death to enter into it: which at the day of judgement we shall fully possess both in soul and body, and there reign eternally in all happiness with God Almighty our creator, the father, the son, and the holy ghost. But some may say, how shall a man so prepare himself that he may be fit for that place? Answer. This the holy ghost teacheth us: for speaking of this heavenly jerusalem, he saith, There shall enter into it none unclean thing, neither whatsoever worketh abomination or lies: Revel. 22. The means then to make ourselves fit, is, to seek to be reconciled to God in Christ for our sins past, and withal, to endeavour to have an assurance of the free remission and pardon of them all in the blood of Christ. And as touching that part of life which is to come, we must remember what S. john saith, 1. joh. 3.4. Every one that hath this hope purifieth himself: meaning, that he which hath hope to reign with Christ in heaven, useth the means whereby he may purify and keep himself from sin, as also he saith after, that he which is borne of God keepeth himself and the wicked one toucheth him not. Signifying, 1. joh. 5.18. that all such persons as are truly justified and sanctified, carry such a narrow and strait watch over the whole course of their lives and conversations that the devil can never give them deadly wounds, and wholly overcome them. Now the man that is resolved in his conscience of the pardon of his sin for the time past, and hath a steadfast purpose in his heart to keep himself upright, and continually to walk in righteousness and true holiness all the days of his life: this man, I say, is prepared and made fit to enter into the heavenly jerusalem: come death when it will, he is ready. And howsoever he must not look for heaven here upon earth, yet he is as it were in the suburbs of this heavenly city: and at the end of this life, the king thereof the Lord jesus will open the gates and receive him into his kingdom: for he is already entered into the kingdom of grace, being prepared also, one day when God will to enter into the kingdom of glory. To conclude this point, let every man in the fear of God, be moved hereby to set his heart to prepare himself; that when God shall call him hence, he may be fit to enter into that glory. Secondly, seeing God hath prepared the third heaven for us, it teacheth every man in this world to be content with the estate wherein God hath placed him, whether it be high or low, rich or poor: why so? because here he is but a pilgrim, and lives in a cottage of clay, and in a tent wherein he must abide but a while, as a pilgrim doth, oftentimes carrying his house about with him; and we shall in better sort accept the afflictions which God sends us in this life; if we remember that there is prepared for us a place of joy, which must be our resting place and perfect felicity for evermore. This was the practice of the children of God, especially of Abraham: for when the Lord called him out of his own country, he obeyed, and by faith abode in the promised land, Heb. 11.9, 10. as in a strange country, as one that dwelled in tents with Isaac and jaakob, heirs with him in the same promise: and the reason followeth, for he looked for a city having a foundation whose builder and maker is God. They believed that these things which the Lord promised, were shadows of better things: and hereon stayed themselves, being well content with that estate whereto god had called them. So Paul was contented to bear the afflictions which God had laid upon him, and his reason was, 2. Cor. 4. end. & 5. vers. 1.2. Because (saith he) we look not on things which are seen, but on things which are not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal, but the things which are not seen are eternal. And in the next chapter: We know (saith he) that if our earthly house of this Tabernacle be destroyed, we have a dwelling given us of God, that is, an house not made with hands, but eternal in the heavens. And for this cause his desire was rather to remove out of this body, and to be with the Lord. And thus much concerning Heaven. Now followeth the second part of God's creation in these words, And Earth] Earth signifieth the huge mass or body standing of sea and land, on which we live, and all things that be in or upon the earth whatsoever: as Paul saith, For by him were created all things that are in heaven or in earth, etc. Col. 1.16. In other Creeds which were made since this of the Apostles, being expositions of that; there is added Maker of all things visible and invisible. Here we have occasion to speak of all creatures, but that were infinite: therefore I will make choice of these two, good Angels and Men. I. That Angels had a beginning it is no question: for Paul saith, Col. 1. 1●. that by God all things were created in heaven and earth, things visible and invisible, whether thrones, principalities or powers. And in respect of the creation, angels are called the sons of God. job. 38.7 But the time & day of their creation can not be set down further than this, that they were created in the compass of the six days. For Moses saith, Thus, namely in the compass of the first six days, the heavens and the earth were fashioned, and all the host of them: that is, all variety of creatures in heaven and earth serving for the beauty and glory thereof: whereof no doubt the Angels are the principal. II. Touching the nature of angels, some have thought that they are nothing but qualities & motions in the minds of men, as the Sadduces and the Libertines of this time: but the truth is, that they are spirits, that is, spiritual and invisible substances, created by God, and really subsisting: for the scripture ascribes unto them such kind of actions which can not be performed by the creatures, save only such as be substances: as to stand before the throne of God, to behold the face of the Father, to carry men's souls to heaven, etc. yet must we not imagine that they are bodily substances consisting of flesh and bone. And though they took upon them visible shapes & forms, & did eat and drink in the company of men, Luk. 24.4. & thereupon are called Men in scripture: yet they did this by divine dispensation for a time, that they might the better perform the actions & businesses among men, to which they were by God appointed. And the bodies of men which they assumed, were no parts of their natures united to them, as our bodies are to us; but rather they were as garments are to us, which they might put off & on at their pleasure. If any shall ask, whence they had these bodies, the answer is, that either they were created of nothing by the power of God, or framed of some other matter subsisting before. If again it be asked what became of these bodies when they laid them down, because they used them but for a time, the answer may be, that if they were made of nothing, they were again resolved into nothing: if made of other creatures, that then they were resolved into the same bodies of which they were first made; though indeed we can define nothing certainly in this point. III. Angels are reasonable creatures of excellent knowledge and understanding, far surpassing all men save Christ. Their knowledge is threefold: natural, revealed, experimental. Natural, which they received from god in the creation. Revealed, which God makes manifest to them in process of time, whereas before they knew it not. Thus God revealed to Gabriel the mystery of the seventy weeks, Dan. 8. & 9 And in the Apocalyps many things are revealed to the Angels that they might reveal them to us. Experimental knowledge, is that which they get by observing the dealings of god in the whole world, but specially in the Church. Eph. 3. 10● And thus Paul saith, that to principalities and powers in heavenly places is the manifold wisdom of god by the Church. IU. And as the knowledge, Psal. 103.20. so also the power of the good Angels is exceeding great. They are able to do more than all men can. Therefore Paul calls them mighty Angels, 2. Thess. 1.7. August. de Trin. l. 3. c. 3. Yea their power is far superior to the power of the wicked angels, who since the fall are under them and cannot prevail against them. V The place of the abode of Angels, is the highest heaven, unless they be sent thence by the Lord, to do some thing appointed by him. This our Saviour Christ teacheth when he saith, that the angels of little ones do already behold the face of the father in heaven. And the wicked angels before their fall were placed in heaven, for they were cast thence. VI That there be certain distinctions and diversities of angels, it is very likely, because they are called thrones and principalities and powers, Cherubin and Seraphim. Col. 1.16. But what be the distinct degrees and orders of angels, and whether they are to be distinguished by their natures, gifts, or offices, no man by Scripture can determine. VII. The ministery of angels to which the Lord hath set them apart is threefold, and it respecteth either God himself, or his Church, or his enemies. The ministry which they perform to God, is first of all to adore, praise, and glorify him continually. Thus the Cherubims in Esaies' vision cry one to another, Holy, holy, holy is the Lord God of hosts: Isa. 6.2. the world is full of his glory. And when they were to publish the birth of the Messiah, they begin on this manner, Luk. 2.14. Glory to God in the highest heavens, peace on earth. And john in his vision heard the angels about the throne, crying with a loud voice, Worthy is the Lamb, etc. to receive power, riches, and strength, wisdom, and honour, and glory, and praise. Apoc. 5.11. And indeed the highest end of the ministery of angels is the glory of God. The second, is to stand in God's presence, evermore ready to do his commandments, as David saith, Praise the Lord, Psal. 103.20. ye his Angels that excel in strength that do his commandments in obeying the voice of his word. And here is a good lesson for us. We pray daily, that we may do the will of God as the Angels in heaven do it: let us therefore be followers of the holy angels in praising God and in doing his commandments as they do. The ministery of angels concerning the Church, stands in this, that they are ministering spirits for the good of them which shall be heirs of salvation. Heb. 1.14. The good is threefold; in this life, in the end of this life, and in the last judgement: again, the good which they procure to the people of God in this life, is either in respect of body or soul. In respect of the body, in that they do most carefully perform all manner of duties which do necessarily tend to preserve the temporal life of God's children, even from the beginning of their days to the end. David saith, that they pitch their tents about them that fear the Lord. Psal. 54.8. Gen. 16.7. When Agar was cast forth of Abraham's family, and wandered in the wilderness, an angel comes unto her and gives her counsel to return to her mistress and humble herself. When Elias fled from jesabel, he was both comforted, 1. Kin. 19 directed, and fed by an angel. And an angel bids the same Elias be of good courage and without fear to go to King Achazias & reprove him. 2. King. 1. Angels bring Lot and his family out of Sodom and Gomorrha, before they burn the cities with fire & brimstone. Gen. 19 When jacob feared his brother Esau, he saw angels coming unto him: and he plainly acknowledgeth that they were sent to be his protectors and his guides in his journey. Abraham being persuaded of the assistance of God's angels in all his ways, Gen. 32.1, 2. said to his servant, The Lord God of heaven, who took me from my father's house, Gen. 24.7. etc. will send his angel before thee. The wise men that came to see Christ, are admonished by Angels to return another way: Matt. 2.12, 13. & joseph by the direction of an angel fled into Egypt, that he might preserve Christ from the hands of the cruel tyrant▪ Exod. 14.19. & 23.20. Dan. 3. & 6. the tents of the Israelites was guarded by angels. The 3. children are delivered from the fiery furnace, & Daniel out of the lions den by angels. When Christ was in heaviness they ministered unto him & comforted him: Matt. 4.11. Act. 12. & they brought Peter out of prison & set him at liberty. Again, the Angels procure good unto the souls of the godly, in that they are maintainers and furtherers of the true worship of God, and of all good means, whereby we attain to salvation. The law was delivered in mount Sina by angels: and a great part of the Revelation of john. Act. 7. Apoc. 5.2. They expound to Daniel the 70. weeks. They instruct the Apostles touching the return of Christ to the last judgement. Angels forbidden john to worship them, Apoc. 19 & 22. Act. 5.20. but to worship God the creator of heaven and earth. They set the Apostles out of prison, and bid them teach in the temple. An angel brings Philip to the Eunuch that he may expound the scriptures to him. Lastly, they reveal the mysteries and the will of God, as to Abraham that he should not kill his son Isaac, to Marie and Elizabeth the nativity of john Baptist, Luc. 1. and of Christ our Saviour, & all this they do according unto the will of God, Gal. 1.8. Beside all this, Luc. 15.7, 10. angels rejoice at the conversion of sinners by the ministery of the Gospel. And for the Church's sake, they protect not only particular men, but even whole nations and kingdoms. The ministery of Angels in the end of this life, is to carry the souls of the godly into Abraham's bosom, as they did the soul of Lazarus. Luc. 16. Matt. 28.31. And in the day of judgement to gather all the Elect that they may come before Christ, and enter into eternal fruition of glory both in body & soul. The third & last part of the minsterie of angels, concerns Gods enemies; & it is to execute judgements on all wicked persons and impenitent sinners. Thus all the first borne of Egypt are slain by an angel. Exod. 12. jos. 5. When josua was about to sack jerico, an angel appeared unto him as a captain, with a drawn sword to fight for Israel. When the host of Senacherib came against Israel, 2. Kin. 19.15. the angel of the Lord in one night slew an hundred eighty and five thousand. Because Herod gave not glory unto God, the angel of the Lord smote him so as he was eaten up of louse and died. And thus we see what points we are to mark touching the good Angels. Now followeth the use which we are to make in regard of their creation. First, whereas they are Gods ministers to inflict punishments upon the wicked, here is a special point to be learned of us; that every man in the fear of God take heed how he liveth and continueth in his sins, for the case is dangerous considering that God hath armies of angels, which stand ready every where to execute Gods heavy judgements upon them that live thus. When the people of Israel had sinned against the Lord, Moses saith, they were naked, that is, open to all the judgements of God; Exod. 32.25 even destitute of the guard of his good Angels. Wretched Balaam that wizard went to Balaac to curse the children of Israel: and as he went, it is said, the angel of the Lord stood in his way with a drawn sword: and if the ass had not been wiser than his master, the angel had slain him. Whereby it appears, that when we rush on into the practice of any sin, we do as much as in us lieth to cause God to send down his judgements upon us for our sins; and that by the ministery of his angels. Secondly, we are taught another lesson by Christ himself: See (saith he) that you despise not one of these little ones: now mark his reason: Matt. 18.10. for I say unto you, that in heaven their Angels do always behold the face of my father. By little ones he meaneth young infants which are within the covenant; or others which are like to young infants in simplicity and innocency of life and humility. And Christ will not have them to be despised. A duty very needful to be stood upon in these times. For now adays if a man carry but a show of humility, of good conscience, and of the fear of God, he is accounted but a silly fellow, he is hated, mocked, & despised on every hand. But this ought not to be so. For him whom God honoureth with the protection of his good angels, why should any mortal man despise? And it stands mockers and scorners in hand to take heed whom they mock. For though men for their parts put up many abuses and injuries, yet their angels may take just revenge by smiting them with plagues and punishments for their offences. Thirdly, seeing angels are about us, & serve for the good of men, we must do whatsoever we do in reverent and seemly manner, as Paul gives counsel to the Philippians; Brethren, saith he, whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are honest, Phil. 4.8. just, pure, and pertain to love, of good report: if there be any virtue, if there be any praise, think on these things: many men do all their affairs orderly for avoiding shame; but we must do the same upon a further ground, namely because Gods holy angels wait on us. And considering that men have care to behave themselves well when they are before men: what a shame is it for a man to behave himself unseemly either in open or in secret, he then being before the glorious angels. Paul saith, 1. Cor. 11.10. that the woman ought to have power on her head, because of the Angels, that is, not only the ministers of the Church, but God's heavenly angels, which daily wait upon his children, and guard them in all their ways. Fourthly, this must teach us modesty, and humility: for the angels of God, are very notable and excellent creatures; and therefore they are called in the Psalms Elohim, Psal. 8.5. gods: yet how excellent so ever they be, they abase themselves to become guardiens and keepers unto sinful men. Now if the angels do so abase themselves; then much more ought every man to abase and humble himself in modesty, and humility before God; and what so ever our calling is, we must not be puffed up but be content. This is a necessary duty for all, but especially for those which are in the schools of the Prophets: whatsoever their gifts or birth be, they must not think themselves too good for the calling of the ministery. And if God have called us thereunto, we must be content to become servants unto all in the matter of salvation; though the men be never so base or simple: for no man doth so far excel the basest person in the world, as the glorious angels of God do exceed the most excellent man that is: therefore seeing they vouchsafe to become servants unto us, we must not think ourselves to good to serve our poor brethren. And thus much of the duties. Now follow the consolations that arise from this, that God hath given his glorious angels to serve for the protection & safeguard of his Church and people. If men's spiritual eyes were open, they should see the devil and his angels, and all the wicked of this world to fight against them: and if there were no means of comfort in this case, than our estate were most miserable. But mark; as God's servant hath all these wicked ones to be his enemies: so he hath garrisons of angels that pitch their tents about him, and defend him from them all. So David saith, He shall give his Angels charge over thee, and they shall keep thee in all thy ways that thou dash not thy foot against a stone: Psal. 91. where the Angels of God are compared to nurses, which carry little children in their arms, feed them, and are always ready at hand, to save them from falls and many other dangers. When the king of Syria sent his horses & chariots to take Elisha the Lord's prophet, because he revealed his counsel to the king of Israel: his servant saw them round about Dothan where he was, 2. Kin. 16.17 and he cried, Alas, master, what shall we do? then Elisha answered, Fear not: for they that be with us, are more than they that be with them: and he besought the Lord to open his servants eyes, that he might see: & the Lord opened his eyes, & he looked & behold, the mountains were full of horses and chariots of fire round about Elisha. So likewise not many years ago, our land was preserved from the invasion of the Spainyards, whose huge Navy lay upon our sea coasts: but how were we delivered from them? surely by no strength nor power, nor cunning of man; but it was the Lord, no doubt, by his Angels that did keep our coasts, and did scatter our enemies, and drown them. Let enemies rage, and let them do what they will, if a man keep himself in the ways which God prescribeth, he hath gods angels to guide and preserve him: which thing must move men to love and embrace the true religion, & to conform themselves in all good conscience to the rule of God's word. For when a man doth not so, all the angels of God are his enemies, and at all times ready to execute God's vengeance upon him: but when men carry themselves as dutiful children to God, they have this prerogative that God's holy Angels do watch about them, and defend them day and night from the power of their enemies, even in common calamities and miseries. Before God sends his judgements on jerusalem, an angel is sent to mark them in the foreheads that mourn for the abominations of the people. Ezech. 9.4. And this privilege none can have, Exo. 12.23. with 1. Cor. 5.7. but he whose heart is sprinkled with the blood of Christ, and that man shall have it unto the end. And thus much of the creation of Angels. Now it follows to speak of the creation of Man: wherein we must consider 2. things: I. the points of doctrine: II. the uses. For the points of doctrine. First, Man was created and framed by the hand of God, and made after the image of God: for Moses brings in the Lord speaking thus, Gen. 1.26. Let us make man in our image, etc. in the image of God created he them, which also must be understood of Angels. The image of God, is nothing else but a conformity of man unto God, whereby man is holy, as God is holy: for Paul saith, Eph. 2.24. Put on the new man which after God, that is, in God's image, is created in righteousness & true holiness. Now I reason thus: wherein the renewing of the Image of God in man doth stand, therein it was in the beginning: but the renewing of God's image in man doth stand in righteousness and holiness: therefore God's image wherein man was created at the beginning, was a conformity to God in righteousness and holiness. Now whether God's image doth further consist in the substance of man's body & soul, or in the faculties of both, the Scripture speaketh nothing. This Image of God hath two principal parts: I. wisdom: II. holiness. Colos. 3.10. Concerning wisdom Paul saith, Put ye on the new man which is created in knowledge, after the Image of him which created him. This wisdom consisteth in three points: I. in that he knew God his creator perfectly: for Adam in his innocency knew God so farforth as it was convenient for a creature to know his creator. II. He knew Gods will so far forth as it was convenient for him, to show his obedience thereunto. III. He knew the wisdom and will of his creator touching the particular creatures: for after Adam was created, the Lord brought every creature unto him, presenting them unto him as being lord and king over them, that he might give names unto them. Whereby it appears that Adam in his innocency did know the nature of all creatures; and the wisdom of God in creating them, else he could not have given them fit names: & when God brought Eve unto Adam, he knew her at the first, and said, This is now bone of my bone, Gen. 2.23. and flesh of my flesh, she shallbe called woman, etc. The second part of God's image in man, is holiness and righteousness; which is nothing else but a conformity of the will and affections, and of the whole disposition of man both in body and soul, to the will of God his creator. Yet we must remember that Adam in his innocency had a changeable will, so as he could either will good or evil: he was created with such liberty of will, as that he could indifferently will either. And we must not think that the will of the creature was made unchangeably good: for that is peculiar to the will of God, and hereby is the Creator distinguished from the creature. And here two things offer themselves to be considered. The first, why the man is called the image of God, and not the woman. 1. Cor. 11.7. Answer. He is so called, not because holiness and righteousness is peculiar to him which is common to both: but because God hath placed more outward excellency and dignity in the person of a man then of a woman. The second, how Christ should be called the image of God. Ans. Col. 1.16. He is so called for 2. causes. First, because he is of the same substance with the father; & therefore is his most absolute image, and as the author of the Hebrews saith, the brightness of his glory and the engraved form of his person. Heb. 1.3. Secondly, because God being invisible doth manifest himself in Christ; in whom as in a glass we may behold the wisdom, goodness, the justice and mercy of God. The second point to be considered in the creation of man, is the dignity of his person: for David saith, thou hast made man little inferior to the Angels, Psal. 8.5. and crowned him with glory, and worship. This dignity stands in four points. I. A blessed communion with the true God: for Paul speaking of the Gentiles which were not called, saith they were strangers from the life of God. Eph. 4.18. Where by the contrary we may gather, that our first parents in their innocency lived the life of God, which is nothing else but to lead such a life here on earth, as that the creature shall have a blessed and immediate fellowship with God, which stands in this, that before the fall of man, God revealed himself in a special manner unto him, so as his very body and soul was a temple and dwelling place of the Creator. This fellowship between God and man in his innocency, was made manifest in the familiar conference which God vouchsafed to man: but since the fall, this communion is lost: for man cannot abide the presence of God. And therefore when Peter had fished all night, and caught nothing, our Saviour bade him cast down his net to make a draft, Luk. 5.8. who did so; but when he saw the great multitude of fishes that were taken, at this sight beholding but as it were some sparks of the glorious majesty of God in Christ, he fell down at his feet, saying, Lord, depart from me, for I am a sinner. The second point wherein man's dignity consisteth, is that man was made lord and king over all creatures, as David saith, Thou hast made him to have dominion in the works of thy hands: Psal. 8.6. and therefore God having created him in his image, he biddeth him rule over the fishes of the sea, Gen. 1.28. over the fowls of the heaven, and over every beast that moveth upon the earth: and afterward he brought them all to him, as to a sovereign lord and king to be named by him: and answeareably every creature in his kind gave reverence and subjection unto man before his fall, as unto their lord and king. Where by the way we must remember, that when we see any creature that is hurtful and noisome unto man, and would rather devour him then obey him; it must put us in mind of our sin: for by creation we were made lords and kings over all creatures, and they durst not but reverence and obey us: but the rebellion of man unto God is the cause of the rebellion of the creatures unto us. The third part of man's dignity by creation is, that before his fall he had a wonderful beauty and majesty above all creatures in his body: whereupon David saith, The Lord hath crowned him with glory and worship. Psal. 8. And in the renewing of the covenant with Noah, God saith, Gen. 9.2. That the dread and fear of man shallbe upon all creatures: which now though it be but small, yet it plainly showeth what was the glory and majesty of man's person at the first. The fourth dignity of man's estate in innocency is, that his labour was without pain or weariness: if he had never fallen he should have laboured in the garden▪ but so as he should never have been wearied therewith. That it is so, it is plain, for when Adam had fallen, God said, In the sweat of thy face, shalt thou eat thy bread: now if the pain in labour come after as a curse upon man for his transgression, then before his fall man felt no pain in his affairs. And in these four things consisteth man's dignity which he had in the creation. Now in the third place followeth man's calling before his fall: which is twofold: I. particular: II. general. Man's particular calling was to come into the garden of Eden, to keep it, and to dress the trees and fruits thereof. This shows unto us a good lesson, that every man must have a particular calling wherein he ought to walk: and therefore such as spend their time idly in gaming and vain delights, have much to answer to God at the day of judgement. This will not excuse a man to say then, that he had land and living to maintain himself, and therefore was to live as he list, for even Adam in his innocency had all things at his will, and wanted nothing, yet even then God employed him in a calling: therefore high and low, none must be exempted, every man must walk in his proper calling. Adam's general calling, was to worship his Creator, to which he was bound by the right of creation, considering the moral law was written in his heart by nature. Which is signified in the decalogue; where the Lord requires worship and obedience of his people, because he is jehovah, that is, one which hath being in himself, Exod. 20.2. and gives being to all men by creation. For the better understanding of this point, we are to consider three things. I. The place where Adam did worship. II. The time. III. The sacraments. For the first, God ever since the beginning had a place where he would be worshipped, Gen. 28.17. and it is called God's house, which then was the garden of Eden. For it was unto Adam a place appointed by God for his worship, as Church-assemblies are unto us: where also the Lord at time did in a special manner show himself unto his creature. Touching the time of God's worship, it was the seventh day from the beginning of the creation, the Sabbath day. And here we must note, that the keeping of the Sabbath is moral. Some indeed do plead that it is but a ceremony; yet falsely: for it was ordained before the fall of man, at which time Ceremonies signifying sanctification had no place. Nay mark further: Adam in his innocency was not clogged with sin as we are: and yet then he must have a set Sabbath to worship God his creator: and therefore much more need hath every one of us of a sabbath day, wherein we may sever ourselves from the works of our callings, and the works of sin, to the worship of God in the exercise of religion, and godly meditation of our creation. This point must be learned of us, for when no occasion is offered of business, than men will formally seem to keep the sabbath: but if their come occasion of breaking the sabbath, as traffic, gaming, and vain shows, than sabbath farewell, men will have their pleasures, let them worship God that will. But let us remember in the fear of God, that who so ever continueth in the breach of this law being moral, God will no less pour forth his punishments upon them, then for the breach of any other commandment: the consideration whereof, must move every man to a reverent sanctifying of the Lords day. Now for Adam's sacraments, they were two: the tree of life: and the tree of knowledge of good and evil: these did serve to exercise Adam in obedience unto God. The tree of life was to signify assurance of life for ever, if he did keep God's commandments: the tree of knowledge of good and evil, was a sacrament to show unto him, that if he did transgress God's commandments, he should die: and it was so called, because it did signify that if he transgress this law, he should have experience both of good and evil in himself. Now in the fourth place followeth the end of the creation of man, which is twofold. First, that there might be a creature to whom God might make manifest himself, who in a special manner should set forth and acknowledge his wisdom▪ goodness, mercy, in the creation of heaven and earth, and of things that are in them, as also his providence in governing the same. Secondly, God having decreed to glorify his name in showing his mercy and justice upon his creature, hereupon in time createth men to show his mercy in the salvation of some, and to show his justice in the just and deserved damnation of other some. And therefore he hath appointed the creation specially of man, to be a means of manifestation and beginning of the execution of his eternal counsel. Thus much concerning man's creation in general. The special parts of man, are two; body, and soul. And the reason why the Lord would have him stand on these two parts is this: Some creatures made before him were only bodily, as beasts, fishes, fowls: some spiritual, as Angels: now man is both; spiritual in regard of his soul, corporal and sensible in regard of his body; that nothing might be wanting to the perfection of nature. If it be alleged that man consists of three parts, body, soul, and spirit; because Paul prays that the Thessalonians may be sanctified in body, 1. Thess. 5.23. soul and spirit: the answer is, that the spirit signifies the mind whereby men conceive and understand such things as may be understood: and the soul is there taken for the will and affections; and therefore these twain are not two parts, but only two distinct faculties of one and the same man. The body of man at the first was form by God of clay or of the dust of the earth, not to be the grave of the body, as Plato said, but to be an excellent and most fit instrument to put in execution the powers and faculties of the soul. And howsoever in itself considered, it is mortal; because it is compounded of contrary natures called Elements: yet by the appointment of God in the creation, it became immortal till the fall of man. As for the soul, it is no accidentary quality, but a spiritual and invisible essence or nature, Zach. 12. subsisting by itself. Which plainly appears in that the souls of men have being and continuance as well forth of the body as in the same; and are as well subject to torments as the body is. And whereas we can and do put in practice sundry actions of life, sense, motion, understanding, we do it only by the power and virtue of the soul. Hence ariseth the difference between the souls of men, and beasts. The souls of men are substances: but the souls of other creatures seem not to be substances: because they have no being out of the bodies in which they are: but rather they are certain peculiar qualities arising of the matter of the body, and vanishing with it. And it may be for this cause that the soul of the beast is said to be in the blood; Gen. 9.5. whereas the like is not said of the soul of man. And though men's souls be spirits as angels are, yet a difference must be made. For angels can not be united with bodies so as both shall make one whole and entire person; whereas men's souls may: yea the soul coupled with the body is not only the mover of the body, but the principal cause that makes man to be a man. The beginning of the soul is not of the essence of God; unless we will make every man's soul to be God: neither doth it spring of the soul of the parents, for the soul can no more beget a soul, than an angel can beget an angel. And Adam is called a living soul, and not a quickening soul. And earthly fathers are called the fathers of our bodies, 1. Cor. 15. Heb. 12. and not of our souls. It remains therefore as being most agreeable to the Scriptures, that the souls of men are then created by God of nothing, when they are infused into the body. And though the souls of men have a beginning, yet they have no end, but are eternal. And when they are said to die, it is not because they cease at any time to subsist or have being in nature, but because they cease to be righteous or to have fellowship with God. Whereas our bodies are God's workmanship, we must glorify him in our bodies, and all the actions of body and soul, our eating and drinking, our living and dying, must be referred to his glory; ye● we must not hurt or abuse our bodies, but present them as holy & living sacrifices unto God. 1. Cor. 16.31. Rom. 12.1. And whereas God made us of the dust of the earth, we are not to glory and boast ourselves, but rather to take occasion to praise the great goodness of God, that hath vouchsafed to honour us being but dust & ashes. And after that man is created, what is his life? alas, it is nothing but a little breath: stop his mouth and his nostrils, and he is but a dead man. By this we are put in mind to consider of our frail and uncertain estate, and to lay aside all confidence in ourselves: Esay 2.22. and for this cause the Prophet Esay teacheth us to have no confidence in man, because his breath is in his nostrils. Again, let us mark the frame and shape of man's body. All other creatures go with their bodies & eyes to the ground-ward; but man was made to go upright: & whereas all other creatures have but four muscles to turn their eyes round about, Columb. l. 5. cap. 9 man hath a fifth to pull his eyes up to heavenwarde. Now what doth this teach us? surely that how so ever we seek for other things, yet first of all and above all, we should seek for the kingdom of heaven, and the righteousness thereof: and that our whole desire should be set to enjoy the blessed estate of God's children in heaven. Secondly, it teacheth us in receiving Gods creatures, to return thankfulness unto▪ God by lifting up the heart to heaven for the same. These are very needful and profitable lessons in these days; for most men in deed go upright: but look into their lives, and they might as well go on all four: for in their conversation they set their whole hearts upon the earth, as the beast doth, and their eyes upon the things of this world: hereby they do abase themselves, and deface their bodies, and being men make themselves as beasts: we shall see great numbers of men that run and ride from place to place, to provide for the body, but to seek the kingdom of heaven where their souls should dwell after this life in joy for ever, they will not stir one foot. Thirdly, man's body by creation, was made a temple framed by Gods own hands for himself to dwell in: 1. Cor. 6.15. therefore our duty is to keep our bodies pure and clean, and not to suffer them to be instruments whereby to practise the sin of the heart. If a man had a fair house wherein he must entertain a prince, and should make hereof a swinesty, or a stable, would not all men say, that he did greatly abuse both the house and the prince: even so man's body being at the first made a palace for the everliving God; if a man shall abuse it by drunkenness, swearing, lying, fornication, or any uncleanness, he doth make it in stead of a temple for the holy Ghost, to be a s●ie or stable for the devil. For the more filthy a man's body is, the more fit it is to be a dwelling place for sin and Satan. Fourthly, man by creation was made a goodly creature in the blessed image of God: but by Adam's fall men lost the same, and are now become the deformed children of wrath: our duty therefore is, to labour to get again our first image, and endeavour ourselves to become new creatures. If a noble man should stain his blood by treason, after his death the posterity will never be at rest, till they have got away that spot: Man by Adam's fall, is become a limb of the devil, a rebel and traitor against God's majesty: and this is the state of every one of us: by nature we are at enmity with God, & therefore we ought to labour above all things in the world, to be restored in Christ to our first estate and perfection, that so we may become bone of his bone, flesh of his flesh, being justified and sanctified by his obedience, death, and passion. Fiftly, man was created that there might be a way prepared, whereby God might show his grace and mercy in the salvation of some, and his justice in the deserved damnation of others for their sins: and in the creation of man God's eternal counsel gins to come into execution. Hereupon it stands us in hand to make conscience of every evil way, being repentant for all our sins past, and having a constant purpose never to sin more as we have done, that by our good conversation here in this life we may have assurance that we be eternally chosen to salvation by the Lord himself. Lastly, whereas we have learned that the soul of man is immortal, we are hereby taught to take more care for the soul, then for the body. For it can not be extinguished. When it is condemned, even than it is always in dying, and can never die. But, alas, in this point the case is ●lat contrary in the world: for men will labour all their life long to get for the body, but for the soul they care little or nothing at all, choose it whether it sink or swim, go to heaven or to hell, they look not to it. This doth appear to be true, by the practice and behaviour of men on the lords day: for if the number of those which come to hear God's word, were compared with those which run about their worldly wealth and pleasure, I fear me the better sort would be found to be but a little handful to a huge heap, or as a drop to the Ocean sea, in respect of the other. But wilt thou go an hundred mile for the increase of thy wealth, and delight of thy body? then think it not much to go ten thousand miles (if need were) to take any pains for the good of thy soul, and to get food for the same. And thus much for the duties. Now follow the consolations. Although by reason of the fall of man we can have but little comfort now: yet the creation doth conform the unspeakable providence of God over his creatures, but especially over man, in that the Lord created him the sixth day: and so before he was made prepared for him a Paradise for his dwelling, and all creatures both for his use and comfort. And if he were thus careful for us when we were not, than no doubt he will be much more careful for us at this present, in which we live and have being. Nay, mark further, since the fall man eats and drinks in quantity a great deal, which in common reason should rather kill him, then turn to the strength and nourishment of his body: yet herein doth the wonderful power of the Creator most notably appear: who hath made man's stomach as a limbeck or still to digest all meats that are wholesome for his nourishment and preservation. And thus much for the Creation. Now in these words, Maker of heaven and earth] is more to be understood then the work of creation, namely God's providence in governing all things created, as he appointed in his eternal decree: and therefore Saint Peter saith, God is a faithful creator, that is, God did not only make heaven and earth, and so leave them, as masons and carpenters leave houses when they are built: but by his providence doth most wisely govern the same. Now therefore let us come to speak of God's providence. And first of all the question offers itself to be considered, whether there be any providence of God or no: for the minds of men are troubled with many doubtings hereof. And to make the question out of all doubt, I will use four arguments to confirm the providence of God. The first is the testimony of the scripture, which ascribeth the event of all particular actions, even such as are in themselves casual, as the casting of lots and such like to the disposition of God: Prov. 16.33. which also teacheth that even men themselves, which are endued with reason and understanding have need to be guided in all things and governed by God; Pro. 20.24. jer. 10.23. and blameth those that deny God's providence. Why sayest thou, O jacob, and speakest, O Israel, my way is hid from the Lord, Isai. 40.27. & my judgement is passed over by my God? The second argument may be taken from the order which appeareth in the whole course of nature. First to begin with families; there is to be seen an eutaxy or seemly order, in which some rule & some obey: & the like is to be found in towns, cities, countries, and kingdoms: yea even in the whole world: in which all things are so disposed, that one serveth for the good of another. Trees and herbs, and grass of the fields serve for beasts and cattle: and beasts and cattle serve for men: the heavens above serve for them which are beneath: and all the creatures which are above and beneath serve for God. This argueth that God is most wise and provident in ordering and disposing all things whatsoever. The third argument is taken from the conscience specially of malefactors. Suppose a man that commits a murder so closely that no man knows thereof; and that the party himself is free from all the danger of law: yet shall he have his own conscience to accuse, upbraid, and condemn him, yea even to fraught him out of his wit:, and to give him no more rest than he can find upon the rack or gibbet. Now this accusation and terror of conscience is nothing else, but the forerunner of an other most terrible judgement of God, who is Lord of all creatures and judge of all men. And this also proves the providence of god. For if the conscience can find a man out, and lay his faults to his charge, how much more shall god himself the creator of the conscience see and consider all his doings. The fourth and last argument is this. The prophecies of things to come should be uncerten or false, if god governed not the world. But now considering things many years ago foretold, come to pass in the same manner as they were foretold by the Prophets and Apostles: hereby we must certainly conclude that there is a providence of god whereby all & every thing is governed. Against the providence of god sundry things be alleged. The first and special is, that providence and disorder, confusion and order can not stand together. Now in the world there is nothing but disorder and confusion in seditions, treasons, conspiracies, and subversions of kingdoms: where also sin and wickedness prevails. Answer. It is true indeed there hath been confusion in the world ever since the fall of man and angels: and it ariseth not from God, but from them alone: who as they did at the first transgress the will of God, so they do what they can to turn all upside down. Now then confusion and disorder is only in respect of the devil and his instruments: but in regard of God in the very midst of all confusion there is order to be found: because he can and doth dispose it to the glory of his own name, and to the good and salvation of his chosen, as also to the confusion of his enemies. Again it may be objected that with ungodly and wicked men all things go well, and contrariwise with the godly all things go hardly. For through the world none are more molested and more under outward misery than they: but if there were any providence of God than it should be otherwise; the godly should flourish, & the wicked perish. Ans. The consideration of the outward estate of men in the world, was to David an occasion of a sore temptation. For when he saw the wicked to prosper always, and their riches to increase, he broke forth and said, Certainly I have cleansed my heart in vain, Psal. 73.13, 14. and washed mine hands in innocency. Now if we would repel this temptation, as David afterward did, than we must go into the Lord's sanctuary with him & learn to be resolved in these points. Vers. 17. I. Though the godly be laden with miseries, yet even that, by the especial providence of God, turns to their great good. For every man since the fall of Adam is stained with the loathsome contagion of sin. Now the child of God that is truly regenerate, and must be fellow heir with Christ after this life in the kingdom of glory, must in this life be cast into the Lord's furnace, that in the fire of affliction he may more and more be scoured and purified from the corruption of his nature, & be estranged from the wickedness of the world. II. The prosperous success of the wicked, their spoils, their revenues, and all their honour turns to their greater woe and misery in the end: as doth appear in jobs history, and in the examples of the Chaldeans, of David's enemies, and of Dives and Lazarus. Thirdly it may be objected that many things came to pass by chance, & therefore not by gods providence: because chance & providence cannot stand together. Ans. We must distinguish between chance & mere chance. Chance is, when any thing comes to pass, the cause thereof being unknown not simply but in respect of man: & therefore in regard of men which know not the reason of things, we may say there is chance: & so the spirit of God speaketh. Time and chance cometh to them all. And again, Eccles. 9.11. Luk. 10.31. By chance there came down a priest the same way. Now this kind of chance is not against the providence of god, but is ordered by it. For things which in regard of men are casual, are certainly known & determined by god. Mere chance is when things are said or thought to come to pass without any cause at all. But that must be abhorred of us as overturning the providence of God. Thus seeing it is plain that there is a providence, let us in the next place see what it is. Providence is a most free & powerful action of god whereby he hath care over all things that are. Providence hath 2. parts; knowledge & government▪ Gods knowledge is, whereby all things from the greatest to the least are manifest before him at all times. As David saith, His eyes will consider: his eye l●ddes will try the children of men, Psal. 11.4. Psal. 113.6. And again, He abaseth himself to behold the things that are in the heaven and the earth. And the Prophet Hanani said to Asa, 2. Chr. 16.9. The eyes of the Lord behold all the earth. And S. james saith, From the beginning of the world God knoweth all his works. Act. 15.18. This point hath a double use. First, as S. Peter saith, it must move us to eschew evil and do good: why? Because, saith he, the eyes of the Lord are upon the just, 1. Pet. 3.11. and his countenance against evil doers. Secondly it must comfort all those that labour to keep a good conscience. For the eyes of God behold all the earth to show himself strong with them that are of perfect heart towards him. 2. Chr. 16.9. Government is the second part of God's providence, whereby he ordereth all things and directeth them to good ends. And it must be extended to the very lest thing that is in heaven or earth, Mat. 6.26. Deut. 15▪ 4. Mat. 10.10. as to the sparrows, and to oxen, and the hairs of our heads. And here we must consider 2. things, the manner of government, and the means. The manner of government is divers according as things are good or evil. A good thing is that which is approved of God. As first of all the substances of all creatures; even of the devils themselves: in whom whatsoever is remaining since their creation is in itself good. Secondly, the quantities, qualities, motions, actions, and inclinations of the creatures in themselves considered with all their events are good. Again, good is either natural or moral. Natural, which is created by God for the lawful use of man. Moral, which is agreeable to the eternal and unchangeable wisdom of God, revealed in the moral law. Now God governeth all good things two ways. First by sustaining and preserving them that they decay not: secondly by moving them that they may attain to the particular ends for which they were severally ordained▪ for the qualities and virtues which were placed in the Sun, Moon, Stars, trees, plants, seeds, etc. would be dead in them and be unprofitable, unless they were not only preserved, but also stirred up and quickened by the power of God so oft as he employs them to any use. Evil is the destruction of nature: and it is taken for sin or for the punishment of sin. Now sin is governed of God by two actions: the first is an operative permission. I so call it, because god partly permitteth sin, and partly worketh in it. For sin as it is commonly taken hath two parts; the subject or matter, and the form of sin: the subject of sin is a certain quality or action; the form is the anomy or transgression of God's law. The first is good in itself, and every quality or action so far forth as it is a quality or action is existing in nature, and hath God to be the author of it. Therefore sin though it be sufficiently evil to eternal damnation, yet can it not be said to be absolutely evil as God is absolutely good, because the subject of it is good, and therefore it hath in it respects and regards of goodness. In respect of the second, that is the breach of the law itself, God neither willeth, nor appointeth, nor commandeth, nor causeth, nor helpeth sin, but forbiddeth, condemneth and punisheth it: yet so, as by withal he willingly permitteth it to be done by others, as men and wicked angels, they being the sole authors & causes of it. And this permission by God is upon a good end: because thereby he manifesteth his justice and mercy. Thus it appears that in original sin, the natural inclination of the mind, will, and affections in itself considered, is from God, and the ataxy or corruption of the inclination in no wise from him, but only permitted: and that in actual sin the motion of the body or mind is from God, but the evilness & disorder of the motion is not from him, but freely permitted to be done by others. As for example in the act of murder, the actions of moving the whole body, of stirring the several joints, and the fetching of the blow whereby the man is slain, is from God; for in him we live, move, & have our being: Acts. 17.28. but the disposing & applying of all these actions to this end, that our neighbours life may be taken away & we thereby take revenge upon him, is not from God, but from wicked men and the devil. God's second action▪ in the government of sin, is after the just permission of it, partly to restrain it more or less according to his good will and pleasure, and partly to dispose and turn it against the nature thereof to the glory of his own name, to the punishment of his enemies, & to the correcting and chastisement of his elect. As for the second kind of evil called the punishment of sin, it is the execution of justice, and hath God to be the author of it. And in this respect Esai saith, that God createth evil: Isai. 45.7. Amos. 3. and Amos, that there is no evil in the city which the Lord hath not done. And God as a most just judge may punish sin by sin, himself in the mean season free from all sin. And thus the places must be understood in which it is said, Neh. 9.37. Exo. 4. & 7. Isai. 19.14. Rom. 1.28. 2. Thes. 2.11. 1. Kin. 22.22. that God giveth kings in his wrath, hardeneth the heart, blindeth the eyes, mingleth the spirit of errors, giveth up men to a reprobate sense, sends strange illusions to believe lies, sends evil spirits giving them commandment to hurt, and leave to deceive, etc. Thus having seen in what manner God governeth all things, let us now come to the means of government. Sometimes God worketh without means, thus he created all things in the beginning; and he made trees & plants to grow and flourish without the heat of the sun or rain: sometimes he governs according to the usual course & order of nature, as when he preserves our lives by meat & drink: yet so, as he can & doth most freely order all things by means either above nature or against nature, as it shall seem good unto him. As when he caused the sun to stand in the firmament, jos. 10. Isai. 38. Dan. 3. 1. King. 18. Exod. 17. 2. King. 2. 2. King. 6. jonas. 2. 2. King. 5. Mat. 9 joh. 9 & to go back in Achas dial: when he caused the fire not to burn the three children: when he kept back dew and rain three year in Israel: when he made waters to flow out of the rock: when he caused Elias cloak to divide the waters of Iorden: when he caused iron to swim: when he preserved jonas alive three days and three nights in the whales belly: when he cured diseases by the strength of nature incurable, as the leprosy of Naaman; the issue of blood, and blindness, etc. Among all the means which God useth, the special are the reasonable creatures, which are no passive instruments, as the tool in the hand of the workman, but active, because as they are moved by God, so again being endued with will and reason, they move themselves. And such instruments are either good or evil. Evil, as wicked men and angels. And these he useth to do his good will and pleasure, even then when they do least of all obey him. And considering that the ●inning instrument which is moved by God doth also move itself freely without any constraint on God's part: God himself is free from all blame, when the instrument is blameworthy. In directing the instrument God sinneth not: the action indeed is of him, but the defect of the action from the instrument: which being corrupt, can itself do nothing but that which is corrupt; God in the mean season by it bringing that to pass which is very good. The whole cause of sin is in Satan and in us: as for god, he puts no wickedness into us, but the evil which he finds in us he moves, orders, and governs, and bends it by his infinite wisdom, when and in what manner it pleaseth him, to the glory of his name, the evil instrument not knowing so much, nay intending a far other end. As in the mill the horse blindfolded goes forward, and perceives nothing but that he is in the ordinary way, whereas the miller himself whips him and stirs him forward for another end, namely for the grinding of corn. And this is that which we must hold touching God's providence over wicked men and angels: and is stands with the tenor of the whole bible. joseph's brethren sold him into Egypt very wickedly even in the testimony of their own consciences: yet joseph having respect to the counsel and work of god, which he performed by his brethren, saith, that the Lord sent him thither. And the Church of jerusalem saith, Gen. 45. that Herode and Pontius Pilate did nothing in the death of Christ but that which the hand and counsel of God had determined to be done: Act. 4.28. because, though they wickedly intended nothing but to show their malice and hatred in the death of Christ: yet God propounding a further matter by them then ever they dreamt of, showed forth his endless mercy to man in the work of redemption. On this manner must all the places of scripture be understood, 2. Sam. 12.11. 2. Sam. 24.1. 2. Sam. 16.11. Isai. 10.5. & 13.6. 2. Ch●. 11.4. in which it is said, that god gave the wives of David to Absalon: that God moved David to number the people: that he commanded Shemi to rail on David: that the Medes and Persians are his sanctified once: that the revolt of the ten tribes was done by God, etc. By all these examples it appears, that we must not sever gods permission from his will or decree, and that we must put difference between the evil work of man, and the good work of God which he doth by man: and the whole matter may yet be more clearly perceived by this comparison. A thief at the day of assize is condemned, and the magistrate appoints him to be executed; the hangman owing a grudge to the malefactor, useth him hardly and prolongeth his punishment longer than he should. Now the magistrate and the hangman do both one and the same work: yet the hangman for his part is a murderer, the magistrate in the mean season no murderer but a just judge putting justice in execution by the hangman. So God though he use evil instruments, yet is he free from the evil of the instruments. And further we must here mark the difference which must be made in gods using of all kinds of instruments. When he useth good creatures, as angels, he worketh his will not only by them but also in them: because he inspires them and guides them by his spirit, so as they shall, will, & do that which he willeth and intendeth. As for evil instruments, he worketh by them only and not in them; because he holds back his grace from them and leaves them to themselves, to put in practise the corruption of their own hearts. Thus much of the parts of God's providence: now follow the kinds thereof. God's providence is either general or special. General is that which extends itself to the whole world and all things indifferently, Act. 17.28. Heb. 1.3. even to the devils themselves. By this providence God continues and maintains the order which he set in nature in the creation, and he preserves the life, substance, job. 37▪ & 38. Psal. 104. and the being of all and every creature in his kind. The especial providence is that, which God showeth and exerciseth towards his Church and chosen people, Isa. 43.1. Zach. 2.8. in gathering and guiding them, and in preserving them by his mighty power against the gates of hell. And therefore God's Church here upon earth is called the kingdom of grace, in which he shows not only a general power over his creatures, but withal the special operation of his spirit in bowing & bending the hearts of men to his will. Thus much concerning the doctrine of God's providence. Now follows the duties. First seeing there is a providence of God over every thing that is, we are hereby taught to take good heed of the transgression of the least of God's commandments. If men were persuaded that the prince had an eye every where, doubtless many subjects in England would walk more obediently to the laws of the land than they do: and durst in no wise work such villainies as are daily practised. Well, howsoever it is with earthly princes, yet this is least wanting in God: he hath an eye every where: wheresoever thou art there god beholdeth thee, as David saith, God looked down from heaven upon the children of men, to see if there were any that would understand and seek God. Psal. 53.2. Therefore except thou be brutish and past shame, take heed of sin. If men had but a spark of grace, the consideration of this would make them loathe the practice of wickedness. Eliah saith to Ahab, As the Lord God of Israel liveth before whom I stand, 1. King. 17.2. there shall be neither dew nor rain these 3. years. Where the Prophet confirmeth his speech with an oath saying, As the Lord of hosts liveth it shall be so. & lest Ahab should think he made no conscience what he said, he addeth this clause, that he stood in the presence of God. As if he should say: howsoever thou thinkest of me, yet as it stands me in hand so do I make conscience of my word: For I stand in the presence of God, & therefore know it, as the Lord liveth there shallbe no rain nor dew these three years. So Cornelius having an eye at gods providence, doth move himself, & all his household to a solemn hearing of the word of God delivered by the mouth of Peter, saying, that they were all present before God, to hear all things commanded of him. Acts. 10.33. As these men had regard to God's providence, so we likewise must behave ourselves reverently, making conscience of our behaviour both in words and works: because wheresoever we be, we are in the presence of God. Secondly, if there be a providence of God over every thing, than we must learn contentation of mind in every estate: in adversity under the cross when all goes against us we must be content, because God's providence hath so appointed. So David in the greatest of his griefs was dumb and spoke nothing; his reason was, Psal. 39.9. because thou Lord didst it. And when Shemei cursed David, Abisha would have had the king to have given him leave to have slain him: but David would not suffer it, but said, He curseth even because the Lord hath bidden him curse David: 2. Sam. 16.10 who dare then say, wherefore hast thou done so? In whose example we may see a worthy pattern of quietness of mind. When a cross cometh, it is a hard thing to be patiented: but we must draw ourselves thereunto by consideration of God's especial providence. Thirdly when outward means of preservation in this life do abound, as health, wealth, honour, riches, peace, and pleasure, than we must remember to be thankful; because these things always come by the providence of God. So is job thankful both in prosperity and adversity: The Lord, saith he, gave, job. 1.22. and the Lord taketh away: blessed be the name of the Lord. Indeed to be patiented in every estate and thankful to God is a very hard matter: yet will it be more easy, if we learn in all things that befall us in this life, never to sever the consideration of the things that come to pass from God's providence. For as the body and the soul of man (though we see only the body) are always together, as long as a man liveth: so is God's providence joined with the thing done: wherefore as we look on the thing done, so we must also in it, labour to see and acknowledge God's providence. As for example: a man's house is set on fire, and all his goods consumed; this very sight would make him at his wits end: but now as he beholds this event with one eye, so with the other eye he must at that very instant look upon God's blessed providence. When a man beholds and feels the loss of friends, he will be soon grieved, if he be not a very stock or stone: yet that he may not be overwhelmed with grief, he must ever with one eye look at the pleasure of God herein. This practice will be an especial means to stay the rage of any headstrong affection in all our afflictions. In the world the manner of men is, if health, wealth, and ease abound to think all is well: but if crosses come, as loss of friends, and loss of goods, than men cry out, as being 'straught of their wits: the reason is, because they look only at the outward means, and shut up God's providence in them, & can not see into the good will and providence of God out of all means. Again, when a man is stored with riches, honour, wealth, and prosperity, he must not barely look on them, but behold withal God's goodness and blessing in them: for if that be wanting, all the riches in the world are nothing. Likewise in receiving thy meat and drink thou must look further into the blessing of God upon it: which if it be away, thy meat and thy drink can no more nourish thee then the stone in the wall. And the same must we do in every business of our callings: which if men could learn to practise they would not so much t●ust to the means, as honour, wealth, favour, etc. but to God himself. The Lord by the Prophet Habaccuc reproveth the Chaldeans for offering sacrifices unto their nets: which sin they committed, because they looked only upon outward things: Hab●. & like blind moles had no power to see further into them, and to behold the work of God in all their proceed. And this is the very cause why we are unthankful for God's benefits: for though we behold the bare creatures, yet are we so purblind that we can not discern any blessing and providence of God in them. Therefore let us learn to look upon both jointly together, and so shall we be thankful unto god in prosperity, and patiented in adversity with job and David. This lesson Paul learned: I can be abased (saith he) and I can abound every where, in all things I am instructed, Philip. 4.12, 13. both to be full, and to be hungry: and to abound, and to be in want. Fourthly, seeing gods providence disposeth all things, we are taught to gather observations of the same, in things both past, and present: that we may learn thereby to be armed against the time to come. Thus David when he was to encounter with Goliath, gathered hope and confidence to himself for the time to come, by the observation of God's providence in the time past: for, saith he, when I kept my father's sheep, 1. San. 17.37. I slew a Lion and a bear that devoured the flock: now the Lord that delivered me out of the paw of the lion, and out of the paw of the bear, he will deliver me out of the hand of this Philistim. Fiftly, because God's providence disposeth all things, when we make lawful promises to do any thing, we must put in, or at the lest conceive this condition (if the Lord will) for S. james saith, jam. 4.15. that we ought to say, If the lord will, and if we live, we will do this or that. This also was David's practice: for saith he to all the congregation of Israel, 1. Sam. 13.2. If it seem good to you, & if it proceed from the lord our god, we will send to and fro. Sixtly, seeing God's providence is manifested in ordinary means, it behoveth every man in his calling to use them carefully: & when ordinary means be at hand, we must not look for any help without them, though the Lord be able to do what he will without means. joab when many Aramites came against him, he heartened his soldiers though they were but few in number, 2. Sam. 10.12 Mat. 4.6. bidding them be strong & valiant for their people, & for the cities of their God, & then let the lord do that which is good in his eyes. And our Saviour Christ avoucheth it to be flat tempting of god for him to leap down from the pinnacle of the temple to the ground, whereas there was an ordinary way at hand to descend by stairs. Hence it appears, that such persons, as will use no means whereby they may come to repent & believe, do indeed no more repent & believe, than they can be able to live which neither eat nor drink. And thus much of the duties. Now follow the consolations: first, this very point of gods special providence is a great comfort to god's church: for the lord moderateth the rage of the devil and wicked men, that they shall not hurt the people of God. David saith, Psal. 16.8. The Lord is at my right hand, therefore I shall not 〈◊〉. And when joseph's brethren were afraid for selling him into Egypt, he comforteth them saying, that it was God that sent him before them, for their preservation. Gen. 45.7. So king David when his own soldiers were purposed to stone him to death, he was in great sorrow; but it is said, he comforted himself in the Lord his God. 1. Sam. 30.6. where we may see that a man which hath grace to believe in God, and rely on his providence in all his afflictions & extremity:, shall have wonderful peace and consolation. Before we can proceed to the articles which follow, it is requisite that we should entreat of one of the greatest works of God's providence that can be; because the opening of it giveth light to all that ensueth. And this work is a Preparation of such means whereby God will manifest his justice and mercy. It hath two parts, the just permission of the fall of man, and the giving of the covenant of grace. For so Paul teacheth when he saith, That God shut up all under unbelief that he might have upon al. Rom. 11.32. Galat. 3.22. And again, The scripture hath concluded all under sin, that the promise by the faith of Christ jesus should be given to them that believe. Touching the first, that we may rightly conceive of man's fall, we are to search out the nature and parts of sin. Sin is any thing whatsoever is against the will and word of God: as S. john saith, Sin is the transgression of the law. And this definition Paul confirmeth when he saith, ●. joh. 3.4. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Rom. 3 20. & 4.15. & 5.13. that by the la comes the knowledge of sin: and, where no law is, there is no transgression: and, sin is not imputed where there is no law. In sin we must consider three things: the fault, the guilt, the punishment. The fault is the anomy or the inobedience itself, and it comprehends not only huge and notorious offences, as idolatry, blasphemy, theft, treason, adultery, and all other crimes that the world cries sha●e on: but every disordered thought, affection, inclination: yea, every defect of that which the Law requireth. The guilt of sin is, whereby a man is guilty before God, that is bound and made subject to punishment. And here two questions must be scanned: where man is bound? and by what? For the first, Man is bound in conscience. And hereupon the conscience of every sinner sits within his heart as a little judge to tell him that he is bound before God to punishment. For the second, it is the order of divine justice ●et down by God which binds the conscience of the sinner before God: for he is Creator and Lord, and man is a creature, and therefore must either obey his will and commandment, or suffer punishment. Now then by virtue of God's law, conscience binds over the creature to bear a punishment for his offence done against God: yea it tells him, that he is in danger to be judged and condemned for it. And therefore the conscience is the lords Sergeant to inform the sinner of the bond and obligation whereby he is always bound before God. The third thing which followeth sin is punishment, and that is death. Rom. 6.23. So Paul saith, The stipend of sin is death: where, by death we must understand a double death, both of body and soul. The death of the body is a separation of the body from the soul. The second death is a separation of the whole man, but especially of the soul from the glorious presence of God. I say not simply from the presence of God, for god is every where: but only from the joyful presence of God's glory. Now these two deaths are the stipends or allowance of sin: and the least sin which a man committeth, doth deserve these two punishments. For in every sin the infinite justice of god is violated: for which cause there must needs be inflicted an infinite punishment, that there may be a proportion between the punishment and the offence. And therefore that distinction of sin which papists make namely, that some are in themselves venial, and some mortal is false, & hereby confuted: otherwise in respect of men sins are either venial or mortal. Venial to the elect, whose sins are pardonable in Christ: but to the reprobate all sins are mortal. Nevertheless we hold not all sins equal, but that they are greater or less according to the diversity of objects and other circumstances. Thus much of sin in general: now we come to the parts of it. The first sin of all that ever was in man, is the sin of Adam, which was his disobedience in eating the forbidden fruit. Rom. 5.5. In handling whereof sundry points are to be opened, but let us begin with the causes thereof. The outward efficient cause was the devil. And though he be not named by Moses in the history of the fall, yet that is not to trouble us: for we must not conceive otherwise of the serpent, then of the instrument and mouth of the devil. For it is not likely that it being a bruit creature should be able to reason and determine of good and evil, of truth and falsehood. Now in this temptation the devil shows his malice and his fraud. His malice, in that, whereas he can not overturn god himself, yet he labours to disturb the order which he hath set down in the creation, & especially the image of god in the most excellent creatures on earth, that they may be in the same miserable condition with himself. His fraud, first in that he begins his temptation with the woman being the weaker person, and not with the man, which course he still continues: as may appear by this, that a Exod. 22.18. a witch named in the feminine gender, Mechash shepha. more women are entangled with witchcraft and sorcery than men. Secondly he shows his fraud, in that he proceeds very slily and entangles Eve by certain steps and degrees. For first by moving a question he draws her to listen to him, and to reason with him of god's commandment. Secondly, he brings her to look upon the tree and wishly to view the beauty of the fruit. Thirdly he makes her to doubt of the absolute truth of god's word and promise, and to believe his contrary lies. Fourthly, having blinded her mind with his false persuasions, she desires and lusts after the forbidden fruit and thereupon takes it, eats it, & gives it to her husband. The inward cause, was the will of our first parents, even in the testimony of their own consciences, as Solomon saith, This have I found that God made man righteous, Eccles. 7.31. but they have found many inventions. But it may be objected that if Adam were created good, he could not be the cause of his own fall, because a good tree can not bring forth evil fruit. Answer. Freedom of will is four fold: 1. freedom to evil alone: this is only in wicked men and angels, and is indeed a bondage: the second is freedom to good alone, and that is in God and the good angels: the third is freedom to good in part, joined with some want of liberty by reason of sin: and this is in the regenerate in this life: the fourth is freedom either to good or to evil indifferently. And this was in Adam before his fall, who though he had no inclination to sin, but only to that which was acceptable to God: yet was he not bound by any necessity, but had his liberty freely to choose or refuse either good or evil. And this is evident by the very form of God's commandment in which he forbids Adam to eat the forbidden fruit: and thereby shows that he being created righteous and not prone to sin, had power to keep or not to keep the commandment: though since the fall both he and we after him can not but sin. Wherefore Adam being alured by Satan, of his own free accord changed himself and fell from God. Now then, as the good tree changed from good to evil brings forth evil fruit: so Adam by his own inward and free motion changing from good to evil brings forth evil. As for God, he is not to be reputed as an author or cause any way of this sin. For he created Adam and Eve righteous, endued them with righteous wills: and he told them what he would exact at their hands and what they could perform: yea he added threatenings, that with the fear of danger he might terrify them from sin. Some may say, whereas God foresaw that Adam would abuse the liberty of his will, why would he not prevent it. Answer. There is a double grace, the one to be able to will and do that which is good, the other to be able to persevere in wvilling and doing the same. Now God gave the first to Adam, and not the second. And he is not to be blamed of us, though he confirmed him not with new grace, for he is debtor to no man to give him so much as the least grace; whereas he had already given a plentiful measure thereof to him. And God did hold back to confer any further grace upon just cause. I. It was his pleasure that this fact should be an occasion or way to exercise his mercy in the saving of the elect, and his justice in the deserved condemnation of impenitent sinners. And unless Adam had fallen for himself & others; there should have been found no misery in men, on whom God might take pity in his son, nor wickedness which he might condemn; and therefore neither manifestation of justice, nor mercy. II. Again, it was the will of God in part to forsake Adam, to make manifest the weakness of the most excellent creatures, without the special and continual assistance of God. III. There is a double liberty of will, one is to will good or evil: this belongs to the creature in this world, and therefore Adam received it. The other, is to will good alone. This he wanted, because it is reserved to the life to come. And though he knew no cause of this dealing of God, yet is it one step to the fear of God for us to hold that good and righteous which he appointeth or willeth: and not to square the works and judgements of God by our crooked reason. And yet to come to reason itself. Who can here complain of God? Can the devil? but God did not cause him to tempt or deceive our first parents. Can Adam and Eve? but they fell freely without any motion or instigation from God, and their own consciences accused them for it. Can the posterity of Adam? but the elect receive more in Christ then they lost in Adam: and the reprobate, overwhelmed with the burden of their own sins and thereupon receiving nothing but due and deserved damnation can not find fault. But some may further reply and say, he that foreseeth an evil and doth not prevent it, is a cause of it: but God did foresee the fall of man, and did not prevent it. Answer. The rule is generally true in man, that the foreseer of an evil not preventing it, is in some sort a doer of it▪ for it is the sentence of the law of God, to which man was bound from the first creation. But God is above all his laws, and not bound to them: he is an absolute lord and lawgiver; and therefore his actions are not within the compass of laws, as men's are. Whereupon it follows, that though he did foresee man's defection, yet is he free from all blame in not preventing of it. For with him there be good causes of permitting evil. And though God be no cause of man's fall, yet must we not imagine that it came to pass by chance or fortune, whereas the least things that are come to pass with God's providence; neither was it by any bare permission without his decree and will: for that is to make an idle providence: neither did it happen against the will of God, he utterly nilling it: for than it could not have been unless we deny God to be omnipotent. It remains therefore that this fall did so proceed of the voluntary creation of Adam, August. Enchir. ad Laur. c. 99 as that God did in part ordain and will it, not as it was a sin against his commandment, but as it was further in the counsel of God a way to execute his justice and mercy. Against this which I say, divers things are objected. First, that if Adam did that which God in any respect willed, than he did not sin at all. Answ. He that willeth and doth that which God willeth for all that sins; unless he will it in the same manner with God and for the same end. Now in the permitting of this fact, God intended the manifesting of his glory: but our first parents intending no such thing, sought not only to be like but also to be equal with god. Secondly, it is alleged that Adam could not but fall necessarily if God did decree it. Answ. Adam's fall that came not to pass without God's decree, and therefore in that respect was necessary; was nevertheless in respect of Adam's free-will contingent and not necessary: Gods decree not taking away the will but only ordering it. Lastly, it is alleged that Gods will is the cause of Adam's will, and adam's will the cause of his fall, and that therefore Gods will shall be the cause of the fall. Answer. It must be granted that Gods will is a moving cause of the wills of evil men; yet mark how: not as they are evil wills simply, but as they are wills: and therefore when God inclines the evil will of his creature to his good purpose, he is nothing at all entangled with the defect or evil of his will. Touching the time of the fall, the received opinion in former ages hath been that our first parents fell the same day in which they were created, and therefore Augustine writes that they stood but six hours. And though we can not determine of the certain time, yet in all likelihood was it very short. For Moses presently after that he had set down the creation of man, without the interposition of any thing else, comes immediately to the fall. And considering the nature of the devil is without ceasing to show his malice, no doubt he took the first occasion that possibly might be had to bring man to the same damnation with himself. And our Saviour Christ saith, that the devil was a manslayer from the beginning, joh. 8. namely from the beginning nor of the creation of the world, or of time, but of man. And Eve saith, we shall eat of the fruit of the trees▪ of the garden, it may be, Gen. 3.2. insinuating that as yet she had not eaten when the devil tempted her. Touching the greatness of man's fall, some have made a small matter of it, because it was the eating of an apple or some such fruit. But we must not measure the greatness or the smallness of a sin by the object or matter whereabout it is occupied, but by the commandment of God, and by the disobedience or offence of his infinite majesty. And that this fact of Adam and Eve was no small fault, but a notorious crime and Apostasy in which they withdraw themselves from under the power of God, nay reject and deny him, will appear if we take a view of all the particular sins that be contained in it. The first is unbelief, in that they doubted and distrusted of the truth of God's word which he spoke to them. The second is contempt of God, in that they believed the lies of the devil rather than him. For when God saith, In the day that ye shall eat thereof, ye shall die the death, Gen. 3.4. it is as nothing with Eve: but when the devil comes and saith, Ye shall not die at all▪ that she takes fast hold on. The third is pride and ambition. For they did eat the forbidden fruit that they might be as gods, Gen. 3.5. namely as the father, the son, the holy Ghost. The fourth is unthankfulness. God had made them excellent creatures in his own image: that is nothing with them to be like unto him, unless they may be equal unto him. The fifth is curiosity, whereby they affected greater wisdom than God had given them in the creation, and a greater measure of knowledge than God had revealed to them. The sixth is reproachful blasphemy, in that they subscribe to the sayings of the devil, in which he charged God with lying and envy. The seventh is murder. For by this means they bereave themselves and their posterity of the fellowship and graces of God's spirit, and bring upon their own heads the eternal wrath of God. The eight is discontentation, in that they sought for an higher condition then that was, in which God had placed them. In a word, in this one single fact is comprised the breach of the whole law of God. And we should often think upon this, that we may learn to wonder at the just judgements of God in punishing this fall, and his unspeakable goodness in receiving men to mercy after the same. And here we must not omit to remember the largeness of Adam's fall. Sins are either personal, or general. Personal are such, as are peculiar to one or some few persons and make them alone guilty. General, that is common to all men: and such is Adam's fall. It is a sin not only of the person of one man but of the whole nature of man. And Adam must be considered not as a private man, but as a root or head bearing in it all mankind: or as a public person representing all his posterity, and therefore when he sinned, all his posterity sinned with him; as in a Parliament whatsoever is done by the burgess for the shire, is done by every person in the shire. As Paul saith, By one man sin entered into the world, Rom. 5. 1●. and so death went overall for as much as all have sinned. And here lies the difference between Adam's fall and the sins of men, as cain's murder, which makes not the posterity of Cain guilty, because he was never appointed by God to be the root of his posterity, as Adam was: and therefore his sin is personal, whereas adam's is not. Yet this which I say, must not be understood of all the sins of Adam, but only of the first. From the fall of Adam, springeth original sin, not only as a fruit thereof, but also as a just punishment of it. And after the foresaid fall, it is in Adam and his posterity, as the mother and root of all other sin: yet with this distinction, that actual sin was first in Adam, and then came original, but in us first is original sin, and then after follows actual. Original sin is termed diversly in Scriptures, as the flesh, the old man, because it is in us before grace: Hebr. 12.1. Rom. 7.13. concupiscence, sin that is ready to compass us about, the sinning sin: and it is commonly termed original, because it hath been in man's nature ever since the fall, and because it is in every man at the very instant of his conception and birth, as David plainly saith, Behold, I was borne in iniquity, and in sin hath my mother conceived me: Psal. 51.5. not meaning properly his parent's sin (for he was borne in lawful marriage) but his own hereditary sin, whereof he was guilty even in his mother's womb. But let us search the nature of it. Considering it hath place in man, it must be either the substance of body or soul or the faculties of the substance, or the corruption of the faculties. Now it cannot be the substance of man corrupted: for then our Saviour Christ in taking our nature upon him, should also take upon him our sins, and by that means should as well have need of a redeemer as other men: and again, the souls of men should not be immortal. Neither is it any one or all the faculties of man. For every one of them as namely the understanding, will, affections, and all other powers of body or soul were in man from the first creation, whereas sin was not before the fall. Wherefore it remains that original sin is nothing else but a disorder or evil disposition in all the faculties & inclinations of man, whereby they are all carried inordinately against the law. The subject or place of this sin, is not any part of man, but the whole body and soul. For first of all, the natural appetite to meat and drink, and the power of nourishing is greatly corrupted as appears by diseases, aches, surfeits, but specially by the abuse of meat and drink. Secondly, the outward senses are as corrupt, Psal. 119. 1. joh. 2.16. and that made David to pray that God would turn his eyes from beholding of vanity: and Saint john to say, whatsoever is in the world is the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eye, and the pride of life. Thirdly, touching the understanding, Gen. 6.5. and 8.21. 2. Cor. 3.5. the spirit of God saith, that the frame of the heart of man is only evil continually: so as we are not able of ourselves to think a good thought. And therefore withal, the will of man and his affections are answerably corrupt; and hereupon the doctrine of Christ is, that we must renounce our own wills. Lastly, all man's strength in good things is nothing out of Christ. The propagation of this sin, is the deriving of it from Adam to all his posterity, whereby it runneth as a leprosy over all mankind. But in what manner this propagation is made, it is hard to define. The common opinion of Divines is, that it may be done two ways. The first is this. God when he created Adam in the beginning, set down this appointment and order touching the estate of man, that whatsoever Adam received of God, he should receive it not only for himself, but for his posterity, and whatsoever grace of God he lost, he should lose not only to himself, but to all his posterity. And hereupon Adam when he sinned, he did deprive first of all himself, and then secondly all his posterity of the image of God; because all mankind was in his loins when he sinned. Now then upon the former appointment, when the souls of men are created and placed in the body, God forsakes them, not in respect of the substance of the soul or the faculties, but only in respect of his own image, whereof the souls are deprived; after which follows the defect or want of righteousness, which is original sin. And God in depriving man of that which Adam lost, is not therefore to be thought to be the author or maintainer of sin, but a just judge. For this deprivation of the image of God, so farfoorth as it is inflicted by him upon mankind, it must be conceived as a deserved punishment for the sin of Adam and all men in him which they pulled upon themselves. The second way is, Rom. 5.12. that the corruption of nature is derived from the parents in generation by the body; for as sweet oil poured into a fusty vessel, looseth his pureness and is infected by the vessel: so the soul created good, and put into the corrupt body, receives contagion thence. And this conjunction of the pure soul with the corrupt body, is not against the goodness of God; because it is a just punishment of the sin of all men in Adam. It may be this which hath been said will not satisfy the minds of all. yet if any will be curious to search further into this point, let them know that there is another matter which more concerns them to look unto. When a man's house is on fire, there is no time then to inquire how and which way and whence the fire came, but our duty is with all speed and expedition to use all good means to stay it. And so considering that our whole natures are really infected and poisoned with the loathesome contagion of original sin, which is a weight sufficient to press down the soul to the gulf of hell, it stands us in hand a thousand fold more to the use means whereby it may be taken away, then to dispute how it came. Some may allege against the propagation of sin, that holy parents beget holy children, which are void of original sin, because it stands not with reason, that parents should convey that to their children which they themselves want, namely the guilt and the punishment and the fault of sin in part. Answer. I. Men are not in this life perfectly holy. For sanctification is but in part, and therefore they cannot possibly beget children pure from all sin. Secondly, parents beget children as they are men, and not as they are holy men; and by generation they derive unto their children nature with the corruption thereof, and not grace which is above nature. Take any corn, yea the finest wheat that ever was, winnow it as clean as possibly may be: afterward sow it, weed it also when it is sown, and reap it in due time, and carry it to the barn; when it is threshed, you shall find as much chaff in it as ever was before: and why? because God hath set this order in the creation that it shall spring and grow with the stalk, ear, blade, and all: so likewise though the parents be never so holy, the children as they come of them are conceived and borne wholly corrupt, because God took this order in the creation, that whatsoever evil Adam procured, he should bring it not only on himself, but upon all his posterity: by virtue of which decree, the propagation of sin is continued without any interruption, though parents themselves be borne anew by the spirit of God. And here we must not omit to speak of the quantity or greatness of original sin, for the opening whereof we must consider three points. The first, that original sin is not divers, but one and the same in kind in every man, as the general and common nature of man is one and the same in all men. The second, that this sin is not in some men more, in some men less, but in every man equally, as all men do equally from Adam participate the nature of man, and are equally the children of wrath. Some, it may be, will say, that this can not be true, because some men are of better natures than others are: some of disposition cruel and severe, some again gentle and mild; some very licentious and disordered, some very civil. Answer. The differences that be in men that want the fear of God, arise not of this that they have more or less original corruption; but of the restraint and limitation of man's corruption. For in some God bridleth sin more than in others, and in them is found civility: and again in some less, and in such the rebellion of nature breaks forth unto all misdemeanour. And indeed if God should not keep the untoward dispositions of men within compass, otherwhiles more, otherwhiles less, as it shall seem good unto his majesty: impiety, cruelty, injustice, and all manner of sins would break out into such a measure that there should be no quiet living for men in the world, and no place for God's Church. And thus it is manifest that although all men be not equal in the practice of wickedness, yet they may be equal in the corruption of nature itself. The third point is, that Original sin is so huge and large every way, that it may truly be termed the root or seed not of some few sins, but of all sins whatsoever, even of the very sin against the holy Ghost. We must not imagine it to be an inclination or prones to one or two faults; but a prones to all and every sin that is practised in the world; and that in all persons young and old, high and low, male and female. It is a most horrible villainy for a man to kill his father, or his mother, or his child: yet some there be that do so: at the hearing whereof we use to wonder, and to testify our dislike by saying, that the doers thereof were wicked & devilish persons, and it is truly said. Nevertheless we must understand that although we abstain from such heinous practices, yet the very root of such sins, that is, a disposition unto them, is found in us also. julian the Apostata both living and dying blasphemed Christ. Herod and Pontius Pilate & the wicked jews crucified him, and judas betrayed him. Men use to say that if Christ were now alive, they would not do so for all the world. But let us better consider of the matter. The same natural corruption of heart that was in them, is also in us, we being the children of Adam as well as they: and by the force of this corruption, if Christ were now living on earth, thou wouldst, if like occasion were offered, either do as judas did in betraying him, or as Pilate did, deliver him to be crucified, or as the soldiers, thrust him through with their spears, or as julian, pierce him with all manner of blasphemies, if God withhild his graces from thee, and leave thee to thyself. In a word, let men conceive in mind the most notorious trespass that can be, though they do it not, nor intent to do it, nor never do it: yet the matter, beginning, and seed thereof is in themselves. This made jeremy say, The heart of man is deceitful and wicked above all things, who can know it? jer. 17.9. It is like an huge sea the banks whereof cannot be seen, nor the bottom searched. In common experience we see it come to pass, that men protestants to day, to morrow papists▪ of Christians, heretics; now friends, but presently after foes; this day honest and civil men, the next day cruel murderers. Now what is the cause of this difference; surely the hidden corruption of the heart, that will thrust a man forward to any sin when occasion is offered. This point must be remembered and often thought upon. From original sin springeth actual, which is nothing else but the fruit of the corrupt heart, either in thought, word, or deed. Thus much touching man's fall into sin by God's just permission: Now follows the good use which we must make thereof. First by this we learn to acknowledge & bewail our own frailty. For Adam in his innocency being created perfectly righteous, when he was once tempted by the devil, fell away from God: what shall we do then in the like case which are by nature sold under sin, & in ourselves a thousand times weaker than Adam was? Many men there be that mingle themselves with all companies, tell them of the danger thereof, they will reply that they have such strong faith that no bad company can hurt them. But, alas, silly people, Satan bewitcheth them, and makes them to believe falsehood to be truth: they know not their miserable estate. If Adam, saith Bernard, had a downfall in Paradise, what shall we do that are cast forth upon the dunghill? Let us therefore often come to a serious consideration of our own weakness, and follow withal the practice of David, who being privy to himself touching his own corruption, prayeth to God on this manner, Knit my heart to thee, Psal. 86.11. O Lord, that I may fear thy name. Secondly, we learn hereby absolutely to submit ourselves to the authority of God, and simply to resolve ourselves what soever he command's is right and just, though the reason of it be not known to us. For Eve condescended to listen to the speech of the serpent, and without any calling she reasoned with it of a most v●●ightie matter, and that in the absence of Adam her head & husband, namely of the truth and glory of God: & hereby was brought to doubt of God's word, & so overturned. Thirdly, if all men by Adam's fall be shut up under damnation, there is no cause why any of us should stand upon his his birth, riches, wisdom, learning, or any other such gifts of God: there is nothing in us that is more able to cover our vileness and nakedness, than fig-tree leaves were able to cover the offence of Adam from God's eyes. We stand under the wrath of God by nature, and cannot attain to everlasting life of ourselves. Wherhfore it doth stand every one of us in hand to abase ourselves under the hand of God, in that we are become by our sins the very basest of all the creatures upon earth, yea utterly to despair in respect of ourselves, and with bleeding hearts to bewail our own cases. There is no danger in this: it is the very way to grace: none can be a sound member of Christ till his conscience condemn him, and make him quite on't of heart in respect of himself. And the want of this is the cause why so few perceive any sweetness or comfort in the Gospel: and why it is so little loved and embraced now adays. Lastly, if all mankind be shut up under unbelief, the duty of every man is, to labour in using all good means whereby we may be delivered from this bondage, and to pray to God with David, Create in me a clean heart, O God, and renew a right spirit within me. And cry out with Paul, O wretched man that I am, Psal. 51.10. Rom. 7.24. who shall deliver me from this body of death! And we must never be at rest till we have some assurance in conscience that in Christ we have freedom from this bondage, and can with the Colossians give thanks that we are delivered from the power of darkness, Coloss. 1.13. and translated into the kingdom of Christ. This should be the affection of every man, because the spiritual thraldom under sin is of all miseries most loathsome and burdensome. And in this respect the day of death should be unto us most welcome, because it doth unloose us from this miserable estate, in which we do almost nothing but displease God. For this is the greatest grief that can be to the children of God, by their sins to offend their merciful father. And as for all those which feel not the weight of their natural guiltiness and corruptions, but lie slumbering in the security of their hearts, they are therefore the more miserable, in that being plunged in the gulf of all misery, yet they feel no misery. Thus much of the permission of the fall of man: Now we come to the Covenant of grace. Which is nothing else but a compact made between God and man touching reconciliation and life everlasting by Christ. This covenant was first of all revealed and delivered to our first parents in the garden of Eden, immediately after their fall by God himself, in these words, The seed of the woman shall bruise the serpent's head: Gen. 3.15. and afterward it was continued and renewed with a part of Adam's posterity, as with Abraham, Isaac, jacob, David, etc. but it was most fully revealed and accomplished at the coming of Christ. In the Covenant I will consider two things, the parties reconciled between whom the covenant is made, & the foundation thereof. The parties are God and man. God is the principal, & he promiseth righteousness and life eternal in Christ: Man again binds himself by God's grace to believe & to rest upon the promise. Here it may be demanded why man is more in the covenant than angels. Answ. The will of God in this point, is not revealed unless it be because angels fell of themselves, not moved by any other: but man did fall by them. Again it may be asked, whether all mankind were ever in the covenant or no? Ans. We cannot say that all & every man hath been & now is in the covenant, but only that little part of mankind which in all ages hath been in the Church of God; & hath by faith embraced the covenant. as Paul plainly avoucheth, The scripture (saith he) hath concluded all under sin, Gal. 3.20. that the promise of the faith of jesus Christ should be given [not unto all men] but to them that believe. Without faith no man can please God: Heb. 11.6. and therefore God makes no covenant of reconciliation without faith. Again since the beginning of the world there hath been always a distinction between man & man. This appears in the very tenor of the words of the covenant made with our first parents, where God saith he will put difference between the seed of the woman & the seed of the serpent: meaning by the seed of the woman, Christ with all the elect whom the father hath given unto him, who shall bruise the serpent's head, and tread Satan under their feet. Rom. 16.20 And by the seed of the serpent he meaneth wicked men that live and die in their sins, as Saint john saith, he that committeth sin is of the devil. 1. joh. 3.8. And according to this distinction in times following was Abel received into the covenant, and Cain rejected: Gen. 6.3. some were the sons of God in the days of Noah, some the sons of men: In Abraham's family, Ishmael is cast out, Gen. 17.21. and the covenant established in Isaac: jacob is loved, Esau is hated. And this distinction in the families of Abraham, Isaac, and jacob, Paul approveth, Rom. 9 when he maketh some to be the children of the flesh, and some other the children of the promise. And again, the jews a people of God in the covenant, the Gentiles no people. For Paul makes it a privilege of the jews to have the adoption, and covenants, & the service of God, & the promises belonging unto them: Rom. 9.3, 4. where as he saith of the Ephesians that they were alients from the commonwealth of Israel, and were strangers from the covenants of promise, & had no hope, & were without Christ and without God in the world. Eph. 2 12. And the same may be said of the whole body of the Gentiles excepting here & there a man, who were converted and became Proselytes. And this is manifest in that they wanted the word & the sacraments, and teachers. And this saying of the Prophet Ose, I will call them my people which were not my people: Rom. 9.24. and her beloved which was not beloved, is alleged by Paul to prove the calling of the Gentiles. Some do allege to the contrary, that when the covenant was made with our first parents, it was also in them made with all mankind, not one man excepted: & that the distinction & difference between man and man ariseth of their unbelief & contempt of the covenant afterward. Answ. Indeed in the estate of innocency Adam by creation received grace for himself & his posterity: & in his fall he transgressed not only for himself but for all his posterity: but in receiving of the covenant of grace it can not be proved that he received it for himself & for all mankind: nay the distinction between the seed of the woman & the seed of the serpent, mentioned in the very first giving of the covenant, shows the contrary: for if after the fall all & every part of mankind were received into the covenant, than all men without restraint should be the seed of the woman, bruising the serpent's head, and the serpent should have no seed at all. And again, all men cannot be charged with unbelief and contempt in respect of the covenant, but only such persons as have known it, or at the least heard of it. And therefore sundry heads of the nations may be charged with unbelief, as Cain, Cham, japhet, Ammon, Moab, Ishmael, Esau, Madian; for they being near to the fathers heard the promises concerning Christ, offered sacrifices, and observed external rites of the Church, but afterward fell away from the sincere worship of the true God to idolatry and all manner of wickedness, and became enemies of God & his people. But we plainly deny, that there was or could be the like unbelief and contempt of God's grace in their posterity, which for the most part never so much as heard of any covenant; their ancestors endeavouring always to bury and extinguish the memory of that which they hated. It is objected again, that the covenant was made with Abraham and with all mankind after him, Because (saith the Lord) thou hast obeyed my voice, in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed. Gen. 18.22. Answ. Paul gives a double answer, first that the place must be understood of many nations: secondly that it must be understood not of all nations in all ages, but of all nations of the last age of the world. For, saith he, the scripture foreseeing that God would justify the gentiles through faith preached before the Gospel unto Abraham, Gal. 3.8. saying, in thee shall all the nations be blessed. Well, to conclude this point, in the making of the covenant there must be a mutual consent of the parties on both sides, and beside the promise on God's part, there must be also a restipulation on man's part; otherwise the covenant is not made. Now then, it must needs follow that all unbelievers contemning grace offered in Christ are out of the covenant, as also such as never heard of it; for where there is no knowledge, there is no consent: and before the coming of Christ the greatest part of the world never knew the Messiah, nor heard of the covenant; as Paul saith to the learned Athenians, the time of this ignorance God regarded not: but now he admonisheth all men every where to repent. Act. 17.30. The foundation and groundwork of the Covenant is Christ jesus the Mediator, in whom all the promises of God are yea and a men, & therefore he is called the angel of the covenant, Malac. 3.8. Isa. 49.8. and the covenant of the people to be made with all nations in the last age. Now than that we may proceed at large to open the substance of the covenant, we are in the next place to come to that part of the Creed which concerns the second person in trinity, set down in these words, And in jesus Christ his only Son, etc. from which words to the very end of the Creed, such points only are laid down as do notably unfold the benefits & the matter of the covenant. Now the second person is described to us by three things, 1. his titles, 2. his incarnation, 3. his twofold estate. his titles are in number four. I. jesus. II. Christ. III. his only son. iv our Lord. His incarnation & his twofold estate are set down afterward. To come to his titles, the first is Jesus, to which if we add the clause I believe, on this manner, I believe in jesus, etc. the article which we now have in hand will appear to be most excellent; because it hath most notable promises annexed to it. When Peter confessed Christ to be the son of the living God, he answered, upon this rock will I build my Church, Mat. 16.16. and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And again, He that confesseth that Christ is the son of God, God dwelleth in him, 1. joh. 4.15. & he in God. And again, Act. 10.44. To him give all the Prophet's witness that through his name all that believe in him shall receive remission of sins. Paul saith, Act. 16.31. Believe in the Lord jesus and thou shalt be saved and all thy household. Thus than the confession in which we acknowledge that we believe in jesus Christ, hath a promise of fellowship with God & of life everlasting. But it may be objected, that every spirit (as S. john saith) which confesseth that jesus Christ is come in the flesh is of God. 1. joh. 4.2. Now the devil & all his angels & unbelievers do thus much: therefore why may not they also have the benefit of this confession. Ans. By spirit in that place is neither meant angels nor men, nor any creature, but the doctrine which teacheth that jesus Christ is come in the flesh; & it is of God, because it is holy & divine & hath God to be the author of it. As for the devil & his angels they can indeed confess that Christ the son of God was made man, and a wicked man may teach the same; but unto the confession whereunto is annexed a promise of eternal life, is required true faith, whereby we do not only know and acknowledge this or that to be true in Christ, but also rest upon him: which neither Satan nor wicked men can do. And therefore by this confession the Church of God is distinguished from all other companies of men in the world which believe not as paynims, heretics, Atheists, Turks, jews, and all other infidels. This name jesus, was given to the son of God by the Father, Matt. 1.21. Luk. 1.31. and brought from heaven by an angel unto joseph and Marie: and on the day when he was to be circumcised, as the manner was, this name was given unto him by his parents, as they were commanded from the Lord by the angel Gabriel. And therefore the name was not given by chance, or by the alone will of the parents, but by the most wise appointment of God himself. The name in Hebrew is jehoschua, and it is changed by the Grecians into jesus which signifieth a Saviour. And it may be called the proper name of Christ, signifying his office and both his natures, because he is both a perfect and absolute Saviour, as also the alone Saviour of man, because the work of salvation is wholly and only wrought by him, and no part thereof is reserved to any creature in heaven or in earth. As Peter saith, For among men there is no other name given under heaven whereby we may be saved but by the name of jesus. Act. 4.12. And the author to the Hebrues saith, That he is able perfectly to save them that come unto God by him, Heb. 7.12. seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them. If any shall object, that the promises of salvation are made to them which keep the commandments: the answer is, that the law of God doth exact most absolute and perfect obedience, which can be found in no man but in Christ, who never sinned: and therefore it is not given unto us now that we might by ourselves fulfil it, and work out our own salvation, but that being condemned by it, we might wholly depend on Christ for eternal life. If any further allege, 2. Tim. 4.8. that such as walk according to the commandments of God, though their obedience be imperfect, yet they have the promises of this life and of the life to come. The answer is, that they have so indeed, yet not for their works, but according to their works which are the fruits of their faith, whereby they are joined to Christ, for whose merits only they stand righteous and are acceptable before god; And whereas it is said by Peter, that baptism saveth us. 1. Pet. 3.21. his meaning is not to signify that there is any virtue in the water to wash away our sins and to sanctify us, but that it serves visibly to represent and confirm unto us the inward washing of our souls by the blood of Christ. It may further be said, that others have been saviours beside Christ as josuah the son of Nun, who for that cause is called by the same name with Christ. Answ. Heb. 4.8. josua after the death of Moses was appointed by God to be a guide to the children of Israel which might defend them from their enemies and bring them to the land of Canaan: but this deliverance was only temporal, and that only of one people. Now the son of God is called jesus, not because he delivereth the people of the jews only, or because he saveth the bodies of men only, but because he saveth both body and soul, not only of the jews but also of the gentiles, from hell, death, and damnation. And whereas Prophets and ministers of the word are called Saviour's; it is because they are the instruments of God to publish the doctrine of salvation which is powerful in men's hearts, Obed. v. 21. 1. Tim. 4. 1●. not by any virtue of theirs, but only by the operation of the spirit of Christ. Lastly, it may be objected that the father and the holy ghost are saviours, and therefore not only the Son. Answer. True it is, that in the work of salvation all the three persons must be joined together, & in no wise severed: the Father saveth, the Son saveth, the holy ghost saveth: yet must we distinguish them in the manner of saving: the Father saveth by the Son; the Son saveth by paying the ransom and price of our salvation; the holy ghost saveth by a particular applying of the ransom unto men. Now therefore whereas the son pays the price of our redemption and not the father or the holy ghost, therefore in this special respect he is called in Scriptures and entitled by the name of jesus and none but he. By this which hath been said, the Papists are faulty two ways. First, that they give too much to the very name of jesus: for they writ in plain terms, that the bare name itself being used hath great power & doth drive away devils, Thyrraeus. de daemon. thes. 567.569. though the parties that use it be void of good affection: whereas indeed it hath no more virtue than other titles of God or Christ. Secondly, they are faulty that they give too little to the thing signified. For Christ must either be our alone and whole Saviour or no Saviour. Now they make him but half a Saviour, & they join others with him as partners in the work of salvation, when they teach, that with Christ's merits must be joined our works of grace in the matter of justification, and with Christ's satisfaction for the wrath of God, our satisfaction for the temporal punishment; and when they add to Christ's intercession the intercession and patronage of saints, especially of the virgin Mary, whom they call the queen of heaven, the mother of mercy, withal requesting her, that by the authority of a mother she would command her son. Officium B. Mariae reform. à Pio 5. Pontif. If this doctrine of theirs may stand, Christ can not be the only Saviour of mankind, but every man in part shallbe jesus to himself. But let us go on yet further to search the special reason of the name, which is notably set down by the Angel. Thou shalt (saith he) call his name jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins. Mat. 1.21. In which words we may consider 3. points. I. Whom the son of God shall save. II. By what? III. From what? For the first, he shall save his people, that is, the elect of jews & Gentiles: and therefore he is called the Saviour of his body. Eph. 5.23. We must not here imagine that Christ is a Saviour of all and every man. For if that were true, than Christ should make satisfaction to God's justice for all and every man's sins: and gods justice being fully satisfied he could not in justice condemn any man: nay, all men should be blessed because satisfaction for sin & the pardon of sin depend one upon another inseparably. Again, if Christ be an effectual Saviour of all and every particular man, why is any man condemned? It will be said, because they will not believe; belike than man's will must over rule Gods will, Actus primae causae ordinat actum secundae causae. whereas the common rule of divines is, that the first cause ordereth the second. The means of salvation by Christ are two: his merit, and his efficacy. His merit, in that by his obedience to the law and by his passion, he made a satisfaction for our sins, freed us from death, and reconciled us unto God. Some may object, that the obedience and the passion of Christ being long ago ended, can not be able to save us now: because that which he did 1500. years ago may seem to be vanished and come to nothing at this day. Answer. If Christ's obedience be considered as an action, & his passion as a bare suffering, they are both ended long ago: yet the value and price of them before God is everlasting: as in Adam's fall the action of eating the forbidden fruit is ended, but the guilt of his transgression goes overall mankind, and continues still even to this hour, and shall do to the end of the world in those which shall be borne hereafter. The efficacy of Christ is, in that he gives his spirit to mortify the corruption of our natures, that we may die unto sin and live to righteousness, and have true comfort in terrors of conscience and in the pangs of death. The evils from which we are saved are our own sins, in that Christ freeth us from the guilt and the punishment and fault of them all, when we believe. Thus much for the meaning of this title jesus. Now follow the uses which arise of it. First of all, whereas we are taught to make confession that the son of God is jesus, that is, a Saviour: hence it must needs follow, that we are all lost in ourselves. And indeed before we can truly acknowledge that Christ is our Saviour, this confession must needs go before, that we are in truth, & therewithal do feel ourselves to be miserable sinners under the wrath of God, utterly lost in regard of ourselves: for Christ came to save that which was lost. Mat. 18.11. And when he talked with the woman of Canaan, he checked her & said, he was not sent, but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel. Christ jesus came to pour oil into our wounds: Mat. 15.14. Christ came to set them at liberty which are in prison: and to place them in freedom that are in bondage. Now a man cannot pour oil into a wound, before there be a wound, or before it be opened, and we feel the smart of it. And how can we be set at liberty by Christ, except we feel us in ourselves to be in bondage, under Hell, death, and damnation? When the disciples of Christ were upon the sea in a great tempest, Mat. 8.25. they cried, Master, save us, we perish. So no man can hearty say, I believe jesus Christ to be my Saviour, before he feel, that in himself he is utterly lost and cast away without his help. But after that we perceive ourselves to be in danger & to be overwhelmed in the Sea of the wrath of God, than we cry out with the disciples, Lord jesus save us we perish. Many protestants in these days hold Christ to be their Saviour, but it is only formably from the teeth outward, and no further: for they were never touched with the sense of their spiritual misery that they might say with Daniel, Shame and confusion belongeth unto us: and with the Publican, I am a sinner, Lord be merciful to me. And therefore the conclusion is this, that if we will have Christ to be our Saviour, we must first believe that in ourselves we are utterly lost: and so must that place be understood where Christ saith, he is not sent, but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel, that is, to those which in their own sense and feeling are lost in themselves. Secondly, if Christ be a Saviour, than we must acknowledge him to be so. But how shall we do this? I answer, Thus: A man is taken to be a skilful Physician by this, that many patients come unto him, and seek for help at his hands. And so should it be with Christ. But alas, the case is otherwise. Every man can talk of Christ, but few acknowledge him to be a Saviour, by seeking to him for their salvation, because they judge themselves righteous, and feel not themselves to stand in need of the help of Christ. Nay which is more, if a man be known that can cure strange diseases, men will seek to him by sea and land, and sell both goods and lands to get help at his hands. Even so, if men were persuaded that Christ were a perfect Saviour, and that they were sick and utterly unable to be saved without him, they would never rest nor be quiet but seek unto him for his help, and cry with David, O Lord, say unto my soul that thou art my salvation, Psal. 35.3. The woman that was diseased with an issue of blood, came behind our Saviour Christ, Mat. 9.20. and when she had but touched him, she was healed. In the same manner, if we shall seek to come to Christ, and do but touch his precious body & blood by the hand of faith, the issues and the bleeding wounds of our souls shallbe dried up. When a man that had been sick 38. years was come to the pool of Bethesda, he was feign to lie there uncured; because when the angel troubled the water evermore some stepped before him: but if we will seek to Christ for the salvation of our souls, no man shall prevent us or step before us. joh. 5.7. And if we find ourselves to be so laden with the burden of our sins that we can not come to him, let us then do as the palsy man did: he got 4. men to carry him on their shoulders to the place where Christ was: and when they could not by reason of the press of people enter into the house, they opened the roof and let him down in his bed by cords to Christ that he might be healed. Mark. 2.4. And so let us use the help of such as be godly, that by their instructions and consolations they may as it were put too their shoulders, & by their prayers as with cords bring us to Christ, that we may receive eternal salvation, being otherwise dead in sin and subject to damnation. Lastly, whereas joseph and Mary gave this name not at their own pleasure, but at the appointment of God himself: this ministers a good instruction to all parents touching the naming of their children when they are baptized, that they are with care and deliberation to give convenient names unto them which may put them in mind of duties either to God or men. This is worthy of our observation, for many care not how they name their children, yea it is at this day & ever hath been, that some▪ give such names to them as that at the very rehearsing thereof laughter ensueth. But this ought not to be so; for the name is given unto children at the time of their baptism in the presence of God, of his Church, and angels, even then when they are to be entered into the Church of God and that in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost: therefore though we do not place religion in titles, or names, yet nevertheless a wise and godly choice in this matter is to be had, that the names imposed may be in stead of instructions and admonitions to the parties named: and for this cause in the old testament names were given either by prophetical instinct, or according to the event of things which came to pass about the time of the birth of children, or they were borrowed from the holy ancestors, Luk. 1.59. to put the posterity in mind to follow their steps. And thus much of the duties: Now follow the consolations that God's Church and people reap from this that the son of God is our Saviour. When as all mankind was included under sin & condemnation, than the Lord had mercy upon us and gave unto man the covenant of grace in which he promised that his own son should be our redeemer. This is a great and unspeakable comfort, as may appear in that the angels so greatly rejoiced herein when Christ was borne, Behold, say they, I bring you tidings of great joy that shall be to all the people, that is, that unto you is borne i● the city of David a Saviour which is Christ the Lord. Luk. ●. 10, 12. Now if they rejoice thus exceedingly at Christ's birth, who was not their Saviour, because they stand not in need to be redeemed: then much more ought the Church of God to rejoice herein whom it doth principally concern: and no marvel; for if this saviour had not been, it had been better to have been● a bruit beast or any other creature than a man; for the death of a beast is the end of his woe, but the death of a man without a Saviour is the beginning of endless misery. Satan and his angels are fallen and have no Saviour, but when man was fallen, God of his mercy dealt not so with him, but gave his own son to restore him to better estate, whereas he might as justly have damned all men for the fall of our first parents, as he did the wicked angels for theirs; for God is not bound to any creature; behold then a matter of unspeakable joy: let us therefore receive and embrace Christ our Saviour, fly to him for the pardon of all sins. Now we come to the second title of the Son of God, whereby he is termed Christ: which title is as it were the surname of the second person as some do think: yet according to the opinion of some others it is no name at all, but only a mere appellation, Tertull. contra Praxean. as when in the like case a particular man is called a Duke or a King. It is all one with Messiah in Hebrew wherewith the redeemer was named in the old Testament, Dan 9.24. and both signify anointed. Among the jews before the coming of Christ three estates or orders of men were anointed with oil; First of all kings, as Saul, David, and the rest of the kings of juda. Secondly the priests that served in the tabernacle and temple before the Lord when they were ordained, and as it were, installed into the priesthood, were anointed with oil, as first of all Aaron and his sons, but afterwards the high priests alone. Thirdly prophets were thus anointed, as Elisha. Now this legal anointing was a type and figure of the anointing of Christ: which was not with bodily oil, but by the spirit, and it was more excellent than all other anointings were. For David saith, Psal. 45.7. he was anointed with the oil of gladness above all his fellows, signifying, that neither king, priest, nor prophet, was ever anointed in the same manner as he was. Christ's anointing is according to both his natures; for in what nature he is a Mediator, in the same he is anointed: but according to both his natures jointly he is a mediator: the godhead is no mediator without the manhood, nor the manhood without the godhead: and therefore his anointing extends itself both to his godhead and to his manhood. Christ's anointing hath two parts, both of them figured by the anointing of the jews. The first is his consecration whereby he was set apart to do the office of a Mediator between God and man: and therefore to be a king, a priest, a prophet: a king to gather and withal to govern his Church and people: a priest, to make satisfaction and intercession for the sins of the elect: a prophet, to reveal and teach his people the will of God his father. And though it be true that Christ is set a part to the work of mediation as he is mediator or as he is man: yet as he is God he doth design and set himself apart to the same work. For to design the mediator is a common action of the 3. persons, the father, the son and the holy ghost: and yet considering the father is first in order, and therefore hath the beginning of the action; for this cause he is said especially to design, as when S. john saith, Him hath God the father sealed. joh. 6.27. The second part of Christ's anointing is the pouring out of the fullness of the spirit or grace into the manhood of Christ: Isa. 61.1. and it was particularly figured by the holy oil. For first, that oil had no man but God alone to be the author of it: so the most excellent and unspeakable graces of the manhood of Christ have their beginning from the godhead of Christ. Exod. 30. Again, though the same oil was most precious. yet was it compounded of myrrh, calamus, and Casia, and such like earthy matters: to signify, that the spiritual oil of grace whereof the manhood of Christ was as it were, a vessel or storehouse, did not consist of the essential properties of the godhead, as Eutiches and his followers in these days imagine, but in certain created gifts and qualities placed in his human nature: otherwise we should not have any participation of them. Thirdly, the sweet savour of the holy oil figured, that the riches of all grace with the effect thereof in the obedience of Christ, doth take away the noisome sent of our loathsome sins from the nosthrilles of God, and withal doth make our persons and all our actions acceptable unto him as a sweet perfume, 2. Cor. 2.17. as Paul saith, We are unto God the sweet savour of Christ, etc. And Christ's death is for this cause termed a sacrifice of sweet smelling savour. And we must further understand that these gifts of Christ's manhood are not conferred in a small scantling or measure; for john saith, john. 3.34. God giveth him the spirit not by measure; because the graces which are in Christ are far more both in number and degree, than all men or angels have or shall have: though the good angels and the saints of God in heaven are very excellent creatures stored with graces and gifts of God. For this cause Christ is called the head of man, 1. Cor. 11. because he is every way the most principal and glorious man that ever was. Yet for all this are not the gifts of Christ's manhood infinite any way; because it is finite, being a creature, and therefore not capable of that which is infinite. By Christ's anointing the people of God reap great benefit and comfort, because they are partakers thereof. For this cause the oil where with he was anointed is called the oil of gladness, because the sweet savour of it gladdeth the hearts of all his members, Psal. 45.7. and brings the peace of God which passeth all understanding. Psalm. 133. The holy oil powered upon Aaron's head came down to his beard, and to the very skirts of his garments: and it signified that the spiritual oil of grace was first of all powered upon our head Christ jesus, and from thence consequently derived to all his members, that by that means he might be not only anointed himself, but also our annointer. Now the benefits which we receive by his anointing are two. The first is, that all the elect when they are called to the profession of the gospel of Christ, are in and by him set apart and made spiritual kings, priests, and prophets, as S. john saith, He hath made us kings and priests unto God his Father. And S. Peter out of joel, Apoc. 1.6. I will power (saith the Lord) my spirit upon all flesh, Act. 2.24. and your sons and daughters shall prophesy. The second benefit is, that all the faithful receive the same oil, that is, the same spirit of God in some measure which he received above measure, as S. john saith, The anointing which ye have received of him dwelleth in you and teacheth you all things. 1. joh. 2.27. where by anointing is meant the holy Ghost. Psa. 105.15. And hence it is, that men are called Christians of the name of Christ, that is, anointed with the same oil wherewith Christ was anointed. And the holy oil might not be given to a stranger, to signify, that to have the spirit of Christ, and to be guided by it, is peculiar to them that are Christ's. Exo. 30.33. Now then let us all lay these things to our hearts, and extol the unspeakable goodness of God that hath advanced us to the dignity of kings, priests, prophets, before him, and hath given his spirit unto us to enable us to be so indeed. Now follow the duties which are to be learned hence. And first, whereas all Christians receive anointing from the holy one Christ jesus, 1. joh. 2.20. Dan 9.24. to become prophets in a sort, we must do our endeavours, that the word of God may dwell plentifully in us, joh. 5.39. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and for that cause we must search the scriptures, even as hunters seek for the game, and as men seek for gold even in the mines of the earth. There is nothing that is more unbeseeming a man, then gross ignorance a Christian. Therefore the author of the epistle to the Hebrues reproves them, Heb. 4.12. that whereas for the time they ought to have been teachers, they had need again to be taught the first principles of the word of God. Again, that portion of knowledge which we have received of God is further to be applied to the benefit & good of others: this is that most precious balm that on our parts should never be wanting to the heads of men. And here every man that is set over others must remember within the compass of his calling and charge to instruct those that be under him so far forth as possibly he can. Psal. 141.5. Governors of families must teach their children and servants and their whole household the doctrine of the true religion, that they may know the true God and walk in all his ways in doing righteousness & judgement. If householders would make conscience of this their duty, and in some sort and measure prepare their families against they come to the public congregation, the ministers of the Gospel with greater comfort and far more ease should perform their duty; and see far more fruit of their ministery then now they do. But whereas they neglect their duty, falsely persuading themselves that it doth not belong to them at all to instruct others; it is the cause of ignorance both in towns and families, in masters themselves, in servants and children and all. Lastly, by this we are admonished to take all occasions that possibly can be offered, mutually to edify each other in knowledge, saying among ourselves (as it was foretold of these times) Come, let us go up to the mountain of the Lord to the house of the God of jacob, Isa. 2.3. and he will teach us his ways, and we will walk in his paths: and withal, we should confirm each others, as Christ saith to Peter, when thou art converted confirm thy brethren; and be ready at all times to render an account of our faith and religion even before our enemies when we are justly called so to do. Secondly, because we are set apart in Christ, to become spiritual priests unto God, 1. Pet. 2.5. we must therefore offer spiritual sacrifices acceptable unto him: and they be in number seven. The first is an affiance whereby we rest upon God, as David saith, Offer the sacrifice of righteousness and trust in the Lord. Psal. 4.6. The second is wholly to subject ourselves to the ministery of the gospel, that we may be changed and converted by it, as Paul saith, Rom. 15.16. That he ministered the Gospel to the Gentiles, that the offering up of them might be acceptable, being sanctified by the holy Ghost. The third is, all manner of prayers and supplications made unto God. Let my prayer, saith David, be directed in thy sight as incense, Psal. 141.2. and the lifting up of mine hands as an evening sacrifice. The fourth is praising and thanksgiving unto God. Let us by him offer the sacrifice of praise always to God, that is the fruit of the lips which confess his name. Heb. 13.15. Rev. 5.8. And in the Revelation the golden vials full of odours are the prayers of the saints. The fift is the relief of our poor brethren according to our ability, as Paul saith, I was even filled after that I had received of Epaphroditus that which came from you, Phil. 4.18. Psal. 51.19. an odour that smelleth sweet, a sacrifice pleasant and acceptable to God. The sixth is the denial of ourselves with a contrite and broken heart. The seventh is, to resign ourselves bodies and souls wholly to the service of God: Set yourselves (saith Paul) to God, as they that are alive from the dead: Rom. 6.13. and your members as weapons of righteousness unto God. In which words he alludes to the manner of the old Testament: when a man offered any sacrifice for himself, he brought the beast into the temple or tabernacle and set it before the altar, in token that he did resign it unto God: and so we for our parts must not give our bodies and souls to become the instruments of sin & satan, but we must have them always in readiness, freely presenting them unto him that he may have the whole disposition of them according to his good pleasure, to the honour and glory of his name. Again, in the whole burnt offering all was consumed and turned to smoke, no man having benefit of it, to signify, that we must give ourselves not in part but wholly to the service of God, even to death if need be. If this be so, miserable is the practice of such that give up their bodies and souls to live in licentious wantonness, in the pleasures of their beastly sins, in idleness. For they offer themselves a sacrifice, not to God but to the devil. Thirdly, considering we are anointed to be spiritual kings even in this life, we must walk worthy so great a calling. That this may be so, first of all such as are governors set over others, must rule not according to their wills and pleasures, but in the Lord: withal, doing homage to their head and king Christ jesus himself. Secondly, we must every one of us rule and bear sway even as kings over our own thoughts, wills, affections, overmastering them as much as we can by God's word and spirit: withal, maintaining and proclaiming continual war against our corrupt natures, the devil, and the world. And truly he which can bear rule over his own heart, is a right king indeed: and having received some measure of grace to reign over himself in this life, he shall reign for ever with Christ in the life to come. As for such as are carried away with the swinge of their corruptions, having blindness and ignorance to reign in their minds, rebellion in their wills and affections, looseness in their whole lives, they may carry the form of Christians as long as they will, but indeed they are no spiritual kings but bondmen: the strong man satan keeps as yet the hold of their hearts, & as Lord and king holds up his sceptre there. Lastly, seeing Christ is anointed with the most precious balm that ever was, and that for our sakes, he must be sweet and savoury unto us, and all other things must be as unsavoury dross and dung in regard of him. We must in this case endeavour to say as the spouse of Christ doth: Because of the savour of the good ointments, Cant. 1.2. thy name is an ointment powered out: therefore the virgins love thee. O that we could savour in the fear of God, Isai. 11.3. that we might perceive how all his garments smell of myrrh, aloes, and cassia, coming forth of his ivory palaces unto us. Psal 45.8. And because the holy ointment of Christ is powered forth upon all his members to make them savoury and sweet in the presence of God, let us make conscience of all manner of sin, lest by the poison and stink thereof, we infect not only ourselves, but all the creatures of God which we use, yea heaven and earth itself. It stands not with equity that after we have been embalmed and sweetened by the precious merits of Christ that we should make ourselves as two footed swine, to return to the mire of our old sins. The coupling and combining of these two former titles together, contains the principali question of the whole bible, which is, whether jesus the son of Mary be Christ or no; as S. john saith. These things are written, joh. 2●. 31. that ye might believe that jesus is the Christ the Son of God, and that in believing ye might have life everlasting. This conclusion was denied by the jews, but avouched and confirmed both by Christ and by his Apostles; and their principal argument was framed thus. Act. 18.5. He which hath the true notes of Christ is the Messiah or Christ indeed: but jesus the Son of Mary hath the true notes of Christ: therefore jesus is Christ. The proposition is opened at large in the prophecies of the old testament: the assumption is confirmed in the writings of the new testament: & the principal reasons of the confirmation are couched in the articles which concern the second person. The conclusion follows, & is set down as I have said, in the knitting together of the titles, jesus and Christ. Thus much of the second title: now followeth the third, his only Son: that is, the only son of the first person the father. In this title we must consider 2. things: the first, that he is the son of God: the second, that he is the only Son of God. Touching the first, Christ is called the Son of God, because he was begotten of the father. Now for the opening of this eternal generation, we must consider three points: the thing begotten, the manner of begetting, & the time. For the thing itself, it is Christ; who must be considered 2. ways, as he is a son, & as he is God: As he is a son, he is not of himself, but the son of the father begotten of him: nevertheless as he is God, Non 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 tamen 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. he is of himself neither begotten nor proceeding; for the essence or godhead of the father is of itself without all beginning: but the godhead of the son is one and the same with the godhead of the father: for by what godhead the father is God, by the same and no other the son is God: therefore the son as he is God, he is God of himself without beginning as the Father. Whereupon it follows, that the son is begotten of the father as he is a son, but not as he is God. The manner of this generation is this. The son is begotten of the substance of the father not by any flux, as when water is derived from the head of the spring to the channel: nor by decision as when a thing is cut in pieces: nor by propagation, as when a grift is transplanted into a new stock: but by an unspeakable communication of the whole essence or Godhead from the father to the son; in receiving whereof the son doth no more diminish the majesty or Godhead of the father, than the light of one candle doth the light of the other from which it is taken. Whereupon the Council of Nicene hath said well, that the son is of the Father as light of light not proceeding but begotten. The time of this generation hath neither beginning, middle, or end: and therefore it is eternal before all worlds: and that is a thing to be wondered at, that the father begetting & the son begotten are coeternal, & therefore equal in time. Wisdom in the proverbs (which with one consent of all divines is said to be Christ) affirmeth that she was before the world was created, that is, from eternity: Prov. 8.24. for before the world was made there was nothing but eternity. But it may be alleged to the contrary, that the saying of the father, This day have I begotten thee, is expounded by Paul of the time of Christ's resurrection. Answ. Psal. 2.7. Act. 13.30, 33. We must distinguish between generation itself & the manifestation of it: & of the second must the place be understood, which may be brought to pass at the time of Christ's resurrection in which he was mightily declared to be the son of God, though in the mean season the generation itself be eternal. Rom. 1.4. If any man allege further that the person which begetteth must needs go before the person begotten, the answer is, that there is a double priority; one of order, the other of time: now in the generation of creatures there is priority both of order & time: but in the generation of the second person in trinity there is priority of order alone: the father being first, the son second, without priority of time: because they both in that respect are equal, and neither is before or after other: because the being or subsisting of the persons is not measured by time. Hence it followeth necessarily, that jesus Christ is true God: & the whole tenor of the scriptures confirm it sufficiently. I. he is made equal to God the father, who being in the form of God thought it no robbery to be equal with God: &, Phil. 2.8. joh. 16.15. Num. 14.26, 27. 1. Cor. 10.9. Psal. 102.26. cum joh. 1.3. 1. joh. 5.20. joh. 1.1. & 8.56. All things that the father hath are mine. The children of Israel are said to have tempted jehovah: and Paul saith, that he whom they tempted was Christ. jehova founded the earth, and the same is said of Christ. II. Christ the son of God is by name called God: jesus Christ is very God & life eternal. III. The properties of the godhead are ascribed unto him. He is eternal, because he was then when there was no creature. In the beginning was the word: and, before Abraham was I am. Mat. 18.20. & 26. He is omnipresent, Where two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst amongst them. Lastly he is omnipotent, Whatsoever things the father doth, joh. 5.19. the same doth the son also. FOUR The works of creation and preservation are as well ascribed to the son as to the father. By him the father made the world, and he beareth up all things by his mighty power: and miracles, which are works either above or against the order of nature peculiar to God, were done by Christ. V. Divine worship is given to him: for he is adored, invoted, and believed in, as God the father. To him is given a name, at which every knee doth bow, of things in heaven, and things in earth, Phil, 2.10. and things underneath the earth. As for the reasons which be alleged to the contrary, they are of no moment. I. The word of God can not be God; the son is the word of the father: therefore he is not God. Answ. The word is taken two ways: first for a sounding word standing of letters and syllables uttered either by God or by the creatures: now on this manner Christ is not the word of God. Secondly there is a substantial word, which is of the substance of him whose word it is. And thus Christ is the word of God the father. And he is so termed, I. in respect of the father, for as reason & speech hath his beginning from the mind without any passion in the mind, so hath he beginning from the father. And as the speech is in the mind & the mind in the speech, so the father is in the son, & the son in the father. 2. In respect of all creatures. The father doth all things by the son▪ by whose powerful word the world was made, joh. 1. v. 1. Heb. 1.3. joh. 5.25. 2. Cor. 13.3. joh. 17. is now preserved & shallbe abolished. 3. In respect of the Church. For the father by him speaks unto us both in the outward ministery of the word, and by the inward operation of the spirit: and again we by him speak to the father. II. It may be objected thus, God hath no beginning from any other; Christ hath beginning from the father: therefore he is not God. Answer. Christ must be considered both in regard of his godhead and in regard of his person: in regard of his god head he came not of any but is of himself, as well as the father is: yet in regard of his person he is from the father, who is a beginning to the rest of the persons, Matth. 28. Principium ordi●is & ●rigi●is. both in respect of order (for the scripture saith not; the holy Ghost, the Son, the Father: but the Father, the Son, the holy Ghost) as also in respect of the communication of the Godhead. And whereas it is said that God is of himself, if the name God, be taken for the Godhead itself absolutely considered, it is true: but if it be taken for any particular person in the Godhead, it is false. III. None is greater than God: but the father is greater than Christ, for so he saith, the father is greater than I joh. 14. Ans. Christ there speaks of himself as he was a man abased in the form of a servant: in which respect he is less than the father, who never was incarnate and abased in our nature. And though Christ in respect of his nature assumed be inferior to the father, yet doth it not hinder but that he may be equal to him, as he is the second person in trinity, or as he is God by one and the same Godhead with the father. iv He that is made of God, to be this, or that, is not God: but Christ is made of God, as Paul saith, 1. Cor. 1.30. Christ is made unto us wisdom, righteousness, etc. Answer. Christ is said to be made, not because there was any beginning of his Godhead, or any change or alteration in his person: but because in the eternal counsel of the father, he was set apart before all times to execute the office of a Mediator, and was withal in time called, and as it were consecrated and ordained thereunto in his baptism: he is made therefore in respect of his office, but not in respect of his person, or nature. V God hath no head, Christ hath an head, as Paul saith, God is Christ's head. Answ. God, that is, the father, 1. Cor. 11.3. is head of Christ, not as he is God simply, but as he is God incarnate, or made manifest in the f●esh, and in respect of the office to which he willingly abased himself. VI He which gives up his kingdom is not God, Christ gives up his kingdom. Then, saith Paul, shall be the end, 1. 〈◊〉 .15.24. when he hath delivered up the kingdom to God even the father. Answer. Christ is king two ways, as he is God, and as he is Mediator: as he is God, he reigns eternally with the father and the holy Ghost: but as he is Mediator, in the end of the world when all the company of the elect are gathered, his kingdom shall cease not simply but in respect of the ●●tward manner of administration: for the execution of civil and ecclesiastical functions shall cease. And whereas in the same place, vers. 28. it is said that Christ shallbe subject unto God eternally after the end, it must be understood partly in regard of the assumed manhood, partly in respect of his mystical body the Church most nearly joined unto him in heaven. VII. The first borne of every creature, & of many brethren, is a creature & not God: but Christ is the first borne of every creature, & of many brethren. Ans. He is called the first borne by allusion to the first borne in the old testament: Rom. 8.29. Col. 1.15. for as they were principal heirs having double portions allowed them; & the chief or governors of the family▪ so Christ is made heir of the world, Gen. 49.3. Deut. 21.17. and the head of God's family which is his Church elected and adopted in him. And again he is called the first borne of every creature, because he was begotten of the substance of his father before any creature was made, and therefore it is not here said that he was first created, but first begotten. By the reasons which have been alleged, as also by the insufficiency of the contrary arguments, it is more than manifest against all heretics that Christ is very God. Yet to stop the mouths of all Atheists, & to satisfy all wavering & doubtings minds, I will add one reason further. The gospel of S. john was chief penned for this end, to prove the deity of Christ: & among other arguments alleged, this is one▪ that Christ gave a resolute & a constant testimony of himself, that he was the son of God, & very God: now if any man shall say, that sundry persons since the beginning of the world have taken upon them, & that falsely, to be gods: I answer, that never any creature took this title & honour upon him to be called God, but the fearful judgements of God were upon him for it. In the estate of man's innocency the devil told our first parents that by eating the fruit of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, they should be as gods knowing good & evil: now they believed him, & affected divine honour, but what came of it? surely Adam with all his posterity is shut up for it under eternal damnation. Herod likewise arrayed in royal apparel, & sitting on the judgement seat, made an oration to the men of tire & Sidon, who gave a shout saying, the voice of God, & not of man. Now because he took the glory of God to himself, & did not return it to him to whom it was due, immediately the angel of the Lord smote him. And so, if Christ had been but a mere man, & not very God, as he avouched, undoubtedly the hand of God would have been upon him likewise for his confusion: but when he suffered for us, and bore the punishment due for our sins, he most triumphed. And the judgements of God were upon Herod, Pontius Pilate, Caiphas, & upon all those that were enemies to him, and to his church afterward, & that partly in life & partly in death. Wherefore seeing that God can not abide that his glory should be given to any creature, & seeing for that cause he takes revenge on all those that exalt themselves to be gods, it remains that the testimony which Christ gave of himself that he was God, is unfallibly true, & without all question to be believed of us. And to conclude, I would have all the devils in hell with the cursed order of Lucian's, Porphyrians, and Atheists whatsoever to answer this one point, how it could come to pass, that Christ by publishing the doctrine of the Gospel that is as contrary to man's reason, will, and affections, as water to fire, should win almost the whole world to become his disciples, and to give their lives for him, unless he were God indeed, as he confessed himself to be. There be sundry special reasons wherefore it was necessary that Christ should be God. I. There is none which can be a Saviour of body & soul but God. Isa. 43.11. I even I am the Lord, and besides ●e there is no Saviour. And, Ose. 13.4. I am the Lord the God from the land of Egypt, and thou shalt know no God but me: for there is no Saviour beside me. II. There must be a proportion between the sin of man and the punishment of sin: now the sin of man in respect of the offence of the majesty of God is infinite, in that he is infinitely displeased with man at the breach of his law: therefore the punishment of sin must be infinite: and hence it followeth that he which suffereth the punishment being man, must withal be God, that the manhood by the power of the Godhead may be supported, that in suffering it may vanquish death, and make a satisfaction. III. He that must be a Saviour, must be able 1. to deliver men from the bondage of their spiritual enemies, namely sin and Satan: 2. to restore the image of God lost by the fall of Adam, and to confer righteousness and life everlasting: 3. to defend them from hell, death, damnation, the flesh, the devil, the world: 4. to give them full redemption from all their miseries both in body and soul, and to place them in eternal happiness: all which none can do, but he which is very God. IU. It was the pleasure of God, to show his incomprehensible goodness in this, that his grace should not only be equal to our sin, but also by many degrees go beyond it. And therefore the first Adam being but a mere man, the second Adam must be both God & man: that as the second was more excellent than the first, so our comfort might be greater in our redemption by the second, than our misery and discomfort was by the fall of the first. Hitherto we have showed how Christ is the son of God: Now let us come to the second point, namely that he is the only son of God. And he is so termed because he is the son of the father, in that manner as nothing else can be but he. Angels indeed are termed the sons of God, job. 1. but that is only in respect of their creation: and all that believe in Christ are the sons of God by adoption, being received into the family of God which is his Church by the merit of Christ, whereas by nature they were the children of wrath. Christ also as he is man (I say not his manhood which is a nature and no person) is the son of God by the grace of personal union, and not by nature or by adoption. Lastly Christ as he is the second person in trinity, the eternal word of the father, coeternal and consubstantial with him, is also the son of God. But how? neither by creation, nor adoption, nor by the virtue of personal union, but by nature; as he was begotten of the very substance of the father before all worlds: and therefore he is called the proper and only begotten son of God. It may be objected on this manner. If the father beget the son, joh. 1 18. Rom. 8.32. he doth it either willingly, or against his will: if willingly, than the son is begotten by the free-will of the father, and no son by nature. Answer. The father did communicate to the son his whole Godhead willingly without constraint, yet not by his will: and therefore he is the son of the father by nature, not by will. It may be further said, that if Christ be the son of God by nature, as he is the essential word of the father, & by personal union as he is man, then is he not one but two sons. Answ. As he is but one person, so is he but one son: yet not in one but in two respects: two respects make not two things, whereas one and the same thing and so remaining may admit sundry respects. Thus much of the meaning of the third title: Now follow the comforts which may be gathered hence. Whereas Christ jesus is the son of God, it serves as a means to make miserable and wretched sinners that are by nature the children of wrath and damnation, to be the sons of God by adoption▪ as Saint john testifieth. joh. 1.12. Now what a benefit is this to be the child of God, no tongue can express. Christ saith, Blessed are the peacemakers: Matth. 5.9. but why are they blessed? for, saith he, they shallbe called the sons of God. Whereby he testifieth that the right of adoption is a most excellent privilege; and not without cause. For he which is the child of God, is spiritually allied to Christ, and to all the saints and servants of God both in heaven and earth, having him for his elder brother, and all his members as his brethren and sisters: yea if we be God's adopted children, we are also heirs, even heirs of God, and heirs annexed with Christ. Well, Rom. 8.17. how great soever this prerogative is, yet few there be that rightly weigh it and consider of it. Children of noble men and princes heirs are had in account and reputation of all men, they are the very speech and wonder of the world. But it is a matter of no account to be the son of God and fellow-heire with Christ. The dearest servants of God have been esteemed but as the offscouring of the world. And no marvel, for they which are after the flesh, savour the things of the flesh. Few men have their understandings enlightened to discern of such spiritual things as these are, and therefore are they little or nothing regarded. A blind man never seeing the son, is not brought to wonder at it: and earthly minded men neither seeing nor feeling what an excellent thing it is to be the child of God, cannot be brought to seek after it. But let all such as fear God enter into a serious consideration of the unspeakable goodness of God, comforting themselves in this, that God the father hath vouchsafed by his own son to make them of the vassals of Satan, to be his own dear children. Now follow the duties which are two. First, we believe that jesus Christ who was to be the Saviour of mankind, must needs be God: what is the reason hereof? surely because no creature, no not all creatures in heaven and earth were able to save one man, so vile, wretched, and miserable is our estate by Adam's fall. And therefore the son of God himself pitied our estate, and being king of heaven and earth, was feign to come from heaven, and lay down his crown and become a servant, and taking upon him our nature, was also feign to take upon him our case and condition, & suffer death for our sins, which otherways every one of us should have suffered both in body and soul world without end. To make this more plain, let us suppose that some one hath committed an offence against a prince; now the trespass is so grievous, that no man can appease the king's wrath, save only the kings only son, and which is more, the king's son cannot release him, unless he suffer the punishment for him in his own person, which is due unto the malefactor. Now what is to be thought of this man's estate? surely all men will say that he is in a most miserable taking, and that his trespass is notorious: and so it is with every one of us by nature, whatsoever we are. No man could save our souls, no not all the angels in heaven, unless the king of heaven & earth the only son of God had come down from heaven & suffered for us, bearing our punishment. Now the consideration of this must humble us and make us to cast down ourselves under the hand of God for our sins, & pray continually that the Lord would send some Moses or other which might smite the rocks of our hearts, that some tears of sorrow & repentance might gush out for our woeful misery. Secondly, whereas God the father of Christ gave his only son to be our saviour, as we must be thankful to God for all things, so especially for this great & unspeakable benefit. Common blessings of God, as meat, drink, health, wealth, & liberty, must at all times move us to be thankful, but this, that Christ jesus the only son of God, redeemed us being utterly lost, this I say, must be the main point of all our thankfulness: but men's hearts are so frozen in the dregs of their sins, that this duty comes little in practice now adays. Our Saviour Christ cleansed ten lepers, but there was but one of them that returned to give him thanks, & this is as true in the leprosy of the soul, for though salvation by Christ be offered unto us daily by God's ministers, yet not one of ten, nay scarce one of a thousand gives praise and thanks to God for it, because men take no delight in things which concern the kingdom of heaven, they think not that they have need of salvation, neither do they feel any want of a Saviour. But we for our parts must learn to say with David, What shall I render unto the Lord for all his benefits: Psal. 116.12. yea we are to practise that which Solomon saith, My son give me thy heart: Prov. 23.26. for we should give unto God both body & soul in token of our thankfulness for this wonderful blessing that he hath given his only son to be our saviour; & let us know this for truth, that they which are not thankful for it, let them say what they will, they have no soundness of grace at the heart. And thus much of the third title. The fourth & last title is in these words our Lord. Christ jesus the only son of God is our Lord three ways: 1. by creation, in that he made us of nothing, when we were not: 2. he is our Lord in the ●ight of redemption. In former times the custom hath been that when one is taken prisoner in the fields, he that pays his ransom shall become always after his lord: so Christ when we were bondslaves under hell, death, & condemnation, paid the ransom of our redemption, and freed us from the bondage of sin and satan, and therefore in that respect he is our Lord. 3. He is the head of the Church (as the husband is the wives head,) to rule and govern the same by his word and spirit. And therefore in that respect also Christ is our Lord. And thus much for the meaning. Now follow the duties. 1. If Christ be our sovereign Lord, we must perform absolute obedience unto him, that is, whatsoever he commands us, that we must do. And I say absolute obedience, because Magistrates, Masters, Rulers, and fathers may command, and must be obeyed, yet no● simply, but so farfoorth as that which they command doth agree with the word and commandment of God: but Christ's will and word is righteousness itself, and therefore the rule and direction of all our actions whatsoever, and for this cause he must be absolutely obeyed. Thus he requires the obedience of the moral law: but why? because he is the Lord our God. And in Malach. he saith, Exod. 20. Mal. 1.6. If I be your Lord, where is my fear? And again, we must resign both body and soul, heart, mind, will, affections, and the course of our whole lives to be ruled by the will of Christ. He is Lord not only of the body, but of the spirit and soul of man: he must therefore have homage of both, as we adore him by the knee of the body, so must the thoughts and the affections of our hearts have their knees also to worship him, and to show their subjection to his commandments. As for such as do hold him for their Lord in word, but will not endeavour to show their loyalty in all manner of obedience, they are indeed no better then stark rebels. Secondly, when by the hand of Christ strange judgements shall come to pass, as it is usual in all places continually; we must stay ourselves without murmuring or finding fault, because he is an absolute Lord over all his creatures: all things are in his hands, and he may do with his own whatsoever he will; and therefore we must rather fear and tremble whensoever we see or hear of them: so David saith, I was dumb and opened not my mouth because thou didst it. Psal. 119.120. And again, My flesh trembleth for fear of thee, and I am afraid of thy judgements. Thirdly, before we use any of God's creatures or ordinances, we must sanctify them by the direction of his word and by prayer: 1. Cor. 10.26. the reason is this, because he is Lord over all, and therefore from his word we must fetch direction to teach us whether we may use them or not, and when and how we must use them: and secondly we must pray to him, that he would give us liberty and grace to use them aright in holy manner. Also we are so to use the creatures and ordinances of God, as being always ready to give an account for them at the day of judgement, for we use that which is the Lords, not our own; we are but stewards over them, & we must come to a reckoning for the stewardship. Hast thou learning? then employ it to the glory of God, & the good of the Church: boast not of it as though it were thine own. Hast thou any other gift or blessing of God, be it wisdom, strength, riches, honour, favour, or whatsoever; then look thou use it so, as thou mayst be always ready to make a good account thereof unto Christ. Lastly, every one must so lead his life in this world, as that at the day of death he may surrender and give up his soul into the hands of his Lord, and say with Steven, Lord jesus receive my soul: for thy soul is none of thine, but his who hath bought it with a price, Act. 7. & therefore thou must so order and keep it as that thou mayst in good manner restore it into the hands of God at the end of thy life. If a man should borrow a thing of his neighbour, and use it so as he doth quite spoil it, he would be ashamed to bring it again to the owner in that manner, and if he do, the owner will not receive it. ungodly men in this life do so stain their souls with sin, as that they can never be able to give them up into the hands of God at the day of death: & if they would, yet God accepts them not, but casts them quite away. We must therefore labour so to live in the world, that with a joyful heart at the day of death we may commend our souls into the hands of our Lord Christ jesus, who gave them unto us. This is a hard thing to be done, and he that will do it truly, must first be assured of the pardon of his own sins, which a man can never have without true and unfeigned faith and repentance: wherefore while we have time, let us purge and cleanse our souls & bodies, that they may come home again to God in good plight. And here all governors must be put in mind that they an higher Lord, that they may not oppress or deal hardly with their inferiors. Eph. 6.9. And this is Paul's reason, ye masters (saith he) do the same things unto your servants, putting away threatening: and know that even your master is also in heaven, neither is their respect of persons with him. Inferiors again must remember to submit themselves to the authority of their governors, especially of magistrates. For they are set over us by our sovereign Lord and king Christ jesus: as Paul saith, Rom. 13.1. Let every soul be subject to the higher powers. For there is no power but of God, and the powers that be ordained are of God. Eph. 6.5. And again, Servants be obedient to your masters according to the flesh, with fear and trembling, in singleness of your hearts, as unto Christ. The comfort which Gods Church may reap hence, is very great: for if Christ be the Lord of lords, & our Lord especially, we need not to fear what the devil or wicked men can do unto us. If Christ be on our side, who can be against us? we need not fear them that can destroy the body and do no more, but we must cast our fear on him that is Lord of body and soul, Mat. 10.28. and can cast both to hell. Thus much of the fourth title. Now follows Christ's incarnation, in these words, Conceived by the holy Ghost, borne of the Virgin Marie. And they contain in them one of the most principal points of the doctrine of godliness, as Paul saith, without controversy great is the mystery of godliness, which is, 1. Tim. 3.16. God is made manifest in the flesh, justified in the spirit, etc. And that we may proceed in order, in handling them, I will first speak of the incarnation generally, and then after come to the parts thereof. In general we are to propound five questions, the answering whereof will be very needful to the better understanding of the doctrine following. The first question is, who was incarnate or made man? Answer. The second person in Trinity, the son of God alone, and it is set down in this article according to the Scriptures. joh. 1.14. Luk. 1.35. Saint john saith, The Word was made flesh: and the angel saith, The holy one which shall be borne of thee, shallbe called the son of the most highest. Rom. 1.13. And Paul saith, that Christ jesus our Lord was made of the seed of Abraham according to the flesh. And there be sundry reasons, why the second person should rather be incarnate than any other. 1. By whom the father created all things, and man especially, by him man being fallen is to be redeemed, and as I may say, recreated: now man was at the first created of the father by the son: and therefore to be redeemed by him. 2. It was most convenient, that he which is the essential image of the father, should take man's nature that he might restore the image of God lost and defaced in man: Hebr. 1.3. Coloss. 1. but the second person is the essential image of the father, and therefore he alone must take man's nature. 3. It was requisite that that person which was by nature the son of God, should be made the son of man, that we which are the sons of men, yea the sons of wrath, should by grace be made the sons of God: now the second person alone is the son of God by nature, not the father, nor the holy Ghost. As for the father, he could not be incarnate. For to take flesh is to be sent of an other, but the father cannot be sent of any person, because he is from none. Again, if the father were incarnate, he should be father to him which is by nature God, and the son of a creature, namely the Virgin Marie, which things can not well stand. And the holy Ghost could not be incarnate: for then there should be more sons then one in the Trinity, namely the second person the son of the father, and the third person the holy Ghost, the son of the Virgin Marie. It may be objected to the contrary on this manner, The whole divine essence is incarnate, every person in Trinity is the whole divine essence, therefore every person is incarnate. Answer. The whole Godhead indeed is incarnate, yet not as it is absolutely considered, but so farfoorth as it is restrained and limited to the person of the son; and to speak properly, the godhead itself is not incarnate, but the very person of the son subsisting in the Godhead. And though all the persons be one and the same essence, yet do they really differ each from other in regard of the peculiar manner of subsisting: and therefore man's nature may be assumed of the second person, and be not assumed either of the father or of the holy Ghost; as in the like case the soul of man is wholly in the head and wholly in the feet, yea wholly in every part: and yet the soul can not be said to use reason in the feet or in any other part, but only in the head. Again it may be alleged, that the incarnation being an outward action of God to the creature, is not proper to the son. For the rule is, that all outward actions of God are common to all the persons in Trinity equally. Ans. The incarnation stands of two actions, the first is the framing & creating of that manhood which was to be assumed by Christ: Inchoatiuè communis, termi●alivè non: sic scholastici. & this is common to all the three persons equally: the second is the limiting or the receiving of it into the unity of any person, and in respect of this action, the work of incarnation is peculiar to the Son. To this purpose Augustine speaketh, August. in Euch. ad Laur. c. 38. that creature which the Virgin conceived & br●ught▪ forth, though it appertain to the person of the son alone, yet was it made by the whole Trinity: as when three men weave one and the same garment, and the second only wears it. The second question is, what manner of man the son of God was made? Ans. He was made a proper or particular man, and a perfect or a very man. I say that he was a particular man, to show that he took not unto him the general form or idea of man's nature conceived only in mind, nor the common nature of man as it is existing in every man: but the whole nature of man▪ that is, both a body and a reasonable soul, existing in b In uno individ●o. one particular subject. I say further that he was and is a true and perfect man, being in every thing that concerns man's nature like to Adam, Abraham, David, and all other men, saving only in sin. For first of all he had the substance of a true body and of a reasonable soul: secondly, the properties of body & soul: in the body, length, breadth, thickness, circumscription, etc. ●n the soul, the faculties of understanding both simply and compound: will, affections; as love, hatred, desire, joy, fear, etc. the powers also of hearing, feeling, seeing, smelling, tasting, moving, growing, eating, digesting, sleeping, etc. Thirdly, he took unto him the infirmities of man's nature, which are certain natural defects or passions in body or mind, as to be hungry, thirsty, weary, sad and sorrowful, ignorant of some things, angry, to increase in stature, and wisdom, and knowledge, etc. yet this which I say must be understood with two caveats. The first is, that infirmities be either certain unblamable passions, or else such defects as are sins in themselves; now Christ takes the first only, and not the second. Secondly, infirmities be either general, or personal; general, which appertain to the whole nature of man, and are to be found in every man that comes of Adam: as to be borne unlearned, and subject to natural affections, as sorrow, anger, etc. Personal, are such as appertain to some particular men, and not to all, and arise of some private causes and particular judgements of God, as to be borne a fool, to be sick of an ague, consumption, dropsy, pleurisy, and such like diseases. Now the first sort be in Christ, and not the second: for as he took not the person of any man, but only man's nature, so was it sufficient for him to take unto him the infirmities of man's nature, though he took not the private infirmities of any man's person. And the reason why Christ would put on not only the substance and faculties of a true man, but also his infirmities, was; that he might show himself to be very man indeed, also that he might suffer for us both in body and soul, and that he might give us an example of patience in bearing all manner of evil for God's glory and the good of our neighbour. Now the things which may be alleged to the contrary for the infringing of the truth of Christ's manhood, are of no moment. As first, because Christ appeared in the form of a man in the old testament; being no man: therefore he did so at his coming in the new testament: but the reason is not like. For Christ in the old testament as the angel of his father in some special affairs, took unto him the body of a man for some space of time; Gen. 18.9, 13. but he did not receive it into the unity of his person; but laid it down when the business which he enterprised with men was ended. Now in the fullness of time he came from heaven, as the angel of the covenant, and for that cause he was to unite into his own person the nature of man. And when as Paul saith that Christ came in the similitude of sinful flesh, his meaning is not to signify, Rom. 8.3. that he was a man only in resemblance and show, but to testify that being a true man indeed void of sin, was content to abase himself to that condition in which he became like to a miserable sinner in bearing the punishment for our sin. For Paul doth not say that he took upon him the similitude of flesh simply as it is flesh, but of the flesh of sin or sinful flesh. The third question is, why the son of God must become man? Answer. There be sundry reasons of this point, and the most principal are these. First of all it is a thing that greatly stands with the justice of God, that in that nature in which God was offended, in the same should be a made satisfaction to God for sin: now sin was committed in man's nature, Adam sinned first and in him all his posterity: therefore it is very necessary that in man's nature there should be a satisfaction made to God's justice, and therefore the son of God must needs abase himself and become man for our sakes. Secondly, by the right of creation every man is bound in conscience to fulful even the very rigour and extremity of the moral law. But considering man is now fallen from his first estate and condition, therefore it was requisite that the son of God should become man, that in man's nature he might fulfil all righteousness which the law doth exact at our hands. Thirdly, he that is our redeemer must die for our sins; for their is no remission of sins without shedding of blood: but Christ as he is God can not die. For no passion can befall the Godhead. Therefore it was needful that he should become man, that in man's nature he might die and fully satisfy God's justice for man's offence. Lastly he that must make reconciliation between God and man, must be such an one as may make request or speak both to God and man. For a Mediator is as it were a middle person making intercession between two other persons, the one offended the other offending. Therefore it is necessary that Christ should not only be God, to speak unto the father for us and to present our prayers unto him; but also man, that God might speak to us, and we to God by Christ. For howsoever before the fall, man could speak to God even face to face, yet since the fall, such fear possesseth man's corrupt nature that he cannot abide the presence of God, but flieth from it. Now whereas I say that it was necessary that the son of God for the causes before alleged must become man; the necessity must be understood in respect of Gods will, and not in respect of his power. For if it had so pleased God he was able to have laid down an other kind of way of man's redemption, then by the incarnation of the son of God: August. de Ago Christ. and he appointed no other way, because he would not. Thus much of the Incarnation in general. Now follow the duties which arise of it. And first we are taught hereby to come to Christ by faith, and with all our hearts to cleave unto him. Great is the deadness and sluggishness of man's nature: for scarce one of a thousand cares for him or seeks unto him for righteousness and life everlasting. But we should excite ourselves every way to draw near to him as much as possibly we may: for when he was incarnate, he came near unto us by taking our nature upon him, that we again whatsoever we are, might come near unto him by taking unto us his divine nature. Again, 2. Pet. 1.4. when Christ was incarnate, he was made bone of our bone, and flesh of our flesh; & therefore proportionally we must labour to become bone of his bone, & flesh of his flesh: which we shall be, when we are mystically united unto him by faith, & born anew by his spirit. Moreover Christ by his incarnation came down from heaven to us, that we being partakers of his grace might ascend up to heaven by him. And thus we see how the meditation of Christ's incarnation should be a spur to prick us forward still more and more to come to Christ. Secondly, Christ's incarnation must be a pattern unto us of a most wonderful and strange humility. For as Paul saith, Being in the form of God and thinking it no robbery to be equal with God, Phil. 2.6, 7. made himself of no reputation, and took on him the form of a servant: and humbled himself and became obedient to death, even to the death of the cross. Yea so farrefoorth abased he himself, that (as David saith) he was a worm and no man. Psal. 22. And this teacheth us to lay aside all self-love and pride of heart, and to practise the duties of humility, as the Apostle exhorts the Philippians in the same place: and that shall we do when we begin to cast off that high opinion which every man by nature conceiveth of himself, & become vile & base in our own eyes. Secure and drowsy protestants think themselves blessed, and say in their hearts as the Angel of the Church of Laodicea said, I am rich and increased with gold, and have need of nothing; Rev. 3▪ 17. whereas indeed they are most miserable and wretched, and poor, and naked, and blind. And the same fond opinion possesseth the minds of our ignorant people, who chant it in the very same tune, saying, that God loves them, and that they love God with all their hearts, and their neighbours as themselves: that they have perfect faith in Christ, and ever had, not once so much as doubting of their salvation: that all is well with them, and that they are passed all danger whatsoever, in the matter of their salvation, and therefore need not take so much▪ care for it. Thus ye may see how men are commonly carried away with vain and fond conceits of their own excellency. And truly so long as this overweening of our own righteousness reigns in our hearts, let Preachers speak and say what they will, we will never become followers of Christ in the practice of humility. Some will say peradventure, that they never had any such opinion of their own righteousness; but I answer again, that there was never yet any man descending of Adam, save Christ; but he had this proud fantasy ruling and reigning in him, till such time as God give grace to change and altar his heart: and this inward pride the less we discern it, the more it is: and the more we discern it the less it is. Therefore though as yet thou see it not in thyself, yet labour both to see it and to feel it, and to strive against it, casting down thyself for thine own misery after Christ's own example, who being God abased himself to the condition of a miserable man. For thou shalt never be filled with the good things of God, till thou be emptied of self-love and selfe-liking. For this cause let us purge and empty ourselves of all conceit of our own righteousness that God may fill our hearts with his grace. Furthermore, the Incarnation of Christ is the ground and foundation of all our comfort, as the names of Christ serving to express the same do testify. jaakob in his last testament saith, Gen. 49.10. that the sceptre shall not departed from judah till Shilo, that is, the Messiah come. Now the name Shilo signifieth the tunicle or skin that lappeth the infant in the mother's womb, P. Galatin. de occultis cathol. verit. lib. 4. cap. 4. called by the Physicians the Secundine: and by a kind of figure it is put for the Son of God in the womb of the virgin made man. And job to comfort himself in his affliction saith, I know that my redeemer liveth. Now the word which he useth to signify his redeemer by, Goel. is very emphatical, for it signifieth a kinsman near allied unto him of his own flesh that will restore him to life. And the Lord by the prophet Esai calleth Christ Immanuel, that is, God with us: which name importeth very much, namely, that whereas by nature we have lost our fellowship with God, because our sins are a wall of partition severing us from him: Isai. 59.2. Coloss. 1.21. yet nevertheless the same is restored to all that believe by the Mediator Christ jesus: because his divine nature is coupled to man's nature, and so the word is made flesh. And this straight conjunction of two natures into one person, joins God to men and men to God: yea by Christ we are brought to God and have free access unto him, and again in him we apprehend God and are made one with him. And further whereas Christ beside our nature took our infirmities also, it is a wonderful comfort unto God's Church: for it shows, that he is not only a Saviour, but also a very compassionate and pitiful Saviour. As the holy ghost saith, In all things it became Christ to be like unto his brethren that he might be merciful and a faithful high priest in things concerning God. Hebr· 21.7. Let a man be sick of a grievous disease, and if a friend come that hath bene troubled with the same disease, he will show more compassion than twenty others: and so Christ having felt in his own soul and body the anguish and the manifold perplexities that we feel in our temptations and afflictions, hath his bowels as it were earning towards us, evermore being priest and ready to relieve us in all our miseries. In the days of his flesh he wept over jerusalem when he saw it a far off, because she continued in her old sins, & did not know the time of her visitation: and no doubt, though now he be exalted in glory in heaven, yet his compassion to his poor members upon earth is no whit diminished. Now we come to speak of the incarnation more particularly: and the Creed yet further expresseth it by two parts; the first is the conception of Christ in these words, Conceived by the holy Ghost: the second is his birth, in the words following, Borne of the virgin Mary. The conception of Christ is set down with his efficient cause, the holy ghost, as the Angel said to joseph, Fear not to take Marie for thy wife, for that which is conceived in her is of the holy ghost. Here it may be demanded why the conception of Christ should be ascribed to the holy ghost alone, Matt. 1.21. which is common to all the persons in Trinity, as all other such actions are. Answer. It is not done to exclude the Father or the Son himself from this work: but to signify that it comes of the free gift and grace of God (which commonly is termed by the name of the Holy Ghost: that the manhood of Christ being but a creature, should be advanced to this dignity, Aug. ench. cap. 37.39. that it should become a part of the son of God. And again, the Holy Ghost is the author of this conception in a special manner: for the father and the son did cause it by the holy Ghost: but the holy ghost did cause it from them both immediately. In the conception of Christ we must observe and consider three things. The framing of the manhood, the sanctifying of it, and the personal union of the manhood with the godhead. And howsoever I distinguish these three for order's sake, yet must we know and remember, that they are all wrought at one and the same instant of time. For when the Holy Ghost frames and sanctifies the manhood in the womb of the virgin: at the very same moment it is received into the unity of the second person. In the forming of Christ's manhood two things must be considered, the matter and the manner: the matter of his body was the very flesh and blood of the virgin Marie; otherwise he could not have been the son of David, of Abraham, and Adam according to the flesh. As for his soul, it was not derived from the soul of the virgin Mary as a part thereof, but it was made as the souls of all other men be, of nothing by the power of God, and placed in the body; both of them from the first moment of their being, having their subsistence in the person of the son. And here we must take heed of two opinions: the first is of the Anabaptists, which hold, that the flesh of Christ came down from heaven, and passed through the virgin Marie as through a pipe, without taking any substance from her: the places which they allege for their purpose are manifestly abused. For whereas Christ saith of himself that he descended from heaven, his speech must be understood in respect of his godhead, joh. 3.13. which may be said in some sort to descend, in that it was made manifest in the manhood here upon earth. And whereas Paul calleth him heavenly & the Lord from heaven, it is not in respect of the substance of his body, 1. Cor. 15. but in respect of the glorious qualities which he received after this resurrection. The other opinion is of the Papists that hold the bread in the sacrament to be turned substantially into the body of Christ: which thing if it be true, than the body of Christ is made of bread kneaded and tempered by the hand of the baker, and not of the substance of the virgin Mary. As for the manner of the making and framing of the human nature of Christ, it was miraculous▪ not by generation according to the ordinary course of nature, but by an extraordinary operation of the holy Ghost above nature: and for this cause it is not within the compass of man's reason either to conceive or to express the manner and order of this conception. Luk. 1.35, The Angel ascribes two actions to the holy Ghost in this matter; the one to come upon the virgin Marie; jud. 14.6. the other, to overshadow her: by the first is signified the extraordinary work of the holy ghost in fashioning the human nature of Christ, for so much the phrase elsewhere importeth. The second signifieth, Act. 1.8. Luk. 24.49. that the holy ghost did as it were cast a cloud over her, to teach us, that we should not search over much into the mystery of the Incarnation. It may be objected against this which hath been said, that if Christ be in this manner conceived by the holy Ghost, than the holy ghost shallbe father to Christ, and Christ his son. Answer. The reason is not good. For he that is a father is not a bare efficient cause, but one which in the effecting of any thing confers the matter unto it from himself whereof it shall be made. Now the holy ghost did not minister any matter unto Christ from his own substance; but did only as it were, take the mass and lump of man's nature from the body of the virgin Mary, and without ordinary generation made it the body of Christ: as Basill saith, Christ was conceived not of the substance, Serm. de S. na●ivit▪ but of the power, not by any generation, but by the appointment and benediction of the holy ghost. The second point in the conception is the sanctifying of that mass or lump which was to be the manhood of Christ. And that was done upon special cause: first, tha● that it might be ioned to the person of the Son which could not have been if it had been defiled with sin. Secondly, Christ was a Saviour as he is both God and man: now then being man, if he had been sinful himself, he could not have saved others, but should have stood in need of a Saviour for himself. This sanctification hath two parts: the first is, the stay and stoppage of the propagation of original sin, and of the guilt of Adam's sin; which was on this manner. God in the beginning set down this order touching man, that what evil or defect soever he brought upon himself, he should derive the same to every one of his posterity begotten of him: and hereupon when any father begets his child, he is in the room of Adam, and conveys unto it besides the nature of man the very guilt and corruption of nature. Now for the preventing of this evil in Christ, God in great wisdom appointed that he should be conceived by the holy ghost without any manner of generation by man. And by this means he takes substance from the virgin without the guilt and corruption of the substance. But it may further be objected thus. All that be in Adam have sinned in him: but Christ was in Adam as he is man: therefore he sinned in him. Answer. The proposition is false, unless it be expounded in this manner: All that were in Adam have sinned in him so be it they come of him by generation. Paul saith not, that, out of one man, but, by one man sin entered into the world, to show, Rom. 5.12. that he propagates his corruption to no more than he begets. Again, Christ is in Adam not simply as other men are, but in part: namely in respect of substance which he took from him, and not in respect of the propagation of the substance by ordinary generation: other men are both from Adam and by Adam, but Christ is from him alone and not by him as a begetter or procreant cause. The second part of sanctification is the infusion of all pureness and holiness into the manhood of Christ, so far forth as was meet for the nature of a redeemer. The duties to be learned hence are these: First, whereas Christ was sanctified in the womb of the virgin Mary, we likewise must labour to be sanctified in ourselves, following the commandment of God, Be ye holy as I am holy. 1. joh. 3.3. S. john saith, that he which hath hope to be with Christ in glory in heaven, purifieth himself even as he is pure: no doubt setting before himself the example of Christ as a pattern to follow in all his ways. And because our hearts are as it were seas of corruptions, we must daily cleanse ourselves of them by little & little, following the practice of the poor beggar that is always piecing and mending, and day by day pulls away some rags and puts better cloth in the room. And if we shall continually endeavour ourselves to cast off the remnants of corruption that hang so fast on, and make a supply thereof by some new portions of Gods heavenly grace; we shallbe vessels of honour sanctified & meet for the Lord, and prepared unto every good work. Christ could not have been a fit saviour for us unless he had first of all been sanctified: neither can we be fit members unto him, unless we be purged of our sins & in some measure truly sanctified. The comfort which Gods people may reap of the sanctification of Christ's manhood is great. For why was he sanctified? Surely if we mark it well, we shall find it was for the good & benefit of his elect. For Adam & Christ be two roots as hath been showed. Adam by creation, first received God's image, and after lost the same for himself & his posterity. Now Christ to remove the sin of man is made the second Adam, & the root and very head of all the elect. His manhood was filled with holiness above measure: that from thence as from a storehouse it might be derived to all his members. And therefore by his most holy conception, our sinful birth and conception is sanctified, and his holiness serves as a cover to hide our manifold corruptions from the eyes of God. Yea it serves as a buckler to award the temptations of the devil: for when he shall say to our hearts on this manner? no unclean thing can enter into the kingdom of heaven; but thou by reason of the remnants of original sin art unclean: therefore thou canst not enter into the kingdom of heaven: we return our answer, saying, that Christ's righteousness is our righteousness serving to make us stand without blame or spot before God. And as jacob put on Esau's garments that he might get his father's blessings so if by faith we do put on the white garment of righteousness of our elder brother Christ jesus & present ourselves in it unto our heavenly father, we shall obtain his blessing, which is eternal happiness. Now remains the third and last part of the conception, which is the union of the godhead & the manhood: concerning which, many points are particularly to be handled. The first is, what kind of union this is? Ans. In the Trinity there be two sorts of unions: union in nature, and union in person. Union in nature is, when two or more things are joined and united into one nature, as the Father, the Son, the holy ghost being and remaining three distinct persons, are one and the same in nature or godhead. Union in person is, when 2. things are in that manner united, that they make but one person or subsistence: As a body created by God & a reasonable soul joined both together make one particular man as Peter, Paul, john, etc. And this second, is the union whereof we entreat in this place: by which the second person in Trinity the son of God did unite unto himself the human nature that is the body and soul of man: so as the godhead of the son and the manhood concurring together make but one person. The second point is, in what thing this union doth consist. Ans. It consists in this, that the second person the son of God doth assume unto it a manhood in such order, that it being void of all personal being in itself, doth wholly and only subsist in the same person. As the plant called Mi●tell having no root of his own both grows & lives in the stock or body of the Oak or some other tree: Viscum Matthiol. so the human nature having no proper subsistence, is as it were engrafted into the person of the son, and is wholly supported & sustained by it so as it should not be at all if it were not sustained in that manner. And for the better understanding of this point, we must consider, that there be four degrees of the presence of God in his creatures. The first is his general presence, and it may be called the presence of his providence, Act. 17.28. whereby he preserveth the substances of all creatures, and giveth unto them to live, move, and have being: and this extendeth itself to all creatures good and bad. The second degree is the presence of grace, whereby he doth not only preserve the substance of his creature, but also giveth grace unto it: and this agreeth to the Church and people of God upon earth. The third degree is the presence of glory peculiar to the saints and Angels in heaven: and this stands in three things, for God not only preserves their substances, and gives them plenty of his grace, but also admits them into his glorious presence, so as they may behold his majesty face to face. The fourth and last is that, whereby the godhead of the son is present and dwells with & in the manhood giving unto it his own subsistence. Whereby it comes to pass that this manhood assumed is proper to the son, and cannot be the manhood of the father, or of the Holy Ghost, or of any creature whatsoever. And this is a thing so admirable and so unspeakable, that among all the works of God there can not be found another example hereof in all the world. Hence it followeth necessarily that the manhood of Christ consisting of body and reasonable soul, is a nature only and not a person: because it doth not subsist alone as other men, Peter, Paul, john do; but wholly depends on the person of the word, into the unity whereof it is received. The third point is, in what order the divine and human nature of Christ are united together. Damasc. lib. 3. cap. 6. Cyprian. in symb. Answer. The common consent of divines is, that, albeit all the parts of the manhood and the godhead of Christ be united at one instant: yet in respect of order he unites unto himself first and immediately the soul, and by the soul the body. For it seems not to be meet that God being a most simple essence should immediately be joined to a compound body: and therefore he is united unto it by the more simple part of man, which is the soul. Again the manhood of Christ is first and immediately joined to the person of the son himself, and by the person to the godhead of the son. The fourth point is, whether there remain any difference or diversity of the two natures after that the union is made. Answer. The two natures concurring make not the person of the son to be compounded properly, but only by analogy: for as body and soul make one man, so god and man make one Christ: neither are they turned one into another, the godhead into the manhood or the manhood into the godhead, as water was turned into wine at Cana in Galilee: neither are they confused and mingled together as meats in the stomach: but they are and so remain without composition, conversion, or confusion really distinct and that in three respects. First in regard of essence. For the godhead of Christ is the godhead and can not be the manhood: and again, the manhood of Christ is the manhood and not the godhead. Secondly they are distinguished in proprieties: the godhead is most wise, just, merciful, omnipotent: yea wisdom, justice, mercy, and power itself: and so is not the manhood, neither can it be. Again, Christ as he is God hath his will eternal and uncreated, which is all one with the will of the father and the holy ghost. And as he is man he hath another will created in time, and placed in his reasonable soul: and this Christ signifieth when he saith, Not my will but thy will be done. Thirdly, they are distinct in their actions or operations; which though they go together inseparably in the work of redemption: yet they must in no wise be confounded but distinguished as the natures themselves are. Christ saith of himself, I have power to lay down my life, joh. 10. ●8. and I have power to take it up again: and hereby he shows the distinction of operations in his two natures. For to lay down his life is an action of the manhood, because the godhead can not die: and to take it up again is the work of the godhead alone, which reunites the soul to the body after death. The first and last point is, what ariseth of this union? Ans. By reason of this hypostatical union, though the godhead receive nothing from the manhood, yet the manhood itself, which is assumed, is thereby perfected and enriched with unspeakable dignity. For first of all it is exalted above all creatures whatsoever, even angels themselves, in that it hath subsistence in the second person in Trinity. Secondly, together with the godhead of the son, it is adored and worshipped with divine honour, as in like case the honour done to the king himself, redounds to the crown on his head. Thirdly by reason of this union, the godhead of Christ works all things in the matter of our redemption, in & by the manhood. And hereupon the flesh of Christ though it profit nothing of itself, yet by the virtue which it receiveth from that person to which it is joined, it is quickening flesh and the bread of life. Again from this union of two natures into one person ariseth a kind of speech or phrase peculiar to the scriptures, called the communication of proprieties when the property of one nature is attributed to the whole person or to the other nature, as when Paul saith, that God shed his blood, that the Lord of glory was crucified. Act. ●0. 28. 1. Cor. 2.8. joh. 3.13. And when Christ saith that he talking with Nichodemus was then in heaven. The use of the personal union is threefold. First it serves to show the heinousness of our sins, and the greatness of our misery. For it had not been possible to make a satisfaction to God's justice in man's nature for the least offence, unless the same nature had first of all been nearly joined to the godhead of the son; that thereby it might be so far forth supported and sustained that it might overcome the wrath of God. Secondly it sets forth unto us the endless love of God to man. For whereas by reason of Adam's fall we are become the vilest of all creatures, except the devil and his angels: yet by his mystical conjunction, our nature is is exalted to such an estate and condition as is far above all creatures even the angels themselves. Thirdly it is as it were the key of all our comfort: for all sound comfort stands in happiness, all happiness is in fellowship with God, all fellowship with God is by Christ, who for this cause being very God, became very man, that he might reconcile man to God and God to man. Thus much of the conception of Christ: now follows his birth: whereby in the ordinary time of travel according to the course of nature he was brought forth into the world by the virgin Mary. And it was the will of God, Luk. 2.6. that Christ should not only be conceived, but also borne, and that after the manner of men, that he might be known to be very man indeed. In the birth we may consider four things; the time, the place, the manner, the manifestation of it. The time was in the last days, toward the end of the 70. weeks of Daniel, Isai. 2.2. Dan. 9. 2●. which are to be accounted from the end of the captivity of Babylon, & make in all 490 years: or more plainly 3900. years and more from the beginning of the world, and as Paul saith in the fullness of time. And the Evangelists have noted of purpose the time to have been when Augustus Caesar taxed the jews and all nations under his dominions; Gal. 4.4. Luk. 2▪ 1. to signify that Christ was borne at the very time foretold by jacob, when the crown and sceptre was taken from juda: and withal, to show that his kingdom was not of this world. And it was the good pleasure of god that Christ should not be borne either later or sooner, but so many ages from the beginning of the world. And this consideration of the very time itself serves greatly for the confirmation of our faith. For thus may we reason with ourselves. If God who in the beginning made a promise to our first parents concerning the seed of the woman, deferred it almost 4000 years, and yet at length accomplished the same to the very full: then no doubt God having promised the resurrection of the dead and life everlasting, will in his good time bring them to pass, though as yet we see them not. And thus by the accomplishment of all things past, should we confirm our hope concerning things to come. The place was not Jerusalem nor Nazareth, nor any other city, but only a village of juda called Bethleem, that the prophesy of Micheas might be fulfilled, Thou Bethleem Ephrata art little to be among the thousands of juda, yet out of thee shall he come forth unto me, that shall be the ruler in Israel. And here we may observe a memorable example of God's providence which overruleth the proceedings of cruel tyrants, to the accomplishing of his own will, they themselves for their parts intending nothing less. Augustus not so much as dreaming of the birth of the Messiah, gave commandment that every man should go to his own city to be taxed: and hereupon joseph and Mary take their journey from Nazareth to Bethleem: which journey God himself appointed and disposed to this end, that the Messiah might be borne in the place which he preordained and foretold by his prophet. The manner of Christ's birth was very base and poor: for the place where he was borne was a stable, and the cradle where he lay was a cratch. And he willingly took upon him this poverty for sundry causes. I. That the scripture might be fulfilled, which saith, that he should be the shame and contempt of the people: Psal. 22.6. and that ye shall grow up as a root out of a dry ground and have neither form nor beauty. Isa. 53.2. II. That he might afterward from this base condition be exalted even in his manhood to that rich and glorious estate in which he should manifest himself to be Lord of heaven and earth. III. He was borne in exceeding poverty that he might shame the wise men of this world, who exceedingly esteem of their riches, power, and glory, persuading themselves that without such means no good thing can be done. And yet for all this they can not so much as reconcile one man to God by all their might and wealth: whereas Christ himself hath done the same both in poverty and weakness; and can enlarge and preserve his kingdom without earthly helps. When he hung upon the cross the soldiers stripped him of his garments: and being naked he brought that to pass which all the monarchs of the earth in all their royalties could never have performed. And whether Christ lie in the manger between the Ox and the Ass, or in the palace of the king, it matters not in regard of our salvation. FOUR He came in this manner that there might be a difference between his first coming in the flesh and his last coming to judgement. In the first he came only for this end, not to make any outward alterations in the world, but to change the conscience and to put in execution the work of our spiritual redemption: and therefore he hath reserved the overturning of all earthly estates with the manifestation of his own glory to the latter. V last he was borne in a poor estate that he might procure true riches for us in heaven: and withal, sanctify unto us our poverty upon earth. As Paul saith, Ye know the grace of our Lord jesus Christ, 2. Cor. 8. ●. that he being rich for your sakes became poor, that ye through his poverty might be made rich. He was content to lie in the manger that we might rest in heaven. This serves to teach us to be content to bear any mean condition that the Lord shall send upon us: for this is the very estate of the son of God himself. And if for our cause he did not refuse the basest condition that ever was, why should we murmur at the same: for what is the best of us but miserable sinners, and therefore utterly unworthy either to go or lie upon the bare earth? and though we far and lie better than our Lord himself; yet such is our daintiness, we are not pleased therewith: whereas he for his part disdained not the manger of the Ox. And if the Lord of heaven and earth coming into the world find so little entertainment or favour, we for our parts being his members, should willingly prepare ourselves to take as hard measure at the hands of men. The last point is the manifestation of Christ's birth that it might be known to the world. Luk. ●. Where consider two circumstances, the first, to whom? namely to poor shepherds tending their flocks by night, and not to great or mighty men, lovers of this world, nor to the priests of jerusalem contemners of God's grace; and that for two causes: one, because the shepherds were the fittest persons to publish the same at Bethleem: the other, it was God's pleasure to manifest that in the birth of Christ which Paul saith, Not many wise men after the flesh, not many mighty, 1. Cor. 1.27. not many noble are called: but God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound the wise. The second is, by whom? by the angel of the Lord appearing in great glory unto the shepherds. For the priests of jerusalem and the rulers of the synagogues, to whom this office did belong, held their peace, being blinded in their manifold errors and wicked ways. The duties to be learned of the birth of Christ are these. First we are admonished hereby to magnify and praise the name of God, saying with Mary, My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit rejoiceth in God my saviour. And with Zacharie, Blessed be the Lord God of Israel for he hath visited and redeemed his people. And with the angel of the Lord, Glory to God in the highest heavens. For in this birth is made manifest the wisdom, the truth, the justice and mercy, and goodness of God towards us, more than ever it was before: yea as Christ God and man, is more excellent than the first Adam created according to Gods own image, and as the spiritual life is better than the natural life, and as the eternal and most holy marriage of Christ the husband and his spouse the Church rising as it were out of the blood that trickled out of his side, is more wonderful than the creation of Eve of the rib of Adam. Lastly, as it is a far greater matter by death to overcome death, and to turn it into eternal life, then to command that to exist and be which was not before: so is the work of redemption begun in the birth of Christ more unspeakable and admirable than the first creation of man. Hereupon not 6. cherubims as in the vision of Isaiah, not 24. elders as in the Apocalyps, but a great multitude of Angels like armies were heard to praise God at the birth of Christ: Luk. 2.13. and no doubt the like sight was not seen since the beginning of the world. And the angels by their example put us in mind to consider aright of this benefit, and to praise God for it. But alas, this practice is very rare in this fruitless and barren age of the world, where sin and iniquity abounds, as may be seen by experience for by an old custom we retain still in the Church the feast of the nativity of Christ, so commonly called: which nevertheless is not spent in praising the name of God that he hath sent his son from his own bosom to be our redeemer, but contrariwise in rifling, dicing, carding, masking, mumming, & in all licentious liberty for the most part, as though it were some heathen feast of Ceres or Bacchus. Secondly Christ was conceived and borne in bodily manner, that there might be a spiritual conception and birth of him in our hearts, as Paul saith, Gal. 4.19. My little children of whom I travel till Christ be form in you: and that is, when we are made new creatures by Christ and perform obedience to our creator. When the people said to Christ that his mother and his brethren sought him, he answered, He that doth the will of God is my brother, my sister and mother. Mar. 13. 3●. Therefore let us go with the shepherds to Bethleem, and finding our blessed saviour swaddled and lying in the cratch, let us bring him thence and make our own hearts to be his cradle: that we may he able to say that we live not, but Christ lives in us: and let us present unto him ourselves, our bodies and souls as the best gold, myrrh and frankincense that may be: and thus conceiving him by faith, he remaining without change, we shallbe changed into him and made bone of his bone and flesh of his flesh. The world, I know, never so much as dreameth of this kind of conception and birth, for as David saith, Men travel with wickedness, conceive mischief, & bring forth a lie. And S. james saith, Psal. 7.14. jam. 1. 1●. Men are drawn away by their own concupiscence, which when it hath conceived bringeth forth sin. And these are the ugly and monstrous births of these days. But let us, I pray you, contrariwise wail and mourn for the barrenness of our hearts that do so little conceive the grace of Christ in heart, and bring it forth in action. The mother of Christ undoubtedly was a blessed woman: but if she had not as well conceived Christ in her heart as she did in her womb, she had not been saved: and no more can we, unless we do the same. The birth of Christ to them that have touched hearts, is the comfort of comforts, and the sweetest balm or confection that ever was. Behold say the angel to the shepherds we bring tidirgs of great joy that shallbe to all people: but wherein stands the joy? they add further, Rom. 5.1. unto you this day is borne in the city of David a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. And no marvel: for in that birth is manifested the good will of God to man, and by it we have peace, first with God, secondly with ourselves in conscience, thirdly with the good angels of God, four with our enemies: lastly, with all the creatures. For this cause the angels sang, Peace on earth, good will towards men. In the last place the Creed notes unto us the parent or mother of Christ, the virgin Mary. And here at the very first it may be demanded, how he could have either father or mother; because he was figured by Melchisedech who had neither father nor mother. Ans. Melchisedech is said to be without father & mother, Heb. 7.3. not because he had none at all. For according to the ancient and received opinion, it is very likely that he was Sem the son of No: Hier. epist. ad evagr. but because where he is mentioned under this name of Melchisedech in the 14. chapter of Genes. there is no mention made either of father or mother: and so Christ in some sort is without father or mother: as he is man he hath no father, as he is God he hath no mother. And whereas Christ is called the son of joseph, Mat. 13.55. joh. 1.45. & 6.52. Luk. 4.22. it was not because he was begotten of him, but because joseph was his reputed father: or, which is more; because he was a legal father, namely according to the jews laws: in that (as sundry divines think) he was the next of his kin, and therefore to succeed him as his lawful heir. Marry became the mother of Christ by a kind of calling thereto which was by an extraordinary message of an angel concerning the conception and birth of Christ in and by her: to which calling and message she condescended, saying, Behold the handmaid of the Lord, be it unto me according to thy word. And hereupon she conceived by the Holy Ghost. This being so, it is more than senseless folly to turn the salutation of the angel, Hail freely beloved, etc. into a prayer. And she must be held to be the mother of whole Christ God and man: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and therefore the ancient Church hath called the mother of God: yet not the mother of the godhead. Furthermore the mother of Christ is described by her quality, a virgin, and by her name Mary. She was a virgin, first that Christ might be conceived without sin and be a perfect Saviour: secondly, that the saying of the prophet Esai might be fulfilled, Isa. 7.24. Behold a virgin shall conceive & bear a son: according as it was foretold by god in the first giving of the promise, the seed of the woman, not the seed of the man, shall bruise the serpent's head. Now the jews, to elude the most pregnant testimony of the Prophet say, that Alma signifieth not a virgin, but a young woman which hath known a man. But this is indeed a forgery. For Esay there speaks of an extraordinary work of God above nature, whereas for a woman having known man to conceive, is no wonder. And the word Alma, through the whole bible is taken for a virgin, Gen. 24. Exod. 2. as by a particular search will appear. As Marie conceived a virgin, so it may be well thought that she continued a virgin to the end, though we make it no article of our faith. When Christ was upon the cross, he commended his mother to the custody of john; joh. 19. 2●. which probably argueth, that she had no child to whose care and keeping she might be commended. And though Christ be called hi● first borne, yet doth it not follow that she had any child after him: for as that is called last after which there is none, so that is called the first before which there was none. And as for joseph, Epiph. lib. 2. tom. 1. when he was espoused to Marie, he was a man of eighty years old. And here we have occasion to praise the wisdom of God, in the forming of man. The first man Adam was borne of no man; but immediately created of God: the second, that is Eve, is form not of a woman, but of a man alone: the third and all after, begotten both of woman and man: the fourth, that is Christ, God and man, not of no man as Adam, not of no woman, as Eve; not of man and woman as we: but after a new manner, of a woman without a man he is conceived and borne. And hereupon our duty is not to despise, but highly to reverence the virgin Marie, as being the mother of the son of God, a prophetess upon earth, a Saint in heaven. And we do willingly condescend to give her honour three ways, 1. by thanksgiving to God for her, Luk 1. 4●. 2. by a reverent estimation of her, 3. by imitation of her excellent virtues: yet far be it from us to adore her with divine honour, by prayer to call upon her, as though she knew our hearts, and heard our requests, and to place her in heaven as a queen above the son of God. The name of the mother of Christ is added, to show that he came of the lineage of David, and that therefore he was the true Messiah before spoken of. It may be objected, that both Matthew and Luke set down the genealogy of joseph, of whom Christ was not. Answer. Matthew sets down indeed in Christ's genealogy, the natural descent of joseph, the husband of Marie, having jacob for his natural father: but Luke taking an other course, propounds the natural descent of Marie the mother of Christ: and when he saith that joseph was the son of Eli, he means of a Legal son. Aphrican. apud Euseb. Damasc. l. 4. c. 1●. For sons and daughters in law are called sons and daughters to their fathers and mothers in law: Marie herself and not joseph, being the natural daughter of Elimine And whereas Luke doth not plainly say, that Marie was the daughter of Eli, but puts joseph the son in law in her room, the reason hereof may be, because it was the manner of the jews to account and continue their genealogies in the male and not in the female sex, the man being the head of the family, and not the woman. And though Ruth, and Rahab, and other women be mentioned by Matthew, yet that is only by the way: for they make no degrees herein. Again it may further be demanded, how Christ could comes of David by Solomon, as Matthew saith, and by Nathan as Luks saith; they twain being two distinct sons of David. Answer. By virtue of the law, whereby the brother was bound to raise up seed to his brother: Deut. 25. there was a double descent in use among the jews, the one was natural, the other legal. Natural, when one man descended of an other by generation, as the child from the natural father. Legal, when a man not begotten of an other, Matth. 1.12. & Luk. 3.27. yet did succeed him in his inheritance; & thus Salathiel is the natural son of Neri, and the legal son of jechonias. Now Saint Luke sets down the natural descent of Christ from David by Nathan: and Saint Matthew the other descent, which is legal, by Solomon; whom Christ succeeded in the right of the kingdom, being borne the king of the jews: none that could possibly be named, having more right to it then he. By this descent of Christ we have occasion to consider, that Christ was even in his birth the most excellent and noble man that ever was, descending of the eternal father as he is the son of God, and as he man, descending of the patriarchs, and of the renowned kings of judah. And this his nobility he conuaies in part to his members, in that he makes them the sons of God, a royal priesthood, and a peculiar people to himself: enriching them also with the revenues of the whole world, and with the title and right to the kingdom of glory in heaven, as their inheritance. And withal, Christ being the lively pattern of true nobility, by his example men of blood are taught not to stand so much on their pedigree, and their ancetours, as though nobility stood in this, that man descends of man: but to labour with all that they may to be the sons and daughters of God by regeneration in Christ. This in deed is the ornament of the blood, the best part in the noble man's scutcheon, and the finest flower in his garland. And though a man be never so noble or great an estate, yet if he be not a repentant sinner, he is base and vile, and his nobility stinks in the nostrils of God. Christ in his genealogy doth not so much as vouchsafe to name those his ancetours that ruled wickedly; and hereupon Saint Matthew omitteth three kings of juda▪ Achaziah, joas, & Amaziah: whereas nevertheless heinous offenders that repent are mentioned, as Ruth, and Thamat, and Bathshabe. Thus much of the incarnation of Christ: Now followeth the third and last point which is to be considered in the description of Christ, namely the estate of Christ after his birth, which is twofold, the estate of humiliation, and the estate of exaltation. The estate of humiliation, is the condition of Christ the Mediator, in which he abased himself even to the death of the cross, that by that means he might perform the office of a priest in making satisfaction to the justice of his father. This estate agrees to the whole person of Christ according to both natures. For first of all his manhood was abased and humbled, in that it was made subject to the infirmities of man's nature, as also to the miseries and punishments which were due unto man for sin. Secondly, his Godhead was abased; not as it is considered in itself. For so it admits no alteration or change. But in respect of the flesh or manhood assumed; under the which as under a vail, the Godhead lay hid from the first moment of the incarnation to the time of his resurrection, without any great manifestation of his power and majesty therein. The order of these two estates must be marked. First is the estate of humiliation, and then in the second place follows the estate of exaltation. As Christ saith of himself, O fools, and slow of heart to believe, etc. ought not Christ to have suffered these things and to enter into his glory. Luk. ●4. 26. And here we for our part must learn a lesson. The same which was true in Christ the head, must be verified in all his members; they must also have their twofold estate. First in this life the estate of humiliation: secondly, after this life the estate of glory. And as Christ first entered into the state of his humiliation, and then into glory: so it is with his members, first they must be abased in this life, and secondly exalted in the world to come. He that will reign with Christ and be exalted, must first suffer with him, and be humbled: he that will wear the crown of glory, must wear first a crown of thorns: they that will have all tears wiped from their eyes, must here first in this life shed them. And the children of God before they can sing the song of Moses, Rev. 15.2. and of the servants of God, and of the lamb, must first swim through the sea of burning glass: whereby it is signified, that those which after this life would sing songs of praises to Christ, must in this life be cast into a sea of misery. And if this be true, than we may hear learn, that it is a wretched case for a man in this life to have perpetual ease, rest, and quietness both in body and soul, goods, and good name: for we see by Christ's example, that through adversity we must come to happiness: and if a man would have rest and peace in the life to come, then in this life he must suffer trouble, persecution, and sorrow. Indeed in the judgement of the world, they are blessed that always live at rest; but before God they are most miserable: and (as oxen which are made fat in the best pasture) ready for the slaughter-house every day. Secondly, here is an excellent consolation for those which profess the Gospel of Christ▪ in the time of trouble and persecution they must rejoice, because the state of humiliation in this life is a sign that they are in the plain and right way to salvation and glory. A man is to take his journey into a far country, and enquiring for the way, it is told him that there are many plain ways; but the strait and right way is full of woods, and hills, and mountains, and great dangers: now when he is traveling, and comes into those places, he gathereth certainly that he is in the right way: so the child of God that is going to the kingdom of heaven, though there be many ways to walk in, yet he knows that there is but one right way, which is very strait and narrow, full of trouble, sorrow, and persecution: full of all manner of crosses and afflictions: and when in this life he is persecuted and afflicted for good causes, whether in body or in mind, if he be content to bear his cross, it agreeth plainly that he is in the right way unto salvation: Act. 14.22. for through many afflictions we must enter into the kingdom of heaven. The humiliation of Christ is first of all set down in the Creed generally, and secondly by his parts or degrees. Generally, in these words, suffered under Pontius Pilate. Where we must consider two things; the passion itself, and under whom it was. For the first, that we may the better conceive the passion in his own nature, seven special points must be opened. I. The cause efficient. The principal cause of the passion, as it is the price of our redemption, was the decree and providence of God; Act. 2.23. as Peter saith expressly that Christ was delivered by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God. The impulsive cause that moved God to work salvation by this means, was nothing in man (for all mankind was shut up under unbelief, and therefore unable to procure the least favour at God's hand) but the will and good pleasure of God within himself. The instruments which the Lord used in this business, were the wicked jews and Gentiles, & the devil himself; by whom he brought to pass the most admirable work of redemption; even then when they according to their kind did nothing else but practice wickedness and malice against Christ. II. The matter of the passion, is the whole malediction or curse of the Law, containing in it all manner of adversities and miseries both of body and mind. All which may be reduced to three heads, the temptations of Christ, his ignominies and slanders, his manifold sorrows and griefs, especially those which stand in the apprehension of the unsupportable wrath of God. III. The form of the passion▪ is that excellent and meritorious satisfaction which in suffering Christ made unto his father for man's sin. We do not rightly consider of the passion, if we conceive it to be a bare and naked suffering of punishment, but withal we must conceive it as a propitiation or a means satisfactory to God's justice. The passion considered as a passion, ministers no comfort: but all our joy and rejoicing stands in this, that by faith we apprehend it as it is a satisfaction or a means of reconciliation for our offences. In this very point stands the dignity of the passion, whereby it differs from all other sufferings of men whatsoever. Therefore most damnable and wicked is the opinion of the Papists, who besides the alone passion of Christ, maintain works of satisfaction, partly of their own, and partly of the Saints departed: which they add to the passion as an appendance thereof. iv The end of the passion is, that God might bring to pass a work in which he might more fully manifest his justice and mercy, than he did in the creation, and that is the reconciliation between God and man. And here remember with the passion to join the obedience of Christ in fulfilling the law: for Christ in suffering obeyed, and in obeying suffered. And they must be jointly conceived together for this cause. In reconciliation with God, two things are required, the removing of sin in regard of the guilt, of the fault, and the punishment, and the conferring or giving of righteousness. Now the passion of Christ considered apart from his legal obedience, only takes away the guilt and punishment, frees man from death, 1. Non peccator. and makes him of a sinner to be no sinner, and that he may be fully reconciled to God, and accepted as righteous to life everlasting, 2. justus. the legal obedience of Christ must be imputed. And therefore in the Scriptures, where all obedience is ascribed to the death and passion of Christ, this very obedience which stands in the perfect love of God and man must be included and not excluded. V The time of the passion was from the very birth of Christ to his resurrection: yet so, as the beginnings only of his sufferings were in the course of his life, and the accomplishment thereof to the very full, upon the cross. VI The person that suffered was the son of God himself: concerning whom in this case two questions must be resolved. The first, how it can stand with God's justice, to lay punishment upon the most righteous man that ever was, and that for grievous sinners: considering that tyrants themselves will not do so. Answer. In the passion, Christ must not be considered as a private person: for than it could not stand with equity that he should be plagued and punished for our offences; Heb. 7.22. but as one in the eternal counsel of God set apart to be a public surety or pledge for us, to suffer and perform those things which we in our own persons should have suffered and performed. For this cause God the father is said to give his son unto us, joh. 3.16. & 30.5. and the son again to give his life for his friends. The second question is, how by the short & temporary death of the son of God, any man can possibly be freed from eternal death & damnation, which is due unto him for the least sin. Answer. When we say that the son of God suffered, it must be understood with distinction of the natures of Christ, not in respect of the Godhead, but in respect of the assumed manhood: yet nevertheless the passion is to be ascribed to the whole person of Christ God and man: and from the dignity of the person which suffered, ariseth the dignity and excellency of the passion, whereby it is made in value and price, to countervail everlasting damnation. For when as the son of God suffered the curse for a short time, it is more than if all men and angels had suffered the same for ever. VII. The difference of the passion of Christ, and the sufferings of Martyrs: and that stands in two things. First Christ's passion was a curse or punishment; the sufferings of the Martyrs are no curses, but either chastisements or trials. Secondly, the passion of Christ is meritorious for us even before God, because he became our Mediator and surety in the covenant of grace, but the sufferings of martyrs or not of value to merit for us at God's hand, because in suffering they were but private men, and therefore they nothing appertain to us. By this it appears, that the Treasury of the Church of Rome which is as it were a common chest, containing the overplus of the merits of Saints, mingled with the merits of Christ, kept and disposed by the Pope himself, is nothing else but a senseless dotage of man's brain. And whereas they say that Christ by his death did merit that Saints might merit both for themselves and others, it is as much as if they should say, the son of God became jesus, to make every one of us jesus. And it is a manifest untruth which they say. For the very manhood of Christ considered apart from the Godhead, cannot merit properly: considering whatsoever it is, hath, or doth; it is, hath, and doth the same, wholly and only by grace: whereas therefore Christ meriteth for us, it is by reason he is both God and man in one person. For this cause it is not possible that one mere man should merit for an other. Lud. Gran. The use of the passion followeth. It is the manner of Friars and jesuits in the Church of Rome to use the consideration of the passion of Christ, as a means to stir up compassion in themselves, partly towards Christ, who suffered grievous torments, and partly towards the virgin Marie, who for the torments of her dear son was exceedingly troubled: and withal to kindle in their hearts an indignation towards the jews, that put Christ to death. But indeed this kind of use is mere human, and may in like manner be made by reading of any human history. But the proper and the special use of the passion in deed is this: First of all we must set it before our eyes as a looking glass, in which we may clearly behold the horribleness of our sins, that could not be pardoned without the passion of the son of God: and the unspeakable love of Christ, that died for us, and therefore loved his own enemies more than his own self: and lastly our endless peace with God and happiness; in that, considering the person of our redeemer, who suffered the pangs of hell, we may after a sort find our paradise even in the midst of hell. Secondly, the meditation of Christ's passion serves as a most worthy means to begin and to confirm grace, specially when it is mingled with faith; and that t●o ways: For first, it serves to breed in our hearts a godly sorrow for our sins past, when we do seriously with ourselves consider, that our own sins were the cause of all the pains and sorrows and calamities which he suffered in life and death. When any man had sinned under the Law, he brought unto the temple or tabernacle some kind of beast for an offering, according as he was prescribed, Lev. 4.4, 29. laying his hand upon the head of it, and afterward slaying it before the Lord. Now by the ceremony of laying on the hand, he testified that he for his part had deserved death, and not the beast; and that it being slain and sacrificed, was a sign unto him of the sacrifice of Christ offered upon the cross for his sins. And hereby we are taught, that so oft as we remember the passion of Christ, we should lay our hands as it were upon our own heads, utterly accusing and condemning ourselves, evermore keeping this in heart, that Christ suffered not for himself, but for our offences, which were the proper cause of all his woe and misery. And as Christ's passion was grievous and bitter unto him, so should our sins likewise be grievous and bitter unto us: let us always remember this; otherwise we shall never reap any sound benefit by the passion of Christ. Again, the passion of Christ is a notable means to stir up in our hearts a purpose and a care to reform ourselves, and live in holiness and newness of life; on this manner: Hath the Son of God so mercifully dealt with me, as to suffer the curse of the whole law for my manifold iniquities, and to deliver me from just and deserved damnation? yea, no doubt, he hath, I am resolved of it: if I should go on in mine old course, I should be the most ungrateful of all creatures to this my loving Saviour: I will therefore by his grace return, and reform my life. And in this very point of reformation, the passion of Christ is set before us as a most lively pattern and example to follow. For as much (saith Saint Peter) as Christ hath suffered for us in the flesh, 1. Pet. 4.1. arm yourselves likewise with the same mind, which is, that he which hath suffered in the flesh, hath ceased from sin. Where he teacheth, that there must be in us a spiritual passion answerable to the passion of Christ. For as his enemies did lad him with miseries even to the death of the cross; so should we lad our own flesh, that is, the corruption of our natures, with all such means as may subdue and weaken, crucify and kill it. To the doing of this, three things especially are required. First, we must consider that the corruption of our rebellious natures is like the great and mighty Goliath, and the grace of God which we have received like young and little David: and therefore if we desire that grace should prevail against corruption, we must disarm the strong man, and strip him of all his weapons: which is done, by giving all the members of our bodies to be instruments of the service of God in righteousness and holiness. Secondly, we must endeavour to keep in the corruption of nature as it were choking and smothering at the heart; that by it neither the world nor the devil prevail against us. And this must be done by having a narrow regard unto all the powers and faculties of body and soul, setting a watch before our eyes, ears, lips, and all other parts of the body, that are in any action the instruments of the soul; Psal. 119.37. job 31.1. Prov. 4.23. and above all, as Solomon saith, by countergarding the heart with all diligence. By the outward senses of the body, as through open windows the devil creeps into the heart; and therefore our duty is, to stop all such ways of entrance. Thirdly, when original corruption gins to rebel either in the mind, will, or any of the affections, then must we draw out the sword of the spirit which is the word of God, and encounter with that hideous giant, laying load upon him by the judgements and threatenings of the law, & as it were beating him down with clubs, as Paul speaketh. 1. Cor. 9.17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. And if it fall out that concupiscence begin to conceive and bring forth any sin, we must cruise it in the head, & dash it against the ground, as a bird in the shell, lest it grow up to our utter confusion. These are the duties which we should learn by the passion of Christ. But lamentable are our days, in which all for the most part goes contrary: for commonly men are so far from killing and subduing the rebellion of the natural concupiscence, that all their study and care is, how they may feeede and cherish it, and make it stronger than the mighty Goliath. But let us for our parts be conformable to Christ in his passion, suffering in our flesh as he suffered in body and soul for us. And let us daily more and more by the hand of faith apprehend and apply to our hearts and consciences the passion of Christ, that it may as a fretting corasive eat out the poison of our sinful natures and to consume it. Now followeth the second point concerning the passion of Christ, which is under whom he suffered, namely under Pontius Pilate. And Christ may be said to suffer under him in two respects. First, because he was then the Precedent of jury. Luk. 3.1. For a little before the birth of Christ the kingdom of the jews was taken away by the Roman Emperor, and reduced into a Province, & Pontius Pilate was placed over the jews, not as king, but as the Roman emperors deputy. And this circumstance is noted in the history of the Gospel, & here specified in the Creed, to show that the Messiah was exhibited in the time foretold by the Prophets. Gen. 49.10. jacob foretold that Shilo must be borne after the sceptre is removed from juda. Isaiah saith, Isa. 11.1. that the family of Ishai shall be worn as it were to the root before Christ as a branch shall spring out of it. Again, Christ suffered under Pontius Pilate as he was a judge: whereby we are given to understand of a wonder, namely that Christ the son of God, King of heaven and earth, was arraigned at the bar of an earthly judge, & there condemned. For thus much the words in meaning import, that Pontius Pilate sat as judge on Christ, to examine him, to arraign him, and give sentence against him. Wherefore before we come to speak of the degrees of the passion of Christ, we must needs entreat of his arraignment upon earth. In handling whereof we must generally consider these points. First, that when he was arraigned before Pilate he was not as a private man, but as a pledge and surety, Hebr. 7.22. that stood in the place and stead of us miserable sinners, as the Prophet Jsaiah saith, He bore our infirmities, Isa. 52.4. and carried our sorrows: and withal in him was mankind arraigned before God. Secondly, this arraignment was made not privately in a corner, but openly in the public court, and that in a great feast of the jews, as it were in the hearing of the whole world. Thirdly, though Pilate in citing, examinig, and condemning Christ, intended not to work any part of man's redemption, yet was this wholly set down in the counsel & good pleasure of God, in whose room Pilate sat, and whose judgement he exercised. 2. Chr. 19.6. The general use of Christ's arraignment, is twofold. First, it is a terror to all impenitent sinners: for there is no freedom or protection from the judgement of God, but by the arraignment of Christ: and therefore such as in this life receive him not by faith, must at the end of this world be brought out to the most terrible bar of ●he last judgement, there to be arraigned before the King of heaven and earth. And mark the equity hereof. Christ himself could not have been our Saviour and redeemer, unless he had been brought out to the bar of an earthly judge, and arraigned as a guilty malefactor: and therefore there is no man upon earth that lives and dies out of Christ, but he must whether he will or no, hold up his hand at the bar of the great judge of all mankind, where he shall see hell underneath him burning red hot, and opening itself wide to swallow him up: and on the right hand of God standing all the Prophets, Apostles, and Saints of God giving judgement against him: on the left hand, the devil and all his angels accusing him; and within him a guilty conscience condemning him. And thus shall be one day the arraignment of all those persons, that with full purpose of heart cleave not to Christ: and yet, alas, huge and infinite is the number of those which make more account of transitory and earthly matters, even of their pigs with the Gaderens, then of him and his benefits: but such should rather be pitied then despised of us, considering their estate is such, that every day they are going as traitors pinioned to their own judgement, that they may go thence to eternal execution. Secondly, Christ's arraignment is a comfort to the godly. For he was arraigned before Pilate, that all such as truly believe in him, might not be arraigned before God at the day of the last judgement: he was accused before an earthly judge, that they might be cleared and excused before the heavenly judge: lastly he was here condemned on earth, that we might receive the sentence of absolution and be eternally saved in heaven. The arraignment of Christ hath three parts: his apprehension, his accusation, his condemnation. In the apprehension, we must consider two things: the dealing of Christ, and the dealing of judas and the jews. The dealing and proceeding of Christ was this, when he saw that the time of his apprehension and death was near, he solemnly prepared himself thereto. And his example must teach every one of us, who know not the shortness of our days, every hour to prepare ourselves against the day of death, that then we may be found ready of the Lord. What? shall the Son of God himself make preparation to his own death, and shall not we most miserable sinners do the same, who stand in need of a thousand preparations more than he? wherefore let us continually think with our selves that every present day is the last day of our life, that so we may address ourselves to death again the next day. The first thing which Christ doth in this preparation, is to make choice of the place, in which he was to be apprehended, as will appear by conferring the Evangelists together. S. Matthew saith, he went to the place called Gethsemane: Mat. 26.36. Luc. 22.39. S. Luke saith, he went to the mount of Olives as he was accustomed. And that we might not imagine that Christ did this that he might escape and hide himself from the jews, joh. 18.2. S. john saith, that judas which betrayed him knew the place, because oftentimes he resorted thither with his disciples: whereas if he had feared apprehension he would have rather gone aside to some other secret and unwonted place. This than is the first point to be considered, that Christ knowing the time of his own death to be at hand, doth willingly of his own accord resort to such a place in which his enemies in all likelihood might easily find him, and have fit opportunity to attach him. For if he should have still remained in jerusalem, the Scribes & pharisees durst not have enterprised his apprehension, because of the people whom they feared: but out of the city in the garden all occasion of fear is cut off. By this it is manifest, that Christ yielded himself to death willingly, and not of constraint: and unless his sufferings had been voluntary on his part, they could never have been a satisfaction to God's justice for our sins. Here a question offereth itself to be considered, whether a man may lawfully fly in danger and persecution, seeing Christ himself doth not. Answ. When good means of flying and just occasion is offered, it is lawful to fly. When the jews sought to kill Paul at Damascus, the disciples took him by night, and put him through the wall and let him down in a basket to escape their hands. When Moses was called by God to deliver the Israelites, after he had slain the Egyptian, and the fact was known, and Pharaoh sought to kill him for it, he fled to the land of Madian. And our Saviour Christ sundry times when he was to be stoned, and otherways hurt by the jews, withdrew himself from among them. It is lawful then to fly in persecution, these caveats observed. First, if a man find not himself sufficiently strengthened to bear the cross. Secondly, his departure must be agreeable to the general calling of a Christian, serving to the glory of God and the good of his brethren, and the hurt of none. Thirdly, there must be freedom at the least for a time from the bond of a man's particular calling. If he be a magistrate, he must be freed from ruling, if a minister, from preaching and teaching, otherways he may not fly. And in this respect Christ, who did withdraw himself at other times, would not fly at this time; because the hour of his suffering was come, joh. 18.4. wherein he intended most willingly to submit himself to the good pleasure and will of his father. The second part of the preparation, is the prayer which Christ made unto his father in the garden. And herein his example doth teach us earnestly to pray unto God against the danger of imminent death, and the temptations which are to come. And if Christ, who was without sin, and had the spirit above measure had need to pray, then much more have we need to be watchful in all kind of prayers, who are laden with the burden of sin, and compassed about with manifold impediments and dangerous enemies. In this prayer sundry points worthy our marking are to be considered. The first, who prayed? Ans. Christ the Son of God: but still we must remember the distinction of natures and of their operations in one and the same Christ; he prayeth not in his Godhead, but according to his manhood. The second is, for whom he prayeth? Ans. Some have thought that this & all other his prayers were made for his mystical body the Church; but the truth is, he now prays for himself, yet not as he was God, for the godhead feels no want, but as he was a man abased to the form of a servant: & that for two causes. First, in that he was a man, he was a creature, and in that respect was to perform homage to God the Creator. Secondly, as he was man, he put on the infirmities of our nature, and thereupon prayed that he might have strength and power in his manhood to support him in bearing the whole brunt of the passion to come. The third point is, to whom he prayed? Answer. To the father: neither must this trouble us, as though Christ in praying to the father, should pray to himself, because he is one and the same God with him. For though in essence they admit no distinction, yet in person o● in the proper manner of subsisting they do. The father is one person, the Son an other: therefore as the father saying from heaven, This is my well-beloved Son, In personis non est aliud & aliud: est tamen alius & alius. spoke not to himself, but to the Son: so again the Son when he prayeth, he prays not to himself, but to the father. The fourth point, what was the particular cause of his prayer. Answ. His agony in which his soul was heavy unto death; not because he feared bodily death, but because the malediction of the Law, even the very heat of the fury & indignation of God was powered forth upon him, wherewith he was affected and troubled, as if he had been defiled with the sins of the whole world. And this appears, 1. by the words whereby the Evangelists express the agony of Christ, which signify exceeding great sorrow and grief: 2. by his doleful complaint to his disciples in the garden, Mat. 26.37. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. My soul is heavy unto the death: 3. by his fervent prayer thrice repeated, full of doleful passions: 4. by the coming of an Angel to comfort him: 5. by his bloody sweat, the like whereof was never heard. And herein lies the difference between Christ's agony, & the death of martyrs: he put on the guilt of all our sins, they in death are freed from the same: he was left to himself void of comfort, they in the midst of their afflictions feel the unspeakable comfort of the holy Ghost: & therefore we need not marvel why Christ should pray against death, which nevertheless his members have received & borne most joyfully. Again, this most bitter agony of Christ is the ground of all our rejoicing, and the cause why Paul bids all the faithful in the person of the Philippians, to rejoice always in the Lord, & again to rejoice. And here we are further taught, that when we are plunged into a sea of most grievous afflictions, & overwhelmed with the gulfs of most dreadful temptations, even then, than I say, we should not be discouraged, but lift up our hearts by fervent prayer to God. Thus did Christ when in the garden he was drinking the cup of the wrath of God and sucking up the very dregs of it: and David saith, that out of the deeps he called of the name of the Lord and was heard. Psal. 503.1. The fifth point, what is the matter and form of this prayer. Answer. Christ prays to be delivered from the death and passion which was to come, saying on this manner, Father, let this cup pass from me: yet with two clauses added thereto, If it be possible, and, Not my will, but thy will be done. But it may be demanded, how it could be that Christ knowing that it was his Father's will and counsel that he should suffer death for man, and also coming into the world for that end, should make such a request to his Father without sin. Answer. The request proceeds only of a weakness or infirmity in Christ's manhood without sin, which appeareth thus. We must still consider that when he made this prayer to his father, the whole wrath of God and the very dolours and pangs of hell seized upon him: whereby the senses and powers of his mind were astonished, and wholly bend to relieve nature in this agony. For as when the heart is smitten with grief, all the blood in the body flows unto it to comfort it: so when Christ was in this astonishment, the understanding and memory, and all the parts of his human nature (as it were for a time suspending their own proper actions) concurred to sustain and support the spirit and life of Christ, as much as possibly might be. Now Christ being in the midst of this perplexed estate, prayeth on this manner, Father if it be possible let this cup pass. And these words proceed not from any sin or disobedience to his Father's will, but only from a mere perturbation of mind, caused only by an outward means, namely the apprehension of God's anger; which neither blinded his understanding nor took away his memory so as he forgot his father's will, but only stopped and stayed the act of reasoning and remembering for a little time: even as in the most perfect clock that is the motion may be stayed by the air, or by a man's hand, or by some outward cause without any defect or breach made in any part of it. It may be objected that Christ's will is flat contrary to the will of his father. Answer. Christ's will as he is man and the will of the father in this agony, were not contrary, but only diverse, and that without any contradiction or contrariety. Now a man may will a diverse thing from that which God willeth, and that without sin. Paul desired to preach the word of God in Asia and Bythinia, Act. 16.6, 7. but he was hindered by the spirit. For all this, there is no contrariety between Paul and the spirit of God; but in the show of discord great consent. For that which Paul willeth well, the spirit of God willeth not, by a better will: though the reason hereof be secret, and the reason of Paul's will manifest. Again the minister in charity reputing the whole congregation to be elect, in holy manner seeketh and willeth the salvation of every one, which nevertheless the Lord in his eternal counsel willeth not. Now between both these wills there may be and is a difference without contrariety. For one good thing as it is good may differ from another; but it can not be contrary to it. It may further be alleged, that in this prayer there seems to be a combat and fight in the mind, will, and affections of Christ, and therefore sin. Answer. There are three kind of combats: the one between reason and appetite, and this fight is always sinful, and was not in Christ: the second is between the flesh and the spirit, and this may be in God's child who is but in part regenerate; but it did not befall Christ who was perfectly holy. The third is a combat of diverse desires, upon sundry respects drawing a man too and fro. This may be in man's nature without fault: and was in Christ, in whom the desire of doing his Fathers will striving and struggling with another desire, whereby nature seeks to preserve itself, caused him to pray in this manner. The sixth point is, in what manner Christ prayed. Answer. He prayed to his Father partly kneeling, partly lying on his face, and that with strong cries and tears, sweeting water and blood: and all this he did for our sins. Here then behold the agony of Christ as a clear crystal, in which we may fully see the exceeding greatness of our sins, as also the hardness of our hearts. We go vaunting with our heads to heaven as though it were nothing to sin against God, whereas the horror of the wrath of God for our rebellions, brought down even the son of God himself and laid him groveling upon the earth. And we can not so much almost as shed one tear for our iniquities, whereas he sweats blood for us. Oh let us therefore learn to abase ourselves and to carry about us contrite and bleeding hearts, and be confounded in ourselves for our sins past. The last point is the event of the prayer, in that it was heard, as the author of the Hebrews saith, Christ jesus in the days of his flesh, did offer up unto his father prayers, Heb. 5.7. and supplications, with strong cries and tears, unto him that was able to save him: and was also heard in that thing which he feared. But some will say, how was Christ heard, seeing he suffered death and bare the pangs of hell, and the full wrath of God; if he had been heard he should have been delivered from all this? Ans. We must know that God hears our prayers two ways. I. when he directly grants our request. II. when knowing what is good for us, he gives not us our requests directly, but a thing answerable thereunto. And thus was Christ heard: for he was not delivered from suffering: but yet he had strength and power given him, whereby his manhood was made able to bear the brunt of God's wrath. And in the same manner God heareth the prayers of his servants upon earth. Paul prayed to be delivered from the Angel Satan that buffeted him: but the Lord answered that it must not so be, because his grace whereby he was enabled to resist his temptation was sufficient: & Paul finding the fruit of his prayers on this manner, 2. Cor. 12, 9 protests hereupon that he will rejoice in his infirmities. Others pray for temporal blessings, as health, life, liberty, etc. which notwithstanding God holds back, and gives in stead thereof spiritual graces, patience, faith, contentation of mind. Augustine saith, God hears not our prayers always according to our wills and desires, Audit ad salutem. non audit ad voluntatem. but according as the things asked shall be for our salvation. He is like the Physician, who goes on to launch the wound and hears not the patiented though he cry never so, till the cure be ended. Now followeth the second thing to be considered in Christ's apprehension, namely the dealing of the jews: wherein we must consider four things. I. how they consult together concerning Christ's apprehension. II. how they came to the place and met him. III. how they laid hands on him. FOUR how they bond him and took him away. For the first: before they enterprised this matter, they did wisely and warily lay their heads together, to consult of the time and place: and also of the manner of apprehending him. So S. Matthew saith, There assembled together the chief priests, and the scribes, and the elders of the people into the hall of the chief priest called Caiphas: Mat. 26.3, 4, 5. and consulted how they might take jesus by subtlety. Whence we learn two good instructions. First, the jews having a quarrel against Christ, could never be at rest till they had his blood: and therefore they consult how they might take him: but God did so order the matter, and dispose of their purposes and consultations, that hereby he did both confound them and their nation. For by reason of this heinous sin against Christ, came the just wrath of God upon them, and so remaineth unto this day. Whereby we see, that those which will be wise without the direction of God's word, and against Christ, the Lord will overthrow them in their own wisdom. And thus it was with Achitophel, who for wisdom was as the oracle of God: yet because he rebelled against the Lords anointed, God confounded him in his own wisdom. For when his counsel which he gave against David was not followed, 2. Sam. 17.23. he thought himself despised as the text saith, and saddled his Ass, and arose and went home into his city, and put his household in order, and hanged himself, wherein he showed himself more senseless than a bruit beast. And in our days the Leaguers that have bound themselves by oath to root out the Church of God; by his most wonderful providence turn their swords against themselves and destroy each other. Therefore if we will be wise, we must learn to be wise in Christ; for else our counsel will be our own confusion. Secondly, hence we learn, that if men will live in their stubbornness and rebellion against Christ, the Lord will so carry and order those men, or that people, that they shallbe the causes of their own perdition. This we may plainly see in the example of these jews: for they evermore envied Christ, and now they go on to take counsel against him: but God so disposed of it, that thereby they brought destruction upon themselves & their country. This must teach thee to take heed how thou livest in thy sins: for if thou do so, the Lord hath many ways to work thy confusion: as, thy conscience to condemn thee; thy friends to forsake thee; the devil & his angels to torment & molest thee; & his creatures to annoy thee. Yea, the Lord can leave all these, and make thine own self to be the direct means of working thine own confusion, both in body and soul eternally: and that even then, when thou art most wary and wise in thine own behalf: & this is the reward of all those that walk on in their evil ways. Having consulted, in the next place they come to the garden, where Christ was to be apprehended. And here we are to consider who they were that came, namely the Scribes, and Pharisees, the high priests, and their servants; Mat. 26.47. joh. 18.3. a band of soldiers, and the servants of Pontius Pilate, and the Elders of the jews: all which came with one consent to the place where Christ was, that they might attach him. Where we may learn a good lesson that all sorts of wicked men disagreeing among themselves, can agree against Christ. The Scribes and Pharisees were two contrary sects, and at discord one with another in matters of religion: and judas was one of Christ's disciples: the Elders differed from them all: the soldiers were Gentiles: all these were at variance among themselves, and could not one brook another. So also we read that Herode and Pontius Pilate were not friends: but at the same time when Christ was apprehended, Pilate sent him to Herode, and they were made friends. Luk. 25.12. Now as these wicked men did all conspire against Christ: so do the wicked ones of this world in all countries and kingdoms band themselves against the Church of Christ at this day. And howsoever such be at discord among themselves, yet they do all join hand in hand to persecute Christ in his members. And the reason is plain; because Christ and his religion is as flat opposite to the corrupt disposition of all men, as light is to darkness. Again, whereas we see so many sorts of men so amiably consenting to take Christ: we may note how all men naturally do hate and abhor him, and his religion. And look as then it was with Christ, so hath it been with all his members, and will be to the end of the world. They are accounted as the offscouring of the world, men not worthy to live on the face of the earth: as Christ told his disciples, Mat. 24.9. saying, Ye shall be hated of all nations for my name's sake. Let us also mark how all these came furnished to apprehend Christ: the text saith, they came with clubs & staves as unto a thief. Luk. 22.52. All the whole nation of the jews knew right well that Christ was no man of violence, but meek and humble: and yet they came armed to apprehend him; as though he had been some mighty potentate that would not have been apprehended, but have resisted them. Where we do see the property of an evil conscience, which is to fear where there is no cause at all. This causeth some to be afraid of their own shadows: & if they see but a worm peep out of the ground, they are at their wit's end: Prov. 28.1. and as Solomon saith, The wicked flee when none pursueth them. After that they are now come to Christ, we are to consider two things in their meeting. I. Christ's communication with them. II. The treason of judas. Concerning their conference, john. 18.4, 5, 6. it is said, jesus knowing all things that should come unto him, went forth, and said unto them, Whom seek ye? they answered him, jesus of Nazareth: jesus answered, I am he. Now so soon as he had said, I am he, the stoutest of them fell to the ground, as being astonished at the majesty of his word. Where note, that the word of God is a word of power. The same power was in his word, when he raised up Lazarus: for when he had eye in the grave, & had entered into some degrees of corruption, he did no more but said, Lazarus, come forth: & he that was dead came forth. And hence we may also mark what a wonderful might and power is in the word preached: for it is the very word of Christ, and therefore being preached by his ministers lawfully called by him thereunto; hath the same power & force in it which Christ himself showed when he spoke on earth. It is the savour of life unto life to save those that hear it: or the savour of death unto death. It is like to a vapour or perfume in the air, 2. Cor. 2.16. which in some men's nosthrilles is savoury and pleasant, and doth revive them: and others it striketh stark dead. And therefore every one that either now, or heretofore hath heard this word preached, shall find it to be unto them either a word of power to save their souls, or through their corruption the ministery of death and condemnation. Again, if a word spoken by him, being in a base and low estate, be able to overthrow his enemies, then at the last day when he shall come in his glory, and power, and majesty to judge both the quick and the dead; what power shall his words have▪ Go you cursed of my father into everlasting fire which was prepared for the devil & his angels? The consideration of this, that the word of Christ shall even be as powerful at that day, must be a motive to every one of us to cause us to come unto Christ: and while we have time in these days of grace and mercy, to seek to be reconciled unto him for all our sins, lest at the last day we hear that dreadful voice of Christ sounding against us, Go ye cursed into everlasting fire, etc. And thus much for the communication. Now followeth judas his treason: wherein we are to observe these things. I. the qualities and conditions of the man that did the treason. He was by calling a disciple chosen to be an Apostle which is the chiefest in Ecclesiastical callings: & among the Disciples he was in some account; because he was as it were a steward in Christ's family, and bore the bag: but yet he was a traitor, and did more against Christ then all the jews did. For he brought them to the place where they might apprehend him: and when they were come, did point him out unto them, and delivered him into their hands: nay he gave them a sign and token saying, Mar. 14.44. Whom I kiss, he it is: take him and lead him away warily. Here we see the cause why Christ called judas a Devil: for he said, Have I not chosen you twelve, and one of you is a devil. joh. 6▪ 70. He became to be a devil and a traitor by nourishing a wicked and a covetous heart. And here we are taught that the ministers of Christ, if they make no conscience of sin, by the just judgement of God do prove devils incarnate: this example of judas doth manifest the same: and the reason is plain, for the more knowledge a man hath, the more wicked he is if he want grace. They are like in this case unto a man that hath meat & drink enough, but no stomach to digest it: and so the more he eateth, the more it turneth to his hurt. This I speak not to deface the callings of ministers; but that those which preach God's word, should not do it with impenitent hearts, living in their own sins. For it is a fearful thing for a man to speak unto the people of the pardon of their sins, and yet himself not to apprehend the same by faith. A lump of wax if you keep it from heat, or from the fire, it keeps his own form still, but if it be held to the fire, it melts and runs abroad: jer. 15.19. so ministers who by reason of their callings come near God, if they be lumps of iniquity & live in their sins, they shall find that the corruptions of their hearts will melt abroad as wax at the fire. And therefore every one that is designed to this calling, Isai. 6.5. Act▪ 20.28. must first purge himself of his own sins, or else God's judgements will fall on him, as they did on judas that betrayed Christ. Secondly let us consider what moved judas to betray his master; namely, the desire of wealth and gain: & this covetousness, which is an insatiable desire of money, 1. Tim. 6. 1●. is the root of all sin: not that all sins came of it, but because where it is, there all other sins are preserved, and do get strength. The desire of thirty pieces of silver caused judas to make an agreement with the jews, and to betray his master. But some will say this practice of judas is strange, and no man that liveth now would do the like for any money. Answer, judas is dead indeed, but his practice is yet alive: for in the high and weighty calling of the ministry, he that hath charge of souls, and either cannot teach and feed his flock, or else will not, though he betray not Christ, yet he betrays the members of Christ unto the devil. If a nurse should take a man's child to bring up, and yet never give it milk, insomuch that the child dieth for hunger: is not she the murderer of it? yes verily. And so it is with him that taketh upon him the charge of God's people, and never feeds them with the milk of God's word, or else so seldom that their souls do famish: he is the murderer of them, and hath betrayed them into the hands of their enemy: and shall be condemned for them as a traitor unto God unless he repent. Besides, those that live by traffic in buying and selling, make gain by lying, swearing, and breaking the Lords Sabaoth: they are also judasses: for they chop away their souls with the devil for a little gain. And more lamentable is their case, because it is hard to find one of an hundred in the world that makes conscience of a lie, or of any bad dealing; if any gain at all may come thereby. Men use to cry out on judas for betraying Christ: and well, yet they themselves for a little worldly pelf betray their own souls. And if such would not be counted judasses, they must leave off to sin & keep a good conscience in God's worship, & the works of their callings. Thirdly, let us note what course judas took in betraying Christ: he was very submiss, saying, Hail, Master, and kissed him. Why did he so? Herein he played the most palpable hypocrite: for having gotten a piece of money, he thought that neither Christ, nor any of his fellow disciples should have known of it (though Christ knew it well enough) & therefore he comes in this manner to him thinking that he would have conveyed himself from amongst them at the very pinch, as he had done often times before. And this practice also of judas is common in the world: judas an enemy unto Christ speaks him fair, and salutes him, and so do most of our secure and drowsy protestāns in England: they will salute Christ, both by hearing his word and receiving his sacraments: and as the prophet saith, they honour god with their lips but their hearts are far from him. We may see daily experience of this: every man will say, Lord, Lord, but in there lives & conversations, few there be that deny him not; both in the duties which they own unto god: and also towards there brethren. Many will come to hear gods word because they are compelled by the magistrates laws: but when they are come they worship not god in therehearts: which is plainly seen by the breach of gods holy Sabbath in every place: and that they make more account of a mess of pottage with Esau, then of their birth right: and of 30 pieces of silver than of Christ▪ The 3 point to be handled in Christ's apprehension is that they lay hand on him: wherein we must consider 2 things. I. the resistance made by Christ's disciples. II. their flight. For the first, Christ's disciples resisted, and principally Peter drawing his sword, struck one of the high priests servants, & cut off his ear. This fact our saviour Christ reproves: & that for these causes. Mat. 20.50. I. because his disciples were private men: & they that came to apprehend him were magistrates Secondly, he was to work the work of man's redemption: now Peter by this did what he could to hinder him. And from this practice of Peter we may learn, that nothing in the world is so hard unto a man, as to take up his cross & follow Christ. One would think it should be a hard matter for him to encounter with enemies, especially they being stronger than he: but Peter stoutly resisting makes nothing of it: whereas a little before when Christ told him & the rest concerning his passion they were so heavy with grief that they could not hold up there heads: so hard a thing it is to bear the cross: and for this cause afterward when Christ reproved him for striking, both he & all the rest of the disciples fled away. Secondly Peter in all men's reason was to be commended, because he struck in the defence of his master: but Christ reproves him for it. Whence we learn, that if a man be zealous for Christ: he must be zealous within the compass of his calling: and not be zealous first, & then look for a calling, but first look for a calling & then be zealous. which thing if Peter had marked he had not dealt so rashly: for being without the compass of his calling he could not but do amiss. Hear it may be demanded, whether Christ and his religion may not be maintained by the sword? I Answer, that the magistrate, which is the vicegerent of the lord, is the keeper of both tables: & therefore is to maintain religion with the sword: and so may put to death both Atheists, which hold there is no god, of which sort there is many in these days: and hertiques, which maliciously maintain, & hold any thing that overthrows religion in the Churches whereof they were members. But some object, that in the parable of the field, the servants are commanded not to pluck up the tars from the wheat, Mat. 13.30. but to suffer both to grow till harvest: and that therefore there must be no separation of heretics, and true christians before the last day of judgement. Answer. The scope of that place is not to forbid the execution of heretics: but it speaks only of the final separation which must be in the end of the world. For there the Master of the family doth signify God himself, and the field, the Church militant spread over the face of the whole earth: & by tars is meant not only heretics; but also all those that are forth of the church: the servants are gods holy Angels, and the harvest is the last judgement. Here further it may be demanded who may use the sword? Answer. That man may use the sword to strike and to kill, into whose hands God putteth the sword. Now God putteth it into the hand first and principally of the public magistrate who when just occasion serves may draw it out. And again into a private man's hand sometime. A private man when he is assailed of his enemy, may take the sword in way of his own defence, and may kill his enemy therewith (if there be no other help) not doing it upon malice, but because he can not otherwise escape, and save his own life: and so for want of a magistrate, he is a magistrate unto himself. In the flight of the disciples we may consider 2. things, the time, and the quality of the persons. The time was at the apprehension of our Lord and Saviour. And this came to pass not without the special providence of God: that it might be known, that Christ had no helper or fellow in the accomplishment of the work of our redemption: & that, whereas we for our sins deserved to be forsaken of all creatures, he being our pledge and surety, might be forsaken for us. As for the quality of the persons that fly, they were the chosen disciples of Christ such as had believed in him, confessed him, and preached in his name. And this serveth to teach us that God will otherwiles forsake his own children and servants and leave them to themselves in some part, that they may feel their wants & miseries, and their weakness in themselves, and by that means be humbled thoroughly, & be touched with an hungering desire after Christ. As a mother sets down her young child & hides herself, suffering it to cry & break the face, not because she hates it, but that she may teach it to depend upon her, & love her: so God giveth grace to his children, & yet again sometime he doth in part withdraw it from them, & then they fail in their duties sundry ways: & this he doth to make them ashamed of themselves, & to cause them to put all their confidence out of themselves in the merits of Christ. The fourth thing to be considered in Christ's apprehension, is their binding of him. In which action of theirs we are to observe first of all the circumstance of time, ●oh. 18.12. when this binding was. When our Saviour Christ had said unto them, I am he, they being astonished fell to the ground: and withal, when Peter had smitten off Malchus ear with his sword, Christ healed the same miraculously. Yet after all this, though they saw his wonderful power both in word and deed, they proceed in malice against him, and lay hands on him, and bind him as a malefactor. In this we note what a fearful sin hardness of heart is: the danger whereof appeareth in this, that if a man be taken with it, there is nothing that can stay or daunt him in his wicked proceed: no not the powerful words and deeds of Christ himself. And indeed among God's judgements there is none more fearful than this: and (how fearful soever it be) it is to be found amongst us in these days. For it is very evident by common experience, that the more men are taught the doctrine of the law, and of the Gospel, the more hard and senseless are their hearts: like unto the stithy: which the more it is beaten upon with the iron hammer, the harder it is. And again, it is hard to find men that sorrow for their sins, and feel the want of Christ: which argueth the exceeding deadness of spirit. And let us be resolved that it is a most terrible judgement of God, the rather to be feared, because it is like a pleasant sleep, into which when a man is fallen, he feels neither pain nor grief. And therefore we for our parts must look unto it with fear & trembling, lest it take such hold of us, that we be passed all hope of recovery. Furthermore, this binding of Christ was prefigured unto us in the sacrifices of the old testament: for the beast that was to be sacrificed, was tied with cords and bound, & so brought to the altar. And whereas Christ is bound, we must not consider him in his own person; but as he standing in our room and stead bears the person of all sinners: and therefore whereas he is thus taken captive by his enemies, to be brought before a mortal judge, there to be arraigned for us: hence we learn two good instructions. First here is a comfort to all the people of god: Christ was bound by his enemies, that they might be unloosed from the bondage of Satan, sin, & their own corruptions (under which they lie bound by nature) and might have free liberty in & by him. Secondly all impenitent sinners are taught hereby to reform and amend their hearts and lives. For what exceeding madness is this, that they by Christ's bonds being set at liberty, will yet live and die in their sins, and take pleasure to lie bound hand and foot under the power of sin & sathan? And indeed this showeth unto us the fearful & dangerous estate of all those that go on still in their sins. For what can they say for themselves at the day of judgement, when as now they have freedom offered and will not accept of it? Thus much of Christ's apprehension: Now followeth the indictment. For they proceed against him judicially, after the custom of the jews. Mat. 26.57. Mar. 14.53. Luk. 22.66. joh. 18.19. Christ's indictment was twofold. One before Caiphas the high priest in the great council at jerusalem; the second before the civil judge Pontius Pilate, as is plainly set forth by all the Evangelists. And Christ's arraignment before Caiphas was a preparation to the second before Pontius Pilate, that the jews might thoroughly proceed against him. In the first we are to consider these points. I. The time in which Christ was indicted. II. the end of his indictment. III. the whole tenor & proceeding thereof. For the first: Christ was indicted early in the morning at the break of the day: for he was apprehended in the night, & with all hast brought into Caiphas his hall, & there they kept him all night: & at the break of the day Caiphas the high priest, & the Elders with the Scribes & Pharisees, held a solemn council against him: & there they had accused him and condemned him before morning, & sent him then to the common hall, as S. Matthew saith, Mat. 27.1, 2. When the morning was come all the chief Priests, & elders of the people took counsel against jesus to put him to death: and lead him away bound, & delivered him to Pontius Pilate. In which action of theirs we are to mark two points. First the diligence of ungodly men & the quickness of their nature to practise sin & wickedness: as it was said of the old jews, their feet run to evil, & they make haste to shed blood. Isai. 59.7. When the Israelites would sacrifice to the golden calf which they had made; Exod. 32.6. it is said, they rose up early in the morning. Hence it appears, that if God leave us to ourselves, we are as ready to practise any mischief as the fire is to burn without delay and with violence. Now the consideration of this must move every one of us to take heed of all occasions & provocations to sin whatsoever they be, that it break not forth any way. Secondly in the circumstance of time of this council, we may mark the rashness of this solemn assembly in judicial proceed: whereas they examine him both of his doctrine, and also of his disciples, omitting such circumstances as should have been used; as the serious examining of witnesses, & the waynig of his contrary answers: for he is taken & brought before the judge & condemned on a sudden▪ now as this was the practice of this council, so on the contrary the common complaint of these times is of the slow dispatch of matters in law, and of the long delay: insomuch that some be almost undone before their suits be ended: whereas judicial proceed were ordained by God, not for men's undoing, but for the maintaining of the common peace, and liberty, and wealth. And therefore justice ought to be dispatched with such speed, as men thereby might be furthered, and not hindered. The end of Christ's indictment was directly to kill him, Mat. 26.59. Mat. 14.55. & to put him to death. Here is no indifferent proceeding to be looked for, but plotting on every hand for the very blood of Christ. Where note, that in the hearts of all wicked men, there is an engrafted hatred of Christ, & as it were bred in the bone: & the same affection they carry to the members of Christ. This hatred is manifested in the first giving of the promise, I will put enmity between thee and the woman, between thy seed and her seed. It appears in the hatred that Cain bore to his brother Abel, Ishmael towards Isaac, Esau towards jacob: & the Gentilens that were without the covenant, towards the Church of god at all times. And to come near to ourselves, this engrafted hatred that is in the heart of the wicked against Christ & his members, is as plentiful & evident as ever it was, even in these our days. For among all men, none are more maligned & hated then those that profess Christ: & for none other cause, but because they profess Christ. And hereupon the very profession of religion is laden with nicknames and reproachful terms by all sorts of men. And thus much of the end and intent of their counsel. The proceeding in judgement stands in these points. I. they examine Christ. II. they bring witnesses against him. III. they adjure him to tell them who he is: of these in order. First, they examine our Saviour Christ of his doctrine suspecting him to be a false prophet: secondly of his disciples, as suspecting him seditiously to raise up a new sect unto himself, to make a faction amongst the jews. Now to this examination let us mark Christ's answer; in which he saith nothing at all concerning his disciples: whereas notwithstanding he might have said, joh. 18.19. that one of them betrayed him, another denied him, and the rest fled away: whereby we note, that it is not our duty at all times, and in all places, to speak of the faults and wants that we know by others. Secondly, the answer which he makes is only concerning his doctrine: whereby the ministers of God and all men else are taught, that being called before their enemies, to give reason of their doctrine: they are (as S. Peter saith) to be always ready to give an account of the hope that is in them. 1. Pet. 3.15. And further we are to consider the wisdom that Christ useth in answering; for he saith nothing of his doctrine in particular, but said, I speak openly to the world, I ever taught in the synagogue, and in the temple whether the jews resorted: joh. 18.19, 20. in secret have I taught nothing: ask them therefore what I said which heard me: Behold, they can tell you what I said. Now the reason why he answereth thus sparingly in general terms is; because their examination served only to entangle him: and out of his words to gather matter of accusation. After whose example we may learn, that being called to make answer of our faith & doctrine before our enemies, we are to do it so, as thereby we do not entangle ourselves; nor give any advantage unto our enemies: and hereof we have a notable example in the Apostle Paul, Act. 23.6. In the words of Christ's answer we must observe 2. things. First that the place where Christ taught was publi●e. Now hence it may be demanded, whether ministers may handle the word of god privately or no? Ans. The state of God's Church is twofold: peaceable, or troublesome. In the time of peace ministers must preach the word publicly: but in time of persecution, for the safety and preservation of the Church of God, they may with good warrant preach privately: and indeed at such times the assemblies of the Church make private places public. Act. 12.12, And hence we learn, that in time of peace, all those that are called to the office of the ministery, must (if it be possible) spend their labour publicly, so as they may do most good. Secondly, whereas Christ saith, he preached in their Synagogues and temple, which at that time were places full of disorder; Math. 21.15. in so much as he called the Temple a den of thieves: and the Scribes and pharisees had corrupted the doctrine of the Law, Matth. 15.3. transgressing the commandments of God by their own traditions: and they taught justification by the works of the Law, as Paul saith, they being ignorant of the righteousness of God, Rom. 10.3. and going about to 'stablish their own righteousness which is by works, have not submitted themselves to the righteousness of God. Besides all this, they were lose and wicked men in their lives and conversations: & therefore Christ commanded the people that they should observe, Matt. 23.2, 3. and do whatsoever the Scribes and pharisees bid them, sitting in Moses chair: but after their works they must not do, because they say and do not. Now although these corruptions & deformities were in the jewish Church, yet our Saviour Christ severed not from it, but came and preached both in their temple & Synagogues, where these seducers and false teachers were. And hence we gather, that the practice of all those men in our Church, which separate themselves from all assemblies for the wants thereof, holding that our Church is no Church, that the grace which is wrought by the preaching of the word among us is nothing else but a satanical illusion; that our Sacraments are no Sacraments, I say, this their practice is condemned by our Saviour Christ's conversing among the jews. For if Christ should have followed their opinion, he ought to have fled from amongst the jews, and not so much as once to have come into the temple, or taught in their Synagogues; but contrariwise he joined himself with them: and therefore we can not in good conscience disjoin ourselves from the Church of England. The second thing to be observed in Christ's answer is, that he refers Caiphas to the judgement of his hearers, being resolved of the truth of his own doctrine, though sundry of them were his utter enemies. Behold then a good example for all the ministers of God's word to follow; teaching them to deliver God's word so purely and sincerely, that if they be called into question about the same, they may be bold to appeal to the consciences of their hearers, although they be wicked men. Now after this answer, one of the servants of Caiphas smites Christ with a rod: in whom the saying is verified, joh. 18.22. Like master, like servant, that is, if the master be wicked, servants commonly will be wicked also: if the master be an enemy to Christ, his servant will be Christ's enemy also. And this is the cause why there are so many lewd prentices and servants, because there are so many lewd masters. Many masters complain of servants now adays; but there is more cause why they should complain of themselves: for usually servants will not become obedient to their masters, till their masters first become obedient unto Christ: therefore let masters learn to obey God, and then their servants will obey them also. Further, Christ being smitten, makes this answer: If I have evil spoken, bear witness of the evil: but if I have well spoken, why smitest thou me? making complaint of an injury done unto him. Now hereupon scoffing julian the apostata saith, Christ keeps not his own laws, but goeth against his own precept; when as he said, If one strike thee on the one cheek, Math. 5. ●9. turn to him the other also. But we must know, that in these words Christ's meaning is, that a man must rather suffer a double wrong, then seek a private revenge. And before Christ spoke in his own defence, which a man may lawfully do, and not seek any revenge: for it is one thing to defend his own cause, and an other to seek revenge. Now follows the second point in their proceeding, which is, the producing of false witnesses against him; as S. Matthew saith, Mat▪ 26.60. The whole Council sought false witness against him, and though many came, yet found they none: for they could not agree together, because they alleged false things against him, which they could not prove. And thus the members of Christ have often such enemies as make no bones shamefully to avouch that against them, which they can not be able to justify. The ten persecutions which were in the first 300. years after Christ, Tertul. Apol. contra gent. arose oftentimes of shameless reports that men gave out, which said that Christians lived of man's flesh: & therefore slew their own children: 2. that they lived on rawe-flesh, 3. that they committed incest one with another in their assemblies: 4. that they worshipped the head of an ass: 5. that they worshipped the sun & moon: 6. that they were traitors, & sought to undermine the Roman Empire: & lastly, wheresoever was thunder or earthquakes, seditions or tumults, or any disquietness or trouble, Christians were accused as the authors thereof. Such enemies have they had in all ages: and in these our days the same is practised, & will be to the world's end. Now when the first witnesses could not agree among themselves, than two other false witnesses came forth, which avouched that Christ said, I will destroy this temple made with hands, & within three days will build another made without hands. Mark. 14.38. Indeed Christ said some such words: for saith he, Destroy this temple, and within three days I will build it up again. joh. 2.16. vers. 21. But he spoke this of the temple of his body: whereas they maliciously did interpret him to have spoken of the temple in jerusalem. And again they change the words, for Christ said, Destroy this temple, etc. but these witnesses say he said, I will destroy this temple made with hands, etc. And thus they change both words and meaning: and therefore the holy Ghost calleth them false witnesses. By this we must be advertised to take heed how we report men's words: for if we change the meaning, though in part we retain the words, we may soon become slanderers and false witnesses: and as this duty must be performed towards all men, so especially towards the ministers of the Gospel: & the neglect of this duty procureth many slanderers to them in this our Church: whereof indeed the reporters are the cause, and not the ministers themselves. Now at this false accusation Christ was silent, so as Caiphas asked him why he answered nothing. Herein we are to consider many things: I. why Christ was silent. The causes be two: first he was to show himself a pattern of true humility and patience, therefore even then would he be silent when he was most falsely accused of his adversaries. Secondly he is silent; that standing before the judge to be condemned, the sentence might proceed against him, and he might suffer the death appointed, which was due unto us, and so become our redeemer. And in Christ's example we must note, that it is a special duty to know when to speak, and when to be silent. The ordering of the tongue is a rare gift, and few attain unto it. Some will peradventure ask what rule we have to direct us herein? Answer. The general rule for the ordering of the tongue, is the law of God▪ We are commanded to seek the glory of God in the first table; and in the second the good of our neighbour: when thy speech therefore will serve either for God's glory, or the good of thy neighbour, than thou must speak: if it serve for neither, then be silent. Again, if thy silence be either for God's glory, or the good of thy neighbour, then be silent; if it will not, then speak. And because it is hard for a man to know when his speech or silence will serve for these two ends: therefore we must pray unto God that he would teach and direct us herein: as David doth, Set a watch (saith he) O Lord, Psal. 141.3. before my mouth, and keep the door of my lips: and again; open thou my lips, O Lord, and my mouth shall show forth thy praise. Psal. 51.15. Thus much for the false witnesses produced. Now followeth the third point, which is, the adjuring of Christ: for Caiphas the high Priest charged him to tell him whether he were the Christ the Son of God, or no. To adjure a man, is to charge and command him in the name of God, to declare a truth, not only because God is witness thereof, but also because he is judge to revenge, if he speak not the truth. 1. Th. 5.27. Thus Paul adjured the Thessalonians, charging them in the Lord, that his epistle should be read unto all the brethren the Saints. And the like doth Caiphas to Christ. And here is a thing to be wondered at; Caiphas the high Priest adjureth him in the name of God, who is very God, even the Son of God, which shows what a small account he makes of the name of God: for he did it only to get advantage on Christ's words: and so do many now adays, who for a little profit or gain make a matter of nothing to abuse the name of God a thousand ways. Now Christ being thus adjured, though silent before, yet now in reverence to God's majesty, answered & said: first, Thou hast said it: and in Saint Mark, I am he. Math. 26.24. Mar. 14.62. joh. 19.7. In this answer, appears the wonderful providence of God. For though Caiphas take hence the occasion of condemning Christ, yet hath he withal drawn from him a most excellent confession, that he is the Son of God, and our alone Saviour. And by this means he proceeds to shut heaven against himself, and to open the same for us. Thus we have ended the first indictment of Christ before Caiphas. Now followeth the second, which was before Pontius Pilate, in the common hall at jerusalem. joh. 18.19. Luk. 23. Math. 27.2. Mark. 15.1. The history of it is set down at large in all the Evangelists. In this second indictment of Christ (that we may refer every matter to his place) we are to observe four things: I. the accusation of Christ before Pilate. II. his examination. III. Pilat's policy to save Christ. IU. Pilat's absolving of him; and then the condemnation of Christ in both courts, Ecclesiastical and civil: of these in order. In Christ's accusation, we must consider many points. The first is, who were his accusers, namely the high Priest, the Scribes, and pharisees, and Elders of the people, and the common people: all these conspired together to accuse him. The cause that moved the pharisees and Elders of the people hereunto, is noted by Saint Matthew, who saith of envy they delivered him. Envy is nothing but a sadness in a man's heart, Math. 27.18. at the prosperity of his better. And it reigned in the Scribes and pharisees, and the occasion was this. Christ had taught most heavenly doctrine, and confirmed the same by most wonderful miracles, and did greatly exceed them all, and was in more account among the people: and for this cause the Scribes and pharisees and high Priests, repined & grudged at him. Now their example serves to admonish us to take heed of this sin, as being the mother of many mischiefs. And we must rather follow the example of Moses, who when josua desired him to forbid Eldad and Medad to prophecy, Num. 11.26, 27, 28. answered, Enviest thou for my sake? yea I would to God that all the Lords people were prophets. And we must be of the same mind with john Baptist, who hearing by his disciples that the people left him, and followed Christ, said, his joy was fulfilled, for Christ must increase, and he must decrease. joh. 3.29. And so we must be glad and content when we see the prosperity of our neighbours any way. Now the cause why the common people join with them was, because the chief priests and the Scribes & elders had persuaded them to a bad conceit of Christ. Mat. 27, 20. Hence it appears that it is most requisite for any people, be they never so good, to have good magistrates, & godly rulers to govern them by wise and godly counsel. The necessity hereof was well known to jethro Moses father in law, though he were a heathen man: for he biddeth Moses to provide among all the people men of courage fearing God, men dealing truly, Exo. 18.21. hating covetousness, and appoint them to be rulers over the people. Teaching us, that if covetous, malicious, and ungodly men, not fearing God, go before the people, they shall in all likelihood be carried into the like sins by their example. The next point concerns the place where they accuse him, which was at the door of the common hall: for having brought him before the council at jerusalem, joh. 18.28. and there condemned him of blasphemy, afterward they bring him unto the common hall where Pilate sat judge. Yet did they not enter in, but stayed without at the door, lest they should be defiled, and be made unfit to eat the passover. In which practice of theirs, we are to mark an example of most notable both superstition, & most gross hypocrisy. For they make no bones to accuse & arraign a man most just & innocent, and yet are very strict and curious in an outward ceremony. And in like manner they made no conscience to give thirty pieces of silver to betray Christ: but to cast the same into the treasury, Matt. 27.6. they make it a great and heinous offence. And for this cause Christ pronounceth a woe unto the Scribes and pharisees, Math. 23.23. calling them hypocrites: for, saith he, you tithe mint, anise, and cumin, and leave the weighty matters of the law, as judgement, and mercy. And the very same thing we see practised of the Church of Rome at this day, and of sundry Papists that live amongst us: they will not eat flesh in Lent, or upon any of the Pope's fasting days for any thing; and yet the same men make no conscience of seeking the blood of the Lords anointed, and their dread sovereign. And in this we see the most palpable, and most gross hypocrisy of those that be of that Church. But shall we think that our own Church is free from such men? no assuredly: for take a view of the profession that is used among the people of England, and it will appear that they place their whole religion for the most part in the observation of certain ceremonies. The manner of most men is to come to the place of assemblies, where God is worshipped, and there mumble up the Lord's prayer, the commandments, and the belief in stead of prayers, which being done, God is well served think they: whereas in the mean season they neglect to learn and practise such things as are taught them for their salvation by the ministers of God's word. At the feast of Easter, every man will be full of devotion and charity, and come to receive the Sacraments, as though he were the holiest man in the world; but when the time is past, all generally turn to their old biace again: and all the year after live as they list, making no conscience of lying, slandering, fraud, and deceit in their affairs among men. But we must know that there is no soundness of religion, but gross hypocrisy in all such men: they worship God with their lips, but there is no power of godliness in their hearts. The 3. point is, concerning the party to whom they make this accusation against him; namely, not to a jew, but to a Gentile: for having condemned him in their Ecclesiastical court before Caiphas the high Priest, they bring him to Pontius Pilate the deputy of Tiberius Caesar in judea. Where we must observe the wonderful providence of God, in that not only the jews, but the Gentiles also had a stroke in the arraignment of Christ, that that might be true which the Apostle saith, God shut up all under sin, that he might have mercy upon all. Rom. 11, 32. The fourth point is, the matter of their accusation: they accuse our Saviour Christ of 3. things. I. that he seduced the people. Luk. 23.2. II. that he forbade to pay tribute to Caesar. III. that he said he was a King. Let us well consider these accusations, especially the two last, because they are flat contrary both to Christ's preaching, and to his practice. For when the people would have made him a King, after he had wrought the miracle of the five loaves and two fishes, the text saith, joh. 6.15 Mat. 17.27. he departed from among them unto a mountain himself alone. Secondly, when tribute was demanded of him for Caesar, though he were the king's son, and therefore was freed; yet saith he to Peter, lest we should offend them, go to the sea, and cast in an angle and take the first fish that cometh up, and when thou hast opened his mouth, thou shalt find a piece of twenty pence, that take and give unto them for thee and me. And when he was called to be a judge to divide the inheritance between two brethren, he refused to do it, saying, Who made me a judge between you? Therefore in these two things, they did most falsely accuse him. Whereby we learn, that nothing is so false and untrue, but the slanderer dare lay it to the charge of the innocent: the tongues of the slanderers are sharp swords, & venomous arrows, Psal. 120.4. and 5.9. to wound their enemies: their throats are open sepulchres, the poison of asps is under their lips. If a man speak gracious words, his tongue is touched with the fire of God's spirit: but as Saint james saith, the tongue of the wicked is fire, jam. 3.6. yea a world of wickedness, and it is set on fire with the fire of hell: therefore let this example be a caveat for us all, to teach us to take heed of slandering, for the devil than speaks by us, and kindles our tongues with the fire of hell. The fifth point is, the manner of their accusation, which is diligently to be marked: for they do not only charge him with a wonderful untruth, but they beseech Pilate to put him to death, crying, a Unjustly. For a blasphemer by their law should be stoned and not crucified. Crucify him, Crucify him: Matth. 27.22, 23. in so much that Pontius Pilate was afraid of them: where we may see how these shameless jews go beyond their compass, and the bounds of all accusers, whose duty is to testify only what they know. Now in the matter of this their accusation, appears their wonderful inconstancy. For a little before when Christ came to jerusalem riding upon an ass, showing some signs of his kingly authority, they cut down branches from the trees, and strawed them in the way, crying, Hosanna, Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord: but now they sing an other song, and in stead of Hosanna, they cry, Crucify him, Crucify him. And the like inconstancy is to be found in the people of these our times. They use to receive any religion that is offered unto them: for in the days of King Edward the sixth, the people of England received the Gospel of Christ: but shortly after in Queen Mary's time, the same people received the wretched and abominable doctrine of the Church of Rome. And not many years after when it pleased God to bring again the light of his glorious Gospel by our gracious Prince, the same people turned from popery, and embraced the true religion again. And thus with the jews one while they cry Hosanna to Christ, & receive his Gospel; and shortly after they cry, Crucify him, Crucify him, by embracing idolatrous popery. Let us therefore learn in the fear of God, by the fickleness of the jews, that sing two contrary songs in so short a space, to acknowledge our inconstancy and weakness in the matter of religion: whereby if God leave us but a little to ourselves, we shall strait way forsake Christ, his Gospel, and all. Thus much of the accusation. Now followeth Christ's examination before Pontius Pilate: for when the jews had thus falsely accused him, than Pontius Pilate took him, and brought him into the common hall, and asked him this question; Art thou a King? Now Christ being thus examined, made as Paul also testifieth, a good confession. The sum thereof stands in four heads. 1. Tim. 6.12, The first is, that he confesseth himself to be a King; joh. 18.36, 37. not such an one as they accused him to be, yet a true King. Whence we may learn divers instructions. First, that every Christian man in the midst of his misery & affliction, hath one that is most sufficient every way to defend him against all his enemies, the world, the flesh, & the devil. For this king can do whatsoever he will: & therefore when the legion of devils would enter into a herd of swine, they could not without his leave. And when the Centurion's daughter was dead, Math. 8.31. Mark. 6.41. joh. 11.43. he but spoke the word and she arose. And when Lazarus was dead, and had li●n in the grave four days, he but said, Lazarus come forth, & he came forth bound hand and foot. Yea even hell and death give place to his word, & nothing can resist his power. And therefore he that is a true member of Christ, needs not to fear any enemies be they never so great, or so many. And again, as Christ is able, so is he ready and willing to save and defend all that believe in him. For he it is that gave his life for his subjects, which no king will do, and shed his blood for their redemption: which he would never have done, if he had not desired their salvation. Secondly, when as Christ is a mighty king, which can do whatsoever he will, let all such among us that have hitherto lived in ignorance, & by reason of ignorance live in their sins, at length begin to come unto him, & do him homage, & with penitent hearts fall down before him: otherwise if they continue in their old rebellions, let them know whosoever they be, high or low, that he hath a rod of iron in his hand to bruise them in pieces; Psal. 2.9. & 110.2. their souls shall smart for it: as both Pilate, Caiphas, & the rest of the jews were with a full cup rewarded, for crucifying the Lord of life. And if Christ cannot draw thee in this life from thy crooked ways, be sure at the hour of death he will break thee in pieces like a potter's vessel. This must we learn in regard of the first point, that he said plainly, He was a King. Now follows the second part of his confession, namely that his kingdom was not of this world. Where he sets down what kind of king he is; he is no earthly king, his kingdom stands not in the power of men, nor in earthly and outward government; but his kingdom is spiritual, and his government is in the very hearts and consciences of men. His kingdom is not outward to be seen of men, but inward in the heart and soul▪ and therefore it is only begun in this life, and is continued and accomplished in the world to come in the kingdom of glory: where Christ shall be all in all in the hearts and consciences of all the elect. Now then, if this be so, howsoever Satan have heretofore reigned in us, and made our hearts as it were his palaces: yet now let us prepare a room for Christ that he may come and dwell in us: let him rule our hearts, wills, and affections that they may become conformable to his will: let us resign ourselves wholly to be ruled by him, that his spiritual kingdom may be in us. This kingdom in the heart & conscience is the pearl and hid treasure, Math. 13.46. which when a man findeth, he sells all that he hath & buyeth it. Let us therefore in the fear of God, esteem it as the most precious thing that may be, and so live in this world, as that Christ may rule inwardly in us, by his word & spirit. And again seeing this regiment of Christ is heavenly, & the full manifestation of it is in the life to come: we must therefore use this world & all things in it, as honour, wealth, ease, & liberty, 1. Cor. 7.31. as though we used them not. As a travailer useth his staff in his journey; as long as it doth further him, so long he will carry it with him: but when it hindereth him, than he casts it away: so must we use the things of this life, namely as long as they are helps to further and make us fit for the kingdom of heaven, but if they be any hindrance to this spiritual regiment of Christ, we must renounce them and cast them away, be they never so precious to us. The third point of Christ's confession is, concerning the means whereby he governs his kingdom: I came (saith he) into this world to bear witness of the truth, that is, to preach the gospel & doctrine of salvation: & hereby he teacheth that the outward administration of his kingdom, stands specially in the preaching of the word, which is a principal ordinance of his, serving to gather his Church from the beginning of the world to the end thereof. And for this cause he hath in all age● set apart chosen ministers for the publishing of the doctrine of the Gospel. And by this it is manifest that the gift of prophecy, is the greatest gift that God bestows on his Church for the building thereof. And therefore it ought to be most highly esteemed of, as a most precious jewel. And for this cause also the schools of learning are to be reverenced and maintained, and all other means used for the furthering of them; because they are under God the fountains and wellsprings of this gift of prophecy. The last point is, concerning the subjects of Christ's kingdom, expressed in these words, They which are of the truth, hear my voice. In which he sets down the true mark of his servants and subjects, that they are hearers of that heavenly and saving word which he revealed from the bosom of his father. It may be alleged the most wicked men upon earth, yea the devils themselves may be hearers of the truth of Christ. Answer. There be two kind of hearers: one which hears only the outward sound of the word with his bodily ears, Matt. 13.9. and he having ears to hear doth not hear: the second, is he that doth not only receive the doctrine that is taught with his ears, but also hath his heart opened to feel the power of it, & to obey the same in the course of his life. This distinction is notably set forth by David, saying, Sacrifice and burnt offerings thou wouldst not have: Psal. 40.6. but my ears hast thou pierced: whereby he insinuates as it were two kinds of ears: one that is deaf and cannot hear: and thus are the ears of all men by nature in hearing the doctrine of salvation: the other is a new ear pierced and bored by the hand of God, which causeth a man's heart to hear the sound and operation of the word, and the life to express the truth of it. Now the subjects of Christ's kingdom are such, as with the outward hearing of the word, have an inward hearing of the soul, & grace also to obey: & therefore all those that make no conscience of obedience to the word of god preached unto them, are no less than rebels to Christ. We may persuade ourselves that we are good subjects, because we hear the word and receive the sacraments, but if our lives abound with sin, and if our hearts be not pierced through by the sword of God's spirit, whether we be high or low, rich or poor, let us be what we will be, we are no right subjects indeed, but rebels and traitors unto the everliving God. It may be hereafter God will give further grace; but as yet all impenitent persons, though living in the midst of God's Church, are not obedient & faithful subjects: and therefore while we have time, let us labour to perform in deed that which we do in word profess. Thus much of the examination and confession of Christ. Now followeth the third point concerning the policies which Pilate used to save Christ: and they are three. First, when he heard that Christ was of Galilee, he took occasion to send him to Herod, Luk. 25.7. thinking thereby to shift his hand of him, and not to shed his blood. In which policy, though he seem unwilling to put Christ to death, yet herein he is a most unjust judge: for having given testimony of Christ, that he is innocent, he ought to have acquitted him, and not have sent him to Herod for further judgement. In Herod's dealing with Christ, we may observe these points. The first, that he is wonderfully glad of his coming. Why so? the text saith, Luk. 23.8. because he was desirous to see him of a long season, because he had heard many things of him, and trusted to have seen some sign done by him. Here mark how he rejoiced, not in Christ because he was Christ, that is, his Messiah and redeemer, but because he wrought miracles, signs, and wonders. And so it is among us at this day: it is a rare thing to find a man that loveth Christ, because he is Christ: some love Christ for honour, some for wealth, and others for praise: in that they get honour, wealth, and praise by confessing his name. Again, many profess Christ, only because it is the la and custom of their nation. But we must learn to be of this mind, to love Christ, because he is Christ, even for himself, and not for any other sinister respect: and we must rejoice in Christ for himself, though we never have profit nor pleasure, neither honour or wealth by him. And if we love him for wealth or pleasure, or for any other end but for himself alone, when these things are taken away, than we shall utterly forsake Christ in like manner. The second point is, that Herod desires Christ to work a miracle. He can be content to see the works of Christ, but he can not abide to hear his word, & to bear his yoke. Like to him are many in these days, which gladly desire to hear the Gospel of Christ preached, only because they would hear speech of some strange things, laying aside all care and conscience to obey that which they hear. Yea many in England delight to read the strange histories of the bible; and therefore can rehearse the most part of it, (and it were to be wished that all could do it:) yet come to the practice of it, the same persons are commonly found as bad in life and conversation, yea rather worse than others. Let us therefore labour that with our knowledge we may join obedience, & practise with our learning; and as well to be affected with the word of Christ, as with his works. The third point is, that Herod derides Christ, and sends him away, clothed in a white garment. Luk. 13.32. This is that Herod whom Christ called a fox; who also when he heard john Baptist preach, did many things, & heard him gladly. How then comes Herod to this outrage of wickedness, thus to abuse Christ? Answer. We must know, that although Herod at the first heard john preach, yet withal he followed his own affections, and sought how to fulfil the lusts of his flesh. For when john told him that it was not lawful for him to have his brother Philip's wife, he cast him in prison, and after cut off his head for it: after which offence, he is grown to this height of impiety, that he now despiseth Christ, & cannot abide to hear him. Where we learn, that as we are willing to hear God's word preached, so withal we must take heed that we practise no manner of sin; but make conscience of every thing that may displease God. Thou mayst, I grant, be one that fears and favours john Baptist for a time, wallowing in thy old sins▪ but after a while, yielding to the swinge of thy corrupt heart, thou wilt never hear john, nor Christ himself, but hate and despise them both. This is the cause why some which have been professors of religion heretofore, and have had great measure of knowledge, are now become very lose persons, and can not abide to hear the word preached unto them; the reason is, because they could not abide to leave their sins. Therefore that we may begin in the spirit and not end in the flesh, let every one that calls on the name of the Lord depart from iniquity. Now follows the second policy of Pilate. For when he saw the first would not prevail, than he took a new course: for he took jesus into the common hall and scourged him, and the soldiers plaited a crown of thorns and pur it on his head, and they put on him a purple garment, joh. 19.1. and said, Hail King of the jews, and smote him with their rods. And thus he brought him forth before the jews, persuading himself, that when they saw him so abased, and so ignominiously abused, they would be content therewith, and exact no greater punishment at his hands: thinking thus to have pacified the rage of the jew, and so to have delivered Christ from death, by inflicting upon him some lesser punishment. This policy is as it were a looking glass, in which we may behold of what nature & condition all plots & policies of men are, which are devised & practised without the direction of God's word. In it we may observe 2. things: the first is, the ground thereof; which is a most silly, simple, or rather senseless argument. For he reasoneth thus: I find no fault in this man, Luk. 23.14, 15, 16. therefore I will chastise him and let him go. A man would hardly have thought, that one having but his common sense, would not have made such a reason, much less a great judge sitting in the room of God. But in him we may behold & see the ground of all human policy which is beside the word of God, namely the foolish and blind reason of men. The 2. thing to be considered is, the proceeding and issue of this policy. Pilat must either whip Christ being innocent; or put him to death: which are both sins and great offences. Now he maketh choice of the lesser, which is to whip him, and is persuaded that he ought to do so: whereas of two sins or evils, a man ought to do neither. And in doing this, Pilate gins to make a breach in his conscience; and that is the fruit that all politics reap of their devices, which proceed by the light of their own reason, without the word of God. By this example, we are admonished of two things: first, that before we enterprise any business, we must rectify our judgements by God's word. David was a most wise King, and no doubt, had withal a grave and wise council, but yet he preferred the word of God before all, saying, Thy testimonies are my counsellors. Psal. 119.24. Secondly, in our proceed we must keep an upright, pure, and unblamable conscience, as Paul exhorteth Timothy to have the mystery of faith in a pure conscience; giving us thereby to understand, ●. Tim. 3.9. that a good conscience is as it were a chest or cupboard, in which we are to keep and lock up our religion, and all other graces of God, as the most precious jewels that can be: and that if we suffer this chest to be broken up, all our riches and jewels are gone. But let us yet view the dealing of Pilate more particularly: he whips Christ, puts on him a purple garment, puts a reed in his hand, sets a crown of thorns upon his head, and causes the soldiers to mock him, and spit in his face. Now in this that Christ standing in our room, was thus shamefully abused, we must consider what was due unto every one of us for our sins, namely shame and reproach in this life, and in the life to come endless confusion. And we see the confession of Christ to be true which he made to Pilate, that his kingdom was not of this world; for if it had been so, they would have put a crown of gold upon his head, and not a crown of thorns, nothing at all beseeming an earthly king: and in stead of a reed they would have put a sceptre into his hand: and in stead of buffeting and spitting on him, they would have adored him, & fallen down before him. Again, whereas Christ our head in this world, ware no other crown but one made of thorns, it serveth to teach all those that are the members of Christ, that they must not look for a crown of glory in this life; because that is reserved for the life to come. And if we would then wear the crown of glory with Christ▪ we must here in this life wear a crown of thorns, as he did: for as Paul saith, If we suffer with Christ, we shall also reign with him: 1. Tim. 2.12. and that which was fully verified in Christ the head, must in some part be verified in every true member of Christ. Pilat's third policy was this: when he saw that neither of the two former would prevail, he comes forth unto the jews, and makes an oration to this effect; that now was the feast of the Passeover, and that they had a custom that the Governor should then deliver unto the people a prisoner whom they would: therefore he asked them whether he should let lose to them Barrabas, or jesus which is called Christ: this Barrabas was a notable malefactor, that with insurrection had committed murder. And thus Pilate cunningly matcheth Christ with Barrabas, thinking that the jews would rather choose him then Barrabas, being a notorious malefactor, not worthy to live on the face of the earth: and by this means he thought to have delivered Christ from death, though otherwise he accounted him also as a malefactor. The ground of this policy (as we see) is an old custom of the jews, that a prisoner should be let lose at Easter. And it may be the end of this custom was, to increase the solemnity of the feast. But whatsoever in truth the end was, the fact itself was but a profanation of the time, and an abomination before the Lord: for Solomon saith, He that justifieth the wicked, Prov. 17.15. and condemneth the just, even they both are abomination before the Lord. The like practice takes place with many in these days, who think the Lo●ds day never well spent, unless they may add solemnity thereunto, by revel and riot, by frequenting of taverns and alehouses. And furthermore, where Pilate matcheth Christ being innocent with Barrabas, and the people prefer him before Christ, having liberty to choose either; it shows that God in his providence had appointed that Christ should not stand in his own room before Pilate, but in our room and stead, as a Mediator between God and us. And in this fact of the people we see how sin by degrees takes hold of men & that speedily. Who would have thought that these jews, which a little before cried Hosanna, and spread their garments before Christ in the way, would ever have preferred a murderer before him? But it was the doing of the high priests, the Scribes, & Phases, who did animate and stir them up to this wickedness: and hereupon when they had yielded, first to attach him, and then to accuse him, they are carried to an higher degree of impiety, namely to seek his blood: and lest he should escape their hands, they plunge themselves deeper yet preferring a wretched murderer, even seditious Barrabas before him. This must teach every one of us to take heed of the beginnings even of the least sins; for the devil is cunning, he will not plunge a man into the greatest sins at the first: but his manner is, by little and little to creep into the heart: and having once possession thereof, by steps to bring men to the height of sin, and that with speed. We must therefore in the fear of God prevent sin betimes, and at the first motion cut off all occasions hereof: that which Paul saith of heresy, comparing it to a canker or gangrene, 2. Tim. 2.17. may be said of all sin. The nature of the gangrene is to run from one joint to another, from the toe to the foot, from the foot to the leg, from the leg to the thigh, till it have wasted and destroyed the life of the body. So give any sin but an entrance, and it will soon overspread the whole man: and if the devil may be suffered but to put one talon into thy heart, he will presently wind himself into thee, his head, his body and all. The Psalmist saith that he is blessed that taketh the children of the Babylonians and dasheth them against the stones, Psal. 137.9. and as truly may it be said, blessed is the man that dasheth the head of his sins against the ground while they are young, before they get strength to over master him. Mat. 27.23, 24. Luk. 23.14, 22. Mar. 15.14. Thus have we seen the policies of Pilate: Now followeth the absolution of Christ: for when Pilate had used many means to deliver him, & none would prevail, than he absolveth him, by giving divers testimonies of his innocency: for he came forth three times, and bare witness thereof: joh. 18.38. & 19.4. and last of all he testified the same by washing of his hands, which rite signifieth properly the defiling of the hands before, but as yet Pilate had not defiled his hands, and therefore he used it as a token, to show, that Christ was innocent, and that he would not defile his own hands with innocent blood. There were three causes that moved Pilate to absolve Christ. Mat. 27.24. First he saw that he was a just man, as Saint Matthew noteth, and that the high priests and people had delivered him up of envy, as S. Mark saith. By this it is plain, Mar. 15.10. that a very Pagan or infidel may in some things go beyond such as be in God's Church, having better conscience, and dealing more justly than they. Pontius Pilate was a heathen man and a Gentile, the jews were the Church and people of the living God: yet he sees plainly that Christ was a just man, and thereupon absolveth him: whereas the jews which should be men of conscience and religion, seek his death. And thus a very Pagan may otherwhiles see more into a matter than those that be reputed of the church. And this must admonish all such as profess the gospel to look unto their proceed, that they do all things with upright conscience: for if we deal unjustly in our proceed, we may have neighbours, men of no religion, that will look through us, and see the gross hypocrisy of our profession, that would be loath to do those things which we do. The second cause that moved Pilate to absolve Christ, was his wives dream: for when he was set down upon the judgement seat, she sent unto him, saying, Have thou nothing to do with that just man: Mat. 27.16. for I have suffered many things in a dream by reason of him. Dreams are of three sorts: natural, rising from the constitution of the body: diabolical, such as come by the suggestion of the devil: divine, which are from God. Some have thought that this dream was of the devil▪ as though he had laboured thereby to hinder the death of Christ, and consequently our salvation: but I rather think that it was occasioned by the things which she had heard before of Christ, or that it was immediately from God, as the dreams of Pharaoh & Nabuchodonoser, and served for a further manifestation of Christ's innocency. Here it may be asked, whether we may regard our dreams now, as pilate's wife did or no? Answer, We have the books of the old and new Testament to be our direction, Isai. 8.20. as Esai saith: to the law, and to the testimony, they must be our rule and guide. In these days we must not look to be taught by visions and dreams: yet shall it not be amiss to observe this caveat concerning dreams, that by them we may guess at the constitution of our bodies, and often times at the sins whereunto we are inclined. The last motive which caused Pilate to absolve Christ was a speech of the jews: for they said, that Christ ought to die by their law, because he said he was the son of God. And the text saith, joh. 19.7, 8. when Pilate heard that, he was afraid. Mark how a poor Painym that knew not God's word, at the hearing of the name of the son of God is stricken with fear. No doubt he shall rise in judgement against many among us that without all fear rend the name of God in pieces by swearing, blaspheming, cursed speaking. But let all those that fear the Lord learn to tremble and be afraid at his blessed name. Thus much for the causes that moved Pilate to absolve Christ: as also for the second part of Christ's arraignment, namely, his accusation. Now follows the third part, which is his condemnation: and that is twofold. The first by the Ecclesiastical assembly and council of the jews at jerusalem, in the high priests hall before Caiphas. The tenor of his condemnation was this. Mat. 26.66. He hath blasphemed, what have we any more need of witnesses, he is worthy to die? The cause why they say not he shall die, but, he is worthy to die, is this. The jews had two jurisdictions, the one Ecclesiastical, Deut. 17.7, 8, 9 the other civil, both prescribed and distinctly executed by the commandment of God, till the time of the Maccabees, in which both jointly together came into the hands of the priests: but afterward about the days of Herod the great, the Roman Emperor took away both jurisdictions from the jews and made their kingdom a province, so as they could do no more but apprehend, accuse, and imprison: as doth appear by the example of Saul, who gate letters from the high priest to Damascus, Act. 9.2. that if he found any either man or woman that believed in Christ, he might bring them bound to jerusalem, and imprison them: but kill or condemn they could not. By the fact of this counsel we learn sundry points: first, that general counsels and the Pope himself sitting judicially in his consistory may err. If there were any visible Church of God at that day upon the face of the whole world, it was no doubt the Church of the jews. For Caiphas the high priest was a figure of Christ, the Scribes and Pharisees sat in Moses chair, and jerusalem is called by Christ the holy city, Mat. 4.5. & 27.53. Yet for all this that which was foretold is now verified, namely, that the chief corner stone should be rejected of master builders. For by the general consent of the council at jerusalem, Christ the head of the Catholic Church and the redeemer of mankind is accused of blasphemy, and condemned as worthy of death. Wherefore it is a mere dotage of man's brain to avouch that the Pope cannot possibly err in giving a definitive sentence in matters either of faith or manners. Neither can the Church of Rome plead privilege, for jerusalem had as many prerogatives as any people in the world could have. Rom. 9.3. Again, by this we see there is no reason why we should ascribe to any man or to ecumenical counsels themselves absolute and sovereign power to determine & give judgement in matters of religion, considering they are in danger to be overtaken with notable slips and errors. And therefore the sovereignty of judgement is peculiar to the son of God who is the only doctor and lawgiver of the Church: Mat. 23.10. and he puts the same in execution in and by the written word. As for the speech of the Papists calling the scriptures a dumb judge, it is little to be regarded: For they are, as it were, the letter of the living sent from heaven to his Church upon earth: and therefore the scriptures speak as plainly and as sufficiently unto us of all matters of faith, as a man can speak unto his friend by letter, so be it, we have the gift of discerning. Yet do we● not bar the Church of God from all judgement. For the ministerial power of giving judgement both publicly and privately is granted 〈◊〉 of God: and that is to determine and give sentence of matters in question according to the word as the lawyer gives judgement, not according as he will, but according to the tenor of the law. Thirdly we learn, that personal succession is no unfallible mark of the true faith, and of true pastors, unless withal be joined succession in the doctrine of the Prophets and Apostles. For Caiphas held his office by succession from Aaron: and yet in public assembly condemned the Messiah spoken of by Moses and the Prophets. Therefore the succession of the bishops of Rome from Peter is of no moment unless they can prove that their religion is the religion of Peter which they can never do. And thus much for Christ's first condemnation. The second was by Pontius Pilate, who sat in an other court as a civil judge, and the t●no●● of his sentence was, that the jews should take him and crucify him. Luk. 23.24. Here we must consider the reasons that moved Pilate to determine thus: the first was, the impatience of the jews: he for his part was loath to defile his hands with innocent blood, but the jews cried, Mat. 27.25. his blood be upon us, and on our children: which according to their wish came upon them within few years after, and so remaineth still unto this day. By which we are taught to take heed of imprecations against ourselves, our children, or servants, or any other creatures: for God heareth men's prayers two ways: either in his mercy, or in his wrath and anger. If thou curse thyself, or any other, except thou turn unto the Lord by speedy repentance, he may hear thy prayer in his wrath, and verify thy curse upon thee to thy utter confusion. The second reason that moved Pilate to condemn Christ was, because he feared men more than God: for being deputy under Tiberius Caesar over the province of judea, joh. 19.12, 13. for fear of losing his office, and of displeasing the jews, he condemned Christ after he had absolved him: whereby we see, that it is a grievous sin to fear dust and ashes more than the living God. And therefore S. john saith, that the fearful shall have their portion in the burning lake: that is, Revel. 21.8. such as are more afraid of man then of God. And this sin in Pilate wanted not his just toward for not long after he lost his deputyship, and Caesar's favour, Euseb. hist. l. 2. c. 7. and fled to Vienna; where living in banishment, he killed himself. And thus God meets with them that fear the creature more than the Creator. That we may therefore avoid the heavy hand of God, let us learn to fear God above all: else we shall dishonour God, and shame the religion which we profess. The proper end of Christ's condemnation set down though not in Pilat's will, yet in God's eternal counsel was, that he might be the cause of absolution at the bar of God's justice unto all those whosoever they are which shall come to life eternal for we must still remember, that when Christ was condemned by mortal judges, he stood in our place, & in him were all our sins condemned before God. Therefore to conclude this point; if this were the end in the counsel of God, to have his own son condemned by Pontius Pilate a mortal judge, that we might not be condemned but absolved before God's judgement seat: let us all labour to have this absolution sealed up in our hearts by the testimony of God's spirit. For one day we must come to the bar of God's judgement: and if we have not an absolution by Christ's condemnation at pilate's earthly bar, let us look for nothing else but the fearful sentence of condemnation at the celestial bar of God's justice, to be uttered at the day of the last judgement. If a man should commit such an heinous offence, as that he could no other way escape death but by the prince's pardon, he neither would nor could be at rest, till by one means or other he had obtained the same, and had gotten it written and sealed: which done, he would carry it home, lock it up safe and sound, and many times look upon it with great joy & gladness. Well, this is the case of every one of us: by nature we are rebels and traitors against God, and have by our sins deserved ten thousand deaths. Now our only stay and refuge is, that Christ the son of God was condemned for us: and therefore in Christ we must sue for pardon at God's hands, and never rest till we have the assurance thereof sealed up in our hearts and consciences: always remembering, that ever after we lead a new life▪ and never commit the like sins against God any more. It were a blessed thing if this would enter into our hearts: but alas, we are as dead in our sins as a dead carcase is in the grave. The ministers of God may teach this often unto us, and we may also hear the same: but Satan doth so possess men's hearts, that they seldom or never begin to believe or receive it till it be too late. Every one can say, God is merciful, but that is not enough: for Christ being most righteous was condemned, that thou being a wretched sinner mightest be saved: and therefore thou must labour for thyself, to have some testimony of thine absolution by Christ's condemnation, sealed up in thine own conscience, that thou mayst more assuredly say, God is and will be merciful unto thee. Having spoken of the whole arraignment of Christ, and of his passion in general. Now let us proceed to the parts of the passion, which are three: Christ's Execution, his Burial, & his Descending into hell: This being withal remembered, that these three parts, are likewise three degrees of Christ's humiliation. Christ's execution is that part of his passion, which he bore upon the cross, expressed in the words of the Creed, he was crucified, and died. In handling of it we must observe five things. I. the person that suffered. II. the place where he suffered. III. the time when he suffered. FOUR the manner how he suffered. V the excellency of his passion. For the first, the person that suffered was Christ the just, as Peter saith, Christ also hath once suffered for sins, the just for the unjust: and again, Christ jesus the just (saith S. john) is the reconciliation for our sins. 1. Pet. 3.18. 1. joh. 2.1. And in his execution, we shall have manifest declarations of his righteousness and justice, consisting in two most worthy points. First, when he was upon the cross, and the soldiers were nailing his hands and feet thereunto, and racking his body most cruelly, he prayed, Father forgive them they know not what they do. Luk. 23.34. These soldiers were by all likelihood the very same that apprehended him, and brought him before Caiphas, and from thence to Pontius Pilate, and there plaited a crown of thorns and set it on his head, and buffeted him, and spitefully entreated him as we have heard: and yet Christ speaks no word of revenge unto them, but with all patience in the extremity of their malice and injury, he prayeth his father to forgive them. Hence we are taught that when injuries are done unto us, we ought to abstain from all affection of revenge, and not so much as manifest the same either in word or deed. It is indeed a hard lesson to learn and practise: but we must endeavour to do it: & not only so, but to be ready for evil to do good: yea, even at that instant when other men are doing us wrong: even then (I say) we must be ready, if it be possible to do them good. When as Christ's enemies were doing unto him all the treachery they would, even than he performeth the work of a Mediator, and prayeth for them unto his father, and seeketh their salvation. Again, whereas Christ prayeth thus, Father forgive them, we gather, that the most principal thing of all that man ought to seek after in this life, is the forgiveness of sins. Some think that happiness consisteth in honour, some in wealth, some in pleasure, some in this, some in that: but indeed the thing which we should most labour for, is reconciliation with God in Christ, that we may have the free remission of all our sins. Yea this is blessedness itself as David saith, Blessed is he whose iniquity is forgiven, and whose sin is covered. Psal. 32.1. Here then behold the madness of most men in this world, that either seek for this blessing in the last place or not at all. The second testimony of Christ's righteousness given in the midst of his passion was, that he beheld his mother standing by, john. 19 and commended her to the custody of john his disciple: whereby he gave an example of most holy obedience unto the fift commandment, which prescribeth honour to father and mother. And this his fact showeth, that the observing of this commandment standeth not in outward show and reverence only; but in a godly recompense, in procuring unto parents all the good we can, both concerning this and a better life. It often falls out that children be as it were cain's to father and mother: some rail on them, some fight with them; others see them pine away and starve, and not relieve them. But all dutiful children must here learn, that as their parents have done many duties unto them; & have brought them up: so they again must in all reverence perform obedience unto them both in word and deed: and when occasion is offered relieve them, yea in all that they can, do good unto them. Again in this we may see what a wretched state is that which the Church of Rome calleth the state of perfection; namely to live a part from the company of men, in fasting and praying all the days of a man's life: for hereby the bond of nature is broken, and a man can not do the duty unto his parents which Gods law requireth, and Christ here himself practiseth, nor the duties of a member of Christ which are to be done to the whole Church, and to the rest of the members thereof. The place where Christ suffered is called Calvary or Golgotha, that is, the place of dead men's skulls, without the walls of jerusalem. Concerning the reason of this name, men be of diverse opinions. Some say it was so called, because Adam was buried there, & that his skull being there found, gave the name to the place. jewish Rabbins. Cypr. lib. de resurrect. Aug. Serm. 71. de temp. Hieron. epist. Paulae ad Marcellam. And this is the very opinion of some ancient divines, that Christ was there crucified where Adam was buried: but because it hath no certain ground, I leave it as uncerten. Others think it was called Calvary, because the jews were wont to carry out the bones of dead men, & there to heap them together, as in times past the manner was in the faults of sundry Churches in this land. And some others think it was called Golgotha or Calvary, because thieves and murderers, and malefactors were there executed, stoned, burned: whereby it came to pass that many skulls and bones of dead men were found there. The time when Christ was executed, was at the jews passover, when not only the jews, but also many Proselytes of many countries and nations were assembled: and therefore this execution was not in a private corner, but openly in the view of the world. For as he was a Saviour not to the jews only but also to the Gentiles: so it was very requisite that his death should be public before all men both jews and Gentiles. As for the hour of the day in which he suffered, there is some difficulty in the Evangelists: for S. john saith, that he was condemned about the sixth hour of the day: and S. Mark saith, joh. 19.14. Mar. 15.23. he was crucified the third hour. Hence it may be demanded, how both these can stand together. Answer. Howsoever the jews natural day began at evening, yet the artificial day began at sun-rising and ended at sun-setting: and it was divided two ways. First, into twelve parts called twelve hours, whether the days were longer or shorter. Secondly into four parts or quarters, and every part contained three hours: as from the first hour to the third was one part called morning; from the third hour to the sixth, an other part called the sixth hour; from the sixth hour to the ninth, the third part called the ninth hour; and from the ninth hour to the twelfth, the fourth part called evening. Now when S. john saith, Christ was condemned about the sixth hour, it must be understood of the second quarter of the day, called the sixth hour: and whereas S. Mark saith he was crucified the third hour of the day, he speaks of the lesser hours, twelve whereof made the whole day: and thus they both agree, for the third hour of the day and the beginning of the 2. quarter follow each other immediately. Again it may be answered, that Christ was condemned at six of the clock after the Roman account, A. Gell. noct. alt. lib. 3. c. 2. which gins the day at midnight; & crucified at 3. (which is 9 of the clock in the morning with us) aftet the jews account who begin their artificial day, as I said, at the sun-rising. The fourth & last point is the order & whole proceeding of Christ's execution: which may be reduced to 4. heads: the first, his going to execution, the 2. his crucifying, the 3. his death, the 4. the consequents of his death. Again in his going to execution we may consider many points. The first that he is brought out of Jerusalem as a malefactor. For the old and ancient custom of the jew was to put those whom they judged to be notorious offenders to death without ●heir tents when they wandered in the wilderness, josu. 7.24. Levi. 24.12. Acts. 7.58. and without the walls of Jerusalem, lest they should any way be defiled with their blood. And this fell out by the special providence of God, that that might be fulfilled in Christ which was prefigured in the sacrifices of the old testament, when the bodies of beasts were not eaten of the priests, Lev. 6.36. but burnt without the camp: therefore (saith the H. ghost) even jesus that he might sanctify the people with his own blood, Heb. 13.12. suffered without the gates. Hence may all Christians learn to know their own estate and condition: first, in this world they must look to be accounted the offscouring of the earth, and the filth of the world, 1. Cor. 4.13. as the Apostle saith, and we must all prepare ourselves to bear this estate. They that will be God's children must not look to be better accepted of in the world than Christ was. Secondly by this every one of us must learn to be content to use this world, as strangers & pilgrims; being every day and hour ready to leave the same: for if Christ the son of God himself was brought out of jerusalem, as not being worthy to have his abode there, then must every Christian man look much more for the like extremity. And therefore it is not good for us to have our hearts tied to the world, & to seek always to be approved of the same, for that argueth that we are not like to Christ, but we must rather do as poor pilgrims in strange countries, & that is only to look for safe conduct through the miseries in this world, having in the mean season our hearts, wills, & affections set on the kingdom which is in heaven. The second thing is, that Christ was made to bear his own cross: for so it seems the manner of the Romans was to deal with malefactors. And this must put us in mind of that notable lesson which Chtist himself taught his disciples: namely, that if any man will be his disciple, he must deny himself, take up his own cross daily and follow him: where, by the cross we must understand, that portion of affliction, Luk. 9.23. which God hath allotted to every one of his children: for there is no child of God to whom he hath not measured out as it were some bitter cup of misery in this life. And therefore Paul saith, Now rejoice I in my suffering for you, Colos. 1.24. & fulfil the rest of the sufferings of Christ in my flesh. By Christ's sufferings he meaneth not the passion of Christ, but the sufferings of the body of Christ, that is, the Church whereof Christ is the head. Moreover we must suffer as he did, & that daily: because as one day followeth another, so one cross comes in the neck of another. And whereas Christ bears the cross that was laid on him by the hands of the soldiers, it must teach us not to pull crosses upon ou● selves, but wait till God lay them on us, and then we must willingly bend our shoulders, stoop down, and take them up; whether they be in body or in soul, and that every day if it be Gods will so long as we live: and by this shall we most notably resemble our Saviour Christ. Thirdly, when Christ had carried his cross so long till he could carry it no longer, by reason of the faintness of his body, which came by buffets, whip, and manifold other injuries, than the soldiers meeting with one Simon of Cyrene a stranger, made him to bear the cross: Luk. 23.26. where we are put in mind, that if we faint in the way and be wearied with the burden of our afflictions, God will give good issue, and send as it were some Simon of Cyrene to help us, and to be our comforter. Mat. 11.28. The fourth points is, that when Christ was carrying his own cross, and was now passing on towards Golgotha, certain women met him, and pitying his case wept for him: but Christ answered them and said, Daughters of jerusalem, weep not for me, but for yourselves, & your children, etc. Luk. 23.27. By this we are first of all taught to pity the state of those that be in affliction and misery, especially those that be the children of God: as the Apostle exhorteth us, saying, Remember them that are in bonds, Hebr. 13.3. as though you were bound with them: and them that are in affliction, as though you were afflicted with them. In this land by God's especial blessing we have enjoyed the gospel of Christ with peace a long time, whereas other countries & Churches are in great distress: some wallow in palpable ignorance & superstition: others have liberty to enjoy the gospel and want teachers: and some have both the word & teachers and yet want peace, and are in continual persecution. Now when we that have the Gospel with peace do hear of these miseries in our neighbour Churches, we ought to be moved with compassion towards them, as though we ourselves were in the same afflictions. Secondly, whereas Christ saith, Weep not for me, but for yourselves, he doth teach us to take occasion by other men's miseries to bewail our own estate: to turn our worldly griefs into godly sorrow for our sins: whereby we do rather weep for our offences, then for our friends, although even that may also be done in a godly manner. When a man by bleeding at the nose is brought into danger of his life, the Physician lets him blood in an other place, as in the arm, and turns the course of the blood an other way to save his life: and so must we turn our worldly sorrows, for loss of goods or friends, to a godly sorrow for our offences against God: for as S. Paul saith, Godly sorrow causeth repentance unto salvation, 2. Cor. 7.10. not to be repent of: but worldly sorrow causeth death. The fift point is, that when Christ was brought to the place of execution, they gave him vinegar to drink mingled with myrrh and gall: Mar. 15.23. some say it was to intoxicate his brain, and to take away his senses and memory: which if it were true, we may here behold in these jews a most wicked part, that at the point of death when they were to take away his life, they had no care of his soul. For this is a duty to be observed of all magistrates, that when they are to execute malefactors, they must have an especial care of the salvation of their souls. But some think rather that it was to shorten and end his torments quickly. Some of us may peradventure think hardly of the jews, for giving this bitter potion to Christ at the time of his death: but the same thing doth every sinner that repenteth not. For whensoever we sin, we do as much as temper a cup of gall, or the poison of asps, & as it were give it to god to drink: for so God himself compareth the sin of the wicked jews to poison, saying, Their vine is of the vine of Sodom, & of the vines of Gomorra, their grapes are grapes of gall, their clusters be bitter, Deu. 32.22, 23. their wine is the poison of dragons, and the cruel gall of asps. And for this cause we ought to think as hardly of ourselves as of the jews, because so oft as we commit any offence against God we do as much as mingle rank poison, & bring it to Christ to drink. Now when this cup was given him he tasted of it, but drank not, because he was willing to suffer all things that his father had appointed him to suffer on the cross, without any shortening or lessening of his pain. Thus we see in what manner Christ was brought forth to the place of execution: Now followeth his crucifying. Christ in the providence of god was to be crucified for two causes: one, that the figures of the old testament might be accomplished and verified. For the heave offering lifted up and shaked from the right hand to the left, and the brazen serpent erected upon a pole in the wilderness, prefigured the exalting of Christ upon the cross. The second, that we might in conscience be resolved, Gal. 3.13 that Christ became under the law & suffered the curse thereof for us, & bare in his own body and soul the extremity of the wrath of God for our offences. And though other kinds of punishments were notes of the curse of God, as stoning and such like; yet was the death of the cross in special manner above the rest accursed, not by the nature of the punishment, not by the opinions of men, not by the civil laws of countries and kingdoms, Deu. 21.23. but by the virtue of a particular commandment of God, foreseeing what manner of death Christ our redeemer should die. And hereupon among the jew in all ages this kind of punishment hath been branded with special ignominy, as Paul signifieth when he saith, He abased himself to the death, Philip. 2.8. even to the death of the cross: & it hath been allotted as a most grievous punishment to most notorious malefactors. Num. 25 4. 2. Sam. 2●. 6. If it be said that the repentant thief upon the cross died the same death with Christ and yet was not accursed, the answer is, that in regard of his offences he deserved the curse and was actually accursed, and the sign of this was the death which he suffered, and that in his own confession: but because he repent, his sins were pardoned, and the curse removed. It may further be said, that crucifying was not known in Moses days, and therefore not accursed by any special commandment of God in Deuteronomy. Ans. Moses indeed speaks nothing in particular of crucifying▪ yet nevertheless he doth include the same under the general. For if every one which hangs upon a tree be accursed, than he also which is crucified; for crucifying is a particular kind of hanging on the tree. Lastly it may be alleged, that Christ in his death could not be accursed by the law of Moses, because he was no malefactor. Ans. Though in regard of himself he was no sinner, yet as he was our surety he became sin for us, and consequently the curse of the law for us, in that the curse every way due unto us by imputation and application was made his. Furthermore Christ was crucified not after the manner of the jews, who used to hang malefactors upon a tree binding them thereto with cords, & that when they were dead; but after the usual manner of the Romans: his body being partly nailed to the cross, Psal. 22.17. & partly in the nailing extremely racked; otherwise I see not but that a man might remain many days together alive upon the cross. And here we have occasion to remember that the Papists who are so devout & zealous towards crucifixes are far deceived in the making of them. Iren. lib. 2. cap. 42. Aug. lib. 50. Hom. 3. For first of all the cross was made of 3. pieces of wood, one fastened upright in the ground to which the body and back leaned, the second fastened towards the top of the first, overthwart to which the hands were nailed: the third fastened towards the bottom of the first, on which the feet were set and nailed: whereas contrariwise popish carvers & painters fasten both the feet of Christ to the first: secondly the feet of Christ were nailed asunder with two distinct nails, Author libri de passione inter opera Cypriani. & not nailed one upon another with one nail alone as Papists imagine, and that to the very body of the cross, for then the soldiers could not have broken both the legs of the thiefs, but only the outmost. Let us now come to the use which may be made of the crucifying of Christ. First of all here we learn with bitterness to bewail our sins: for Christ was thus cruelly nailed on the cross, and there suffered the whole wrath of God, not for any offence that ever he committed, but being our pledge and surety unto God, he suffered all for us: and therefore just cause have we to mourn for all our offences, which brought our Saviour Christ to this low estate. If a man should be so far in debt that he could not be freed, unless the surety should be cast into prison for his sake; nay, which is more, be cruelly put to death for his debt, it would make him at his wit's end, and his very heart to bleed. And so is the case with us by reason of our sins; we are Gods debtor, ye bankrupts before him, yet have we gotten a good surety, even the son of God himself, Math. ●. 12. who to recover us to our former liberty was crucified for the discharge of our debt. And therefore good cause have we to bewail our estate every day, as by the Prophet it is said, They shall look on him whom they have pierced, they shall lament for him as one mourneth for his own son: Zach. 12.10. they shall be sorry for him as one is sorry for his first borne. Look as the blood followed the nails that were stricken through the blessed hands and feet of Christ, so should the meditation of the cross and passion of our Redeemer be as it were nails and spears to pierce us, that our hearts might bleed for our sins: and we are not to think more hardly of the jews for crucifying him then of ourselves, because our sins they also crucified him. These are the very nails which pierce his hands and feet, and these are the spears which pierce through his side. For the loss of a little worldly pelf, oh how are we grieved! but seeing our transgressions are the weapons whereby the son of God was crucified, let us (I say it again and again) learn to be grieved for them above all things, & with bleeding and melting hearts bow and buckle under them, as under the cross. Secondly, Christ saith of himself, as Moses lift up the serpent in the wilderness, so must the son of man be lifted up: joh. 3.14. the comparison is excellent, and worthy the marking. In the wilderness of Arabia the people of Israel rebelled against God, and thereupon he sent fiery serpents among them, which stung many of them to death: now when they repent, Moses was commanded to make a brazen serpent, and to set it upon a pole, that as many as were stung might look unto it and recover: and if they could but cast a glance of the eye on the brazen serpent, when they were stung even to death, they were restored to health & life. Now every man that liveth is in the same case with the Israelits; Satan hath stung us at the heart, & given us many a deadly wound, if we could feel it, and Christ who was figured by the brazen serpent was likewise exalted on the cross, to confer righteousness & life eternal to every one of us: therefore if we will escape eternal death, we must renounce ourselves, & lift up the eyes of our faith to Christ crucified, & pray for the pardon of our sins: & then shall our hearts & consciences be healed of the wounds & gripes of the devil: & until such time as we have grace to do this, we shall never be cured, but still lie wounded with the stings of satan, & bleeding to death even at the very heart, although we feel no pain or grief at all. But some may ask how any man can see him crucified now after his death? Answer. Wheresoever the word of God is preached, there Christ is crucified, as Paul saith, Oh foolish Galatians, who hath bewitched you that ye should not obey the truth, Gal. 3.1. to whom before jesus Christ was described in your sight, and among you crucified? meaning that he was lively preached among them. We need not to go to wooden crosses, or to golden crucifixes to seek for him; but where the Gospel is preached, thither must we go, & there lift up our eyes of faith to Christ, as he is revealed unto us in the word; resting on him and his merits with all our hearts, and with a godly sorrow confess and bewail our sins, craving at his hands mercy and pardon for the same. For till such time as we do this, we are grievously stung by Satan, and are every moment even at death's door. And if we can thus behold Christ by faith, the benefits which comes hereby shall be great: for as Paul saith, the old man, that is, the corruption of our nature, and the body of sin that reigneth in us, shall be crucified with him: for when Christ was nailed on the cross, all our sins were laid upon him; therefore if thou dost unfeignedly believe, all thy sins are crucified with him, and the corruption of thy nature languisheth and dieth as he languished and died upon the cross. Thirdly, we must learn to imitate Christ: as he suffered himself to be nailed to the cross for our sins, so answerably must every one of us learn to crucify our flesh, and the corruption of our nature, and the wickedness of our own heart, as Paul saith, They that are Christ's, have crucified the flesh with the lusts and affections thereof. Gal. 3.24. And this we shall do, if for our sins passed we do wail and mourn with bitterness, and prevent the sins to come into whi●h we may fall by reason of the corruption of our natures, by using all good means, as prayer and fasting, and the word of God preached, and by flying all occasions of offence. We are not to destroy our bodies or to kill ourselves, but to kill and crucify sin that liveth in us, and to mortify the corruption of our nature that rebels against the spirit. Christianity stands not in this, to hear the word of God, & outwardly to profess the same, & in the mean season still to live in our sins, & to pamper our own rebellious flesh; but it teacheth us always to have in readiness some spear or other to wound sin, & the sword of the spirit to cut down corruption in us, that thereby we may show ourselves to be lively followers of Christ indeed. Fourthly, by this we may learn that the wrath of God against sin is wondered great, because his own Son bearing our person, & being in our place, was not only crucified, & racked most cruelly, but also bare the whole wrath of God in his soul: and therefore we must leave off to make so little account of sin as commonly we do. Fiftly, whereas the person crucified was the son of God, it showeth that the love of God which he bore unto us in our redemption is endless; like a sea without bank or bottom, it can not be searched into: & if we shall not acknowledge it to be so, our condemnation will be the greater. Sixtly, in this that Christ bore the curse of the law upon the cross; we learn that those that be the children of God, when they suffer any judgement, cross, or calamity, either in body or in mind or both, do not bear them as the curses of God, but as the chastisements of a loving father. For it doth not stand with the justice of God to punish one fault twice: and therefore when any man that putteth his whole confidence in God, shall either in his own person, in his good name, or in his goods feel the heavy hand of God, God doth not as a judge curse him, but as a father correct him. Here then is condemned the opinion of the Church of Rome, which hold, that we by our sufferings do in some part satisfy the justice of God: but this can not stand, because Christ did make a perfect satisfaction to the justice of his father for all punishment. And therefore satisfaction to God made by man for temporal punishment is needless, and much derogates from Christ's passion. In the crucifying of Christ, two things specially must be considered. The manner of the doing of it, and his continuance alive upon the cross. Touching the manner, the spirit of God hath noted two things. The first, that Christ was crucified between two thieves, the one upon his left hand, the other upon his right; in which action is verified the saying of the Prophet Esay, He was numbered among the wicked: Esa. 53.6. and the jews for their parts do hereby testify that they esteemed him to be not some common wicked man, but even the captain and ringleader of all thieves & malefactors whatsoever. Now whereas Christ standing upon the cross in our room and stead, is reputed the head and prince of all sinners, it serveth to teach every one of us that believe in him, to judge ourselves most vile and miserable sinners, 2. Tim. 1. 1●. and to say of ourselves with Paul, that we are the chief of all sinners. The second thing is, that Christ was crucified naked: because he was stripped of his garments by the soldiers when he was to be crucified. The causes why he suffered naked, are these. First Adam by his fall brought upon all mankind death both of body and soul, and also the curses of God which befall man in this life: among which this was one, that the nakedness of the body should be ignominious; and hereupon when Adam had sinned, & saw himself naked, he fled from the presence of God, & hide himself even for very shame. Gen. 3.7, 8. Christ therefore was stripped of his garments, and suffered naked, that he might bear all the punishment and ignominy that was due unto man for sin. Secondly, this came to pass by the goodness of God, that we might have a remedy for our spiritual nakedness, which is, when a man hath his sins lying open before God's eyes; and by reason thereof he himself lieth open to all God's judgements. Hereof the Angel speaketh to the Church of Laodicea, saying, Thou sayest I am rich, and increased with goods, Rev. 3.17. and have need of nothing, and knowest not how thou art wretched, miserable, blind, and naked. So when the Israelites had committed idolatry by the golden calf, Moses telleth them that they were naked, Exod. 32.25. not only because they had spoiled themselves of their earrings, but especially because they were destitute of God's favour, and lay open and naked unto all his judgements for that sin. And Solomon saith, Where there is no vision, there the people are made naked, that is, Prov. 29.18. their sins lie open before God; and by reason thereof they themselves are subject to his wrath and indignation. Now Christ was crucified naked, that he might take away from us this spiritual nakedness; and also give unto us meet garments to clothe us withal in the presence of God, called white raiment, Rev. 3.18. as Christ saith, I counsel thee to buy of me white raiment, that thou mayst be clothed, and that thy filthy nakedness do not appear: and, Long white robes dipped in the blood of the lamb, which serve to hide the nakedness of our souls. Rev. 7.14. What these garments are, the Apostle showeth when he saith, All that are baptised into Christ, have put on Christ. And, Gal. 3.27. Eph. 4.24. Put on the new man which after God is created in righteoosnes and true holiness. Our nakedness maketh us more vile in the sight of God, than the most loathsome creature that is can be unto us, until we have put on the righteousness of Christ to cover the deformity of our souls, that we may appear holy, and without spot before God. Thirdly, Paul saith, We know if our earthly house of this tabernacle be destroyed, we have a building given of God, 2. Cor. 5.1, 2, 3. etc. For therefore we sigh, desiring to be clothed with our house which is from heaven, because if we be clothed we shall not be found naked. Where it is like that the Apostle alludeth to the nakedness of Adam after his fall; and therefore giveth us another reason why Christ was crucified naked, namely that after this life he might clothe all his members with eternal glory. If this be so, that a part of our rejoicing stands in the glorious nakedness of Christ crucified, there is no reason why we should be puffed up with the vanity of our apparel. It should rather be an occasion to make us ashamed, then to make us proud. The thief may as well brag of the brand in his hand, or of the fetters on his heels, as we may of our attire; because it is but the covering of our shame: and therefore should put us in mind of our sin & shameful nakedness. The abode of Christ upon the cross, was about the space of six hours. August. ser. 119. de tempore. For the death of the cross was no sudden but a a Producta mors. Mar. 15.25. lingering death. And in this space of time there fell out five notable events. The first, that the soldiers having stripped Christ of his garments, divided them into four parts, and cast lots for his coat, because it was woven without seam. And by this appears the great love of Christ to man, who was not only content to suffer, but also to lose all that ever he had, even to the garments on his back to redeem us; teaching us answeerably that if it please God to call us to any trial hereafter, we must be content to part with all for his sake, that we may win him. Again, in these soldiers we may behold a picture of this world: when they had nailed Christ to the cross, they will not lose so much as his garments; but they come and divide them and cast lots for them: as for Christ himself, the Saviour and redeemer of mankind, they regard him not. And thus fareth the world; it is a hard thing to find a man to accept of Christ, because he is Christ his redeemer: but, when gains comes by Christ, than he is welcome. Esau that esteemed nothing of his father's blessing, made great account of his brother's pottage. The Gaderenes made more account of their swine, then of Christ: for when they heard that they were drowned, they beseech him to departed out of their coasts. Nay so bad is this age, that such as will be taken to be the special members of Christ, do not only with the soldiers strip Christ of his garments, but more than this, they bereave him of his natures and offices. The Church of Rome by their transubstantiation strip him of his manhood: and by making other priests after the same order with him, which do properly forgive sins, strip him of his priesthood: and of his kingly office, by joining with him a Vicar on earth, and head of the Catholic Church, and that in his presence, whereas all debitishippes and commissions cease in the presence of the principal. And when they have done all this, than they further load him with a number of a beggarly ceremonies; and so do nothing else but make a * Fictitium Christum. feighned Christ, in stead of the true and alone Messiah. The second event was, that Christ was mocked of all sorts of men. First, they set up the cause written why he was crucified, namely, This is the King of the jew: then the people that passed by reviled him, Math. 27.37, 38, 39 wagging their heads at him, and said, Thou that destroyest the temple and buildest it in three days, save thyself, etc. Likewise the high priests mocking him, with the Scribes and pharisees and the Elders, said, He saved others, let him safe himself. The same also did one of the thieves that was crucified with him, cast in his teeth. Behold here the wonderful strange dealing of the jews: they see an innocent man thus pitifully and grievously racked, and nailed on the cross, and his blood distilling down from hands and feet; and yet are they without all pity and compassion, and do make but a mock and a scoff at him. And in this we may plainly see how dangerous and fearful their case is, who are wholly given up to the hardness of their own hearts: and we are further admonished to take heed how we give ourselves to jesting or mocking of others. And if any think it to be a light sin, let them consider what befell the jews for mocking Christ. The hand of God was upon them within a while after, and so remaineth to this day. Little children wickedly brought up, when they saw Elisha the man of God coming, they mocked him, and said, Come up thou bald pate, come up thou bald pate: 2. King. 2.23, 24. but Elisha looked back on them, and cursed them in the name of the Lord, and two wild bears came out of the forest and tore in pieces two and forty of them. julian once a Christian Emperor, but after an Apostata, did nothing else but mock Christ and his Gospel, & made jests of sundry places of Scripture: but being in fight against the Persians, was wounded with a dart no man knows how, and died scoffing and blaspheming, And such like are the judgements of God, which befall mockers and skorners. Let us therefore in the fear of God learn to eschew and avoid this sin. Furthermore, if we shall indifferently consider all the mocks and skornings of the jews, we shall find that they cannot truly convince him of the least sin; which serveth to clear Christ, and to prove that he was a most innocent man, in whose ways was no wickedness, and in whose mouth was found no guile: and therefore he was most fit to stand in our room, and suffer for us which were most vile and sinful. And here by the way a question offereth itself to be scanned. Saint Matthew saith, The thieves which were crucified with him, Mat. 27.44. cast the same in his teeth which the Scribes and pharisees did: Saint Luke saith, that one of the thieves mocked him. Luk. 23.39. Now it may be demanded, how both these can be true? Answer. Some reconcile the places thus; that the Scripture speaking generally of any thing, Synecdoche. by a figure doth attribute that to the whole, which is proper to some part only: and so here doth ascribe that to both the thieves which agreeth but to one. Others answer it thus: that at the first both of the evil doers did mock Christ, and of that time speaketh Matthew: but afterward one of them was miraculously converted, than the other alone mocked him, & of that time spoke S. Luke. And this I rather take to be the truth. But what was the behaviour of Christ, when he is thus laden with reproach? In wonderful patience he replies not, but puts up all in silence. Where we may note, that when a man shall ●aile on us wrongfully, we must not return rebuke for rebuke, nor taunt for taunt: but we must either be silent, or else speak no more than shall serve for our just defence. This was the practice of the Israelites, by the appointment of Hezekias, when Rab●●akah reviled the jews, and blasphemed the name of God; the people held their peace, and answered him not a word: for the king's commandment was, answer him not. So Hannah being troulbed in mind, prayed unto the Lord, 2. King. 18.36. and Hely marked her mouth, for she spoke in her heart, and her lips did move only, but her voice was not heard, therefore Hely thought she had been drunken, and said, How long wilt thou be drunken? put away thy drunkenness from thee. 1. Sam. 1.14. Such a speech would have moved many one to very hard words: but she said, Nay, my lord, but I am a woman troubled in spirit, I have drunk neither wine nor strong drink: but have powered out my soul before the Lord. This is a hard lesson for men to learn; but we must endeavour ourselves to practise it, if we will be followers of Christ, and overcome evil with good. The third thing that fell out in the time of Christ's crucifying, was the pitiful complaint, in which he cried with a loud voice, Eli, Eli, lamasabact hani, that is, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? Mat. 27.46. In the opening of this complaint many points must be scanned. The first is, what was the cause that moved Christ to complain? Answer. It was not any impatience or discontentation of mind, or any despair, or any dissembling, as some would have it: but it was an apprehension and a feeling of the whole wrath of God, which seized upon him both in body and soul. The second, what was the thing whereof he doth complain. Answer. That he is forsaken of God the father. And from this point ariseth an other question. How Christ being God can be forsaken of God? for the father, the Son, and the holy Ghost are all three but one and the same God. Answer. By God we must understand God the Father the first person. According to the common rule, when God is compared with the Son or holy Ghost, than the father is meant by the this title God, as in this place: not that the father is more God than the Son, for in dignity all the three people are equal: but they are distinguished in order only, & the father is first. And again whereas Christ complaineth that he was forsaken, it must be understood in regard of his human nature, not of his Godhead. And Christ's manhood was forsaken, not that his Godhead and manhood were severed, for they were ever joined together from the first moment of the incarnation: but the Godhead of Christ, and so the Godhead of the father did not show forth his power in the manhood, but did as it were lie asleep for a time, that the manhood might suffer: when a man sleepeth the soul is not severed from the body, but lieth as it were dead, and exerciseth not itself: even so the Godhead lay still, and did not manifest his power in the manhood, and thus the manhood seemed to be forsaken. The third point is, the manner of this complaint; My God, my God, saith he: these words are words of faith, I say not of justifying faith, whereof Christ stood not in need: but he had such a faith or hope, whereby he did put his confidence in God. The last words, why hast thou forsaken me? seem at the first to be words of distrust. How then (will some say) can these words stand with the former: for faith & distrust are flat contraries? Answ. Christ did not utter any speech of distrust, but only make his moan & complaint, by reason of the greatness of his punishment: & yet still relied himself on the assistance of his father. Hence we learn, first that religion doth not stand in feeling, but in faith: which faith we must have in Christ, though we have no feeling at all: for God oftentimes doth withdraw his grace & favour from his children, that he may teach them to believe in his mercy in Christ then, when they feel nothing less than his mercy. And faith & feeling can not always stand together; because faith is a subsisting of things which are not seen, and the ground of things hoped for: and we must live by faith, and not by feeling. Though feeling of God's mercy be a good thing, yet God doth not always vouchsafe to give it unto his children: and therefore in the extremity of afflictions and temptations, we must always trust and rely on God by faith in Christ; as Christ himself doth when he is as it were plunged into the sea of the wrath of God. Secondly, here we may see how God dealeth with his children: for Christ in the sense and feeling of his human nature was forsaken, yet had he sure trust and confidence in God, that caused him to say, My God, my God. God will oftentimes cast his dear children into huge gulfs of woe and misery, where they shall see neither bank nor bottom, nor any way to get out: yet men in this case must not despair, but remember still that that which befell Christ the head, doth also befall his members. Christ himself at his death did bear the wrath of God in such measure, as that in the sense and feeling of his human nature he was forsaken: yet in all this he was the Son of God, and had the spirit of his father, crying, My God, my God. And therefore though we be wonderfully afflicted either in body or in mind, so as we have no sense or feeling of God's mercy at all, yet we must not despair and think that we are castaways, but still labour to trust and rely on God in Christ, & build upon this that we are his children, though we feel nothing but his wrath upon us, against mercy cleaving to his mercy. This was David's practice: In the day of trouble (saith he) I sought the Lord: my sore ran and ceased not in the night: my soul refused comfort. Psal. 77.2, 3. I did think upon God and was troubled: my soul was full of anguish: and so continueth, saying, Will the Lord absent himself for ever? and will he show no more favour? hath God forgotten to be merciful? vers. 10, 11, 12, etc. but in the end he recovereth himself out of this gulf of temptation, saying, Yet I remember the years of the right hand of the most high: I remember the works of the Lord, certainly I remember the wonders of old. Wherefore this practice of Christ in his passion, must then be remembered of us all, when God shall humble us either in body or soul or both. The fourth thing which fell out when Christ was on the cross was this: after Christ knew that all things were performed, & that the Scriptures were fulfilled, he said, I thirst; and then there standing a vessel full of vinegar, joh. 19.28. one ran and filled a sponge therewith, and put it about an hyssop stalk, and put it to his mouth: which when he had received, he said, It is finished. The points here to be considered, are four. The first, that Christ thirsteth. And we must know that this thirst was a part of his passion; and indeed it was no small pain, as we may see by this: when Sisera was overcome by Israel, jud. 4.19. and had fled from his enemies to jaels' tent, he called for a little water to drink, being more troubled with thirst, then with the fear of death at the hand of his enemies. And indeed thirst was as grievous to men in the East country, as any torment else. And hereupon Samson was more grieved with thirst, then with fear of many thousand Philistims. jud. 15.18. Again, whereas Christ complains that he thirsteth▪ it was not for his own sake, but for our offence: and therefore answerably we must thirst after Christ and his benefits, as the dry and thirsty land where no water is, doth after rain: Psal. 143.6. & 42.1. and as the heart brayeth after the rivers of water, so must we say with David, My soul panteth after thee, O Lord, and the benefits of thy death. The second, that a sponge full of vinegar tied upon an hyssop stalk, was reached to Christ upon the cross. Now it may be demanded, how this could be, considering the stalk of the hyssop is not past a foot long. Answer. As the tree of mustard seed with the jews is far greater and taller than with us, in so much that the birds of heaven build their nests in it: so it may be that hyssop groweth much longer in those countries then with us. Or, as I take it rather, Mat. 15.36. the hyssop stalk was put upon a reed, and by that means the sponge was put up to the mouth of Christ. The third point is, that Christ drinketh the vinegar offered: but when? Not before all things were finished that were to be done on the cross. And by this he shows his exceeding care for our salvation. He laid aside all things that would turn to his own ease, that he might fully work our redemption, and fulfil the will of his father who sent him into the world for that end. The like care must every one of us have to walk dutifully, and as it were, to go with thoroughstitch in our particular callings▪ that God may be glorified by us. When Abraham's servant came to Bethuel to get a wife for Isaac, me●t was set before him, but he said, I will not eat before I have said my message: so likewise we must first see Gods glory procured in our affairs, and then in the second place, Gen. 24. 3●. if commodity or praise redound to us, we must afterward take it. The last point is, that when Christ had drunk the vinegar he said, It is finished. Which words may have a double sense: one, that such things as were figured by the sacrifices of the old testament are accomplished: the other, that now upon the cross he had finished his satisfaction to the justice of his father for man's sin. And this of the twain I rather think to be his meaning. If it be said, that the burial and resurrection and ascension of Christ, etc. which are very necessary to man's redemption, were not yet begun, the answer is, that the works of Christ's priesthood which follow his death serve not to make any satisfaction to God's justice for sin, but only to confirm or apply it, after it is made and accomplished on the cross. And if this be so, that Christ in his own person accomplished the work of redemption, and made a full and perfect satisfaction for us, as these words import, It is finished, then human satisfactions to God's justice for sin are altogether superfluous. The fifth event that fell out when Christ was upon the cross was, that he cried with a loud voice, and said, Father, into thy hands I lay down my spirit, that is, I commend my soul as being the most precious thing which I have in this world into thy custody, who art a most faithful keeper thereof. These words are taken by Christ out of the Psalms: for when David was in danger of his life by reason of Saul, and had no friend to trust, he makes choice of God to be his keeper, and said, Into thy hands, O Lord, do I commend my spirit. Psal. 31.5. Now our Saviour Christ being in the like distress, both by reason of the jews, who every way sought his final destruction and confusion, and especially because he felt the full wrath of God seizing upon him, doth make choice of David's words, and apply them to himself in his distress. And by his example we are taught not only to read the general history of the Bible, but also to observe the things commanded and forbidden, and to apply the same unto ourselves, and to our particular estates and dealings whatsoever: thus the Prophet David saith, In the roll of the book it is written of me, that I should do thy will, Psal. 40.7. O my God How can this be? for no part of Scripture penned before the days of David saith thus of him. True indeed: but as I take it, David's meaning is, that he read the book of the Law, and found general precepts and commandments given to Kings and Princes, that they should keep all the ordinances and commandments of God, which he being a King applies particularly to his own person, and thereupon saith, In the volume of the book it is written of me, etc. And this duty is well practised by the people of God at this day: for the Psalms of David were penned according to the estate of the Church in his time: and in these days the Church of God doth sing the same with the same spirit that David did, and doth apply them to their several estates and conditions. Now in that Christ commends his soul into the hands of his father, he doth it to testify that he died not by constraint, but willingly: and by his own practice he doth teach us to do the like, namely to give up our own souls into the hands of God. And because this duty is of some difficulty, we must observe three motives or preparatives which may induce us to the better doing of it. The first is, to consider that God the Father of Christ, is the creator of our souls, and therefore he is called the father of spirits. And if he be a creator of them, than is he also a faithful preserver of them. For sure it is, that God will preserve his own workmanship. Who is or can be so careful for the ornament and preservation of any work, as the craftsmaster? and shall not God be more careful than man? wherefore Saint Peter exhorteth us to commit our souls unto God, as unto a faithful creator. The second motive is this, we must look to be resolved in our consciences, that God the Father of Christ is our Father: every man for himself must labour to have the assurance of the pardon of his own sins, and that the corruption of his soul be washed away in the blood of Christ, that he may say, I am justified, sanctified, and adopted by Christ. And when any man can say thus, he shall be most desirous and willing to commit his soul into the hands of God. This was the reason which moved Christ to lay down his soul into the hands of God, because he is his Father. The third motive or preparative is, a continual experience and observation of God's love and favour towards us, in keeping and preserving him; as appears by David's example, Into thy hands (saith he) I commit my soul: Psal. 31.5. for thou hast redeemed me, O thou God of truth. The time when we are specially to commend our souls into the hand of God, is first of all the time of any affliction or danger. This was the time when David commended his soul into the hands of God in the Psalm before named. We know that in any common danger or peril, as the sacking of a city, or burning of an house, if a man have any precious jewel therein, he will first fetch that out, and make choice of a faithful friend, to whose custody he will commit the same: even so, in common perils and dangers, we must always remember to commit our souls as a most precious jewel into the hands of God, who is a faithful creator. An other more special and necessary time of practising this duty, is the hour of death, as here Christ doth, and Steven, who when the jews stoned him to death, called on God, and said, Lord jesus receive my spirit. And as this duty is very requisite and necessary at all times, so most especially in the hour of death; because the danger is great by reason that Satan will then chief assault us, and the guilt of sin will especially then wound the conscience. Lastly, at all times we must commit our souls into God's hands: for though we be not always in affliction, yet we are always in great danger: and when a man lieth down to rest, he knoweth not whether he shall rise again or no; and when he riseth, he knoweth not whether he shall lie down again. Yea, at this very hour we know not what will befall the next. And great are the comforts which arise by the practice of this duty. When David was in great danger of his life, and his own people would have stoned him, because their hearts were vexed for their sons and daughters which the Amalekites had taken; it is said he comforted himself in the Lord his God. 1. Sam. 30.6. And the practice of Paul in this case is most excellent: For the which cause (saith he) I suffer those things, ●. Tim. 1.12. but I am not ashamed: for I know whom I have believed, and I am persuaded that he is able to keep that which I have committed unto him against that day. This worthy servant of God had committed his life and soul into God's hand: and therefore he saith, In all my sufferings I am not ashamed: where we may see, that if a man have grace in his lifetime to commit his soul into God's hand, it will make him bold even at the point of death. And this must be a motive to cause every man every day and hour to lay down his soul into the hands of God, although by the course of nature he may live twenty years longer. But howsoever this duty be both necessary and comfortable, yet few there be that practice the same. Men that have children are very careful and diligent to bring them up under some man's tuition; and if they have cattle, sheep, or oxen, they provide keepers to tend them: but in the mean season for their own souls they have no care, they may sink or swim or do what they will. This showeth the wonderful blindness or rather madness of men in the world, that have more care for their cattle, then for their own souls: but as Christ hath taught us by his example, so let every one of us in the fear of God learn to commit our souls into the hand of God. Again, in that Christ lays down his own soul, and withal the souls of all the faithful into the hands of the father, we further learn three things. The first, that the soul of man doth not vanish away as the souls of beasts and other creatures: there is great difference between them: for when the beast dieth, his soul dieth also: but the soul of man is immortal. The consideration whereof must move every man above all things in this world to be careful for his soul: if it were to vanish away at the day of death, as the soul of beasts do, the neglect thereof were no great matter: but seeing it must live for ever, either in eternal joy, or else in endless pains and torments, it stands us upon, every man for himself, so to provide for his soul in this life, that at the day of death when it shall departed from his body, it may live in eternal joy and happiness. The second, that there is an especial and particular providence of God, because the particular soul of Christ is committed into the hands of his father, and so answerably the souls of every one of the faithful are. The third, that every one which believes himself to be a member of Christ, must be willing to die when God shall call him thereunto. For when we die in Christ, the body is but laid asleep, and the soul is received into the hands of a most loving God and merciful Father, as the soul of Christ was. Lastly, whereas Christ surrendering his soul into his father's hands, calls it a spirit, we note, that the soul of man is a spirit, that is, a spiritual, invisible, simple essence without composition created, as the angels of God are. The question whether the soul of a child come from the soul of the parents as the body doth come from their bodies, may easily be resolved. For the soul of man being a spirit, can not beget another spirit, as the Angels being spiritual do not beget Angels: for one spirit begetteth not another. Nay which is more▪ one simple element begetteth not another, as the water begetteth not water, nor air begetteth air: and therefore much less can one soul beget an other. Again, if the soul of the child come from the soul of the parents, than there is a propagation of the whole soul of the parent or of some part thereof. If it be said, that the whole soul of the parents be propagated, than the parents should want their own souls and could not live. If it be said that a part of the parents soul is propagated: I answer, that the soul being a spirit or a simple substance can not be parted: and therefore it is the safest to conclude, that the body indeed is of the body of the parents, & that the soul of man while the body is in making, is created of nothing: Heb. 12.9. and for this very cause God is called the Father of spirits. Thus much of the crucifying of Christ: Now followeth his death. For having laid down his soul into the hands of his Father, Luk. 23.46. the holy Ghost saith, he gave up the ghost: to give us to understand, that his death was no fantastical but a real death, in that his body and soul were severed as truly as when any of us die. In treating of Christ's death we must consider many points. The first, that it was needful that he should die, and that for two causes. First, to satisfy God's justice: for sin is so odious a thing in God's ●ight, that he will punish it with an extreme punishment: therefore Christ standing in our room must not only suffer the miseries of this life, but also die on the cross, that the very extremity of punishment which we should have borne, might be laid on him: and so we in Christ, might fully satisfy God's justice: for the wages of sin is death. Secondly Christ died that he might fulfil the truth of God's word which had said, that man for eating the forbidden fruit should die the death. The properties of Christ's death are two: Gen. 2.17. The first, that it was a voluntary and willing death: The second, that it was a cursed death. For the first, whereas I say Christ's death was voluntary, I mean that Christ died willingly, and of his own free accord gave up himself to suffer upon the cross. Howsoever the jews did arraign, and condemn, and crucify him, yet if he had not willed his own death, and of his free accord given himself to die▪ not the jews nor all the whole world could ever have taken away his life from him. He died not by constraint or compulsion, but most willingly: and therefore he saith, No man taketh my life from me, but I (saith he) lay it down of myself: I have power to lay it down▪ and have power to take it again. joh. 10.18. Mat. 27.46. Luk. 23.46. And our Saviour Christ gave evident tokens hereof in his death, for then jesus cried with a loud voice, and gave up the ghost. Ordinarily men that die on the cross, languish away by little and little, and before they come to yield up their lives they lose their speech, and only ratle or make a noise in the throat: Isai. 38.14. but Christ at that very instant when he was to give up the ghost, cried with a loud voice: which showeth plainly, that he in his death was more than a conqueror over death. And therefore to give all men a token of his power, and to show that he died voluntarily, it pleased him to cry with a loud voice. And this made the Centurion to say that he was the son of God. Again, Christ died not as other men do; Mar. 15.39. because they first give up the ghost, and then lay their heads aside: but he in token that his death was voluntary, first lays his head aside after the manner of a dead man, joh. 19.30. and then afterward gives up the ghost. Lastly, Christ died sooner than men are wont to do upon the cross, and this was the cause that made Pilate wonder that he was so soon dead. Mar. 15.44. Now this came to pass not because he was loath to suffer the extremity of death: but hecause he would make it manifest to all men that he had power to die or not to die. And indeed this is our comfort that Christ died not for us by constraint, but willingly of his own accord. And as Christ's death was voluntary, so was it also an accursed death, and therefore it is called the death of the cross. And it contained the first and the second death: To signify this point the Creed saith that he was crucified & also died. the first is the separation of the body from the soul: the second is the separation of body & soul from God: And both were in Christ: for beside the bodily death, he did in soul apprehend the wrath of God due to man for sin: & that made him cry, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? And here we must not omit a necessary point, namely, how far forth Christ suffered death. Answ. Some think that he suffered only a bodily death and such pains as follow the dissolution of nature: but they no doubt come to short, for why should Christ have feared death so greatly if it had been nothing but the dissolution of nature. Some again think that he died, not only the first, but also the second death: but it may be that is to go to far: for if to die the first death be to suffer a total separation of body and soul, then also to die the second death is wholly and every way to be severed from all favour of God, and at the least for a time to be oppressed of the same death as the damned are. Now this never befell Christ, no not in the midst of his sufferings, considering that even than he was able to call God his God. Therefore the safest is to follow the mean; namely that Christ died the first death▪ in that his body and soul were really and wholly severed, yet without suffering any corruption in his body, which is the effect and fruit of the same: and that withal he further suffered the extreme horrors and pangs of the second death, not dying the same death nor being forsaken of god, more than in his own apprehension or feeling. For in the very midst of his sufferings the father was well pleased with him. And this which I say doth not any whit lessen the sufficiency of the merit of Christ: for whereas he suffered truly the very wrath of God, and the very torments of the damned in his soul, it is as much as if all the men in the world had died the second death, and had been wholly cut off from God for ever and ever. And no doubt Christ died the first death, only suffering the pangs of the second, that the first death might be an entrance not to the second death which is eternal damnation, but a passage to life eternal. The benefits and comforts which arise by the death of Christ are specially four. The first is the change of our natural death, I say not, the taking of it away, for we must all die; but whereas by nature death is a curse of God upon man for eating the forbidden fruit, by the death of Christ it is changed from a curse into a blessing: and is made as it were a middle way and entrance to convey men out of this world into the kingdom of glory in heaven: and therefore it is said, Heb. 2.15. Christ by his death hath delivered them from the fear of death, which all the days of their lives were subject to bondage. A man that is to encounter with a Scorpion▪ if he know that it hath a sting, he may be dismayed: but being assured that the sting is taken away, he need not fear to encounter therewith. Now death in his own nature considered, is this scorpion armed with a sting: but Christ our Saviour by his death hath pulled out the sting of our death, and on the cross triumphantly saith, O death where is thy sting? O grave where is thy victory? 1. Cor. 15.55. & therefore even then when we feel the pangs of death approach, we should not fear but conceive hope, considering that our death is altered and changed by the virtue of the death of Christ. Secondly, the death of Christ hath quite taken away the second death from those that are in Christ: as Paul saith, There is no condemnation to them which are in Christ jesus, Rom. 8.1. which walk not after the flesh, but after the spirit. Thirdly the death of Christ is a means to ratify his last will and testament: For this cause was Christ the Mediator of the new testament, that through death (which was for the redemption of the transgressions which were in the former testament) they which were called might receive the promise of the eternal inheritance. Heb. 9.15.16. For where a testament is, there must be the death of him that made the Testament: for the Testament is confirmed when men are dead: for it is yet of no force, as long as he is alive that made it. And therefore the death of Christ doth make his last will and testament which is his covenant of grace, authentical unto us. Fourthly, the death of Christ doth serve to abolish the original corruption of our sinful hearts. As a strong corasive laid to a sore eats out all the rotten and dead flesh, even so Christ's death being applied to the heart of a penitent sinner by faith, weakens and consumes the sin that cleaves so fast unto our natures and dwells within us. Some will say, how can Christ's death which now is not, because it is long ago past and ended, kill sin in us now? Answer, Indeed if we regard the act of Christ's death, it is past, but the virtue and power thereof endureth for ever. And the power of Christ's death is nothing else but the power of his godhead, which enabled him in his death to overcome hell, the grave, death, and condemnation, and to disburden himself of our sins. Now when we have grace to deny ourselves, and to put our trust in Christ, and by faith are joined to him, then as Christ himself by the power of his godhead overcame death, hell, and damnation in himself: so shall we by the same power of his godhead kill & crucify sin & corruption in ourselves. Therefore seeing we reap such benefit by the death of Christ, if we will show ourselves to be Christians, let us rejoice in the death of Christ: and if the question be, what is the chiefest thing wherein we rejoice in this world? we may answer, the very cross of Christ, and the least drop of his blood. The duties to be learned by the death of Christ are two: the first concerns all ignorant and impenitent sinners. Such men whatsoever they be, by the death of Christ upon the cross, must be moved to turn from their sins: and if the consideration hereof will not move them, nothing in the world will. By nature every man is a vassal of sin, and a bondslave of Satan: the devil reigns and rules in all men by nature, and we ourselves can do nothing but serve and obey him. Nay (which is more) we lie under the fearful curse of God for the least sin. Well now, see the love of the son of God, that gave himself willingly to death upon the cross for thee, that he might free thee from this most fearful bondage. Wherefore let all those that live in sin and ignorance reason thus with themselves: Hath Christ the Son of God done this for us, and shall we yet live still in our sins? hath he set open as it were the very gates of hell, and shall we yet lie weitring in out damnable ways and in the shadow of death? In the fear of God let the death of Christ be a means to turn us to Christ: if it can not move us, let us be resolved that our case is dangerous. To go yet further in this point, every one of us is by nature a sick man, wounded at the very heart by sathan: though we feel it not, yet we are deadly sick: & behold, Christ is the good Physician of the soul, & none in heaven or earth, neither Saint, angel, nor man can heal this our spiritual wound, but he alone: who, though he were equal with the father, yet he came down from his bosom and became man, & lived here many years in misery & contempt: and when no herb nor plaster could cure this our deadly wound or desperate sickness, he was content to make a plaster with his own blood: the pain he took in making it caused him to sweat water & blood: nay the making of it for us cost him his life, in that he was content by his own death to free us from death: which if it be true, as it is most true, them woeful & wretched is our case if we will still live in sin, & will not use means to lay this plaster unto our hearts. And after the plaster is applied to the soul, we should do as a man that hath been grievously sick, who when he is on the mending hand gets strength by little & little. And so should we become new creatures going on from grace to grace, and show the same by living godlily, righteously, and soberly, that the world may see that we are cured of our spiritual disease. O happy, yea thrice happy are they that have grace from God to do this. The second duty concerns them which are repentant sinners. Hath Christ given himself for thee, & is thy conscience settled in this? then thou must answerably bear this mind, that if thy life would serve for the glory of God & the good of his Church, thou wouldst then give it most willingly if thou be called thereto. Secondly, if Christ for thy good hath given his life, than thou must in like manner be content to die for thy brethren in Christ if need be: He (saith S. john) laid down his life for us, 1. joh. 3.16. therefore we ought to lay down our lives for our brethren. Thirdly, if Christ was contemn to shed his own hearts blood not for himself, but for the sins of every one of us, them we must be thus affected, that rather than by sinning we would willingly offend god, we should be content to have our own blood shed: yea if these two things were put to our choice, either to do that which might displease God, or else to suffer death, we must rather die then do the same. Of this mind have been all the martyrs of God, who rather than they would yield to Idolatry, were content to suffer most bitter torments & cruel death. Yea, every good christian is so affected, that he had rather choose to die then to live, not moved by impatience in respect of the miseries of this life: but because he would cease to offend so loving a father. To sin is meat & drink to the world, but to a touched & repentant heart there is no torment so grievous as this is, to sin against God, if once he be persuaded that Christ died for him. Thus much for Christ's death: now follow those things which befell Christ when he was newly dead; and they are two especially. The first, that his legs were not broken as the legs of the two thiefs were. Of the first, S. john rendereth a reason, namely that the scripture might be fulfilled, joh. 19.36. which saith, not a bone of him shall be broken: which words were spoken by Moses of the paschal lamb, and are here applied to Christ, Exo. 12.46. as being typically figured thereby. And hence we observe these two things. First, that Christ crucified is the true paschal lamb as S. Paul saith, Christ our passover is sacrificed: 1. Cor. 5.7. joh. 1.29. and S. john saith, Behold the lamb of God, distinguishing him thereby from the typical lamb. In this that Christ crucified is the true paschal lamb, the child of God hath wonderful matter of comfort. The Israelites did eat the passover in Egypt, Exo. 12.23. and sprinkled the blood of the lamb on the posts of their doors, that when the Angel of God came to destroy the first borne both of man and beast, and saw the blood upon their houses might pass over them, that the plague should not be upon them to destruction. So likewise if thou dost feed on the lamb of God, and by a lively faith sprinkle the door of thine heart with his blood, the judgements of god in this life, and the terrible curse of death, with the fearful sentence of condemnation at the day of judgement, & all punishments due unto thy sins shall pass over thee, and not so much as touch thee. And whereas the legs of our Saviour Christ were not broken by the soldiers, who sought by all means possible to work against him all the mischief they could: we may note, that the enemies of Christ and his Church, let them intend to show never so much malice against him, they can not go beyond that liberty which God giveth them: then Gods will is they can do no more for their lives. The Medes and Persians are called the Lords sanctified once: Isai. 13.3. Isai. 46.11. Cyrus is called the man of God's counsel, because whatsoever they intended against the people of God, yet in all their proceed they did nothing, but that which God had determined before to be done. And when Senacherib came against the jews as a wild beast out of his den, the Lord telleth Hezekiah concerning Ashur that he will put his hook in his nostrils, Isai. 37.29. & his bridle in his lips, and bring him back again the same way he came, that is, he will so rule him that he shall not do the lest hurt unto the jews, more than god will. This is a matter of great comfort to God's Church oppressed with manifold enemies, Papists, jews, Turks, & all infidels, maliciously bend against it for Christ's sake. Now they may intend & practise mischief, but more than Gods will and counsel is they can not do: for he hath his ring in their nostrils, and his bridle in their lips to rule them as he listeth. The second thing which fell out immediately upon the death of Christ is, that the soldiers pierced his side with a spear, & thence issued water & blood. The use which ariseth of this point is twofold: First, it serves to prove that Christ died truly, & not in show, or a feigned death: for there is about the heart a film or skin like unto a purse wherein is contained clear water to cool the heat of the heart, Columb. de re Anat. l. 7. and therefore when water & blood issued out after the piercing of the side, it is very likely that that very skin was pierced: for else in reason we can not conjecture whence this water should come. S. john an eye-witness of this thing, being about to prove that jesus the son of Mary was the true Messiah, bringeth in six witnesses: three in heaven, the Father, the word, and the Holy Ghost: and three in earth, the Water, the Spirit, and the blood: 1. joh. 5.8. where no doubt he alludeth to the water and blood that issued out of the side of Christ▪ by spirit we may understand the efficacy and operation of God's spirit making men to bring forth the fruits of the same, as love, peace, joy, etc. And the second witness namely water, hath relation to the water that came forth of Christ's side, which signifieth the inward washing away of sin, & the purging of the heart by Christ's blood: which also is and was signified by the outward washing of the body with water in baptism. The third witness he calls blood, alluding to the blood that issued out of Christ's side: whereby is signified the expiation or satisfaction made to God's justice for man's sin. The same use had the ceremonial sprinkling with blood in the old testament, typically signifying the sprinkling of Christ's blood. Now these three witnesses are not to be sought for in heaven, but every Christian man must search for them in his own heart and conscience, & there shall he find them in some measure. And this water and blood flowing out of the side of Christ being now dead, signifieth that he is our justification and sanctification even after his death: & that out of his death springs our life: and therefore as Eve was made of a rib taken out of the side of the first Adam: so springs the Church of the blood that flows out of the side of the second Adam. Having thus entreated of Christ's execution, let us now come to the last point, namely, the excellency of Christ's passion, consisting in these two points. I. a sacrifice. II. a triumph. For the first, when Christ died he offered a propitiatory & real sacrifice to his father: & herein his death & passion differeth from the sufferings & deaths of all men whatsoever. In this sacrifice, we must consider 4. things. I. who was the priest. II. what was the sacrifice. III. what was the altar. iv the time wherein this sacrifice was offered. The priest was Christ himself, as the author of the Epistle to the Hebrues proves at large from the third chap. to the 9 and of him we are to consider these 4. points. The first, what is the office of Christ's priesthood. Answer. The office of Christ's priesthood stands in 3. things. I. to teach doctrine, & therefore he is called the high priest of our profession, that is, of the Gospel which we profess, Heb. 3.1. because he is the author and doctor of the same. II. to offer up himself unto his father in the behalf of man, for the appeasing of his wrath for sin. III. to make request or intercession to God the father, that he would accept the sacrifice which he offered on the cross for us. The second is according to which nature he was a priest: whether in his manhood, or in his godhead, or both together? Ans. The office of his priesthood is performed by him according to both his natures: & therefore he is a priest not as the papists would have him, according to his manhood only, but as he is both God & man: for as he is a mediator, so is he a priest: but Christ is a mediator according to both natures: each nature doing that which is peculiar to it, & conferring something to the work of redemption: & therefore he is a priest as he is both God & man. The third point, after what order is he a priest? Ans. The scripture mentioneth 2. orders of priests: the order of Levi, & the order of Melchisedeck. Christ was not a priest after the order of Aaron: & yet notwithstanding in that priesthood were many notable rites whereby the priesthood of our Saviour Christ was resembled, & we may note 5. especially. First in the anointing of the high priests, as of Aaron & his sons after him, oil was powered on his head, Exop. 29.7. Psal. 113.2. & it ran down to the very edge of his garments, whereby was signified that Christ the true high priest was anointed with the oil of gladness above his fellows, Psal. 45.7. that his manhood was filled with the gifts and graces of God, both in measure, number, & degree above all men & angels. Secondly the sumptuous & gorgeous apparel which the high priest put on when he came into the sanctuary, Exod. 28.2. was a sign of the rich & glorious rob of Christ's righteousness, which is the purity & integrity of his human nature & of his life. Thirdly, the special parts of the high priests attire were, first the Ephod, the 2. shoulders whereof had 2 onyx stones, Exo. 28.12, 21. whereon were engraven the names of the 12. tribes of Israel: 6. names on the one stone, & 6. on the other, as stones of remembrance of the children of Israel to god ward: secondly, the breastplate of judgement like the work of the Ephod, wherein were set 12. stones according to the names of the children of Israel, graven as signets every one after his name. Now by these 2. ornaments were figured two things in Christ: by the first, that he carries all the elect on his shoulders, & supports then by his spirit so long as they are in this world, against the world, the flesh, & the devil. By the second, that Christ our high priest being now in his sanctuary in heaven, hath in memory all the elect, & their very names are written as it were in tables of gold before his face, & he hath an especial love & care over them. Upon this ground the church in the Canticles prays on this manner, Cant. 8.6. Set me as a seal on thy heart, & as a signet upon thy arm. And indeed this a matter of comfort to us all, that Christ hath our several names written in precious stones before his face, though he be now in heaven & we on earth: & the particular estate of every one of us is both known & regarded of him. Again, God gave to Moses the urim & Thummim, which was put on the breastplate of the high priest, when he was to ask counsel from God of things unknown, before the mercy seat, whence God gave answer. What the urim & Thummim was it is not known: & it is like it was not made by any art of man, but given by God; & how it was used we can not tell: but yet the signification of the words affordeth matter of meditation. urim signifies lights, & Thummim signifies perfections. And by this a further matter was prefigured in Christ, who hath the perfit urim & Thummim in his breast: first, because in him are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge: Coloss. 2.3. secondly, because he reveiles to his Church out of his word such things as none can know but the children of God: as David saith, The secret of the Lord is revealed to them that fear him. Psal. 25.14. Ephe. 1.17. 1. Cor. 2.12. And for this cause the spirit of Christ is called the spirit of wisdom & revelation; & the spirit of God, whereby we know the things that are given unto us of God: as namely, our election, vocation, justification, & sanctification in this life, & our eternal glorification after this life: yea to every member of Christ within his Church he gives a special spirit of revelation, whereby he may know that God the father is his father; the son the redeemer, his redeemer; & the H. ghost his sanctifier & comforter. Lastly the high priest had a plate on his forehead, & therein was in graven the holiness of jehovah: this signified the holiness of Christ: Exo. 28.36. for as he is God, he is holiness itself: & as he is man, he is most holy, being sanctified by the H. ghost for this end, that he might cover our sins & unrighteousness, with his righteousness & holy obedience. The second order of priesthood is the order of Melchisedec: of which Christ was, as David saith, Thou art a priest for ever after the order of Melchisedeck: Heb. 7. & that in 2. special respects. I. Melchisedeck was both a priest & a king: so was Christ. II. Melchisedeck had neither father nor mother, because his history is set down with mention of neither. So likewise Christ as he is God, had no mother, and as he is man, he had no father. The Papists avouch Christ to be a Priest of this order in a new respect, in that as Melchisedeck offered bread and wine, when Abraham came from the slaughter of the Kings: Gen. 14.18. so (say they) Christ in the last supper did offer his own body and blood under the forms of bread and wine. But this is a frivolous devise of theirs: for if we read Hebr. 7. where this point is handled, there is no comparison at all made of their two sacrifices; but the resemblances before named are only set down. Again, it is not said in Genesis that Melchisedeck offered sacrifice; but that he brought forth bread and wine, Protulit non obtulit. and made a feast to Abraham & his company. And if Christ should be of the order of Melchisedeck, in regard of the offering of bread & wine, yet would this make much against the papists. For Melchisedeck brought forth true bread & true wine; but in the sacrifice of the mass there is no true bread nor true wine: but (as they say) the real body and blood of Christ under the form of bread and wine. The 4. point is, whether there be any more real priests of the new Testament beside Christ or no? Ans. In the old testament there were many priests one following an other in continual succession, but of the new testament there is one only real priest, Christ jesus God & man, & no more: as the author of the Hebr. saith, because he endureth for ever, Heb. 7.24. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. he hath an everlasting priesthood: & the word translated (everlasting) signifieth such a priesthood, which cannot pass from him to any other, as the priesthood of Aaron did. And therefore the priesthood of Christ is so tied to his own person, that none can have the same but he; neither man nor angel, nor any other creature, no not the father nor the H. Ghost. But the factors of the Church of Rome will say, that Christ may have men to be his deputies in his stead to offer sacrifice. Answ. We must consider Christ 2. ways: I. as he is God: II. as he is mediator. As he is God with the father & with the holy Ghost, he hath kings & magistrates to be his deputies on earth: and therefore they are called Elohim, that is, Psal. 82. gods. But as he is Mediator, and so consequently a priest and a King, he hath neither deputy nor vicegerent; neither king to rule in his stead over his Church, nor priests to offer sacrifice for him: nay he hath no prophet to be his deputy, as he is the doctor of the Church. And therefore he saith to his disciples: Mat. 23.10. be not called doctors, for one is your doctor. Indeed he hath his ministers to teach men his will: but a deputy to offer sacrifice in his stead he hath not. And therefore we may with good conscience abhor the massing priesthood of the Church of Rome, as a thing fetched from the bottom of Hell: & their massing priests as instruments of Satan; holding this for a very truth, that we have but one only priest even Christ himself god & man. Indeed all Christians are Priests to offer up spiritual sacrifice: but it is the property of Christ alone to offer an outward & real sacrifice unto God now in the new testament. Thus much of the first point who is the priest. The second followeth: what is the sacrifice. Answer, The sacrifice is Christ, as he is man, or the manhood of Christ crucified. As the priest is both God and man: so the sacrifice is man, not a or the godhead. God. So it is said, we are sanctified by the offering of the body of jesus Christ. Heb. 10.10. Touching this sacrifice, sundry questions are to be scanned. The first, what kind of sacrifice it was? Answer, In the old Testament there were two kind of sacrifices: one, propitiatory which served to satisfy for sin: the other, eucharistical for praise and thanksgiving. Now the sacrifice of Christ was a sacrifice propitiatory specially prefigured by the typical sacrifice, called the whole burnt offering; Gen. 8.20. job. 1.8. the use whereof was from the beginning; for as it was all consumed to ashes upon the altar, and turned into smoke, so the fire of God's wrath did seize upon Christ on the cross, and did consume him as it were to nothing to make us something. Secondly, when Noah offered an whole burnt offering after the flood, it is said, God smelled a savour of rest: Gen. 8.21. not because he was delighted with the smell of the sacrifice, but because he approved his faith in Christ. And hereby was figured, that Christ upon the cross was an offering, & a sacrifice of a sweet smelling savour unto God: Ephe. 5.2. because God was well pleased therewith. Now whereas Christ was content wholly to offer up himself to appease the wrath of his father for us: it must teach us to give our bodies and souls, as holy, living, & acceptable sacrifices, wholly dedicating them to the service of God. The second question is, how oft Christ offered himself? Ans. Once only & no more. This must be held as a principle of divinity: With once offering hath he consecrated for ever, them that are sanctified: & again, Hebr. 10.14. Heb. 9.28. Christ was once offered to take away the sins of many. And it serveth to overthrow the abominable sacrifice of the mass, in which the true body & blood of Christ is offered under the forms of bread and wine, really & substantially (as they say) for the remission of the sins of the quick & the dead, & that continually: but if this unbloody sacrifice of Christ be good, than it is either the continuing of that which was begun on the cross by Christ himself, or the iteration of it by the mass priest. Now let papists choose whether of these 2. they will: if they say it is the continuing of the sacrifice of Christ, than they speak outrageous blasphemy: for it is in effect to say, that Christ's sacrifice was not perfect, but only begun on the cross, and must be accomplished by the mass priest to the end of the world. If they affirm the second, that it is an iteration of Christ's sacrifice, them also they speak blasphemy: for hereby they make it also an imperfect sacrifice, because it is repeated & iterated: for upon this ground doth the author to the Hebrues prove, that the sacrifices of the old testament were imperfect, because they were daily offered. And whereas they say, that there be 2. kinds of sacrifices, one bloody once only offered upon the cross: the other unbloody, which is daily offered. I answer, that this distinction hath no ground out of God's word: neither was it known to the H. ghost who saith, that without blood there is no remission of sinnss. The 3. question is, what is the fruit of this sacrifice. Answ. Heb. 9▪ 22. The whole effect thereof is contained in these 4. things. I. the oblation of Christ purgeth the believer from all his sins whether they be original or actual: so it is said, If we walk in the light, we have fellowship one with another: 1. joh. 1▪ 7. & the blood of jesus Christ his son purgeth us from all sin: whether they be of omission in regard of our duties: or of commission in doing evil. II. the oblation serveth for the justifying of a sinner before God, Rom▪ 5.10. as Paul saith, We are justified by his blood, & are reconciled to god by his death. This being here remembered, that in the passion of Christ we include his legal obedience, whereby he fulfilled the law for us. III. the oblation of Christ serves to purge men's consciences from dead works; How much more than shall the blood of Christ, Heb. 9▪ 14. which through the eternal spirit offered himself without spot to God, purge your consciences from dead works to serve the living God. IU. the oblation of Christ procures us liberty to enter to heaven, By the blood of Christ jesus we may be bold to enter into the holy place, Heb. 10.20. by the new and living way which he hath prepared for us through the vail, that is, his flesh. By our sins there is a partition wall made between God & us: but Christ by offering himself upon the cross, hath beaten down this wall, opened heaven, and as it were, trained the way with his own blood, whereby we may enter into the kingdom of God, and without the which we can not enter in at all. The last question is, how this sacrifice may be applied to us. Ans. The means of applying the sacrifice be two. I. the hand of God which offereth. II. the hand of the believer that receiveth the sacrifice offered. The hand of God whereby he offereth unto us his benefit, is the preaching of the word, & the administration of the sacraments, baptism, & the Lords supper: & wheresoever these his holy ordinances are rightly administered & put in practice, there the Lord puts forth his hand unto us, & offereth most freely the virtue & benefit of the death of Christ. And then in the next place cometh the hand of the believer which is faith in the heart, which, when God offereth, doth apprehend and receive the thing offered, and make it ours. The third thing to be spoken of is the altar whereon Christ offered himself. The altar was not the cross, but rather the godhead of Christ. He was both the priest, the sacrifice, and the altar: the sacrifice, as he is man; the priest, as he is both God & man; the altar, as he is God. The property of an altar is to sanctify the sacrifice, as Christ saith, Ye fools & blind, whether is greater the offering, Mat. 23.9. or the altar that senctifieth the offering? Now Christ as he is God, sanctifieth himself as he was man: & therefore (saith he) for their sakes sanctify I myself, by doing 2. things: joh. 17.19. I. by setting a part the manhood to be a sacrifice unto his father for our sins. II. by giving to this sacrifice merit or efficacy to deserve at God's hands remission of our sins: the manhood of Christ without the godhead hath no virtue nor efficacy in itself to be a meritorious sacrifice: & therefore the dignity & excellency which it hath is derived thence. As for the chalky & stony altars of the Church of Rome, they are nothing else but the toys of man's brain. Christ himself is the only real altar of the new testament. And instead of altars which were under the law, we have now the Lords table whereon we celebrate the sacraments of his body and blood, to show forth his death till he come. The 4. point is concerning the time of Christ's oblation, which he himself calleth the acceptable year of the Lord: Luk. 4.19. Lev. 25.10. alluding unto another year under the law called the year jubilee, which was every 50. year among the jews, in which at the sound of a trumpet all that had set or sold their possessions received them again: all that were bondmen were then set at liberty. This jubilee was but a figure of that perfect deliverance which was to be attained by Christ's passion, which was no temporary deliverance for every 50. year, but an eternal freedom from the bondage of sin, hell, death, & condemnation. And the preaching of the word is the trumpet sounded which proclaimeth unto us freedom from the kingdom of darkness, & invites us to come & devil in perfect peace with Christ himself. Well, if the year of perpetual jubilee be now come, in what a wre●ched estate are all our lose & blind people that esteem nothing of that liberty which is offered to them, but choose rather to live in their sins, and so in bondage under Satan & condemnation, then to be at freedom in Christ. Now follow the uses which are to be made of the sacrifice of Christ. The prophet Aggai saith, Aggai. 2.4. that the second temple built by Zorubbabell was nothing in beauty unto the first which was built by Solomon: and the reason is plain, for it wanted five things which the first temple had. I. the appearing of the presence of God at the mercy seat between the two Cherubims. II. The urim and Thummim on the breastplate of the high Priest. III. The inspiration of the holy Ghost upon extraordinary Prophets. iv The Ark of the Covenant: for that was lost in the captivity. V Fire from heaven to burn the sacrifices. Yet for all this, the Prophet afterward saith, The glory of the last House, Agg. 2.10. shall be greater than the first. Now it may be demanded, how both these sayings can stand together? Answer. We are to know, that the second Temple was standing in the time when Christ was crucified for our sins; and it was the sacrifice of Christ which gave glory and dignity to the second temple, though otherwise for building and outward ornaments it was far inferior to the first. And by this we are taught, that if we would bring glory unto our own selves, unto our houses and kindred, either before God or before men, we must labour to be partakers of the sacrifice of Christ, and the sprinkling of his blood to purge our hearts. This is the thing that brings renown both to place and person, how base soever we be in the eyes of the world. Secondly, all oblations and meat offerings were sprinkled with salt, Lev. 2.13. Eze. 43.24. and every sacrifice of propitiation which was to be burned to ashes, was first salted: and hereby two things were signified. The first, that every one of us in ourselves are loathsome or vile in the sight of God; Ezec. 16.4. like unto stinking carrion or raw-flesh kept long unpoudered. A dead and rotten carkeise is loathsome unto us; but we in ourselves are a thousand times more loathsome unto God. The second, that we are as it were salted and made savoury and acceptable to God by the virtue of the sacrifice of Christ upon the cross. Our duty then is to labour that we may feel in ourselves the biting and sharpness of the oblation of Christ, to waste & consume the superfluities of sin and the corruptions of our natures. And we must withal endeavour, that the whole course of our lives, and our speech itself be gracious and powdered with this salt, lest God at length spew us out of his mouth. To this end hath God appointed his ministers to be the salt of the earth, Colos. 4 6. Math. 5.13. that by their ministery they might apply the death of Christ, and season the people. And it hath pleased God to besprinkle this land with more plenty of this salt, then hath been heretofore. But, alas, small is the number of them that give any relish of their good seasoning. The more lamentable is their case. For as flesh that can not be seasoned with salt, putrefies: so men, that cannot be sweetened and changed by the sacrifice of Christ, do rot and perish in their sins. The waters that issued from under the threshold of the Sanctuary, Eze. 47.8, 11. when they came into a Mare mortuum. the dead sea, the waters thereof were wholesome: but miry places and marshes which could not be seasoned, were made salt-pits. Now these waters are the preaching of the Gospel of Christ, which flowing through all the parts of this isle, if it do not season and change our nation, it shall make it as places of nettles and salt-pits, and at length be an occasion of the eternal curse of God. Thirdly, Christ's priesthood serves to make every one of us also to be priests. And being priests, we must likewise have our sacrifice and our altar. Mal. 1.11. 1. Tim. 2.8. Our sacrifice is the clean offering, which is the lifting up of pure hands to God without wrath or doubting in our prayers: also our bodies and souls, our hearts and affections, the works of our lives, and the works of our callings: all which must be dedicated to the service of God for his glory, and the good of his Church. The altar whereon we must offer our sacrifice, is Christ our redeemer, Rev. 8.3. Heb. 13.10. both God and man, because by the virtue of his death as with sweet odours he perfumes all our obedience, and makes it acceptable to God. The ministers of the Gospel are also in this manner priests, as Paul insinuateth when he calleth the Gentiles his offering unto God. Rom. 15.16. And the preaching of the word is as it were a sacrificing knife, whereby the old Adam must be killed in us; and we made an holy and acceptable sweet smelling oblation unto God, sanctified by the holy Ghost. Therefore every one that heareth God's word preached and taught, must endeavour that by the profitable hearing thereof, his sins and whole nature may be subdued and killed; as the beast was slain and sacrificed upon the altar by the hand of the Levite. Lastly, the exhortation of the holy Ghost must here be considered, Seeing (saith he) we have an high Priest, which is over the house of God, Heb. 10.21. let us draw near with a true heart in assurance of faith, sprinkled in our hearts from an evil conscience, and washed in our bodies with pure water: the meaning of the words is this, that if Christ have offered such a sacrifice of such value and price, which procureth pardon of sin, justification, sanctification, and redemption, than we must labour to be partakers of it; to have our bodies and souls purified and cleansed by his blood, and sanctified throughout by the holy Ghost, that thereby we may be made fit to do sacrifice acceptable to God in Christ. This is the use which the Apostle maketh of the doctrine of Christ's priesthood in that place, which also every man should apply unto himself: for why should we live in our sins and wicked ways, every hour incurring the danger of God's judgements, seeing Christ hath offered such a sacrifice whereby we may be purged and cleansed, and at length freed from all woe and misery. Thus much of Christ's sacrifice: now follows his triumph upon the cross. That Christ did triumph when he was upon the cross, it is plainly set down by the Apostle Paul, where he saith, that putting out the hand writing of ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us, he even took it out of the way, and fastened it upon the cross, and hath spoiled the principalities and powers, Coloss. 2.14, 15. and hath made show of them openly, and hath triumphed over them in the same cross. This triumph is set forth by signs & testimonies of two sorts. I. By signs of his glory and majesty. II. by signs of his victory on the cross. The signs of his glory and majesty are principally seven. The first is the title set over his head upon the cross, jesus of Nazareth King of the jews. The end why titles were set over the heads of malefactors was, that the beholders might know the cause of the punishment, and be admonished to take heed of like offences, and be stirred up to a dislike of the parties executed for their offences. And therefore, no doubt, Pilate wrote the title of Christ for the aggravating of his cause, and that with his own hand. Yet mark the strange event that followed: for when Pilate was about to write the superscription, God did so govern and overrule both his heart and hand, that instead of noting some crime, he sets down a most glorious and worthy title, calling him jesus of Nazareth king of the jews: which words contain the very sum and pith of the whole Gospel of Christ, delivered by the patriarchs and Prophets from age to age. We must not think that Pilate did this of any good mind, or upon any love or favour that he bore to Christ: but only as he was guided and overruled by the power of God for the advancement of the honour and glory of Christ. The like did Caiphas, who though a sworn enemy to Christ, yet he uttered a prophecy of him, saying, that it was necessary that one should die for the people: nor that he had any intent to prophecy; but because the Lord used him as an instrument to publish his truth. And when Baalam for the wages of unrighteousness would have cursed the lords people, for his life he could not; nay all his cursings were turned into blessings. By this than it appears, that it is not possible for any man, do what he can, to stop the course of the Gospel of Christ: nay (as we see) God can raise up the wicked sometime to spread abroad and to publish the truth, though they themselves intent the contrary. Furthermore let us mark that when the jews did most of all intent to bring disgrace and ignominy upon our Saviour Christ, then did they most of all extol and magnify his name: they could not for their lives have given him a more renowned title than this, that he was king of the jews. And the same is the case of all the members of Christ: for let a man walk in good conscience before God and man, he shall find this to be true, that when he is most disgraced in the world, then commonly he is most honoured with God and men. Further, Pilate wrote this superscription in three languages, Hebrew, Greek, and Latin. And no doubt the end thereof in the providence of God was, that the passion of Christ, as also the publishing of his kingdom and Gospel might be spread over the whole world. This shows the malice of the Church of Rome, which will not suffer the word of God to be published but in the latin tongue, lest the people should be entangled in errors. Again, when Pilate had thus written the superscription, the high priests and pharisees offended thereat, came to Pilate willing him to change the title, saying, Writ not the king of the jews, but that he said, I am the king of the jews: but Pilate answered them again, That which I have written, joh. 19.21. I have written. Though Pilate had been overruled before to condemn Christ to death, against his own conscience, yet will he not in anywise condescend to change the superscription. How comes this to pass? Surely as he was ruled by the hand of God in penning it, so by the same hand of God was he confirmed in not changing it. Hence we learn sundry instructions. First, that no man in the world, let him endeavour himself to the uttermost of his power, is able to stop the course of the kingdom of God: it stands firm and sure, and all the world is not able to prevail against it. Secondly, whereas Pilate being but an heathen man was thus constant, that he will not have his writing changed; we may note, how permanent & unchangeable the writings of the holy word of God are. They are not the words of heathen men, but were spoken by the mouth of the Prophets and Apostles, as God gave them utterance. The book of Scripture therefore is much more immutable, so as no creature shall be able to change the least part of it till it be fulfilled. Thirdly, by pilate's constancy, we learn to be constant in the practice and profession of the religion of Christ: this is a necessary lesson for these days, wherein men's professions do fleet like water, and go and come with the tide. Many zealous professors to day, but to morrow as cold as water. And the complaint of the Lord touching times past, agrees to our days: O Ephraim, what shall I say to thee? thy righteousness is like the morning dew. Os●. 6. The second is, the conversion of the thief: a most worthy argument of the Godhead of Christ. For by it when he was upon the cross, and in the very midst of his passion, he gives unto all the world a lively and notable experience of the virtue and power of his death, so as his very enemies might not only behold the passion itself, but also at the same time acknowledge the admirable efficacy thereof. And therefore with the passion of Christ, we must join the conversion of the thief: which is as it were a crystal glass wherein we may sensibly behold the endless merit and virtue of the obedience of Christ to his father, even to the death of the cross. And therefore I will briefly touch the special instructions which are to be learned by it. First let us mark that both the thieves in every respect were equal, both wicked and lewd livers: and for their notorious faults both attached, condemned, & executed both on the cross at the same time with Christ: yet for all this, the one repenting was saved, the other was not. And in their two examples we see the state of the whole world, whereof one part is chosen to life eternal, and thereupon attains to faith and repentance in this life: the rest are rejected in the eternal counsel of God, for just causes known to himself, and such being left to themselves never repent at all. Secondly we are taught hereby, that the whole work of our conversion and salvation must be ascribed wholly to the mere mercy of God: of these two thieves the one was as deeply plunged in wickedness as the other, and yet the one is saved, the other condemned. The like was in jacob and Esau; both borne at one time, and of the same parents, Rom. 9.13. & neither of them had done good nor evil when they were borne: yet one was then loved the other was hated: yea if we regard outward prerogatives, Esau was the first borne, Gen. 25.23. and yet was refused. Furthermore, the thief on the cross declareth his conversion, by manifest signs and fruits of repentance, as appears by the words which he spoke to his fellow, Fearest not thou God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation. Though hands and feet were fast nailed to the cross▪ Luk. 23.40. yet heart and tongue is at liberty to give some tokens of his true repentance. The people of this our land hear the word, but for the most part are without either profit in knowledge or amendment of life: yet for all this they persuade themselves that they have good hearts & good meanings, though they cannot bear it a way, and utter it so well as others. But, alas, poor souls, they are deluded by satan: for a man that is converted, can not but express his conversion, and bring forth the fruits thereof. And therefore our Saviour Christ saith, If a man believe in me, out of his belly shall flow rivers of water of life. joh. 7▪ 38. The grace (as Elihu saith) of God is like new wine in a vessel which must have a vent; job 32.19. and therefore he that showeth no tokens of God's grace in this life, is not as yet converted; let him think & say of himself what he will. Can a man have life, and never move nor take breath? and can he that bringeth forth no fruit of his conversion live unto God? Well, let us now see what were the fruits of the thieves repentance. They may be reduced to four heads. First, he rebukes his fellow for mocking Christ, endeavouring thereby to bring him to the same condition with himself, if it were possible: whereby he discovers unto us the property of a true repentant sinner, which is, to labour and strive, so much as in him lieth, to bring all men to the same state that he is in. Thus David having tried the great love and favour of God toward himself, breaketh forth, and saith, Come children, hearken unto me, Psal. 34.11. and I will teach you the fear of the Lord: showing his desire, that the same benefits which it pleased God to bestow on him, might also in like manner be conveyed to others. Therefore it is a great shame to see men professing religion, carried away with every company, and with the vanities and fashions of the world, whereas they should rather draw even the worst men that be to the fellowship of those graces of God which they have received. That which the Lord spoke to the Prophet jeremy, must be applied to all men: Let them return unto thee, but return not thou unto them. jerem. 15.19. In instruments of music the string out of tune must be set up to the rest that be in tune, and not the rest to it. Again, in that he checks his fellow, it shows that those which be touched for their own sins, are also grieved when they see other men sin and offend God. But to go further in this point, let us diligently and carefully mark the manner of his reproof, Fearest thou not God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation. In which words he rippes up his lewdness even to the quick, and gives him a worthy item, telling him that the cause of all their former wickedness, had been the want of the fear of God. And this point must every one of us mark with great diligence. For if we enter into our hearts and make a thorough search, we shall find that this is the root and fountain of all our offences. We miserable men for the most part have not grace to consider that we are always before God; and to quake and tremble at the consideration of his presence: and this makes us so often to offend God in our lives as we do. Abraham coming before Abimelech, shifting for himself said, that Sara was his sister, and being demanded why he did so, answered, because he thought the fear of God was not in that place: Gen. 20.11. insinuating that he which wants the fear of God, will not make conscience of any sin whatsoever. Would we then even from the bottom of our hearts turn to God, and become new creatures, then let us learn to fear God: which is nothing else but this, when a man is persuaded in his own heart and conscience that wheresoever he be, he is in the presence and sight of God, and by reason thereof is afraid to sin. This we must have fully settled in our hearts, if we desire to learn but the first lesson of true wisdom. But what reason useth the thief to draw his fellow to the fear of God? Thou art (saith he) in the same condemnation, that is, by thy sins and manifold transgressions thou hast deserved death, and it is now most justly inflicted upon thee, wilt thou not yet fear God? Where we are taught, that temporal punishments and crosses, aught to be means to work in us the fear of God; for that is one end why they are sent of God. It is good for me (saith David) that I have been chastised, Psal. 119. 7●. that I may learn thy statutes. 1. Cor. 11.32. Mich. 7.9. And Paul saith, when we are chastised, we are nurtured of the Lord. And the jews are taught by the Prophet Micah to say, I will bear the wrath of the Lord, because I have sinned against him. The second fruit of his conversion is, that he condemneth himself and his fellow for their sins, saying, Indeed we are righteously here, for we receive things worthy for that we have done, that is, we have wonderfully sinned against God's majesty, and against our brethren: and therefore this grievous punishment which we bear, is most just and due unto us. This fruit of repentance springs and grows very thin among us, for few there be which do seriously condemn themselves for their own sins: the manner of men is to condemn others, and to cry out that the world was never so bad, but bring them home to themselves, and you shall find that they have many excuses and defences as plaisterworke to cast over their foul and filthy sins: and if they be urged to speak against themselves, the worst will be thus, God help us, we are all sinners, even the best of us. But certain it is, that he which is thoroughly touched in conscience for his sins, both can and will speak more against himself for his manifold offences, than all the world beside. Thus Paul when he was converted, 1. Tim▪ 1.15. calls himself the chief of all sinners. And the prodigal child confesseth that he had sinned against heaven and against his father, and was not worthy to be called his child. The third fruit of his conversion is, that he excuseth our Saviour Christ, and giveth testimony of his innocency, saying, But this man hath done nothing amiss. Mark here: Pilate condemned Christ, Herod mocked him, all the learned Scribes and pharisees condemned him, and the people cry, away with him, let him be crucified: and among his own disciples Peter denied him, and the rest ran away: there remains only this poor silly wretch upon the cross to give testimony of Christ's innocency: whereby we learn, that God chooseth the simple ones of this world, to overthrow the wisdom of the wise: and therefore we must take heed that we be not offended at the gospel of Christ, by reason that for the most part simple & mean men in the world embrace it. Nay mark further, this one thief being converted, had a better judgement in matters concerning God's kingdom, than the whole body of the jews. And by this all students may learn, that if they desire to have in themselves upright judgement in matters of religion, first of all they must become repentant sinners: and though a man have never so much learning, yet if he be carried away with his own blind affections & lusts, they will corrupt & darken his judgement. Men which work in mines and coale-pits under the earth, are troubled with nothing so much as with damps, which make their candle burn dark, & sometimes put it quite out. Now every man's sins are the damps of his heart, which when they take place, do dim the light of his judgement, and cast a mist over the mind, & darken the understanding & reason: and therefore a needful thing it is, that men in the first place should provide for their own conversion. The fourth fruit of his repentance is, that he prayeth for mercy at Christ's hands, Lord (saith he) remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom: in which prayer we may see what is the property of faith. This thief at this instant heard nothing of Christ but the skornings and mockings of the people, and he saw nothing but a base estate full of ignominy and shame, and the cursed death of the cross, yet nevertheless he now believes in Christ, and therefore entreats for salvation at his hand. Hence we learn, that it is one thing to believe in Christ, and an other to have feeling and experience: and that even then when we have no sense or experience, we must believe: Heb. 11.1. for faith is the subsisting of things which are not seen: and Abraham above hope did believe under hope: and job saith, though thou kill me, Rom. 4.18. yet will I believe in thee. In Philosophy a man gins by experience, after which comes knowledge and belief; as when a man hath put his hand to the fire, and feels it to be hot, he comes to know thereby that fire burns: but in Divinity we must believe though we have no feeling: first comes faith, and after comes sense and feeling. And seeing the ground of our religion stands in this, to believe things neither seen nor felt, to hope above all hope, and without hope: in extremity of affliction to believe that God loveth us, when he seemeth to be our enemy, and to persevere in the same to the end. The answer which Christ made to his prayer was, This night shalt thou be with in Paradise. Whereby he testifies in the midst of his sufferings the power which he had over the souls of men: and verifies that gracious promise, Ask and ye shall receive, seek and ye shall find, knock and it shall be opened to you: and withal confutes the popish purgatory. For if any man should have gone to that forged place of torment, than the thief upon the cross, who repenting at the last gasp wanted time to make satisfaction for the temporal punishment of his sins. And by this conversion of the thief we may learn, that if any of us would turn to God and repent, we must have three things. I. The knowledge of our own sins. II. From the bottom of our hearts we must confess and condemn ourselves for them, and speak the worst that can be of ourselves, in regard of our sins. III. We must earnestly crave pardon for them, and call for mercy at God's hands in Christ, withal reforming our lives for the time to come: if we do, we give tokens of repentance; if not, we may think what we will, but we deceive ourselves, and are not truly converted. And here we must be warned to take heed lest we abuse, as many do, the example of the thief, to conclude thereby that we may repent when we will; because the thief on the cross was converted at the last gasp. For there is not a second example like to this in all the whole Bible: it was also extraordinary. In deed sundry men are called at the eleventh hour, but it is a most rare thing to find the conversion of a sinner after the second hour, and at the point of the twelfth. This mercy God vouchsafed this one thief, that he might be a glass in which we might behold the efficacy of the death of Christ, but the like is not done to many men, no not to one of a thousand. Let us rather consider the estate of the other thief, who neither by the dealing of his fellow, Luk. 23▪ 44. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. nor by any speech of Christ could be brought to repentance. Let us not therefore defer our repentance to the hour of death: for than we shall have sore enemies against us: the world, the flesh, the devil, and a guilty conscience: and the best way is beforehand to prevent them. And experience shows that if a man defer repentance to the last gasp, often when he would repent he cannot. Let us take salomon's counsel: Remember thy creator in the days of thy youth, before the evil days come. If we will not hear the Lord when he calleth us, he will not hear us when we call on him. The third sign was, the eclipsing or darkening of the sun from the sixth hour to the ninth. And this eclipse was miraculous. For by the course of nature the sun is never eclipsed, but in the new moon: whereas contrariwise this eclipse was about the time of the Passeover which was always kept at the full moon. Luk. 23.44. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Question is made touching the largeness of it: some moved by the words of Luke, who saith that darkness was upon the whole earth, hath thought that the eclipse was universal over the whole word: but I rather think, that Saint Luke's meaning is, that it was over the whole region or country of jury. For if such a wonder had happened over the whole world, all historiographers Greeke and Latin and Astronomers, diligent observers of all eclipses, would have made special mention thereof. And though some a Euseb. Chron. Tertull. Apolog. c 21. Oars. l. 7. c▪ 4. writers say that it was over the whole earth, and that it was set down in record both by the Romans & Grecians, yet all their writings prove no more but this, that it was over jury and Galelie and the countries bordering near unto. The uses of this miracle are manifold. I. This darkening of the sun gives a check to the jews for their crucifying of Christ: they were not ashamed to apprehend, accuse, and condemn him: yet this glorious creature the sun pulleth in his beams, being as it were ashamed to behold that, which they were not ashamed to do. II. It serves to signify the great judgement of God to come upon the jews. For as when Christ suffered, darkness was over all the land of jury, and all the world beside had the light of the sun, 2. Cor. 3.5. so shortly after blindness of mind was over the whole nation of the jews, and all the world beside saw the son of righteousness shining unto them in the preaching of the Gospel. Mal. 4.2. III. It serves to advertise us that such as carry themselves towards Christ as the jews did, have nothing else in them but darkness, and that they sit in darkness and shadow of death: Isa. 8.20. Luk. 1.79. and therefore not able any whit better to see the way that leadeth unto life, than he which is cast into a dark dungeon can; who if they thus remain, shall at length be cast into utter darkness. This being the estate of all them that be forth of Christ: we must labour to be freed from this darkness, that the day-star may rise in our hearts, 2. Pet. 1.1. and shine upon us, and put life into us. FOUR This miraculous and wonderful darkening of the sun doth convince the jews, that Christ whom they crucified was the Lord of glory, and the Saviour of the world: and it is very likely that this was the principal end of this miracle. For whereas neither his doctrine, nor his former miracles could move them to acknowledge him for the Messiah, yet this one work of God doth as it were strike the nail to the head, and stop all their mouths. V Besides this, whereas at that very instant when Christ was about to make a satisfaction to the justice of his father for our sins; the sun was thus darkened: it teacheth us first to think of the passion of Christ, not as of a light matter, but as of one of the greatest wonders of the world, at the sight whereof the very frame of nature was changed: secondly, to think of our own sins, as the vilest things in the world, and that they deserve the intolerable wrath of God: considering that at the time when they were to be abolished, the course of nature even in the very heavens is turned upside down. The fourth sign is, the rending of the vail of the Temple from the top to the bottom. Mat. 27.11. The temple was divided into two parts: the one more inward into which no man might come but the high priest, and that once a year; and it was called the holy of holies: the other was that where the people came and offered sacrifices unto the Lord. Now that which parted the temple into these two parts was called the vail, and at the time of Christ's passion it was re●t from the top to the very bottom. This hath divers uses: I. The holy of holies signified the third heaven, Hebr. 9.8. where God showeth himself in glory and majesty unto his Saints: now the rending of the vail figureth unto us, that by the death of Christ heaven which was otherwise shut by our sins is now set open, and a way made to enter thereto. II. It signifieth, joh. ●. 51. that by the death of Christ we have all without impediment, free access to come unto God the father by earnest prayer in the name of Christ; which is a most unspeakable benefit. III. It signifieth, that by Christ's death an end is put to all ceremonies, to ceremonial worship, and the sacrifices of the old testament: and that therefore in the new testament there remaineth one only real and outward sacrifice, that is, Christ crucified on the cross: and the whole service and worship of God for outward ceremonies most simple and plain. FOUR The Temple was the chief and one of the most principal prerogatives that the jews had; it was their glory that they had such a place wherein they might worship and do service to the true God: and for the Temples sake God often spared them, and therefore Daniel prayeth: O Lord, Dan. 9.17. hear the prayer of thy servant, and his supplication, and cause thy face to shine upon thy Sanctuary that lieth waste for the Lords sake. Yet for all this, when they began to crucify the Lord of life, their prerogatives helps them not, nay they are deprived thereof, and God even with his own hand rends the vail of the temple in sunder, signifying unto them, that if they forsake him, he will also forsake them. And so may we say of the Church of England: No doubt for the Gospel's sake we have outward peace and safety, and many other blessings, and are in account with other nations: yet if we make no conscience to obey the word of God, and if we have no love of Christ and his members, God will at length remove his candlestick from us, and utterly deprive us of this ornament of the Gospel, and make our land as odious unto all the world, as the land of the jews is at this day. Let us therefore with all care and diligence show forth our love both to Christ himself & to his members, and adorn the Gospel which we profess by bringing forth fruits worthy of it. The fifth sign is the earthquake, whereby hard rocks were cloven asunder. And it serves very fitly to signify further unto us, Matt. 27.51. that the sin of the jews in putting Christ to death was so heavy a burden, that the earth could not bear it, but trembled thereat, though the jews themselves made no bones of it. And it is a thing to be wondered at, that the earth do not often in these days, tremble and quake at the monstrous blasphemies and fearful oaths by the wounds and blood and heart of Christ, whereby his members are rend asunder, and he traitorously crucified again. Secondly, the earthquake shows unto us the exceeding and wonderful hardness of the hearts of the jews, and ours also: they crucified Christ and were not touched with any remorse; and we can talk and hear of his death, yea we can say he was crucified for our sins: and yet are we nothing affected therewith, our hearts will not rend when as hard rocks cleave asunder. Thirdly, the moving of the earth, & the rending of the rocks asunder, may be a sign unto us of the virtue of the doctrine of the Gospel of Christ: which is nothing else but the publishing of the passion of his death: which being preached, shall shake heaven and earth, sea and land. It shall move the earthen, hard, and rocky hearts of men; Agg. 2.7. and raise up of mere stones and rocks children unto Abraham. But the main use and end of this point is, to prove that he that was crucified, was the true Messiah the son of God: and therefore had the power of heaven and earth, and could move all things at his pleasure. The sixth sign of the power of Christ is, that graves did open, and many bodies of the saints which slept arose, Mat. 27.52.53. and came out of their graves after his resurrection, and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many. The use of this sign is this: it signifies unto us, that Christ by his death upon the cross did vanquish death in the grave, and opened it, and thereby testified that he was the resurrection, and the life: so that it shall not have everlasting dominion over us: but that he will raise us up from death to life, and to everlasting glory. The seventh sign is the testimony of the Centurion with his soldiers which stood by to see Christ executed: S. Mark saith, when he saw that Christ thus crying gave up the ghost, he said, truly this was the son of God. Mar. 15.39. Thus we see it is an easy matter for Christ to defend his own cause: let judas betray him, Peter deny him, and all the rest forsake him, yet he can if it so please him make the Centurion that standeth by to see him executed to testify of his innocency. But what was the occasion that moved him to give so worthy a testimony? S. Matthew saith, it was fear, Mat. 27.54. and that fear was caused, by hearing the loud cry of Christ, & by seeing the earthquake and things which were done. And this must put us in mind not to pass by God's judgements which daily fall out in the world, but take knowledge of them, and as it were, to fix both our eyes on them. For they are notable means to strike and astonish the rebellious heart of man, and to bring it in awe and subjection to God. After that the two first captains with their fifties commanding the prophet Elias to come down to king▪ Achaziah were consumed with fire from heaven: the king sent his third captain over fifty with his fifty to fetch him down: but what doth he? it is said, he fell on his knee before Eliah and besought him saying, O man of God, 2. King. 1.13. I pray thee, let my life and the lives of these fifty servants be precious in thine eyes. But what was the cause why he prayed thus? Surely he observed what judgements of God fell upon his two former fellow captains, Behold, saith he, there came down fire from heaven, and devoured the two former captains with their fifties: therefore let my life be precious now in thy sight. Thus laying to his own heart and making use of God's judgements, he humbled himself and was spared with his fifty. And Habbaccuk saith, When I heard the voice, Habac. 3.16. namely of God's judgements, rottenness entered into my bones, and I trembled in myself that I might be safe in the day of the Lord. Now what this fear of the Centurion was, there is a further question, and it is very like that it was but a sudden motion or a certain preparative to better things. For he was but an heathen man, and had as yet no knowledge of Christ, and whether he repent or not it is uncerten: and we must not marvel at this, for there are many sudden motions in show very good, that upon like occasions rise in the hearts of natural men. When God plagued the land of Egypt, than Pharaoh sent for Moses and confessed that the Lord was righteous, but he and his people were wicked; and desired Moses to pray to God to take away the plague, who did so: but so soon as the hand of God was stayed, Exod. 9.27. & 34. he returned to his old rebellion again. And as a dog that cometh out of the water shaketh his ears, and yet returneth into it again: so is the manner of the world: when crosses and calamities befall men, as sickness, loss of friends or goods, then with Ahab they outwardly humble themselves and go softly: they use to frequent the place where the word is preached and Gods name called upon: but alas, common experience shows that these things are but fits arising of uncerten and flittering motions in the heart. For so soon as the cross is removed, they return to their old bias again, & become as bad & as backward as ever they were: being like to the tree that lies in the water, which for a while is green, but afterward withereth. And therefore we for our parts, when we have any good motions come into our hearts as the beginnings of further grace, we must not quench them but cherish and preserve them, remembering that the kingdom of heaven, is like a grain of mustard seed, which when it is sown is the least of all seeds: but afterward it groweth up into a tree, that the fowls of the heaven may build their nests in it: & like to this are the first motions of God's spirit, and therefore they must be cherished and maintained. And thus much for the 7. signs of the power of Christ's godhead. Now follows the second part of the triumph of Christ, which containeth signs of his victory upon the cross, notably expressed by Paul when he saith, And putting out the handwriting of ordinances which was against us, which was contrary to us, he even took it out of the way & fastened it upon the cross, & hath spoiled the principalities & powers, Col. 2.14, 15. and hath made a show of them openly, & hath triumphed over them in the same. In which words he alludeth to the manner of heathen triumphs: for it was the custom of heathen princes when they had gotten the victory over their enemies, first to cause a pillar of stone, or some great oak to be cut down, and set up in the place of victory, upon which either the names of the chief enemies were set, or their heads were hanged, or words were written in the pillar to testify the victory. This being done, there followed an open show, in which first the conqueror prepares for himself a chariot of victory wherein he was himself to ride, and then the chief of his enemies bound & pinioned, were led openly after him. Now on the same manner upon the cross there was a pitched field; the Emperor on the one side was Christ; his enemies on the other side were the world, the flesh, hell, death, damnation, the devil, and all his angels: all which, banding themselves against him were all subdued by him upon the same cross: & he himself gave two signs of his triumph, one was a monument of the victory, the other an open show of his conquest. Now the monument of Christ's victory was the cross itself, whereon he nailed the obligation or bill which was against us: whereby satan might have accused & condemned us before god. For we must consider that god the father is as a creditor, and we all debtor unto him: he hath a bill of our hands which is the law, in that it giveth testimony against us; first by the legal washings, which did show and signify that we were altogether defiled & unclean; secondly by the sacrifices that were daily offered for propitiation for our sins. Now Christ was our surety, and paid every jot of the debt which we should have paid, and requiring the acquittance, taketh the ceremonial law, and the curse of the moral law, and nails them to the cross. Furthermore in the show of conquest, the chariot is the cross likewise: for it was not only a monument of victory, but also a chariot of triumph. And the captives bound and pinioned which follow Christ, are principalities and powers, that is, the devil, and his angels, hell, death, and condemnation: all which are as it were taken prisoners, their armour and weapons are taken from them, and they chained and bound each to other. The meditation of this point serveth to admonish us to abandon all manner of sin, and to make conscience of every good duty if we will aright profess the gospel of Christ: for when we sin, we do as it were pull Christ out of his chariot of triumph, and untie satans bonds, & give him weapons, and (as much as we can) make him valiant and strong again. Now for any man to make sathan and sin valiant and strong against himself, whereas Christ hath weakened him, and even bruised his head, is no better than to become an enemy of the cross of Christ. Philip. 3.18. Again, hereby we are taught to pray unto God that our blind eyes may be opened, that we may discern aright of the passion of Christ. It is a wonder to see how men are carried away with a liking of vain shows, games and interludes: how they spend even whole days in beholding them, and their money also that they may come to the places where they are: oh then how exceedingly ought our hearts to be ravished with this mast admirable show, in which the son of God himself rides most gloriously in his chariot of triumph, and leads his and our most cursed enemies captive, yea treads them under his foot. This triumph is set forth unto us in the preaching of the Gospel, and may be seen of us all freely without money or money-worth. What wretches then shall we be, if we suffer our hearts to be filled with earthly delights, and in the mean season have little or no desire to behold with the eyes of our mind this goodly spectacle that is to be seen in the passion of Christ, that serves to revive and refresh our souls to life eternal. Thirdly if Christ when he was most weak and base in the eyes of men, did most of all triumph upon the cross; then every one of us must learn to say with the Apostle Paul, God forbidden that I should rejoice in any thing but in the cross of Christ jesus our Lord. That we may say this truly, Galat. 6.14. first of all we must labour to have the benefit of the cross of Christ not only in the remission but also in the mortification of our sins: secondly, we must not be discomforted, but rather rejoice and triumph therein. A Christian man can never have greater honour then to suffer for the Gospel of Christ when God calleth him thereunto: and therefore S. Paul setteth forth another most glorious show which all those must make that suffer any thing for God's cause. They must encounter with the world, the flesh, 1. Cor. 4.9. and the devil, and are placed as it were on a theatre: and in this conflict the beholders are men and Angels; yea, the whole host of heaven and earth: the umpire or judge is God himself, it will give sentence of victory on their side, and so they shall overcome. We must not hereupon thrust ourselves into danger: but when it shall please God to call us thereunto, we must think ourselves highly honoured of him. As when God sendeth loss of friends, of substance, or good name, or any other calamity, we must not despair, or be over grieved: but rather rejoice and address ourselves then with our saviour Christ to make a triumph. Thus much of Christ's triumph, and the passion of his cross. Now followeth the second degree of his humiliation in these words, And buried. Where we must consider these points: I. why it was needful that Christ should be buried. II. who was the author of this burial. III. the manner or preparation to his burial. FOUR the place and time where and when he was buried. Of these in order. For the first; the causes are many, but especially four why Christ was to be buried. I. that the truth and certainty of his death might be confirmed unto us, and that no man might so much as imagine that his death was a fantastical death, or his body a fantastical body: for men use not to bury a living but a dead man, or a man in show, but a true man. II. that his burial might be unto him a passage from the estate of humiliation to the estate of exaltation, which began in his resurrection: and he could not have risen again, if he had not been first buried. III. that the outward humiliation in the form of a servant, which he took upon him, might be continued upon him to the lowest degree of all: and therefore it was not sufficient that he should be crucified even to death, but being dead, he must be also buried. FOUR Christ was buried, that he might not only vanquish death on the cross, but even after the manner of conquerors subdue him at his own home, and as it were, pluck him out of his own cabin. The authors of Christ's burial were joseph of Arimathea, & Nichodemus, Mat. 27. Mar. 15.43. joh. 19.38. who came to jesus by night. Now concerning them & this their fact, there are many things worthy to be considered in this place. First of all they were disciples of Christ, and the difference between them and the rest is to be considered. The other disciples though in number they were but few, yet in the feast before his passion they openly followed him: but when Christ was to be arraigned, & the persecution of the Church of the new Testament began in him, than judas betrayed him, Peter denied him, & the rest fled away: yet even at the same instant these two secret disciples of our Saviour Christ, joseph of Arimathea & Nicodemus take courage to themselves, & in time of danger openly profess themselves to be Christ's disciples by an honourable and solemn burial; God no doubt opening their hearts and enabling them to do so. The like is to be seen in all ages since the passion of Christ in the Church of God, in which men zealous for the gospel in peace have been timorous in persecution, whereas weak ones have stood out against their enemies even unto death itself. The reason is, because God will humble those his servants which are often times endued with great measure of graces, & contrariwise exalt & strengthen the weak & feeble: & the same no doubt will be found true among us, if it should please god to send any new trial into the Church of England. This serves to teach us to think charitably of those which are as yet but weak among us: & with all in our profession to carry a low sail & to think basely of ourselves, and in the whole course of our lives creep allow by the ground, running on in fear & trembling, because the Lord oftentimes humbles those that be strong, & give courage & strength to weak ones boldly to confess his name. Secondly, whereas these two disciples have such care of the burial of Christ, we learn, that it is our duty to be careful also for the honest & solemn burial of our brethren. The Lord himself hath commanded it, Thou art dust, & to dust thou shalt return. Gen. 3.19. Also the bodies of men are the good creatures of God, yea the bodies of God's children are the temples of the Holy ghost, and therefore there is good cause why they should be honestly laid in the earth. And it was a curse and judgement of God upon jehoiakim that he must not be buried, jer. 22.19. but like a dead ass be drawn & cast out of the gates of jerusalem. Amos. 2.1. And so the Lord threatens a curse upon the Moabites because they did not bury the king of Edom, but burned his bones into lime. And therefore it is a necessary duty one neighbour and friend to look to the honest burial of another. Hence it follows, that the practice of Spain and Italy and all popish countries, which is to keep the parts of men's bodies & such like relics of saints unburied, that they may be seen of men & worshipped, hath no warrant: dust they are and to dust they ought to be returned. Furthermore the properties and virtues of both these men are severally to be considered. And first to begin with joseph, he was a senator, a man of great account, authority, and reputation among the jews. Luk. 23.50. It may seem a strange thing that a man of such account would abase himself so much as to take down the body of Christ from the cross. It might have been an hindrance to him and a disgrace to his estate and calling: as we see in these days, it would be thought a base thing for a knight to come to the place of execution and take down a thief from the hand of the hangman to bury him: but this noble Senator joseph for the love he bore to Christ, made no account of his state and calling, neither did he scorn to take upon him so base an office, considering it was for the honour of Christ: where we learn, that if we truly love Christ, and our hearts be set to believe in him, we will never refuse to perform the basest service that may be for his honour, nothing shall hinder us. It is further said, that he was a good man and a just: Luk. 23.50, 51. and also a rich man. And the first appeareth in this, that he would neither consent to the counsel nor fact of the jews in crucifying Christ. It is rare to find the like man in these days. From his example we learn these lessons. I. that a rich man remaining a rich man may be a servant of God, and also be saved: for riches are the good blessings of God, and in themselves do no whit hinder a man in coming to Christ. But some will say, Christ himself saith, It is easier for a Mat. 19.24. cable to go through the eye of a needle, as a rich man to enter into the kingdom of heaven. Ans. It is to be understood of a rich man, so long as he swelleth with a confidence in his wealth: but we know, that if a cable be untwisted and drawn into small threads, it may be drawn through the eye of a needle: so he that is rich let him deny himself, abase himself, and lay aside all confidence in himself, in his riches and honour, and be as it were, made small as a twine thread, and with this good Senator joseph become the disciple of Christ, he may enter into the kingdom of heaven. But Christ saith in the parable that riches are thorns, which choke the grace of God. Answer: It is true, they are thorns in that subject or in that man that putteth his trust in them; not in their own nature, but by reason of the corruption of man's heart, who maketh of them his God. S. john saith further, that joseph was a disciple of Christ, joh. 19.38. but yet a close disciple for fear of the jew. And this showeth, that Christ is most ready to receive them that come unto him, though they come laden with manifold wants. I say not this, that any hereby should take boldness to live in their sins, but my meaning is, that though men be weak in the faith, yet are they not to be dismayed, but to come to Christ, who refuseth none that come to him. Draw near to God (saith S. james) and he will draw near to you. Christ doth not forsake any, jam. 4.8. till they forsake him first. Lastly the H. ghost saith of him, that he waited for the kingdom of God, that is, he did believe in the Messiah to come, & therefore did wait daily till the time was come, when the Messiah by his death & passion should abolish the kingdom of sin & satan, & establish his own kingdom throughout the whole world. The same is said of Simeon that he was a good man & feared God, & waited for the consolation of Israel. This was the most principal virtue of all that joseph had, and the very root of all his goodness & righteousness, that he waited for the kingdom of God. For it is the property of faith whereby we have confidence in the Messiah to change our nature, & to purify the heart, & to make it bring forth works of righteousness. There be many among us, that can talk of Christ's kingdom, & of redemption by him, & yet make no conscience of sin, & have little care to live according to the gospel which they profess: and all is, because they do not sound believe in the Messiah, and they wait not for the kingdom of heaven, & therefore there is no change in them: but we must labour to have this affiance in the Messiah with joseph, and to wait for his second appearance, that thereby we may be made new creatures, having the kingdom of Satan battered and beaten down in us, and the kingdom of God erected in our hearts. Touching Nichodemus S. john saith, that he came to jesus by night. Many men build upon this example, that it is lawful to be present at the Mass, so be it in the mean season we keep our hearts to God: and indeed such men are like Nichodemus in that they labour to bury Christ as much as they can, though now after his resurrection he should not be buried again. But though Nichodemus durst not openly at the first profess the name of Christ, yet after his death when there is most danger he doth: and by this means reformeth his former doing. Thus much of the persons that buried Christ: The third thing to be observed is the manner of Christ's burial, which standeth in these 4. points. First they take down his body from the cross: secondly, they wind it: thirdly, they lay it in a tomb: four, the tomb is made sure. Of these in order. First, joseph taketh down the body of Christ from the cross whereon he was executed, but mark in what manner: he doth it not on his own head without leave, but he goeth to Pilate and beggeth the body of Christ, & asketh leave to take it down, because the disposing of dead bodies was in pilate's hand, he being deputy at that time: whereby we learn, that in all our dealings & actions (though they have never so good an end) our duty is to proceed as peaceably with all men as may be: as S. james saith: The wisdom that is from above is first pure, then peaceable, gentle, jam. 3.17. etc. Again, this reaches us, that in all things which concern the authority of the Magistrate, and belong unto him by the rule of God's word, we must attempt or do whatsoever we do by leave. And here we may see of what courses they take, that being private men in this our Church, will notwithstanding take upon them to plant Churches without the leave of the Magistrate being a christian prince. Having thus taken the body of Christ down, they go on to wind it. And joseph for his part brought linen clothes, joh. 19 40. Luk. 24.1. and Nichodemus a mixture of myr●he & aloes to the quantity of an hundred pounds for the honourable burial of Christ. His winding was on this manner: they wrapped his body hastily in linen clothes, sweet odours put thereto. Besides all this, in the jews burials there was embalming & washing of the body, but Christ's body was not a P. Ram. theol. l. 1. c. 14. Seems to be deceived in that he puts Christ's burial for his embalming, and his descending into bell for his burial or his lying in the grave. embalmed or washed, because they had no time to do it, for the preparation to the passover drew near. And whereas these 2. men bury Christ at their own cost & charges, we are taught to be like affected to the living members of Christ: when they want we must relieve & comfort them liberally and freely. It may here be demanded, whether men may not be at cost in making funerals, considering even Christ himself is with much cost buried. Ans. The bodies of all dead men are to be buried in seemly & honest manner, & if they be honourable, they may be buried honourably: yet now there is no cause why men's bodies should be washed, anointed, & embalmed as the use was among the jews: for they used embalming as a pledge & sign of the resurrection: 1. Cor. 15.29. but now since Christ's coming we have a more certain pledge thereof, even the resurrection of Christ himself, & therefore there is no cause, why we should use embaulming and washing as the jews did. And the clause which is specified in Saint Matthew is not to be omitted, that joseph wrapped Christ's body in a clean linen cloth: whereby we learn, Mat. 27.59. that howsoever the strange fashions fetched from Spain and Italy are monstrous & to be abhorred: yet, seeing the body of a man is the creature of God, therefore it must be arrayed in cleanly manner, & in holy comeliness. Tit. 2.3. 1. Tim. 3.2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. joh. 19.42. Mat. 27.60.66. Paul requires that the minister of the Gospel in all things be seemly or comely: & herein he ought to be a pattern of sobriety unto all men. Thirdly, after they have wound the body of Christ, they lay it in a tomb, & lastly they make it sure, closing it up with a stone rolled over the mouth of it. Also the jews request Pilate to seal it that none might presume to open it: beside, they set a band of soldiers to watch the tomb, & to keep it that his body be not stolen away. Many reasons might be alleged of this their dealing, but principally it came to pass by the providence of God, that hereby he might confirm the resurrection of Christ. For whereas the jews would neither be moved by his doctrine nor by his works & miracles to believe, he causeth this to be done, that by the certainty of his resurrection he might convince them of hardness of heart, and prove that he was the son of God. Thus much of the manner of his burial. Now follows the place where Christ was buried. In the place we are to mark 3. things: I. that Christ was laid in joseph's tomb, whereby we may gather the greatness of Christ's poverty, in that he had not so much ground as to make himself a grave in: & this must be a comfort to the members of Christ that are in poverty. And it teacheth them, if they have no more but food and raiment, to be there with content, knowing that Christ their head and king hath consecrated this very estate unto them. Secondly the tomb wherein Christ was laid was a new tomb wherein never any man lay before. And it was the special appointment of God's providence that it should be so, because if any man had been buried there aforetime, the malicious jews would have pleaded, that it was not Christ that rose again but some other. Thirdly we must observe, that this tomb was in a garden, as the fall of man was in a garden, joh. 19.41. Gen. 3.8. joh. 18.1. & as the apprehension of Christ in a garden beyond the brook Cedron. And here we must note the practice of a good man. This garden was the place of joseph's delight & holy recreation wherein he used to solace himself in beholding the good creatures of God, yet in the same place doth he make his own grave long before he died: whereby it appears, that his recreation was joined with a meditation of his end: and his example must be followed of us. True it is, God hath given us his creatures not only for necessity, but also for our lawful delight, but yet our duty is, to mingle therewith serious meditation and consideration of our last end. It is a brutish part to use the blessings and creatures of God, and not at all to be bettered in regard of our last end by a further use thereof. The time when Christ was buried was the evening, wherein the Sabbath was to begin according to the manner of the jews, which began their days at sun-setting from evening to evening according to that in Genesis: the evening and the morning was the first day. Luk. 23.54. Mat. 27.57. Now joseph cometh a little before evening & beggeth the body of Christ and burieth it: where note, that howsoever we are not bound to keep the sabbath so strictly as the jews were, yet when we have any business or work to be done of our ordinary calling, we must not take a part of the lords sabbath day to do it in, but prevent the time, & do it either before as joseph did, or after the sabbath. This is little practised in the world. Men think if they go to church before & after noon to hear God's word, than all the day after they may do what they list, and spend the rest of the time at their own pleasure: but the whole day is the Lords, & therefore must be spent wholly in his service both by public hearing of the word, and also by private reading and meditation on the same. To conclude the doctrine of Christ's burial: Here it may be demanded, how he was always after his incarnation both god and man, considering he was dead & buried, and therefore body and soul were sundered, & a dead man seems to be no man. Answ. A dead man in his kind is as true a man as a living man: for though body and soul be not united by the bond of life, yet are they united by a relation which the one hath to the other in the counsel and good pleasure of God, and that as truly as man and woman remain coupled into one flesh by a covenant of marriage, though afterward they be distant a thousand miles asunder: and by virtue of this relation every soul in the day of judgement shall be reunited to his own body, & every body to his own soul. But there is yet a more straighter bond between the body & soul of Christ in his death & burial. Damasc. For as when he was living his soul was a mean or bond to unite his godhead & his body together: so when he was dead his very godhead was a mean or middle bond to unite the body and soul: and to say otherwise is to dissolve the hypostatical union, by virtue whereof Christ's body and soul though severed each from other, yet both were still joined to the godhead of the son. The use and profit which may be made of Christ's burial is twofold. I. It serveth to work in us the burial of all our sins. Know ye not (saith Paul) that all who have been baptized into Christ, Rom. 6.3. have been baptized into his death, and are buried with him by baptism into his death? If any shall demand how any man is buried into the death of Christ, the answer is this: Every Christian man and woman are by faith mystically united unto Christ and made all members of one body, whereof Christ is the head. Now therefore as Christ by the power of his godhead when he was dead and buried, did overcome the grave & the power of death in his own person. So by the very same power by means of this spiritual conjunction doth he work in all his members a spiritual death & burial of sin and natural corruption. 2. Kin. 13.21. When the Israelites were burying of a man for fear of the soldiers of the Moabites, they cast him for haste into the sepulchre of Elisha. Now the dead man, so soon as he was down, & had touched the body of Elisha, he revived & stood upon his feet. So let a man that is dead in sin be cast into the grave of Christ, that is, let him by faith but touch Christ dead & buried, it will come to pass by the virtue of Christ's death & burial, that he shallbe raised from the death & bondage of sin to become a new man. Secondly the burial of Christ serves to be a sweet perfume of all our graves and burials: for the grave in itself is the house of perdition; but Christ by his burial hath as it were consecrated and perfumed all our graves: & in stead of houses of perdition, Isai. 57.2. hath made them chambers of rest & sleep, yea beds of down, & therefore howsoever to the eye of man the beholding of a funeral is terrible, yet if we could then remember the burial of Christ, & consider how he thereby hath changed the nature of the grave, even than it would make us to rejoice. Lastly we must imitate Christ's burial in being continually occupied in the spiritual burial of our sins. Thus much of the burial. Now followeth the third and last degree of Christ's humiliation: He descended into hell. It seems very likely that these words were not placed in the creed at the first, P. Vire●. in symb. Erasm. in Colloq. or (as some think) that they crept in by negligence because above threescore creeds of the most ancient counsels & fathers want this clause: & among the rest the Nicene Creed. But if the ancient & learned fathers assembled in that council had been persuaded or at the least had imagined that these words had been set down at the first by the Apostles, no doubt they would not in any wise have left them out. Ru●●. in expo●sit. symb. And an ancient writer saith directly, that these words, he descended into hell, are not found in the Creed of the Roman Church, nor used in the Churches of the East: & if they be, that then they signify the burial of Christ. And it must not seem strange to any that a word or twain in process of time should creep into the Creed, considering that the original copies of the books of the old and new Testament have in them sundry a V●rias lectiones. varieties of readings and b Ma●. 27.9. Jeremy for Zacharie. words otherwhiles which from the margin have crept into the text. Nevertheless considering that this clause hath long continued in the creed, and that by common consent of the Catholic Church of God, & it may carry a fit sense & exposition, it is not as some would have it, to be put forth. Therefore that we may come to speak of the meaning of it, we must know that it hath 4. usual expositions, which we will rehearse in order, & then make choice of that which shall be thought to be the fittest. The first is, that Christ's soul after his passion upon the cross, did really & locally descend into the place of the damned. But this seems not to be true. The reasons are these. I. All the Evangelists and among the rest S. Luke intending to make an exact narration of the life and death of Christ have set down at large his passion, death, Luk. 1.3. Omnia assequut● 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. burial, resurrection, & ascension, and withal they make rehearsal of small circumstances, therefore no doubt they would not have omitted Christ's local descent into the place of the damned, if there had been any such thing. And the end why they penned this history was, that we might believe that jesus is Christ the son of God, & believing, joh. 20.31. we might have life everlasting. Now there could not have been a greater matter for the confirmation of our faith them this, that jesus the son of Mary who went down to the place of the damned, returned thence to live in happiness for ever. II. If Christ did go into the place of the damned, then either in soul or in body or in his godhead. But his godhead could not descend, because it is every where, and his body was in the grave. And as for his soul it went not to hell, but presently after his death it went to paradise, that is, the third heaven, a place of joy & happiness. Luke. 23.43. This day shalt thou be with me in paradise: which words of Christ must be understood of his manhood or soul, & not of his godhead. For they are an answer to a demand: & therefore unto it▪ they must be suitable. Now the thief seeing, that Christ was first of all crucified▪ & therefore in all likelihood▪ first of all die, makes his request to this effect. Lord, thou shalt shortly enter into thy kingdom, remember me then, to which Christ's answer (as the very words import) is thus much. I shall enter into paradise this day, & there shalt thou be with me. Now there is no entrance, but in regard of his soul or manhood. For the godhead which is at all times in all places, can not be said properly to enter into a place. Again when Christ saith, thou shalt be with me in paradise, he doth intimate a resemblance▪ which is between the first & second Adam. The first Adam sinned against God, & was presently cast forth out of paradise. Christ the second Adam having made a satisfaction for sin must immediately enter into paradise. Now to say that Christ in soul descended locally into hell, is to abolish this analogy between the first & second Adam. III. Ancient counsels in their confessions and creeds omitting this clauseshew, that they did not acknowledge any real descent, and that the true meaning of these words, he descended, was sufficiently included in some of the former articles, & that may appear, because when they set down it, they omit some of the former: as Athanasius in his creed setting down these words he descended, etc. omits the burial, putting them both for one as he expounds himself a Li. de incar. Chrys▪ hom. 1. & 2. in symb. else where. Now let us see the reasons which may be alleged to the contrary. Ob. I. Mat. 12.40. The son of man shall be 3. days & 3. nights in the heart of the earth, that is, in hell. Ans. I. This exposition is directly against the scope of the place: for the pharisees desired to see a sign, that is, some sensible & manifest miracle: & hereunto Christ answers that he will give them the sign of jonas, which can not be the descent of his soul into the place of the damned which is impossible; but rathet his burial, & after it his manifest & glorious resurrection. II. The heart of the earth may as well signify the grave as the centre of the earth. For thus Tyrus bordering upon the sea is said to be in the heart of the sea. Ezec. 27.4. In cord marium. III. This exposition takes it far granted that hell is seated in the midst of the earth▪ whereas the scriptures reveal unto us no more but this, that hell is in the lower parts: but where these lower parts should be, no man is able to define. Object. II. Act. 2.37. Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell, neither wilt thou suffer thy holy one to see corruption. Answer. These words can not prove any local descent of Christ's soul. For Peter's drift in alleging of them is, to prove the resurrection, and he saith expressly, that the words must be understood of the resurrection of Christ, vers. 31. He seeing this before, spoke of the resurrection of Christ. What? namely these words, his soul was not left in hell, etc. Now there is no resurrection of the soul, but of the body only, as the soul cannot be said to fall, but the body. It will be replied, that the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 cannot signify the body, and the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 the grave. Answer. The first word signifies not only the spiritual part of man, the soul▪ but also the whole person, or the man himself, Rom. 13.1. 1. Cor. 15.45. And the second is as well taken for the grave, as for hell. Apoc. 20.14. Death and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 are cast into the lake of fire. Now we can not say, that hell is cast into hell, but the grave into hell. And the word in this text, must needs have this sense. For Peter makes an opposition betw●eene the grave into which David is shut up, and the hell out of which Christ was delivered, vers. 2●. & 31. Again it will be said, that in this text there be two distinct parts: the first of the souls coming forth of hell, Bellar. quaest. de descent. in these words, Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell. The second, of the bodies rising out of the grave in the next words: neither wilt thou suffer my flesh to see corruption. Answer. It is not so. For flesh in this place signifies not the body alone, but the human nature of Christ, as appears vers. 30. unless we shall say that one and the same word in the same sentence is taken two ways. And the words rather carry this sense: Thou wilt not suffer me to continue long in the grave; nay which is more, in the time of my continuance there, thou wilt not suffer me so much as to feel any corruption; because I am thy holy one. Object. III. 1. Pet. 3.19. Christ was quickened in spirit, by the which spirit he went and preached to the spirits which are in prison. Answer. The place is not for this purpose. For by spirit is meant not the soul of Christ, but his Godhead, which in the ministery of Noah preached repentance to the old world. And I think that Peter in this place alludes to another place in Genesis 6.3. where the Lord saith, My spirit shall not always strive with man, because he is but flesh. And if the spirit do signify the soul, than Christ was quickened either by his soul or in his soul. But neither is true. For the first, it can not be said, that Christ was quickened by his soul, because it did not join itself to the body: but the Godhead joined them both. Neither was he quickened in soul: for his soul died not. It could not die the first death, which belongs to the body: and it did not die the second death, which is a total separation from God: only it suffered the sorrows of the second death, which is the apprehension of the wrath of God; as a man may feel the pangs of the first death, and yet not die the first death, but live. Again, it is to no end that Christ's soul should go to hell to preach, considering that it was never heard of that one soul should preach to another, especially in hell, where all are condemned, and in conscience convicted of their just damnation, and where there is no hope of repentance or redemption. It will be answered, that this preaching is only real or experimental, because Christ shows himself there to convince the unbelief of his enemies. Answer. This which is said is flat against reason. For when a man is justly condemned by God, After just execution conviction is needless. and therefore sufficiently convicted: what need the judge himself come to the place of execution to convict him. And it is flat against the text. For the preaching that is spoken of here, is that which is performed by men in the ministery of the word, as Peter expounds himself, 1. Pet. 4.6. To this purpose was the Gospel also preached unto the dead, that they might be condemned according to men in the flesh, that they might live according to God in the spirit. Lastly, there is no reason why Christ should rather preach and show himself in hell, to them that were disobedient in the days of Noah, then to the rest of the damned. And this is the first exposition, the second follows. He descended into hell, that is, Christ descended into the grave, or was buried. This exposition is agreeable to the truth, yet is it not mee● or convenient. For the clause next before, he was buried, contained this point: & therefore if the next words following yield the same sense, there must be a vain and needless repetition of one and the same thing twice, which is not in anywise to be allowed in so short a Creed as this. If it be said that these words are an exposition of the former, the answer is, that then they should be more plain than the former. For when one sentence expoundeth an other, the latter must always be the plainer: but of these two sentences, He was buried, he descended into hell, the first is very plain and easy, but the latter very obscure and hard, and therefore it can be no exposition thereof: and therefore this exposition also is not to be received. Thirdly, others there be which expound it thus, He descended into hell, that is, Christ jesus when he was dying upon the cross, felt and suffered the pangs of hell and the full wrath of God seizing upon his soul. This exposition hath his warrant in God's word, where hell often signifieth the sorrows and pains of hell, as Hanna in her song unto the Lord saith, 1. Sam. 2.6. The Lord killeth and maketh alive, he bringeth down to hell and raiseth up, that is, he maketh men feel woe and misery in their souls, even the pangs of hell, and after restoreth them. And David saith, The sorrows of death compassed me, and the terrors of hell laid hold on me. Psal. 18.5. This is an usual exposition received of the Church, and they which expound this article thus, gives this reason thereof: The former words, was crucified, dead and buried, do contain (say they) the outward sufferings of Christ: now because he suffered not only outwardly in body, but also inwardly in soul, therefore these words, he descended into hell, do set forth unto us his inward sufferings in soul, when he felt upon the cross the full wrath of God upon him. This exposition is good and true, and whosoever will may receive it. But yet nevertheless it seems not so fitly to agree with the order of the former articles. For these words, was crucified, dead and buried, must not be understood of any ordinary death, but of a cursed death in which Christ suffered the full wrath of God, even the pangs of hell both in soul and body: seeing then this exposition is contained in the former words, it cannot fitly stand with the order of this short Creed, unless there should be a distinct article of things repeated before. But let us come to the fourth exposition; He descended into hell, that is, when he was dead and buried, he was held captive in the grave, and lay in bondage under death for the space of three days. This exposition also may be gathered forth of the Scriptures. Saint Peter saith, God hath raised him up, Act. 2.24. (speaking of Christ) and loosed the sorrows of death, because it was unpossible that he should be holden of it. Where we may see, that between the death and resurrection of Christ, there is placed a third matter, which is not mentioned in any clause of the Apostles Creed save in this, and that is his bondage under death, which cometh in between his death and rising again. And the words themselves do most fitly bear this sense, as the speech of jacob showeth, I will go down into a o●, the grave. Gen. 37.35. hell unto my son mourning. And this exposition doth also best agree with the order of the Creed; first he was crucified & died, secondly he was buried, thirdly laid in the grave, and was therein held in captivity and bondage under death. And these three degrees of Christ's humiliation, are most fitly correspondent to the three degrees of his exaltation. The first degree of his exaltation, he rose again the third day, answering to the first degree of his humiliation, he died: the second degree of his exaltation, he ascended into heaven, answering to his going down into the grave, was buried: and thirdly his sitting at the right hand of God (which is the highest degree of his exaltation) answering to the lowest degree of his humiliation, he descended into hell. These two last expositions are commonly received, and we may indifferently make choice of either: but the last (as I take it) is most agreeable to the order and words of the Creed. Thus much for the meaning of the words. Now follow the uses. And first of all Christ's descending into hell, teacheth every one of us that profess the name of Christ, that if it shall please God to afflict us, either in body, or in mind, or in both, though it be in most grievous and tedious manner, yet must we not think it strange. For Christ upon the cross not only suffered the pangs of hell, but after he was dead, death takes him and as it were carries him into his den, or cabin, and there triumpheth over him, holding him in captivity and bondage, and yet for all this was he the son of God: and therefore when God's hand is heavy upon us any way, we are not to despair, but rather think it is the good pleasure of God to frame and fashion us, that we may become like unto Christ jesus as good children of God. David a man after Gods own heart was by Samuel anointed king over Israel, but withal God raised up Saul to persecute him, as the fowler hunteth the partridge in the mountain, in so much that David said, there was but one step between him & death. job. 2.8, 9 So likewise job a just man and one that feared God with all his heart, yet how heavily did God lay his hand upon him; his goods and cattle were all taken away, and his own children slain, and his own body stricken by satan with loathsome biles from the sole of his foot unto the crown of his head, so as he was feign to take a potsherd and scrape himself sitting among the ashes. And jonah the servant and Prophet of the most high God, when he was called to preach to Niniveh, because he refused for fear of that great city, God met with him, and he must be cast into the sea, and there be swallowed up of a whale, that so he might chastise him: and thus doth he deal with his own servants, to make them conformable to Christ. And further, when it pleaseth God to lay his hand upon our souls, and make us have a troubled and distressed conscience, so as we do as it were struggle with God's wrath as for life and death, and can find nothing but his indignation seizing upon our souls, which is the most grievous and perplexed estate that any man can be in: in this case howsoever we cannot discern or see any hope or comfort in ourselves, yet we must not think it strange, nor quite despair of his mercy. For the son of God himself descended into hell, and death carried him captive, and triumphed over him in the grave, and therefore though God seem to be our utter enemy, yet we must not despair of his help. In divers Psalms we read how David was not only persecuted outwardly of his enemies, but even his sou●e and conscience were perplexed for his sins, so as his bones were consumed within him, Psal. 32.3. and his moisture was turned into the drought in summer. This caused job to cry out that the arrows of God were within him, job 6.4. and the venom thereof did drink up his spirit, the terrors of God did fight against him, and the grief of his soul was as weighty as the sand of the sea, by reason whereof he saith, that the Lord did make him a mark and a butt to shoot at: & 16.9, 12. and therefore when God shall thus afflict us, either in body or in soul, or in both, we must not always think that it is the wrathful hand of the Lord that gins to bring us to utter condemnation for our sins, but rather his fatherly work to kill sin in us, and to make us grow in humility, that so we may become like unto Christ jesus. Secondly, whereas Christ for our sakes was thus abased even unto the lowest degree of humiliation that can be, it is an example for us to imitate, as Christ himself prescribeth: Learn of me that I am meek and lowly. Mat. 11.29. And that we may the better do this, we must learn to become nothing in ourselves, that we may be all in all forth of ourselves in Christ: we must loathe and think as basely of ourselves as may be in regard of our sins. Christ jesus upon the cross was content for our sakes, to become a worm and no man, Psal. 22.6. as David saith, which did chiefly appear in this lowest degree of his humiliation, when as death did as it were tread on him in his den; and the same mind must likewise be in us which was in him. The liking that we have of ourselves must be mere nothing, but all our love and liking must be forth of ourselves in the death and blood of Christ. And thus much of this clause, as also of the state of Christ's humiliation. Now followeth his second estate, which is his exaltation into glory, set down in these words, The third day he rose again from the dead, etc. And of it we are first to speak in general, then in particular according to the several degrees thereof. In general, the exaltation of Christ is, that glorious or happy estate, into which Christ entered after he had wrought the work of our redemption upon the cross. And he was exalted according to both natures, in regard of his Godhead, and also of his manhood. The exaltation of the Godhead of Christ, was the manifestation of the glory of his Godhead in the manhood. Some will peradventure demand, how Christ's Godhead can be exalted, seeing it admits no alteration at all. Answer. In itself it cannot be exalted, yet being considered as it is joined with the manhood into one person, in this respect it may be said to be exalted: and therefore, I say, the exaltation of Christ's Godhead is the manifestation of the glory thereof in the manhood. For though Christ from his incarnation was both God and man, and his Godhead dwelled in his manhood; yet from his birth unto his death, the same Godhead did little show itself, and in the time of his suffering did as it were lie hid under the vail of his flesh, as the soul doth in the body, when a man is sleeping, that thereby in his human nature he might suffer the curse of the law, and accomplish the work of redemption for us, in the low and base estate of a servant. But after this work was finished, he began by degrees to make manifest the power of his Godhead in his manhood. And in this respect his Godhead may be said to be exalted. The exaltation of Christ's humanity stood in two things. The first that he laid down all the infirmities of man's nature, which he carried about him so long as he was in the state of a servant, in that he ceased to be weary, hungry, thirsty, etc. Here it may be demanded, whether the scars & wounds remain in the body of Christ now after it is glorified. Ans. Some think that they do remain as testimonies of that victory which Christ obtained of his & our enemies, Olev. lib. de subst. faed. Th. Bez. & that they are no deformity to the glorious body of our Lord, but are themselves also in him in some unspeakable manner glorified. But indeed it rather seems to be a truth, to say that they are quite abolished; because they were a part of that ignominious and base estate in which our Saviour was upon the cross: which after his entrance into glory he laid aside. And if it may be thought that the wounds in the hands and feet of Christ remain to be seen, even to the last judgement, why may we not in the same manner think that the veins of his body remain emptied of their blood, because it was shed upon the cross. The second thing required in the exaltation of Christ's manhood is, that both his body and soul were beautified and adorned with all qualities of glory. His mind was enriched with as much knowledge and understanding as can possibly befall any creature, and more in measure then all men and angels have: and the same is to be said of the graces of the spirit in his will and affections: his body also was incorruptible, and it was made a shining body, a resemblance whereof some of his disciples saw in the mount: and it was endued with agility, to move as well upward as downward, as may appear by the ascension of his body into heaven, which was not caused by constraint or by any violent motion, but by a property agreeing to all bodies glorified. Yet in the exaltation of Christ's manhood we must remember two caveats: first, that he did never lay aside the essential properties of a true body, as length, breadth, thickness, visibility, locallitie which is to be in one place at once and no more, but keepeth all these still, because they serve for the being of his body. Secondly we must remember that the gifts of glory in Christ's body are not infinite but finite: for his human nature being but a creature, and therefore finite, could not receive infinite graces and gifts of glory. And hence it is more than manifest that the opinion of those men is false, which hold that Christ's body glorified, is omnipotent and infinite, every way able to do whatsoever he will: for this is to make a creature to be the creator. Thus much of Christ's exaltation in general. Now let us come to the degrees thereof, as they are noted in the Creed, which are in number three: I. He rose again the third day: II. He ascended unto heaven: III. He sitteth at the right hand of God the father almighty. In the handling of Christ's resurrection, we must consider these points: I. why Christ ought to rise again: II. the manner of his rising. III. the time when he rose: IU. the place where: V the uses thereof. For the first, it was necessary that Christ should rise again, and that for three especial causes. First, that hereby he might show to all the people of God that he had fully overcome death. For else, if Christ had not risen, how should we have been persuaded in our consciences, that he had made a full & perfect satisfaction for us: nay rather we should have reasoned thus: Christ is not risen, & therefore he hath not overcome death, but death hath overcome him. Secondly, Christ jesus which died was the son of God, therefore the author of life itself, and for this cause it was neither meet nor possible for him to be held of death, but he must needs rise from death to life. Thirdly, Christ's priesthood hath 2. parts: one, to make satisfaction for sin by his one only sacrifice upon the cross: the other, to apply the virtue of this sacrifice unto every believer. Now he offered the sacrifice for sin upon the cross, before his death, and therefore being dead must needs rise again to perform the second part of his priesthood, namely to apply the virtue thereof unto all that shall believe in him, and to make intercession in heaven unto his father for us here on earth. And thus much of the first point. Now to come to the manner of Christ's resurrection: five things are to be considered in it. The first, that Christ rose again not as every private man doth, but as a public person representing all men that are to come to life eternal. For as in his passion, so also in his resurrection, he stood in our room and place: and therefore when he rose from death, we all, yea the whole Church rose in him, Eph. 2.6. and together with him. And this point not considered, we do not conceive aright of Christ's resurrection, neither can we reap sound comfort by it. The second is, that Christ himself and no other for him, did by his own power raise himself to life. This was the thing which he meant, when he said, Destroy this temple, & in three days I will build it up again: joh. 10.18. & more plainly, I have (saith he) power to lay down my life, and I have power to take it again. Fron whence we learn divers instructions. First whereas Christ raiseth himself from death to life, it serveth to prove that he was not only man, but also true god. For the body being dead, could not bring again the soul & join itself unto the same, & make itself alive again; neither yet the soul that is departed from the body, can return again & quicken the body: and therefore there was some other nature in Christ, namely his Godhead, which did reunite soul and body together, and thereby quickened the manhood. Secondly, if Christ give life to himself being dead in the grave, then much more now being alive and in heaven glorified, is he able to raise up his members from death to life. We are all by nature stark dead in sin, as the dead body rotten in the grave; and therefore our duty is, to come to Christ our Lord by prayer, entreating him that he would raise us up every day more and more from the grave of our sins to newness of life. He can of men dead in their sins make us alive unto himself to live in righteousness and true holiness all the days of our life. The third thing is, that Christ rose again with an earthquake. And this serveth to prove that he lost nothing of his power by death, but still remained the absolute Lord of heaven and earth, to whom therefore the earth under his feet trembling doth him homage. This also proveth unto us that Christ which lay dead in the grave, did raise himself again by his own almighty power. Lastly it serveth to convince the keepers of the grave, the women which came to embaulme him, and the disciples which came to the sepulchre, & would not yet believe that he was risen again. But how came this earthquake? Answer. Saint Matthew saith, there was a great earthquake. For the angel of the Lord descended from heaven, Math. 28.2. etc. This shows that the power of angels is great, in that they can move and stir the earth. Three angels destroyed Sodom & Gomorrha. Gen. 19.1, 13. Ezec. 12.29. 2. King. 19.35. An angel destroyed the first borne of Egypt in one ●ight. In the host of Senacherib one angel slew in one night 14500 men. Of like power is the devil himself to shake the earth, and to destroy us all, but that God of his goodness limits & restrains him of his liberty. Well, if one angel be able to shake the earth, what then will Christ himself do when he shall come to judgement the second time, with many thousand thousands of angels? oh how terrible will his coming be? Not without cause saith the holy Ghost that the wicked at that day shall cry out, wishing the hills to fall upon them, and the mountains to cover them for fear of that great and terrible day of the Lord▪ The 4. thing is, that an angel ministered to Christ, being to rise again, in that he came to the grave & rolled away the stone, & sat upon it. Where observe, first how the angels of God minister unto Christ; though dead & buried; whereby they acknowledge that his power, majesty, & authority is not included within the bonds of the earth, but extends itself even to the heavens themselves and the hosts thereof, and that according to his humanity. Wicked men for their parts laboured to close him up in the earth, as the basest of all creatures: but the angels of heaven most readily accept him as their sovereign Lord and king: Math. 4.11. as in like manner they did in his temptation in the wilderness▪ and in his agony in the garden. Secondly, that the opinion of the papists and others, which think that the body of Christ went through the grave-stone when he rose again, is without warrant. For the end, no doubt, why the angel rolled away the stone was, that Christ might come forth. And indeed it is against the order of nature that one body should pass through another▪ without corruption or alteration of either; considering that every body occupies a place, and two bodies at the same instant cannot be in one proper place. Furthermore it is said, that when the angel sat on the stone, his countenance was like lightning, and his raiment as white as snow: & this served to show what was the glory of Christ himself. For if the servant and minister be so glorious, then endless is the glory of the lord and master himself. Lastly it is said, that for fear of the angel, the watchmen were astonished, and became as dead men: which teacheth us, that what God would have come to pass, all the world can never hinder. For though the jews had closed up the grave with a stone, and set a band of soldiers to watch, lest Christ should by any means be taken away▪ yet all this availeth nothing: by an angel from heaven the seal is broken, the stone is removed, and the watchmen at their wits ends. And this came to pass by the providence of God, that after the watchmen had testified these things to the jews, they might at length be convicted that Christ whom they crucified was the Messiah. The fifth & last point is, that Christ rose not alone, but accompanied with others: as S. Matthew saith, that the graves opened, and many bodies of the Saints which slept arose, and came out of the graves, Mat. 27.52. and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many after Christ's resurrection. And this came to pass that the Church of God might know & consider that there is a reviving and quickening virtue in the resurrection of Christ, whereby he is able not only to raise our dead bodies unto life, but also when we are dead in sin, to raise us up to newness of life. And in this very point stands a main difference between the resurrection of Christ, & the resurrection of any other man. For the resurrection of Peter nothing avails to the raising of David or Paul: but Christ's resurrection avails for all that have believed in him: by the very same power whereby he raised himself, he raiseth all his members: & therefore he is called a quickening spirit. And let us mark the order observed in rising. First Christ riseth, & then the saints after him. And this came to pass to verify the Scripture, which saith that Christ is the first borne of the dead. Col. 1.18. Now he is the first borne of the dead, in that he hath this dignity & privilege to rise to eternal life the first of all men. It is true indeed that Lazarus & sundry others in time rose before Christ: but yet they rose to live a mortal life, and to die again: Christ he is the first of all that rose to life everlasting and to glory: never any rose before Christ in this manner. And the people that rose before with Christ are to be noted, they were the Saints of God, not wicked men: whereby we are put in mind that the elect children of God only are partakers of Christ's resurrection. Indeed both good and bad rise again, but there is a great difference in their rising: for the godly rise by the virtue of Christ's resurrection, and that to eternal glory: but the ungodly rise by the virtue of Christ, not as he is a redeemer, but as he is a terrible judge, and is to execute justice on them. And they rise again for this end, that besides the first death of the body, they might suffer the second death, which is the pouring forth of the wrath of God upon body and soul eternally. This difference is proved unto us by that which Paul saith, 1. Cor. 15.20. Christ is the first fruits of them that sleep. Among the jews such as had corn fields gathered some little quantity thereof, before they reaped the rest, & offered the same unto God, signifying thereby that they acknowledged him to be the author and giver of all increase: & this offering was also an assurance unto the owner, of the blessing of God upon the rest, & this being but one handful did sanctify the whole crop. Now Christ to the dead is as the first fruits to the rest of the corn, because his resurrection is a pledge & an assurance of the resurrection of all the faithfulll. When a man is cast into the sea, and all his body is under the water, there is nothing to be looked for but present death, but if he carry his head above the water, there is good hope of a recovery. Christ himself is risen as a pledge that all the just shall rise again: he is the head unto his Church, & therefore all his members must needs follow in there time. It may be demanded what became of the Saints that rose again after Christ's resurrection. Ans. Some think they died again, but seeing they rose for this end to manifest the quickening virtue of Christ's resurrection, it is as like that they were also glorified with Christ, and ascended with him to heaven. Thus much of the manner of Christ's resurrection. Now follows the time when he rose again, and that is specified in the Creed, The third day he rose again: Thus saith our Saviour Christ unto the pharisees, As jonas was three days and three nights in the whales bellue: so shall the son of man be three days and three nights in the heart of the earth. Mat. 12.39. And though Christ was but one day and two pieces of two days in the grave: (for he was buried in the evening before the sabbath, His abode in the grave was about 38. hours. and rose in the morning the next day after the sabbath) yet is this sufficient to verify this saying of Christ. For if the analogy had stood in three whole days▪ then Christ should have risen the fourth day. And it was the pleasure of God that he should lie thus long in the grave▪ that it might be known that he was thoroughly dead: and he continued no longer, that he might not in his body see corruption. Matt. 28.1. Again, it is said, Christ rose again in the end of the sabbath, when the first day of the week began to dawn. And this very time must be considered, as the real beginning of the new spiritual world, in which we are made the sons of God. And as in the first day of the first world, light was commanded to shin● out of darkness upon the deeps: so in the first day of this new world, the son of righteousness riseth and gives light to them that sit in darkness, & dispels the darkness that was under the old testament. And here let us mark the reason why the sabbath day was changed. For the first day of the week, which was the day following the jews sabbath, is our sabbath day, which day we keep holy in memory of the glorious resurrection of Christ: and therefore it is called the Lords day. And it may not unfitly be termed a Hierome. Sunday, Apoc. 1.10. though the name came first from the heathen, because on this day the blessed son of righteousness rose from death to life. Let us now in the next place proceed to the proofs of Christ's resurrection, which are diligently to be observed, because it is one of the most principal points of our religion. For as the Apostle saith, He died for our sins, and rose again for our justification▪ Rom. 4.25. and again, If Christ be not risen, then is our preaching vain, 1. Cor. 15.14. and our faith is also vain▪ The proofs are of two sorts: first, Christ's appearances unto men: secondly, the testimonies of men▪ Christ's appearances were either on the first day▪ or ●n the days following. The appearances of Christ the same day he rose again are five. And first of all ●arely in the morning he appeared to Marie Magdalen. Mark. 16.9. In this appearance diverse things are to be considered. The first, of what note and quality the party was, to whom Christ appeared. Answer. Marry Magdalen was one that had been possessed with seven devils, but was delivered and became a repentant sinner, and stood by when Christ suffered, and came with sweet odours when he was dead to embaulme him. And therefore to her is granted this prerogative, that she should be the first that should testify his resurrection unto men. And hence we learn, that Christ is ready and willing to receive most miserable wretched sinners, even such as have been vassa●ls and bondslaves of the devil, if they will come to him. Any man would think it a fearful case, to be thus possessed with devils as Marie was: but let all those that live in ignorance, and by reason thereof live in sin without repentance, know this, that their case is a thousand times worse than Marie Magdalen● was. For what is an impenitent sinner? Surely nothing else but the castle & hold of the devil, both in body & soul. For look as a captain that hath taken some hold or sconce, doth rule & govern all therein, and disposeth of it at his will & pleasure: even so it is with all blind and impenitent sinners; not one devil alone, but even legions of devils possess them, & rule their hearts▪ & therefore howsoever they may soothe themselves & say, all is well, for God is merciful; yet their case is far worse than Mari●s was. Now then▪ would any be freed from this fearful bondage? let them learn of Marie Magdalen to follow Christ, and to seek unto him, and then albeit the devil and all his angels possess their heart's, yet Christ being the strong man, will come and cast them all out, and dwell there himself. The second is, what Christ in his appearance said to Marie. Answ. He said, Touch me not: for I am not yet ascended to my father. Mary no doubt was glad to see Christ, & therefore looked to have conversed as familiarly with him as she was wont before his death, but he forbids her to touch him, that is, not to look to enjoy his corporal presence as before, but rather to seek for his spiritual presence by faith, considering he was shortly to ascend to his father. For this cause when he appeared to his disciples, he stayed not long with them at any time, but only to manifest himself unto them, thereby to prove the certainty of his resurrection. This prohibition shows first of all that it is but a fond thing to delight in the outward picture and portraiture of Christ, as the jesuits do, who stand much upon his outward form and lineaments. Secondly, it overthroweth the popish crucifixes, and all the carved and molten images of Christ, wherein the Papists worship him, for corporal presence is not now required: therefore spiritual worship only must be given unto him. Thirdly it overthroweth the real presence of Christ in the Sacrament. Many are of mind that they cannot receive Christ, except they eat & drink his body & blood corporally: but it is not much material whether we touch him with the bodily hand or no; so be it we apprehend him spiritually by faith. Lastly, as we must not have earthly considerations of Christ: so must we on the contrary labour for the spiritual hand of faith, which may reach up itself to heaven, & there lay hold on him. This is the very thing which Christ insinuateth unto Mary in saying, Touch me not. And S. Paul saith, Henceforth know we no man after the flesh, yea though we had known Christ after the flesh, yet now know we him no more, ●. Cor. 5.19. that is, we know him no more as a man living among us, & therefore he adds, If any man be in Christ, he is a new creature: and this new creation is not by the bodily presence of Christ▪ but by the apprehension of faith. The second appearance was to Marie Magdalen & to the other Marry, as they were going from the grave to tell his disciples: at which time Christ meeteth them, & bids them go tell his brethren that he is risen again. Mat. 28.9. And whereas Christ sendeth women to his disciples, he purposed hereby to check them for their unbelief. For these women forsook him not at his death, but stood by & saw him suffer, & when he was buried they came to embalm him: but all this while what became of Christ's disciples? Surely Peter denied him, & all the rest fled away, even james & john the sons of thunder, save that john stood a loof to behold his death. hereupon Christ to make them ashamed of their fault, sendeth these women unto them to publish that to them which they by their calling ought above all other to have published. Secondly this teacheth, that whereas Christ buildeth his kingdom & publisheth his Gospel by Apostles, Evangelists, Pastors, teachers, he can if it so please him, perform the same by other means. In this his second appearance, he used weak and silly women to publish his resurrection, and thereby shows that he is not bound to the ordinary means, which now he useth. Thirdly, he sent them to his disciples, to show, that howsoever they had dealt unfaithfully with him by forsaking him and denying him, yet he had not quite forsaken them, but if they would repent and believe, he would receive them into his love and favour again, and therefore calleth them his brethren, saying, Go and tell my brethren. This teacheth us a good lesson, that howsoever our sins past are to humble us in regard of ourselves, yet must they not cut us off or dismay us from seeking to Christ, yea even then when we are laden with the burden of them, we must come unto him, & he will ease us. Fourthly whereas silly women are sent to teach Christ's disciples, Mar. 16.7. which were scholars brought up in his own school, we are admonished, that superiority in place and calling, must not hinder us▪ sometime to hear and to be taught of our inferiors. job saith, he never refused the counsel of his servant: 2. Kin. 5.13. And Naaman the Syrian obeyed the counsel of a silly maid which advised him to go to the Prophet of the Lord in Samaria to be cured of his leprosy: and when he had been with the Prophet, he obeyed the counsel of his servant, that persuaded him to do all the Prophet had said: Wash and be clean. Now after that the women are come to the disciples and make relation of Christ's resurrection, the text saith, Their words seemed as feigned things unto them, Luk. 24.11. neither believed they them. Hence we learn two things: the first, that men of themselves can not believe the doctrine of Christian religion: it is a hard matter for a man to believe sundry things in the work of creation. The temporal deliverance of the children of Israel seemed to them as a dream: Psal. 126.1. and the resurrection of Christ: even to Christ's own disciples seemed a feigned thing. The second, that it is an hard thing truly and unfeignedly to believe the points of religion: disciples brought up in the school of Christ, and often catechized in this very point of Christ's resurrection, yet dull are they to believe it. This confu●eth and condemneth our carnal gospelers that make it the lightest and easiest thing that can be to believe in Christ: and therefore they say their faith is so strong, that they would not for all the world doubt of God's mercy: whereas indeed they are deceived and have no faith at all, but blind presumption. The third appearance was on this manner. As two of Christ's disciples were going from jerusalem to Emmaus about threescore furlongs, Luk. 23.13. and talked together of all the things that were done, jesus drew near and talked with them, but their eyes were holden that they could not know him: and as they went he communed with them, & proved out of the scripture his resurrection, expounding unto them all things that were written of him: then they made him stay with them, and their eyes were opened; & they knew him by breaking of bread, but he was taken out of their sight. In this notable appearance we may observe these four points. The first, that Christ held their eyes that they could not know him: they saw a man indeed, but who he was, they could not tell. By this it is more than manifest, that the use of our outward senses, as seeing, feeling, smelling, etc. is supplied unto us continually by the power of Christ, and therefore even in these things we must acknowledge the continual goodness of God. Now if one man can not so much as discern another but by the blessing of Christ, then shall we never be able to discern the way of life from the way of death without him: & therefore we must pray unto God that he would give us his holy spirit to enlighten the eyes of our understanding, whereby we may be able to see and know the way that leadeth unto life, and also to walk in the same. The second, that as Christ was in expounding the scriptures unto them their hearts burned within them. By this we learn, that howsoever the ministers of God publish the gospel to the outward ears of men: Luk. 3.15. yet is it the proper work of Christ alone to touch & inflame the heart by the fire of his holy spirit, & to quicken & raise men up to the life of righteousness & true holiness: it is he only that baptizeth with the holy ghost▪ & with fire▪ & it further admonisheth us, Mat. 3.15. that we should hear the word preached from the mouth of God's ministers with burning & melting hearts: but alas, the ordinary practice is flat contrary; men's eyes are drowsy & heavy, & their hearts dead & frozen within them: & that is the cause why after much teaching there follows but little profit. The third thing is, that Christ did eat with the two disciples and was known of them in breaking of bread. It is very like that our Saviour Christ did in some special manner bless the bread which he broke, whereby his disciples discerned him from others. And in like manner we must by blessing our meats and drinks distinguish ourselves, though not from such as are the servants of God, yet from all ungodly & careless men. Many being silent themselves do make their children to give thanks, and to bless their meats. And indeed it is a commendable thing if it be done sometimes to nurture the child, but for men to disburden themselves wholly of this duty is a fault. And it is a shame that that mouth which openeth itself to receive the good creatures of God, should never open itself to bless & praise God for the same. Therefore in this action of eating and drinking, let us show ourselves followers of Christ that as by blessing the same he was known from all other; so we may also hereby distinguish ourselves from the profane and wicked of this world. Otherwise what difference shall there be between us & the very hog that eats mast on the ground, but never looks up to the tree from whence it falls. And as Christ revealed himself unto his disciples, at that time when they caused him to eat meat with them; so let us suffer Christ to be our guest, and let us entertain him in his members, & no doubt he will bless us, & withal reveal himself unto us. The fourth thing is, that having eaten, he is taken out of their sight. And this came to pass not because the body of Christ became spiritual, but because either he held their eyes as before, or he departed with celerity and speed according to the property of a body glorified. The fourth appearance of Christ was to Peter alone, mentioned only by S. Paul, He was seen of ●ephas. 1. Cor. 15.5. The fifth appearance was to all the disciples together save Thomas. In it we must consider three things, which are all effectual arguments to prove Christ's resurrection. joh. 20.19. The first, that he came and stood in the midst among them the doors being shut. Now it may be demanded how this could be. Ans. The Papists say, his body was glorified and so passed through the door, but (as I have said) it is against the nature of a body, that one should pass through another, as heat doth through a piece of iron, both bodies remaining entire and sound: therefore we may rather think, that whereas Christ came in when the doors were shut, it was either because by his mighty power he caused the doors to give place, the disciples not knowing how: or else because he altered the very substance of the doors, that his body might pass through, as he thickened the waters to carry his body when he walked upon the sea. Now if this be true, as very like it is, that these dumb creatures gave place to Christ, and became pliable unto his commandment, then much more ought we to carry hearts conformable and pliant to the will of our Lord jesus in all his commandments. The second point is, that when as the disciples thought Christ to have been a spirit, he to prove the truth of his manhood, showeth unto them his hands and his feet, and the wound in his side, and calls for meat, and eats it among them. But it may be asked how this could be, considering that a glorified body hath no blemish, and needs not to eat, but is supported by God without meat: if this be true in our bodies when they shall be glorified, then much more was it true in Christ. Ans. True it is, a glorified body hath no blemishes, but our Saviour Christ had not yet entered into the fullness of his glory. If he had been fully glorified, he could not so sensibly and plainly have made manifest the truth of his resurrection unto his disciples: and therefore for their sakes and ours he is content after his entrance into glory still to retain in his body some remnants of the ignominies and blemishes, which if it had pleased him, he might have laid aside: he is also content to eat, not for need, but to prove that his body was not a body in show but a true body. This teacheth us two lessons: I. If Christ for our good and comfort be content to retain these ignominious blemishes, then answerably every one of us must as good followers of Christ refer the works of our callings to the good of others, as Paul saith, He was free from all men, yet he was content to become all things unto all men, 1. Cor. 9.19. that by all means he might win the more. Secondly we learn, that for the good of our neighbour, and for the maintaining of love and charity, we must be content to yield from our own right, as in this place our Saviour Christ yields of his own glory for the good of his Church. The third point is, that he then gave the disciples their Apostolical commissions, saying, Go and teach all nations: of which three points are to be considered: the first, to whom it is given. Answ. To them all, as well to one as to another, and not to Peter only. And this overthrows the fond and forged opinion of the Papists concerning Peter's supremacy. If his calling had been above the rest, than he should have had a special commission above the rest: but one and the same commission is given alike to all. The second, that with the commission he gives his spirit; for whom he appointeth to publish his will and word, them he furnisheth with sufficient gifts of his holy spirit to discharge that great function: and therefore it is a defect that any are set a part to be ministers of the gospel of Christ, which have not received the spirit of knowledge, the spirit of wisdom, and the spirit of prophesy in some measure. The third point is, that in conferring of his spirit he useth an outward sign, for the text saith, He breathed on them, & said, receive the holy ghost. The reasons hereof may be these. First when God created Adam and put into him a living soul, it is said, he breathed in his face. And so our Saviour Christ in giving unto his disciples the holy ghost, doth the same, to show unto them, that the same person that giveth life giveth grace: and also to signify unto them that being to send them over all the world to preach his gospel, he was as it were to make a second creation of man, by renewing the image of God in him which he had lost by the fall of Adam. Again he breathed on them in giving his spirit, to put them in mind that their preaching of the gospel could not be effectual in the hearts of their hearers, before the Lord doth breath into them his spirit, & thereby draw them to believe: & therefore the spouse of Christ desireth the Lord to send forth his north and south wind to blow on her garden, Cant. 4.16. that the spices thereof may flow out. This garden is the Church of God, which desireth Christ to comfort her, & to pour out the graces of his spirit on her, that the people of God which are the herbs and trees of righteousness, may bring forth sweet spices whose fruit may be for meat and their leaves for medicines. Thus much for the five appearances of Christ the same day he rose again: Now follow the rest of his appearances which were in the 40 days following, which are in number six. The first is mentioned by S. john in these words, Eight days after when the disciples were within, & Thomas with them, came jesus when the doors were shut, joh. 20.16. & stood in the midst of them, & said, Peace be unto you. In it we must consider two things: I. the occasion thereof. II. the dealing of Christ. The occasion was this: after Christ had appeared unto the other disciples in Thomas his absence, they told him that they had seen the Lord: but he made answer, Except I see in his body the print of his nails, & put mine hand into his side, I will not believe. Now eight days after, our Saviour Christ appeared again unto all the disciples, especially for the curing of Thomas his unbelief, which was no small sin, considering it contains in it three great sins. The first is blindness of mind, for he had been a hearer of our Saviour Christ a long time, and had been instructed touching resurrection divers times: he was also with Christ and saw him when he raised Lazarus, and had seen, or at least wise had heard the miracles which he did: and also he had heard all the disciples say that they had seen the Lord, and yet will it not sink into his head. The second is deadness of heart. When our Saviour Christ went to raise Lazarus that was dead, Thomas spoke very confidently to him and said, Let us go, that we may die with him, yet when Christ was crucified he fled away, joh. 11. and is the longest from Christ after his resurrection, and when he is certainly told thereof he will not acknowledge it or yield unto it. The third is, wilfulness: for when the disciples told him that they had seen the Lord, he said flatly, that unless he saw in his hands the print of the nails, he would not believe, and that which is worse than all this, he continueth eight days in this wilful mind. Now in this exceeding measure of unbelief in Thomas, any man, even he that hath the most grace may see what a mass of unbelief is in himself, and what wilfulness and untowardness to any good thing, in so much that we may truly say with David, Lord, what is man, Psal. 8. that thou so regardest him. And if such measure of unbelief was in such men, as the disciples were, than we may assure ourselves, that it doth much more exceed in the common professors of religion in these days, let them protest to the contrary what they will. Now the cause of his unbelief was this: he makes a law to himself that he will see and feel or else he will not believe: but this is flat against the nature of faith which consisteth neither in seeing nor feeling. Indeed in things natural a man must first have experience in seeing and feeling, and then believe: but it is contrary in divinity: a man must first have faith and believe, and then comes experience afterward. But Thomas having not learned this, doth overshoot himself: and herein also many deceive themselves, which think they have no faith because they have no feeling. For the chiefest feeling that we must have in this life, must be the feeling of our sins & the miseries of this life: & though we have no other feeling at all, yet we must not therefore cease to believe. In Christ's dealing with Thomas we may consider three actions. joh. 20.27. The first, that he speaks to Thomas alone, and answers him according to the very words which he had spoken of him in his absence, and that word for word. And by this he laboured to overthrow his unbelief, and to convince him, that being absent he knew what he spoke. And by this we learn, that though we want the bodily presence of Christ he being now in heaven, yet he knoweth well what we say, and if need were could repeat all our sayings word by word: and if it were not so, how could it be true that we must give an account of every idle word. Now this must teach us, to look that our speech be gracious according to the rule of gods holy word. Secondly this must make us willing and cheerful to direct our prayers to Christ, considering he knoweth what we pray for, and heareth every word we speak. The second action is, that Christ condescends to Thomas and gives him liberty to feel the print of the nails, and to put his finger into his side. He might have rejected Thomas for his wilfulness, yet to help his unbelief, he yieldeth unto his weakness. This showeth, that Christ is most compassionate to all ●hose that unfeignedly repent them of their sins and cleave unto him although they do it laden with manifold wants. David saith, that the Lord hath compassion on all them that fear him, Ps. 103.13. as a father hath compassion on his children: and he adds the reason, For he knoweth of what we are made. And the Prophet Isai: Isai. 42.3. He will not break the bruised reed, and smoking flax he will not quench. When a child is very sick, insomuch that it casteth up all the meat which it taketh, the mother will not be offended thereat but rather pity it. Now our Saviour Christ is ten thousand times more merciful to them that believe in him, than any mother is or can be. The third action is, that when Thomas had seen and felt the wounds, Christ revived his faith, whereupon he broke forth and said, joh. 20.28. My Lord and my God. In which words he doth most notably bewail his blindness and unbelief: and as a fire that hath been smothered, so doth his faith burst forth and show itself. And in this example of Thomas we may see the state of God's people in this life. First, God giveth them faith, yet afterward for a time he doth as it were, hide the same in some corner of their hearts, so as they have no feeling thereof, but think themselves to be void of all grace: and this he doth for no other end but to humble them: and yet again after all this, the first grace is further renewed and revived. Thus dealt the Lord with David and Solomon (for whereas he was a penman of Scripture, and therefore an holy man of God, we may not think that he was wholly forsaken) with Peter, and in this place with Thomas. And the experience of this shall every servant of God find in himself. The second appearance of Christ was to seven of the disciples as they went on fishing, john. 21. in which he gives three testimonies of his godhead, and that by death his power was nothing diminished. The first, that when the disciples had fished all night and caught nothing, afterward by his direction they catch fish in abundance, and that presently. This teacheth us, that Christ is a sovereign Lord over all creatures, and hath the disposing of them in his own hands: and that if good success follow not when men are painful in their callings, it is because God will prepare and make them fit for a further blessing. Christ comes in the morning and gives his disciples a great draft of fish: yet before this can be, they must labour all night in vain. joseph must be made ruler over all Egypt, but first he must be cast into a dungeon where he can see no sun nor light, to prepare him to that honour. And David must be king over Israel, but the Lord will first prepare him hereunto by raising up Saul to persecute him. Therefore when God sendeth any hindrances unto us in our callings, we must not despair nor be discouraged, for they are the means whereby God maketh us fit to receive greater blessings at his hand either in this life or in the life to come. The second is, that the net was unbroke though it had in it great fishes to the number of an hundred fifty three. The third, that when the disciples came to land they saw ●otte coals and fish laid thereon and bread. Now some may ask, whence was this food. Answer: The same Lord that was able to provide a Whale to swallow up jonas, and so to save him: and he that was able to provide a fish for Peter's angle with a piece of twenty pence in the mouth: and to make a little bread and a few fishes to feed so many thousands in the wilderness: the same also doth of himself provide bread and fishes for his disciples. This teacheth us, that not only the blessing, but also the very having of meat, drink, apparel is from Christ: and hereupon all states of men, even the kings of the earth are taught to pray that God would give them their daily bread. Again, when we sit down to eat and drink, this must put us in mind that we are the guests of Christ himself: our food which we have comes of his mere gift; and he it is that entertains us if we could see it. And for this cause we must soberly and with great reverence in fear and trembling use all God's creatures as in his presence. And when we eat and drink, we must always look that all our speech be such as may beseem the guests of our Lord and Saviour jesus Christ. Usually the common practice of men is far otherwise, for in feasting many take liberty to surfeit, and to be drunk, to swear, and to blaspheme: but if we serve the Lord, let us remember whose guests we are, and who is our entertainer, and so behave ourselves as being in his presence, that all our actions and words may tend to his glory. The third appearance was to james, as Saint Paul recordeth, 1. Cor. 15.7. although the same be not mentioned in any of the Evangelists. The fourth was to all his disciples in a mountain, whither he had appointed them to come. Ma●. 28.16. The fift and last appearance was in the mount of Olives, Acts. 5. when he ascended into heaven. Of these three last appearances because the holy Ghost hath only mentioned them, I omit to speak, and with the repeating of them I let them pass. Thus much of the appearances of Christ after his resurrection: the witnesses thereof are of three sorts: I. angels: II. women that came to the grave to embalm him: III. Christ's own disciples who did publish and preach the same again according as they had seen and heard of our Saviour Christ: and of these likewise I omit to speak, because there is not any special thing mentioned of them by the Evangelistes. Now follow the uses, which are twofold: some respect Christ, and some respect ourselves. Uses which concern Christ are three: I. whereas Christ jesus being stark dead rose again to life by his own power, it serveth to prove unto us, that he was the son of God. Thus Paul speaking of Christ saith, that he was declared mightily to be the son of God, touching the spirit of sanctification by the resurrection from the dead. Rom. 1.4. And by the mouth of David God said, Thou art my son, this day I have begot thee. Which place must be understood not so much of the eternal generation of Christ before all worlds, Psal. 2.7. as of the manifestation thereof in time after this manner. This day, that is, at the time of thine incarnation, but especially at the day of thy resurrection, have I begotten thee, that is, I have made manifest that thou art my son: so is this place expounded by S. Paul in the Acts. Act. 13.32, 33. Secondly Christ's resurrection by his own power proves unto us evidently, that he is Lord overall things that are: & this use S. Paul makes hereof, for saith he, Christ therefore died that he might be Lord both of the dead and of the quick. And indeed whereas he rose again thus, Rom. 14.9. he did hereby show himself most plainly to be a mighty prince over the grave, over death, hell, & condemnation, in that he had power to overcome them. Thirdly it proves unto us, that he was a perfect priest, & that his death and passion was a perfect satisfaction to the justice of God for the sins of mankind. For whereas Christ died, he died for our sins, now if he had not fully satisfied for them all (though there had remained but one sin for which he had made no satisfaction) he had not risen again: but death which came into the world by sin, and is strengthened by it, would have held him in bondage: and therefore, whereas he rose again, it is more than manifest that he hath made so full a satisfaction so as the merit thereof doth and shall countervail the justice of God for all our offences. To this purpose Paul saith, If Christ be not risen again, your faith is vain, and you are yet in your sins, 1. Cor. 15.6. that is, Christ had not satisfied for your sins, or at least you could not possibly have known that he had made satisfaction for any of them, if he had not risen again. The uses which concern ourselves are of two sorts: comforts to the children of God, and duties that are to be learned and practised of us all. The comforts are especially three: First Christ's resurrection serveth for the justification of all that believe in him, even before God the father: as Paul saith, Christ was given to death for our sins, and is risen again for our justification: Rom. 4.25. which words have this meaning: when Christ died, as we have showed before, we must not consider him as a private man, but as one that stood in the stead and room of all the elect: in his death he bore our sins and suffered all that we should have suffered in our own persons for ever, & the guilt of our offences was laid upon him: & therefore Esai saith: he was numbered among the wicked. Now in his rising again he freed & disburdened himself not from any sins of his own, because he was without sin, but from the guilt & punishment of our sins imputed unto him. And hence it comes to pass that all those which put their trust & affiance in the merit of Christ, at the very first instant of their believing have their own sins not imputed unto them, & his righteousness imputed. Secondly the resurrection of Christ serveth as a notable means to work inward sanctification, as S. Peter saith, We are regenerate to a lively hope by the resurrection of jesus Christ from the dead. 1. Pet. 1.3. And S. Paul, We are then (saith he) buried with him by baptism into his death, Rom. 6.3. that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of his father, so we also should walk in newness of life. For if we be grafted with him to the similitude of his death, we shall be also to the similitude of his resurrection. Which words import thus much, that as Christ by the power of his own godhead, freed his manhood from death and from the guilt of our sins, so doth he free those that are knit unto him by the bond of one spirit, from the corruption of their natures in which they are dead, that they may live unto God. In the natural body, the head is the fountain of all the senses and of motion: and therefore by sundry nerves dispersed through the body, the power of moving and of sense is derived even to the least parts; so as the hands and the feet move by means of that power which comes from the head: and so it is in the spiritual body of Christ, namely the Church: he is the head & the fountain of life, & therefore he conveieth spiritual life to every one of his members: and that very power of his godhead whereby he raised up himself when he was dead, he conveieth from himself to his members, & thereby raiseth them up from the death of sin to newness of life. And look as in a perfect body, when the head hath sense and motion, the hand that is of the same body hath also sense and motion convenient for it: So likewise Christ being the resurrection and the life, as there is spiritual life in him, so every member of his shall feel in itself spiritual sense and motion whereby it is raised up from sin and liveth unto God. For the better conceiving of this, we must consider two things: the outward means of this spiritual life; and the measure of it. For the means, if we will have common water we must go to the well: and if we would have water of life, we must go unto Christ, who saith, If any man thirst, let him come unto me and drink. joh. 7.37. Now this well of the water of life is very deep & we have nothing to draw with, therefore we must have our pipes & conduits to convey the same unto us, which are the word of God preached, and the administration of the sacraments. Christ saith, The dead shall hear the voice of the son of God, joh. 5.25. & they that hear it shall live: where, by dead is meant, not the dead in the grave, but those that are dead in sin. And again Christ saith, joh. 6.63. the words which I speak are spirit and life, because the word of God is the pipe whereby he conveieth into our dead hearts spirit and life. As Christ when he raised up dead men did only speak the word & they were made alive: and at the day of judgement at his voice when the trump shall blow, all that are dead shall rise again. So it is in the first resurrection: they that are dead in their sins, at his voice uttered in the ministery of the word shall rise again. To go further, Christ raised three from the dead. jairus daughter newly dead: the widows son dead and wound up and lying on the hearse: Lazarus dead and buried & stinking in the grave: and all this he did by his very voice: so also by the preaching of his word, he raiseth all sorts of sinners even such as have lain long in their sins, as rotting and stinking carrion. The Sacraments also are the pipes and conduits whereby God conveigheth grace into the heart if they be rightly used, that is, if they be received in unfeigned repentance for all our sins, and with a true and lively faith in Christ for the pardon of the same sins: and so, I take it, they are compared to flagons of wine, which revive the Church being sick and fallen into a sound. Cant. 2.4. As for the measure of life derived from Christ, it is but small in this life and given by little and little, as Ose saith, The Lord hath spoiled us, and he will heal us, he hath wounded us and he will bind us up. Ose. 6.1, 2. After two days he will revive us, and in the third he will raise us up, and we shall live in his sight. The Prophet Ezechiel in a vision is carried into the midst of a field, full of dead bones, and he is caused to Prophesy over them, and say, O ye dry bones, hear the word of the Lord: Eze. 37.4, 7, 8. and at the first there was a shaking, and the bones came together bone to bone, and then sinews and flesh grew upon them, and upon the flesh grew a skin. Then he prophesied unto the winds the second time, and they lived and stood upon their feet, for the breath came upon them, and they were an exceeding great army of men. Hereby is signified not only the state of the jews after their captivity, but in them the state of the whole Church of God. For these temporal deliverances signified further a spiritual deliverance. And we may here see most plainly, that God worketh in the hearts of his children the gifts and graces of regeneration by little and little. First he giveth no more than flesh, sinews, and skin: then after he giveth them further graces of his spirit, which quickeneth them and maketh them alive unto God. Ezec. 47.3, 4, 5. The same also we may see in the vision of the waters that ran out of the Temple: First, a man must wade to the ankles, then after to the knees, and so to the loins: then after the waters grow to a river that can not be passed over: and so the Lord conveyeth his graces by little and little, till at the last men have a full measure thereof. Thirdly the resurrection of Christ serveth as an argument to prove unto us our resurrection at the day of judgement. Paul saith, Rom. 8.11. If the spirit of Christ that raised up jesus from the dead devil in you: he that raised Christ from the dead, shall also quicken your mortal bodies. Some will say, that this is no benefit, for all must rise again, as well the wicked as the godly. Answer: True indeed: but yet the wicked rise not again by the same cause that the godly do. They rise again by the power of Christ, not as he is a saviour but as he is a judge to condemn them: For God had said to Adam, that at what time he should eat of the forbidden fruit he should die the death, meaning a double death, both the first and the second death. Now than the ungodly rise again that God may inflict upon them the punishment of the second death, which is the reward of sin, that so God's justice may be satisfied: but the godly rise again by the power of Christ their head and redeemer, who raiseth them up that they may be partakers of the benefit of his death, which is to enjoy both in body and soul the kingdom of heaven, which he ha●h so dearly bought for them. Thus much for the comforts: Now follow the duties, and they are also three. First as Christ jesus when he was dead rose again from death to life by his own power, so we by his grace in imitation of Christ must endeavour ourselves to rise up from all our sins both original and actual unto newness of life. This is worthily set down by the Apostle, saying, We are buried by baptism into his death, Rom. 6.4. that as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the father, so we also should walk in newness of life: and therefore we must endeavour ourselves to show the same power to be in us every day by rising up from ou● own personal sins to a reformed life. This aught to be remembered of us, because howsoever many hear & know it▪ yet very ●ewe do practise the same. For (to speak plainly) as dead men buried would never hear though a man should speak nevet so loud: so undoubtedly among us there be also many living men, which are almost in the same case. The ministers of God may cry unto them daily, and iterate the same thing a thousand times, and tell them that they must rise up from their sins and lead a new life, but they hear no more than the dead carcase that lieth in the grave. Indeed men hear with their outward ears, but they are so far from practising this duty, that they judge it to be a matter of reproach and ignominy. And those which make any conscience of this duty, how they are laden with nicknames & taunts, who knoweth not? I need not to rehearse them: so odious a thing now a days is the rising from sin to newness of life. Sound a trumpet in a dead man's ears, he stirs not: and let us cry for amendment of life till breath go out of our bodies, no man almost saith, what have I done. And for this cause undoubtedly if it were not for conscience of that duty which men own unto God, we should have but few ministers in England. For it is the joy of a minister to see his people rise from sin and to lead a new life: whereas alas men generally lie snurting in their corruptions, and rather go forward in them still, then come to any amendment, such is the wonderful hardness & untowardnes that hath possessed the hearts of most men. He which hath but half an eye may see this to be true. Oh how exceeds atheism in all places, contempt of God's worship, profanation of the Sabbath: the whoredoms and fornications, the cruelty and oppression of this age, it cries even to heaven for vengeance. By these & such like sins the world crucifies Christ again. For look as pilate's soldiers with the wicked jews took Christ and stripped him of his garments, buffeted him, and slew him; so do ungodly men by their wicked behaviour strip him of all honour, and slay him again. If an infidel should come among us, and yield himself to be of our religion, after he had seen the behaviour of men, he would peradventure leave all religion: for he might say; surely it seems this god whom these men worship, is not the true God, but a god of licentious liberty; and that which is mo●e, whereas at all times we ought to show ourselves new creatures, and to walk worthy of our Saviour and redeemer, and therefore also ought to rise out of our sins, and to live in righteousness and true holiness, yet we for the most part go on still forward in sin, and every day go deeper than other to helward. This hath been heretofore the common practice, but let us now learn after the example of Christ, being quickened and revived by his grace, to endeavour ourselves especially to come out of the grave of sin, and learn to make conscience of every bad action. True it is, a Christian man may use the creatures of God for his delight, in a moderate and godly manner, but Christ never gave liberty to any to live licentiously: 1. Cor. 7.22. for he that is free, is yet servant unto Christ, as Paul saith: and therefore we must do nothing but th●t which may be a work of some good duty unto God, to which end the Apostle saith, Awake thou that sleepest, and stand up from the dead, and Christ shall give thee life. If this will not move us, Eph. 5.14. yet let the judgements of God draw us hereunto, Blessed is he (saith the holy Ghost) that hath part in the first resurrection: Rev. 20.6. for on such the second death hath no power: where mention is made of a double death: the first is the separation of soul & body, the second is the eternal condemnation of soul and body in hell fire. Would we now escape the second death after this life? we must then labour in this life to be partakers of the first resurrection, & that on this manner: Look what sins we have lived in heretofore, we must endeavour to come out of them all, and lead a better life according to all the commandments of God: but if ye will have no care of your own souls, go on hardly, and so ye shall be sure to enter into the second death, which is eternal damnation. Secondly, we are taught by the example of Saint Paul to labour above all things, Phil. 3.10. to know Christ and the virtue of his resurrection. And this we shall do when we can say by experience, that our hearts are not content with a formal and drowsy profession of religion, but that we feel the same power of Christ whereby he raised up himself from death to life, to be effectual and powerful in us, to work in our hearts a conversion from all our sins, wherein we have lain dead, to newness of life, with care to live godly in Christ jesus. And that we may further attain to all this, we must come to hear the word of God preached and taught with fear and trembling; having heard the word, we must meditate therein, and pray unto God, not only publicly but privately also, entreating him that he would reach forth his hand, and pull us out of the grave of sin, wherein we have lain dead so long. And in so doing the Lord of his mercy, according as he hath promised, will send his spirit of grace into our hearts to work in us an inward sense and feeling of the virtue of Christ's resurrection. So dealt he with the two disciples that were going to Emmaus; they were occupied in the meditation of Christ his death and passion, and whiles they were in hearing of Christ who conferred with them, he gave them such a measure of his spirit as made their hearts to burn within them. And Paul prayeth for the Ephesians, that God would enlighten their eyes, Eph. 1.19. that they might see and feel in themselves the exceeding greatness of the power of God, which he wrought in Christ jesus, when he raised him from the dead. Thirdly, as Saint Paul saith, If we be risen with Christ, than we must seek the things that are above. Col. 3.1. But how and by what means can we rise with Christ, seeing we did not die with him? Ans. We rise with Christ thus. The burgess of a town in the parliament house beareth the person of the whole town, & whatsoever he saith, that the whole town saith, & whatsoever is done to him, is also done to all the town: so Christ upon the cross stood in our place, & bore our person, & what he suffered, we suffered, & when he died, all the faithful died in him: and so likewise as he is risen again, so are all the faithful risen in him. The consideration whereof doth teach us, that we must not have our hearts wedded to this world. We may use the things of this life, but yet so as though we used them not. For all our love and care must be for things above, and specially we must seek the kingdom of God & his righteousness, peace of conscience, and joy in the holy Ghost. We must therefore sue for the pardon of sin, for reconciliation to God in Christ, & for sanctification. These are the precious pearls which we must seek, and when we have found them, we must sell all that we have to buy them, & having bought them, we must lay them up in the secret corners of our hearts, valuing and esteeming of them as better than all things in the world beside. Thus much of Christ's resurrection, containing the first degree of Christ's exaltation. Now followeth the second in these words, He ascended into heaven: in the handling whereof we are to consider these special points: I. the time of his ascension. II. the place. III. the manner. iv the witnesses. V the uses thereof. For the first, the time of Christ's ascension was forty days after his resurrection, when he had taught his disciples the things which appertain to the kingdom of God. Act. 1.3, 4. And this shows that he is a most faithful & careful king over his Church, procuring the good thereof. And therefore Esay saith, The government is on his shoulder: & the Apostle saith, Esa. 9.6 Heb. 3.5, 6. he was more faithful in all the house of God, than Moses was. Hence we gather that whereas the Apostles changed the sabbath from the seventh day to the eight, it was no doubt, by the counsel & direction of Chest before his ascension: & likewise in that they planted Churches and appointed teachers and meet overseers for the guiding and instruction hereof, we may resolve ourselves that Christ prescribed the same unto them before his ascension: & for these & such like causes did he ascend no sooner. Now look what care Christ at his ascension had over his church, the same must all masters of families have over their household, when God shall call them out of this world. They must have care not only that their families be well governed while they live, but also that after their death, peace, love, and good order may be continued in their posterity. And therefore the Prophet Esay is sent to Ezechias king of judah, to bid him se● his house in order: for he must die, Isa. 38. 1· signifying that it is the duty of a good master of a family, not only to have care for the government of his house whilst he is alive, but also that it may be well governed when he is dead. The same also must be practised of God's ministers: their fidelity must be seen in this, that they have not only a care to feed their particular flocks while they are alive, but also they must further provide for the people after their departure, as much as they can. Example whereof we have in Peter, who saith, I will endeavour always that ye may be able also to have remembrance of these things after my departure. 2. Pet. 1.15. The place of Christ's ascension was, the mount of Olives near Bethanie: Luk. 24.50. & 19.29. Act. 1.12. and it was the same place from whence Christ went to jerusalem to be crucified. One place serve to be a passage both to pain and torments, and also to glory. This shows that the way to the kingdom of heaven is through afflictions. In all ages there are many which have God's hand heavy upon them in lingering sicknesses, as the dead palsy and such like, wherein they are feign to lie many years without hope of cure, whereupon their beds which should be unto them places of rest and ease, are but places of woe and misery. Yet may these men hence have great comfort, if they can make good use of their sicknesses, for the beds whereon they suffer so much torment, shall be places from whence they shall pass to joy and happiness. Again, there be many that for the testimony of the truth, and for religions sake suffer imprisonment, with many afflictions; now if they can use their afflictions well, their prisons shallbe Bethanies unto them: although they be places of bondage, yet God will at length make it a place of entrance to liberty. Many a man for the maintaining of faith and good conscience, is banished out of his country, and is feign to live in a strange place among a people to whom he is unknown: but let him use it well: for though it be a place of grief for a time, as Bethanie was to Christ when he went to suffer, yet God will make it one day to be his passage into heaven. Thus much of the place of his ascending. The third thing to be considered, is the manner of Christ's ascension: and it containeth three points. The first, that Christ being now to ascend, lifts up his hands and blessed his disciples. In the Scripture are mentioned divers kinds of blessings. Luk. 24.50. The first when one man prayeth to God for a blessing upon an other: and this blessing do kings and princes bestow upon their subjects, and parents on their children: and for this cause children are taught to ask their fathers and mother's blessing, that they may pray to God to bless them. There is another kind of blessing, when a man doth not only pray for a blessing, but also pronounceth it. This did the priests in the old Testament: and thus Melchisedeck when he met Abraham blessed him, saying, Blessed art thou Abraham of God, the most high possessor of heaven and earth. Gen. 14.19. And this was the ordinary duty of the Priests, prescribed by God himself: and therefore the very form of words which they used is set down after this manner, The Lord bless thee, and keep thee, the Lord make his face to shine upon thee, Num. 6.22. etc. The third kind of blessing is, when a man doth not only pray to God, and pronounce blessing, but by the spirit of prophecy doth foretell a particular blessing upon any. Thus Isaac blessed jaacob and Esau, particularly foretelling both their estates. And jaacob blessed the twelve patriarchs by the same spirit, Gen. 49. foretelling them what should befall them many hundred years after. Now our Saviour Christ did not bless his disciples any of these three ways: and therefore there remaineth a fourth kind of blessing which he used, and that was after this manner: Christ in blessing his disciples did not only pronounce or foretell a blessing that should come to his disciples, but did confer and give the same unto them. For he is the fountain and author of all blessings. And therefore Paul saith, Eph. 1.3. that God the father hath blessed us in all spiritual blessings in Christ. Hence we learn, first that all those which deny themselves and fly to Christ, and put their affiance in him, shallbe freed from the curse of the law, and from the wrath of God, due unto them for their sins, whatsoever they are. Secondly, that the curses of men must not discourage us from doing well. For though men curse, yet Christ blesseth: and for this cause he saith, Woe be unto you, when all men speak well of you: Luk. 6.26. as if he should say, than you want the blessing of God. And we must remember, that when men shall curse us for doing our duty, even than the blessing of God shall be upon us; and the curse causeless shall not hurt. And God saith to Abraham, Gen. 12.3. he will curse them that curse him. Thirdly, we learn that no witchcraft, nor sorcery, (which often are done with cursing) shall be able to hurt us. For look where Christ will bless, there all the devils in hell can never fasten a curse. This is found true by experience. For when Balaam the wizard should have cursed the people of Israel, and had assayed to do it many ways, but could not, at length he said, Num. 23.23 there is no sorcery a The english translation being otherwise here seems to fail. against jacob, nor soothsaying against Israel. This is a notable comfort to the people of God, that witches and sorcerers, do what they can, shall never be able to hurt them. It may be, that their bad practices may annoy men's bodies and goods, yet the Lord will turn all to a blessing upon his servants either in this life or the life to come. The second point is, that Christ went apart from his disciples, and ascended upward toward heaven in their sight. For the right understanding of this, sundry special points must be observed. The first, that the lifting up of his body was principally by the mighty power of his Godhead, and partly by the supernatural property of a glorified body, which is to move as well upward as downward, without constraint or violence. The second, that Christ did go from earth to heaven really and actually, and not in appearance only. The third, that he went visibly in the sight of his disciples. The fourth that he went locally, by changing his place and going from earth to heaven, so as he is no more on earth bodily, as we are now on earth. It may be objected, that Christ made a promise that he would be with his Church to the end of the world. Answer. Mat▪ 28.20. That promise is to be understood of the presence of his spirit, or godhead, not of the presence of his manhood. Again it may further be alleged, that if the godhead be on earth, then must the manhood be there also, because they are both united together. Answer. It is not true, that of two things conjoined, where the one is, there must the other be also. For the sun itself, and the sunbeams are both joined together, yet they are not both in all places together. For the body of the sun is only in the heavens, but the sunbeams are also upon the earth. The argument therefore follows not: Christ's manhood subsibsts in that person which is every where: ergo his manhood is every where. And the reason is, because the Son of God subsists not only in his divine nature, Vide Th●m. contra Gent. lib. 4. c. 49. but also by it: whereas he doth not subsist at all by the manhood, but only in it: for he subsisted before all eternity, when the manhood was not. Nay rather because the manhood doth subsist by the person of the Son, therefore the person extends itself further than the manhood which is assumed and sustained by it; and hath his existing thence. For that very thing whereby any other thing either essentially or accidentally is, extends itself further than the thing whereby it is. As the human nature whereby Peter is a man, extends itself further than to Peter, namely to all other men: and the whiteness whereby the snow is white, extends itself further than to that snow which a man holds in his hand. The third point is, that in the ascension a cloud took Christ from the sight of his Disciples. Act. 1.9. And whereas he▪ caused a cloud to come between their sight and himself, it signified unto them that they must now be contented with that which they had seen, and not seek to know further what became of him afterward: and the same thing is taught unto us also: we must content ourselves with that which God hath revealed in his word, and seek no further specially in things which concern God. For the like end in the giving of the law in Sinai, God appeared in a cloud: Exod. 19.9. and when he did manifest his glory in the temple which Solomon made, a thick cloud filled the same. The fourth point to be considered, is concerning the witnesses of his ascension, which were his own disciples in the mount of olives at Bethanie, Luk. 24.50. Act. 1.9. and none but them. Now it may be demanded, why he would not have all the whole nation of the jews to see him ascend, that so they might know that he was risen again, and believe in him. Answ. The reason may be this: ●t was his good pleasure that the points of faith and religion, whereof this article is one, should rather be learned by hearing, then by seeing. Indeed Christ's own disciples were taught the same by sight, that they might the better teach others which should not see: whereas now the ordinary means to come by faith, is hearing. The uses to be made of Christ's ascension, are of two sorts: some are comforts to God's Church and people, and some are duties. The comforts are especially four. The first is this: Christ jesus did ascend up into heaven, to lead captivity captive, Eph. 4.8. a most worthy benefit. By captivity is meant▪ 1. sin and satan, which did and do lead men captive into perdition: 2. death and the grave, which held him captive and in bondage for the space of three days. And he leads them all captive two ways. First in himself; in that he began his triumph upon the cross, as I have showed and continued the same till his very ascension: secondly in all his members, because by his mighty power being now ascended, he doth subdue and weaken the power of sin and satan, which he manifesteth every day by killing the corruption of their natures, Rom. 16.20 and the rebellion of their flesh. But it may be demanded, how Christ doth lead his enemies captive, considering the devil reigns every where, and the world, and death, and hell. Answer. Christ's victory over his and our enemies hath five degrees. First, it is ordained by God, secondly it is foretold, thirdly it is wrought, four it is applied, lastly it is accomplished. The ordaining of it was before all worlds; the foretelling of it was in all the ages of the old testament: the working of it was upon the cross, and afterward; the applying hath been since the beginning of the world more or less: and it is only in part in this life, that while Christ is in bruising of the head of satan, he again may bruise his heel: the accomplishment shall not be before the last judgement. From this great benefit bestowed on God's Church, there are many duties to be learned. First here is an instruction for all ignorant persons and impenitent sinners, which abound among us in every place. Whosoever they be that live in the blindness of their minds, and hardness of their hearts, they must know this, that they are captives and bondslaves of sin and Satan, of hell, death, and condemnation: and let no man flatter himself of what state or degree soever he be (for it is God's truth) if he have not repent of all his sins, he as yet is no better than a captive and vassal, yea a very drudge of the devil. Now then, what wilt thou do in this case? the best thing is, to lay to thy heart this benefit of Christ. He is ascended up to heaven to lead captive and to vanquish the devil and all his angels, under whom thou liest bound, and that not only in himself, but in his members. Now than if thou wilt become a true member of Christ, he will free thee from this bondage. Therefore take heed how thou continuest longer in thy old sins, and in thy gross ignorance: and seeing Christ hath made a way to liberty, let us come out of this spiritual bondage: he is ascended for this end and purpose to free us from it; therefore if we refuse this benefit, our state will be the more damnable. Any man that lies bound hand and foot in a dark dungeon, and the keeper comes and sets open the prison door, and takes off his bolts, and bids him come out; if he refuse and say that he is well; will not all men think that he is a mad man, and will any be sorry for his case? No surely. Well, this is the state of all impenitent sinners. They lie fast fettered and bound under the power of sin & satan. And Christ it is who is ascended into heaven to unloose them of this bondage: he hath set open the prison door, and hath unlocked our fetters: if we refuse to come out, and lie still in our sins, there remaineth nothing for us but everlasting thraldom. Let us therefore in the fear of God, if we have a care of our own souls, receive and embrace this benefit which redounds unto us by Christ's ascension. Secondly, in that Christ is ascended to heaven to lead captive sin and satan, here is a good consolation for all those that are afflicted in conscience for their sins. There is no man in this case but he hath great cause to fear, yet must he not be discouraged. For Christ by his ascension like a noble captain hath taken sin and satan prisoners, and hath pinioned them fast, so as all the power that they have is in Christ's hand: and therefore though they do exercise and afflict us, yet by his grace they shall never be able to prevail against us. Therefore we may safely cast our care upon God, and not fear overmuch. Hence also we may learn a third duty. There is no man that knoweth what sin meaneth, and what the blood of Christ meaneth, but in regard of the corruption of his own nature, he will say with Paul that he is sold under sin, and in regard thereof will cry out with him also, O wretched man that I am, who shall deliver me from this body of death? yea it will make his heart to bleed within him. Now what shall he do in this case? Surely let him remember the end of Christ's ascension, which is to vanquish and subdue the rebellion of his nature, and labour to feel the benefit thereof: & then he shall no doubt find that Christ will dissolve in him the works of the devil, as Saint john saith, 1. joh. 3.8. Rom. 16.20. and tread satan under his feet. And thus all those that feel in themselves the law of the members rebelling against the law of the mind, must come to Christ and he will help and free them. The second benefit of Christ's ascension is, that he ascended up to heaven to bestow gifts upon his Church, as it is said in the place before mentioned, He ascended up on high, etc. he gave gifts unto men, that is, Eph. 4.8. the gift of the knowledge of God's word, the gift of preaching, and prophecy, and all other gifts needful for the good of his Church. The consideration of this, that Christ who is the fountain of grace, and in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge, should be mindful of us and vouchsafe such special favour to his Church, must cause every one of us who have received any gift of God (as there is no man but he hath received his portion) to be humbled in his own eyes for the same. There is no cause why we should be proud of our gifts, seeing we have nothing but that which we have received. For to this end Christ ascended, to give gifts unto men, and therefore our gifts whatsoever they be, are not our own, but we had them from Christ, and we are stewards of them a while for the good of others. The more the Lord giveth to a man, the more he requireth at his hands, and therefore those which have good gifts and do abuse the same, their sin is the more grievous, and their danger the greater. Men of great gifts unless they use them aright with humbled hearts, shall want God's blessing upon theirs. For he giveth grace to the humble. The high hills after much tillage are often barren, whereas the low valleys by the streams of waters passing through them are very fruitful: and the gifts of God joined with a swelling heart are fruitless; but joined with love and the grace of humility, they edify. Secondly, if Christ ascend up to heaven to give gifts unto men; here we may see how many a man and woman in these our days are overseen, in that they plead ignorance, and say that they hope God will have them excused for it, seeing they are not learned; they have dull wits, and it is not possible to teach them now, they are past learning; & hereupon they presume they may live in gross ignorance, as blind almost in religion as when they were first borne. But mark, I pray you, who it is that is ascended up to heaven, namely Christ jesus our Lord, who made thee of nothing. Now was he able to give thee a being, when thou was not, and is he not likewise able to put knowledge into thy soul, if so be thou wilt use the means which he hath appointed? and the rather, seeing he is ascended for that end: but if thou wilt not use the means to come to knowledge, thy case is desperate, and thou art the cause of thine own condemnation, and thou bringest confusion upon thine own head. Therefore let ignorant men labour for knowledge of God's word. Ignorance shall excuse none: it will not stand for payment at the day of judgement. Christ is ascended to this end to teach the ignorant, to give knowledge and wisdom unto the simple, and to give gifts of prophecy unto his ministers, that they may teach his people. Therefore, I say again, let such as be ignorant use the means diligently, and God will give the blessing. Thirdly, whereas it is thought to be a thing not possible, to furnish a whole Church with preaching ministers, it seems to be otherwise. For wherefore did Christ ascend to heaven? was it not to give gifts unto his Church? what, is Christ's hand now shortened? undoubtedly we may resolve ourselves, that Christ bestowed gifts sufficient upon men in the Church: but it is for our sins that they are not employed. The fountains of learning the Universities, though they are not dammed up, yet they stream not abroad as they might. Many there be in them endued with worthy gifts for the building of the Church, but the covetousness of men hinders the comfortable entrance which otherwise might be. Lastly, seeing Christ ascended to give gifts needful for his Church, as the gift of teaching, the gift of prophecy, the gift of tongues, of wisdom, and knowledge: the duty of every man is, especially of those which live in the schools of learning, to labour by all means to increase, cherish, and preserve their gifts, and as Paul exhorteth Timothy, 2. Tim. 1.6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. to stir up the gift of God. As men preserve the fire by blowing it; so by our diligence we must kindle and revive the gifts of God bestowed on us. Christ hath done his part, and there is nothing required but our pains and fidelity. The third benefit that comes by Christ's ascension is, that he ascended to prepare a place for all that should believe in him: In my father's house (saith Christ) are many dwelling places, if it were not so, I would have told you. I go to prepare a place for you. joh. 14.2. For by the sin of Adam our entrance into heaven was taken away. If Adam by his fall did exclude himself from the earthly paradise, Gen. 3.24. then how much more did he exclude himself from heaven? And therefore all mankind sinning in him, was likewise deprived of heaven. The people of Israel being in woe and misery, cried out that they had sinned, Lam. 3.44. and therefore the Lord had covered himself with a cloud, that their prayers could not pass through. And Esay saith, that our sins are a wall betwixt God and us, that we cannot enter into heaven. And Saint john, that no unclean thing must enter into the heavenly Jerusalem. Rev. 21.27 Now seeing we have shut ourselves out of heaven by our sins, it was requisite that Christ jesus our Saviour should go before us to prepare a place, and to make ready a way for us. For he is king overall, he hath the keys of heaven, he openeth and no man shutteth: and therefore it is in his power to let us in, though we have shut ourselves out. But some may say, if this be the end of his ascension to prepare a place in heaven; then belike such as died before the coming of Christ were not in heaven. Answer. As there are two degrees of glory, one incomplete and the other complete or perfect, (for the faithful departed are in glory but in part, and there remaineth fullness of glory for them at the day of judgement, when soul and body shall be both glorified together:) so answerably there are two degrees of preparation of places in heaven. The places of glory were in part prepared for the faithful from the beginning of the world, but the full preparation is made by Christ's ascension. And of this last preparation is the place of john to be understood. The use of this doctrine is very profitable. First it overthroweth the fond doctrine of the Church of Rome, which teacheth that Christ by his death did merit our justification, and that we being once justified do further merit salvation, and purchase for ourselves a place in heaven. But this is as it were to make a partition between Christ and us in the work of our redemption, whereas in truth not only the beginning and continuance of our salvation, but also the accomplishment thereof in our vocation, justification, sanctification, glorification, is wholly and only to be ascribed to the mere merit of Christ: and therefore having redeemed us on earth, he also ascends to prepare a place in heaven for us. Secondly, this serveth to condemn the fearful, lamentable, and desperate security of these our days. Great is the love of Christ in that he was content to suffer the pangs of hell to bring us out of hell▪ and withal to go to heaven to prepare a place for us there: and yet who is it, that careth for this place, or maketh any account thereof? who forsaketh this world, and seeks unto Christ for it? Now, lest any man should say▪ alas, I know not the way: therefore Christ before he ascended, made a new and living way with his own blood, as the Apostle speaketh. Heb. 10.20. And to take away all excuses from men, he hath set marks and bounds in this way, and hath placed guides in it, namely his ministers▪ to show all the passengers a strait & ready course into the kingdom of heaven. And though Christ have done all this for us, yet the blindness and security of men is such, that none almost walketh in this way, nor careth to come to this mansion place; but in stead of this, they walk in by-ways, according to the lusts of their own flesh. When they are commanded to go eastward to jerusalem, they turn westward an other way: when they are commanded to go on forward to heaven, they turn again backward, and go strait to hell. Men run on all the days of their lives in the broad way that leadeth to destruction, and never so much as once make inquiry for a resting place in heaven; but when the hour of death cometh, than they call for the guide, whereas all their lives before they have run out of the way many thousand miles: but then, alas, it is too late, unless it be the unspeakable mercy of God. For they have wandered so far astray, that in so short a space they cannot be able to come into the right way again. Yet generally this is the state of most among us, whose security is so much the more grievous & fearful, because Christ hath done all that heart can wish. There is nothing else required, but only that by his grace we should walk in the way. There was never any that knew the state of the people in these days, but he will say, that this is most true which I say. Besides, as by this we are brought to a sight of the desperate security of this age: so we may further learn our own duties. Is Christ gone to heaven beforehand to prepare a place for thee, them practise that which Paul teacheth: Have thy a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. conversation in heaven. Phil. 3.10. The words which he useth are very significant, and the meaning of them is this: Ye are free denizens of the city of God, and therefore as freemen in God's house, let all your cares and studies, all your affairs and doings be in heaven. In the world if a man make purchase of an house, his heart is always there, there he pulls down and builds again: there he makes him orchards and gardens, there he means to live and die. Christ jesus hath bought the kingdom of heaven for us (the most blessed purchase that ever was) & hath paid the dearest price for it that ever was paid, even his own precious blood: and in this city he hath prepared for us a dwelling place, and made us free denizens of it: therefore all our joy, and all our affairs ought to be there. But how shall a man upon earth, have his conversation in heaven. Answ. We must converse in heaven, not in body but in heart: & therefore though our bodies be on earth, yet our heart's joy, and comfort, and all our meditation must be in heaven. Thus must we behave ourselves, like good freemen in God's house. It must be far from us, to have our joy and our hearts set on the things of this world. Thirdly, the consideration of this, that Christ jesus hath prepared a place for us in heaven, & also hath trained the way with his own blood, must make every one of us to strive to enter in at the strait gate, as our Saviour Christ counseleth us: Luk. 13.24. and that as wrestlers do, which strive for life and death. Within this gate is a dwelling place of happiness ready for us. If a man were assured that there were made for him a great purchase in Spain or Turkey, so as if he would but come thither, he might enjoy it; would he not adventure the dangers of the sea, and of his enemies also, if need were, that he might come to his own? Well, behold Christ jesus hath made a purchase for us in heaven, & there is nothing required of us, but that we will come and enjoy it. Why then should men refuse any pains or fear in the way? nay, we must strive to get in. It may be, we shallbe pinched in the entrance, for the gate is both strait and low, and we must be feign to leave our wealth behind us, & the pleasures of this life; and enter we must, though we should be constrained to leave our flesh behind us. For the purchase that is made is worth ten thousand worlds. And beside, if we lose it by fainting in the way, our purchase shallbe the blackness of darkness for ever with the devil and all his angels: who therefore would not strive, though he lost his life in the gate? The urging of this point is needful in these days. There is striving enough for worldly preferment, but a man almost may go alone in the strait way that leadeth to heaven, he shall have none to bear him company. And where are they, that strive to enter in? where is the violence offered to the kingdom of heaven? where be the violent which should take it to themselves as in the days of john Baptist. Fourthly, if Christ have prepared a place for us in heaven, than we are in this world as pilgrims and strangers, and therefore must learn the counsel of Saint Peter: As strangers & pilgrims abstain from fleshly lusts, which fight against the soul. He that doth esteem himself as a pilgrim, is not to entangle himself with the affairs of this world, nor put in practise the behaviour thereof, but to behave himself as a freeman of heaven, as strangers use to live in foreign countries, according to the fashion of their own. And therefore in thought, word, and deed, in life & conversation, he must so carry himself, as thereby he may appear to all the world of what country he is. An ancient divine speaking of such as had curled and embroidered hair, biddeth them consider, Tertull. lib. de habi●. mul▪ whether they must go to heaven with such hair or no: and whereas they adorned themselves with winkles made of other women's hair, he asks them whether it may not be the hair of a damned person or no. If it may be, he further demandeth how it may beseem them to wear it which profess themselves to be the sons and daughters of God. The like may be said of all other sins: they that be of god's house must behave themselves as free men there. And when god hath made us free, it doth not beseem us to make ourselves bondmen of sin & satan and of this world. Fiftly, seeing Christ went to heaven to prepare a place for all that believe in him, here is a good duty for parents. Many of them are very careful to prefer their children to great places and noble men's houses, and they are not to be blamed therefore: but if they would indeed be good parents to their children, they should first endeavour themselves to get rooms for them in heaven: they that do this are good parents indeed. Some will say, how shall we get this preferrment for them? Answer: God hath two houses, his Church, and the kingdom of heaven. The Church is his house of grace, heaven is his house of glory. Now if thou wouldst have thy child to have a place in the house of glory, than thou art first of all to get him a place in the house of grace: bringing him up so in the fear of God, that both in life and conversation he may show himself to be a member of the Church: and then assure thyself, that after this life, he shall be removed to the second house of God, which is the house of glory, and there be freeman for ever in the kingdom of heaven. Add if thou shalt thus provide for thy child, thou shalt not leave him as an orphan, but he shall have God for his father & Christ for his brother, and the holy ghost his comforter. And therefore first of all and above all remember to make thy child a member of God's Church. Let the example of David excite all parents hereunto: I had rather (saith he) be a door keeper in the house of God, then to dwell in the tabernacles of wickedness. Psal. 84.10. For a day in thy courts is better than a thousand else where. Lastly, hence we may find remedy against the tediousness of sickness and the fear of death. Thou which fearest death, remember that Christ is gone to heaven to prepare a place for thy body, where it must be glorified and live for ever with the blessed trinity and all the saints and angels, though for a while it lie dead and rot in the grave. Remember this also, thou which continuest in any lingering sickness Christ jesus hath prepared a place for thee, wherein thou shalt rest in joy & bliss without all pain or faintness. The fourth benefice is, that Christ ascended up to heaven to send the comforter unto his Church. This was a special end of his ascension, as appears by Christ's own words: It is (saith he) expedient that I go away, for if I go not, the comforter will not come, joh. 16.7. but if I depart I will send him unto you. And again, I will pray unto the father, & he shall give you another comforter, joh. 14.16. which shall abide with you for ever, even the spirit of truth. But some will say, how can Christ send his spirit unto his Church, for the person sending & the person sent are unequal; whereas all three persons in trinity are equal, none greater or lesser than another, none inferior or superior to other. Ans. It is true indeed▪ but we must know, that the action of sending in the trinity makes not the persons unequal, but only shows distinction and order among equals. The father sends the son, the father and the son both send the holy ghost: yet the father is not above the son, neither the father or the son above the holy ghost, but all are equal in degree, though in regard of order one is before another: and it standeth with reason. For two men that are equal in degree may upon mutual consent one send another. But it may be further demanded, how the holy ghost can be sent which is every where? Ans. The holy ghost indeed is every where, therefore he is sent not so much in regard of the presence of his essence or substance, as of his operation whereby he reneweth & guideth the members of Christ. Now here first we have occasion to consider the misery of the world. When a man is troubled in his mind (as no ungodly man, but sometime he feeleth the terror of conscience for his sins) than he labours to remove it by merry company & pleasant books, whereas Christ at his ascension sent his holy spirit to be the comforter of his Church: & therefore when we are troubled in conscience for our sins, we should not seek ease by such slender means, but rather seek for the help & comfort of the holy ghost, and labour to have our sins washed away and our hearts purified and cleansed by the blood of Christ. As for wine and mirth & such like means of comfort, neither at the day of death nor at the day of judgement shall they stand us in stead, or be able to comfort us. Again, when crosses & calamities fall, the counsel of the minister is not sought for, but the help of such as are called cunning men & cunning women is, that is, of charmers, enchanters, & figure casters: a bad practice. Christ at his ascension sent his holy spirit unto his Church & people, to be their guide & comforter in their calamities and miseries: and therefore when any man is in distress, he should have recourse to the right means of comfort, namely the word & sacraments, & there he shall find the assistance of the holy ghost. Thus the prophet Isai informeth the jews when they shall say unto you: inquire at them which have a spirit of divination, & at the soothsayers which whisper and murmur. Esai. 8.19. Should not a people inquire at their God, from the living to the dead? to the law and to the testimony. Rebecca, when the two twins strove in her womb, what did she? the text saith she sent to ask the Lord. Yet commonly the men of these days leave God & seek to the instruments of the devil. To go yet further, Gen. 25.22. God useth for sundry causes most of all to afflict his dearest children. judgement, saith Peter, begins at God's house. S. Luke saith, 1. Pet. 4.17. Luk. 13.16. that a certain woman was bound of satan eighteen years, but what was she? a daughter of Abraham, that is, a child of God. When the like condition shall befall any of us, let us remember the end why Christ ascended up to heaven: and pray unto God that he will give us his spirit, that thereby we may be eased & delivered, or else enabled to persevere and continue in patience: and this is the true way and means to lighten and ease the burden of all afflictions. And for this cause Paul prayeth that the Colossians might be strengthened with all might, Col▪ 1.10. through his glorious power unto all patience and long suffering with joyfulness. For to whomsoever God giveth grace to believe, to them also he gives power to suffer affliction by the inward work of his spirit. Secondly if Christ have sent unto his church the holy spirit to be our comforter, our duty is, to prepare our bodies and souls to be fit temples and houses for so worthy a guest. If a man were certified that a prince would come to his house, he would dress it up & have all things in as good order as might be: and shall not we much more endeavour to purify and cleanse our souls and bodies from all sin, that they may be fit temples for the entertainment of the holy ghost, whom Christ jesus hath sent to be our comforter. The Shunamite was careful to entertain the man of God Elisha, for she said to her husband, Let us make him a little chamber, I pray thee, with walls, and let us set him there a bed and a stool, 2. Kin. 4.10. a table and a candlestick. Now how much more careful aught we be to entertain God himself, who is content to come and dwell with us: and therefore we must adorn our bodies and souls with grace, that he may lodge, and sup, and dine with us, as he hath promised: but on the contrary, if we defile our bodies with sin, we banish the holy ghost out of our hearts, and suffer the devil to dwell in us. For the more a man defileth his body, the fit and cleaner it is for him. And to conclude this point, let us remember that saying, which is used of some, that Christ when he went hence gave us his pawn, namely his spirit, to assure us, that he would come to us again, and also he took with him our pawn, namely his flesh, to assure us further, that we should ascend up to him. Thus much for the benefits of Christ's ascension; Now follow the duties whereunto we are moved, and they are two. First, we must be here admonished, to renounce the ubiquity and the error of the real and essential presence of the body of Christ in the Sacrament of the lords supper: as flatly oppugning this article of Christ's ascension into heaven. For it is flat against the nature of a true body to subsist in many places at once. Secondly, as the Apostles than did, when they saw Christ ascending up into heaven, so must we do also: while he was present with them, they gave him honour, but when they saw him ascending, Luk. 24.52. they adored him with far greater reverence: and so must we now for the same cause bow the knees of our hearts unto him. Thus much of the second degree of the exaltation of Christ: Now follow the third in these words: And sitteth at the right hand of God the father almighty. In the handling whereof, we are first to show the meaning of the words: secondly the comforts and benefits that redound to God's Church: thirdly, the duties that we are moved unto. For the meaning of the words: if we speak properly, God hath neither right hand nor left, neither can he be said to sit or stand, for God is not a body, but a spirit: the words therefore contain a borrowed speech from earthly kings & potentates, whose manner and custom hath been to place such persons at their right hands, whom they purposed to advance to any special office or dignity. So king Solomon when his mother came to speak with him, 1. King. 2.19. rose up from his throne, and met her, and caused a seat to be set at his own right hand, and set her upon it; in token, no doubt, of honour which he gave unto her. To the same purpose David saith, Psal. 45.9. Upon thy right hand did stand the Queen in a vesture of gold. And the sons of Zebedeus made suit to Christ, that one of them might sit at his right hand, Mat. 20. and the other at his left in his kingdom. Now their request was to have the two special and principal dignities of his kingdom. Thus we see it is manifest, that the sitting at the right hand of an earthly prince signifieth advancement into authority and honour: and therefore the same phrase of speech applied to Christ signifieth two things. First, his full and manifest exaltation in dignity, honour, and glory: and in this sense it is said, that to him is given a name that is above all names, that at the name of jesus every knee should bow. Phil. 2.9. Secondly it signifieth his full and manifest exaltation into the authority and government of his kingdom, which spreadeth itself over heaven and earth: So David saith, The Lord said unto my Lord, Psal. 110.1. Sat thou at my right hand until I make thine enemies thy footstool. Which place being alleged by Saint Paul repeating the words but changing the phrase, 1. Cor. 15.25. is thus set down, He shall reign till he have put all his enemies under his feet. And to speak in brief, the scope of the words is to show, that Christ God and man after his ascension is advanced to such an estate in which he hath fullness of glory, power, majesty, and authority in the presence of his father and all the saints and holy angels. Furthermore in the words three circumstances must be observed. The first is the place where Christ is thus advanced, noted in the former article, he ascended into heaven, & sits (namely in heaven) at the right hand of God. The place then where Christ jesus in both his natures, as he is God and also man doth rule in full glory, power, and majesty, is heaven itself. To which effect Paul saith, God raised Christ from the dead, Eph. 1.20. and put him at his right hand in the heavenly places. And in the Epistle to the Hebrews it is said, He sitteth at the right hand of the majesty in highest places. Heb. 1.3. This point well considered serveth to discover the oversight of sundry Divines, which hold and teach, that to sit at the right hand of God, is to be every where in all places, and not in heaven only, that they might hereby lay a foundation for the ubiquity of Christ's manhood: which nevertheless the heavens must contain till the time that all things be restored. The second circumstance, is the time when Christ began to sit at the right hand of God the father, which is to be gathered by the order of the articles. For first Christ died and was buried, than he rose again and ascended into heaven, and after his ascension he is said to sit at the right hand of his father. This order is also noted unto us by S. Paul: Who shall condemn (saith he) it is Christ which is dead, yea or rather which is risen again, Rom. 8.24. who is also at the right hand of God. And S. Mark saith, when Christ was risen again he appeared to his disciples, and after he had spoken unto them he was received into heaven, and sat at the right hand of God. Mar. 16.19. But it may be demanded how this can stand with truth, that Christ should not begin to sit at the right hand of his father before the ascension considering he is one God with the father, and therefore an absolute and sovereign king from all eternity. Answer. As Christ is God or the word of the father, he is coequal and coeternal with him in the regiment of his kingdom: and hath neither beginning, middle, or ending thereof; yet as Christ is God incarnate, and in one person God-man or Man-god he began after his ascension and not before to sit at the right hand of his father: and as S. Peter saith, was made Lord; Act. 2.36. partly because as he was God he did then manifest himself to be that which indeed he was before, namely God and Lord of heaven and earth: and partly because as he was man he received dominion or Lordship from the father which he had not before, & thereby was even in his manhood exalted to be king of heaven and earth: & in this sense Christ saith of himself, all power is given to me in heaven and earth. The third circumstance is concerning the person, Math. 28.19. at whose right hand Christ sits, noted in the words of the article of God the father almighty; whereby is signified, that he receives all the honour, power, & glory of his kingdom from his father: as he that is set at the right hand of a prince receives the honour & authority which he hath from the prince. Now if it be alleged, that by this means Christ shallbe inferior to his father, because he which receiveth honour of another is inferior to him of whom he receiveth it: the answer is, that in Christ we must consider his person & his office: in respect of his person as he is the eternal son of God he is equal to the father, & is not here said to sit at his right hand: yet in respect of the office which he bears, namely as he is mediator, & as he is man, he is inferior to the father, & receives his kingdom from him. As he is god, he is our king & head, & hath no head more than the father: as he is mediator, he is also our head, yet so as he is under the father as being his head. 1. Cor. 11.3. And we must not think it strange that one & the same thing should be both equal and inferior to another, diverse respects considered. Now in that Christ's placing at the right hand of his father argues inferiority between the father and him, M. Kemnit. hence we learn that they are deceived which from this article gather, that in the glorification of Christ there is a transfusion of the proprieties of the godhead, as omnipotency, omniscience, omnipresence, etc. into his manhood. For this is to abolish all inferiority and to make an equality between the creature and the creator. And whereas again the word Almighty is repeated, it is done upon special reason: because Christ's sitting at the right hand of God doth presuppose omnipotency. For in vain were all power in heaven and earth given to him, unless he were omnipotent as the father to execute the same. And therefore the song of the Elders was on this manner, Worthy is the lamb that was killed to receive power and riches, Rev. 5.12. and wisdom, & strength, and honour, and glory, and praise. The benefits which redound unto us by Christ's sitting at the right hand of God are two, one concerns his priesthood, the other his kingly office. The benefit rising from his priesthood is his Intercession for us: for this is one of the ends why Christ is now exalted in glory & sits at the right hand of his father, namely to make request in the behalf of all, that come unto him, as Paul saith, Christ is risen again, Rom. 8.34. and sitteth at the right hand of God, and maketh request for us. Now that we may rightly understand what his intercession is, we are to consider these points. First to whom it is made: secondly, in what manner: thirdly, whether it be made by Christ alone or no: four, what be the fruits and benefits thereof: fifthly, the duties whereunto we are moved thereby. For the first, Intertercession is, to make suit, request, or entreaty in some one's behalf to another: and this is done by Christ for us unto God, as Paul saith, There is one God, & one mediator between God and man, which is the man Christ jesus. Here at the very first ariseth a difficulty: 1. Tim. 2.5. for in every intercession there be three parties; the person offended; the person offending; the intercessor, distinct from them both. Now if Christ the son of God make intercession to God for man, than he makes intercession to himself because he is true God which can not be: how then shall Christ be mediator? Ans. This point hath so troubled the Church of Rome that for the resolving of it they have devised an error avouching that Christ is mediator only as he is man, not as he is God, which is untrue. For as both natures did concur in the work of satisfaction, so likewise they do both concur in the work of intercession: and therefore a more meet & convenient answer is this: Christ jesus God-man in both natures is directly our mediator to the first person the father, as S. john saith, If any man sin, 1. joh. 2.1. we have an advocate with the father, jesus Christ the just. And thus we have three persons in the work of intercession really distinguished. The party offended is God the father: the party offending is man: and thirdly the intercessor distinct from them both is Christ the second person in trinity. For howsoever in Godhead he and the father be one, yet in person they are really distinguished, & he is as it were in the middle between the father & us: for the father is God & not man: we that believe in Christ are men not God: Christ himself both man & God. It may be further replied that this answer will not stand, because not only the father is offended, but also the son & the H. ghost: & therefore there must be a mediator to them also. Ans. The intercession of Christ is directed to the father the first person immediately: now the father, the son, and the H. ghost have all one in divisible essence, & by consequent one and the same will: whereupon the father being appeased by Christ's intercession, the son & the holy ghost are also appeased in him. Thus then intercession is made to the whole trinity, but yet immediately & directly to the first person and in him to the rest. The second point to be considered is the manner of his intercession unto his father. We must not imagine, that Christ now in heaven kneels down on his knees & utters words and puts up a supplication for all the faithful to God the father: for that is not beseeming the majesty of him that sits at the right hand of God. But the manner of his intercession is thus to be conceived. When one is to speak to an earthly prince in the behalf of another; first of all he must come into the presence of the king, and secondly make his request: and both these, Christ performeth for us unto god. For the first, after his ascension he entered into heaven, where he did present unto his father, first of all his own person in two natures, and secondly the invaluable merits of his death and passion, in which he is well pleased. And we must further understand, that as on the cross he stood in our room, so in heaven he now appears as a public person in our stead, representing all the elect that shall believe in him, as the holy ghost saith, Christ jesus ascended up into heaven to appear in the sight of God for us. And for the second, Christ makes request for us; Heb. 9.24. in that he willeth according to both his natures, and desireth as he is man, that the father would accept his satisfaction in the behalf of all that are given unto him. And that he makes request on this manner I prove it thus. Look what was his request in our behalf when he was here upon earth, the same for substance it continues still in heaven: but here on earth the substance of his requests was that he willed and desired that his father would be well pleased with us for his merits, as appears by his prayer in S. john. Father, I will that those which thou hast given me be with me even where I am, Cap. 17.24. that they may behold my glory which thou hast given me: for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world. Therefore he still continues to make request for us by willing and desiring that his father would accept his merits in our behalf. If it be alleged that Christ in this solemn prayer used speech and prostration of his body, the answer is, that these actions were no essential parts of his prayer. The prostrating of his body served only as a token of his submission to God, as he was a creature: and the speech which he used, served only to utter and express his request. Furthermore, a difference here must be marked between Christ's passion and his intercession. The passion serves for the working and causing of a satisfaction to God's justice for us; and it is as it were the tempering of the plaster: the intercession goes further: for it applies the satisfaction made, & lays the salve to the very sore. And therefore Christ makes request not only for the elect generally, but for particular men, as Paul, james, john, and that particularly, as he testifieth of himself, saying, I have prayed for thee Peter that thy faith fail not. If any shall say, that Christ's willing and desiring of a thing can not be a request or intercession, the answer is, that in virtue and efficacy it countervailes all the prayers in the world. For whatsoever Christ willeth, the same also the father being well pleased with him, willeth: and therefore whatsoever Christ as Mediator willeth for us at the hands of his father, in effect or substance is a request or prayer. The third point is, that Christ alone and none with him makes intercession for us. And this I prove by induction of particulars. First of all this office appertains not to the angels. They are indeed ministering spirits for the good of gods chosen: they rejoice when a sinner is converted, & when he dieth, they are ready to carry his soul into Abraham's bosom: & God otherwhiles useth them as messengers to reveal his will: thus the angel Gabriel brings a message to Zacharie the priest, that God had heard his prayer: but it is not once said in all the scriptures that they make intercession to God for us. As for the saints departed, Luk. 1.13. they can not make intercession for us, because they know not our particular estates here on earth, neither can they hear our requests: And therefore if we should pray to them to pray for us, we should substitute them into the room of God, because we ascribe that to them which is proper to him, namely, the searching of the heart, & the knowledge of all things done upon earth, though withal we should say, that they do this not by themselves but of God. As for the faithful hear on earth, indeed they have warrant, yea commandment to pray one for another: yet can they not make intercession for us. For first, he that makes intercession must bring something of his own that may be of value & price with God to procure the grant of his request: secondly, he must do it in his own name: but the faithful on earth make request to god one for another not in their own names, nor for their own merits, but in the name and for the merits of Christ. It is a prerogative belonging to Christ alone to make a request in his own name, and for his own merits: we therefore conclude that the work of intercession is the sole work of Christ God & man not belonging to any creature beside in heaven or in earth. And whereas the papists can not content themselves with his intercession alone, as being most sufficient; it argues plainly, that they doubt either of his power or of his will: whereupon their prayers turn to sin. jam. 1.6. The fruits and benefits of Christ's intercession are these. First by means of it we are assured, that those which are repentant sinners shall stand and appear righteous before God for ever: at what time soever Christ, being now in heaven, and there presenting himself and his merits before his father, shows himself desirous and willing, that they whosoever they are being sinners should be accepted of God for the same, even then immediately at that very instant this his will is done, and they are accepted as righteous before God indeed. When a man looks upon things directly through the air, they appear in their proper forms and colours as they are: but if they be looked upon through a green glass, they all appear green: so likewise if God behold us as we are in ourselves, we appear as vile and damnable sinners: but if he look upon us as we are presented before his throne in heaven, in the person of our mediator Christ jesus, willing that we should be approved for his merits, than we appear without all spot & wrinkle before him. And this is the use Paul makes hereof: It is god (saith he) that justifieth: & the reason is rendered: For it is Christ that is dead, Rom. 8.34. yea or rather which is risen again, who is also at the right hand of God, and makes request for us. Secondly Christ's intercession serves to preserve all repentant sinners in the estate of grace: that being once justified and sanctified, they may so continue to the end. For when any servant of God is overtaken by the corruption of his own nature, and falls into any particular sin, than Christ's intercession is made as a blessed hand to apply the salve of his death to that particular sore. For he continually appears before God, and shows himself to be willing that God the father should accept his one only sacrifice for the daily and particular sins of this or that particular man: and this is done, that a man being justified before God may not fall away quite from grace, but for every particular sin may be humbled and receive pardon. If this were not so, our estate should be most miserable, considering that for every sin committed by us after our repentance, we deserve to be cast out of the favour of God. Thirdly Christ's intercession serveth to make our good works acceptable to God. For even in the best works that a man can do, there are two wants. First they are good only in part: secondly they are mingled with sin. For as a man is partly grace and partly flesh: so are his works partly gracious and partly fleshly. And because grace is only begun in this life, therefore all the works of grace in this life are sinful and imperfect. Now by Christ's intercession his satisfaction is applied to our persons, & by consequent the defect of our works is covered and removed, & they are approved of God the father. In a vision S. john saw an angel, Rev. 8.3. standing before the altar with a golden censure full of sweet odours to offer up with the prayers of the saints upon the same. And this signifies, that Christ presents our works before the throne of God, and by his intercession sanctifies them, that they may be acceptable to God. And therefore we must remember that when we do any thing that is accepted of God, it is not for our sakes, but by reason of the value and vigour of Christ his merit. Fourthly the intercession of Christ made in heaven breedeth and causeth in the hearts of men upon earth that believe another intercession of the spirit, as Paul saith▪ He giveth us his spirit, which helpeth our infirmities & maketh request for us with sighs which can not be expressed, Rom. 8.26. but he which searcheth the hearts knoweth what is the meaning of the spirit, for he maketh request for the saints according to the will of god. Now the spirit is said to make request, in that it stirs and moves every contrite heart to pray with sighs and groans unspeakable to God for things needful: & this grace is a fruit derived from the intercession of Christ in heaven by the operation of the spirit. For as the Sun though the body of it abide in the heavens, yet the beams of it descend to us that are on earth. So the intercession of Christ made in heaven is tied as it were to his person alone▪ yet the groans & desires of the touched heart, as the beams thereof, are here on earth among the faithful. And therefore if we desire to know whether Christ make intercession for us or no, we need not to ascend up into the heavens to learn the truth, but we must descend into our own hearts & look whether Christ have given us his spirit, which makes us cry unto God & make request to him with groans and sighs that can not be expressed: and if we find this in our hearts, it is an evident and infallible sign that Christ continually makes intercession for us in heaven. He that would know whether the Sun shine in the firmament▪ must not climb up into the clouds to look, but search for the beams thereof upon the earth: which when he sees, he may conclude, that the Sun shines in the firmament: and if we would know whether Christ in heaven makes intercession for us, let us ransack our own consciences, and there make search whether we feel the spirit of Christ crying in us, Abba, Father. As for those that never feel this work of God's spirit in them, their case is miserable, whatsoever they be. For Christ as yet makes no intercession for them, considering these two always go together; his intercession in heaven, & the work of his spirit in the hearts of men, moving them to bewail their own sins with sighs and groans that can not be expressed, and to cry and pray unto God for grace: & therefore all such, whether they be young or old, that never could pray but mumble up a few words for fashion sake, can not assure themselves to have any part in Christ's intercession in heaven. The duties to be learned hence are these. First, whereas Christ maketh intercession for us, it teacheth all men to be most careful to love and like this blessed mediator, and to be ready & willing to become his servants & disciples, & that not for form & fashion sake only, but in all truth and sincerity of heart. For he is ascended to heaven, & there sits at the right hand of his father to make request for us, that we might be delivered from hell & come to eternal life. Wicked Haman procured letters from the king Ahashuerosh, for the destruction of all the jews, men, women, & children in his dominions: this done, Hester the Queen makes request to the king that her people might be saved, and the letters of Haman revoked; she obtains her request & freedom was given, & contrary letters of joyful deliverance were sent in post hast to all provinces where the jews were. Whereupon arose a wonderful joy & gladness among the jews, Hest. 8.17. & it is said, that thereupon many of the people of the land became jews. Well now, behold there is a greater matter among us then this: for there is the handwriting of condemnation, the law; & therein the sentence of a double death, of body & soul, & satan as wicked Haman accuseth us, & seeks by all means our condemnation: but yet behold not any earthly Hester, but Christ jesus the son of God is come down from heaven, & hath taken away this handwriting of condemnation, & canceled it upon the cross, & is now ascended into heaven, & their sits at the right hand of his father, & makes request for us: & in him his father is well pleased, & yields to his request in our behalf. Now than what must we do in this case? Surely, look as the Persians became jews when they heard of their safety, so we in life and conversation must become Christians, turn to Christ, embrace his doctrine, and practise the same unfeignedly. And we must not content ourselves with a formal profession of religion, but search into our own hearts, & fly unto Christ for the pardon of our sins, & that earnestly as for life & death as the thief doth at the bar, when the judge is giving sentence against him. When we shall thus humble ourselves, them Christ jesus that sits at the right hand of god will plead our cause, & be our attorney unto his father, & his father again will accept of his request in our behalf. Then shall we of Persians become jews, & of the children of this world become the sons of god. Secondly, when we pray to God, we must not do as the blind world doth, as it were rush upon God in praying to him without consideration had to the Mediator between us and him, but we always must direct our prayers to God in the name of Christ, for he is advanced to power and glory in heaven, that he might be a fit patron for us who might prefer and present our prayers to God the father, joh. 16.26. that thereby they might be accepted and we might obtain our request. So likewise we must give thanks to God in the name of Christ: for in him and for his sake God doth bestow on us his blessings. Thus much of Christ's intercession: the other benefit which concerns Christ's kingly office is, that he sits at the right hand of his father for the administration of that special kingdom which is committed to him. I say special, because he is our king not only by the right of creation governing all things created together with the father and the holy ghost, but also more specially by the right of redemption in respect of another kingdom, not of this world, but eternal and spiritual respecting the very conscience of man. In the administration whereof he hath absolute power to command & forbid, to condemn & absolve, and therefore hath the keys of heaven & hell to open & shut: which power no creature beside no not the angels in heaven can have. For the better understanding of this which I say, we are to consider, first the dealing of Christ toward his own Church; secondly his dealing in respect of his enemies. And his dealing toward his own church stands in 4. things: The first is the collecting or gathering of it: & this is a special end of his sitting at the right hand of his father. Christ said to his disciples, I have chosen you out of this world: & the same may truly be said of all the elect, that Christ in his good time will gather them all to himself that they may be a peculiar people to God. And this action of his in collecting the Church, is nothing else but a translation of those whom he hath ordained to life everlasting out of the kingdom of darkness in which they have served sin & satan, into his own kingdom of grace, that they may be ruled and guided by him eternally. And this he doth two ways: first by the preaching of the word, for it is a powerful outward means, whereby he singleth and sorteth his own servants from the blind and wicked world, as Paul saith, He gave some to be Apostles, and some Prophets, Eph. 4.11. and some Evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for the gathering together of Saints. And hence we learn two things. The first, that every minister of God's word, and every one that intendeth to take upon him that calling, must propound unto himself principally this end, to single out man from man, and gather out of this world such as belong to the Church of Christ: and as jeremy saith, to separate the precious from the vile. The second, jer. 15.19. that all those which will be good hearers of God's word, must show themselves so far forth conformable unto it, that it may gather them out of the world and that it may work a change in them, and make them the servants of Christ: and if the preaching of the word do not work this good work in our hearts, than the end will be a separation from the presence of God. Christ when he came near jerusalem, and considered their rebellion whereby they refused to be gathered unto him, wept over it, and said, O jerusalem, jerusalem, Math. 23.37. thou which stonest the Prophets, and killest them that are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, as the hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and thou wouldst not. And by this he teacheth, that if the preaching of the word turn not us to Christ, it turns to our destruction. The other means of gathering the Church, and that the more principal is, the inward operation of the spirit, whereby the mind is enlightened, the heart is mollified, and the whole man is converted to God. And this ordinarily is joined with the ministery or preaching of the word, as appears by the example of Lydia. Saint Luke saith, God opened her heart to be attentive to the doctrine of the Apostle. Act. 16. And by the example of Paul, when Christ saith, Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me? at this very speech he is converted, Act. 9.6. and said, Who art thou, Lord: what wilt thou that I do? And this is manifest also by experience. There is nothing in the world more contrary to the nature of man, than the preaching of the word: for it is the wisdom of God, to which the flesh is enmity. Here than it may be demanded, how it can be in force to turn any man to God. Answer. The word preached is the sceptre of Christ's kingdom, which against the nature of man by the operation of the H. Ghost joined therewith, doth bend and bow the heart, will, and affections of man to the will of Christ. The second work of Christ is, after the Church is gathered, to guide it in the way to life everlasting. He is the shepherd of his Church, which guideth his flock in and out, and therefore Paul saith, They that are Christ's, are guided by his spirit. Rom. 8.14. And by Esay the Lord saith, those his servants which are turned from idolatry, he will guide in the way, and their ears shall hear a voice behind them, saying, This is the way, Esa. 30.20. walk in it, when thou turnest to the right hand and to the left. Which voice is nothing else but the voice of the H. Ghost in the mouth of the ministers, directing them in the ways of God. The children of Israel were travailing from Egypt to the land of Canaan full forty years, whereas they might have gone the journey in forty days. Their way was through the wilderness of Arabia, their guides were a pillar of cloud by day, and a pillar of fire by night: the manner of their journey was this; when the pillars moved, they moved; when the pillars stood still, they stood still: and so long as the pillars either moved or stood still, they likewise moved or stood still. And by all this a further matter, namely the regiment of Christ over his church, was signified. Every one of us are as passengers and travailers, not to any earthly Canaan, but to the heavenly jerusalem; and in this journey we are to pass through the wide and desert wilderness of this world: our guide is Christ himself, Esa. 4.5. figured by the pillar of fire and the cloud: because by his word and spirit he shows us how far we may go in every action, and where we must stand, and he goes before us as our guide to life everlasting. The third work of Christ is, to exercise his Church unto spiritual obedience by manifold troubles, crosses, temptations, and afflictions in this world, as earthly kings use to train and exercise their subjects. When our Saviour Christ was with his disciples in a ship, Matt. 8.24. there arose a great tempest upon the sea, so as the ship was almost covered with waves; but he was asleep: and his disciples came and awoke him, saying, Save us master, we perish. Behold here a lively picture of the dealing of Christ with his servants in this life. His manner is to place them upon the sea of this world, and to raise up against them bleak storms and flaes of contrary winds by their enemies, the flesh, the devil, the world. And further in the midst of all these dangers he for his own part makes as though he lay asleep for a time, that he may the better make trial of their patience, faith, and obedience. And the ends for which he useth this spiritual exercise are these. The first to make all his subjects to humble themselves, and as it were to go crooked and buckle under their offences committed against his majesty in time past. Thus job after the Lord had long afflicted him, and laid his hand sore upon him, saith, Behold I am vile: and again, I abhor myself and repent in dust and ashes. job 39.37. and 42.6. In the same manner we being his subjects and people, must look to be exercised with temptations and afflictions which shall make us bend and bow for our sins past, as the old man goeth crooked and doubles to the earth by reason of age. The second, is to prevent sins in the time to come. A father when he sees his child too bold and venturous about fire and water, takes it and holds it over the fire or over the water, as though he would burn or drown it, whereas his purpose indeed is nothing else but to prevent danger for the time to come: In like manner Christ's subjects are bold to sin by nature, and therefore to prevent a mischief, he doth exercise them with affliction, & seems for a season as though he would quite forsake his Church, but his meaning is only to prevent offences in times to come. The third end is, to continued his subjects in obedience unto his commandments: so the Lord saith▪ when he would bring his Church from idolatry: Hosea 2.6. Behold I will stop thy way with thorns, & make an hedge, that she shall not find her paths. The H. Ghost here borrows a comparison from beasts, which going in the way see green pastures, & desire to enter in and therefore go to the hedge, but feeling the sharpness of the thorns dare not adventure to go in. So God's people like unto wild beasts in respect of sin, viewing the green pastures of this world, which are the pleasures thereof, are greatly affected there with: and if it were not for the sharpness of crosses and temptations, which are Gods spiritual hedge by which he keepeth them in, they would range out of the way, and rush into sin as the horse into the battle. The fourth and last work of Christ in respect of his Church is, that he sits at the right hand of his father to defend the same against the rage of all enemies whatsoever they are: and this he doth two ways. First by giving to his servants sufficient strength to bear all the assaults of their enemies, the world, the flesh, and the devil. For Paul saith, those to whom the Lord hath given the gift of faith, to them he hath also given this gift to suffer afflictions. Phil. 1.29. And the same Apostle also prayeth for the Colossians, that they may be strengthened with all might through his glorious power unto all patience and long suffering with joyfulness. Col. 1.11. The evidence hereof we may most plainly see in the most constant deaths of the martyrs of Christ, recorded both in the word of God, and in the Church histories. It is wonderful to see their courage and constancy. For at such times as they have been brought to execution, they refused to be bound or chained, willingly suffering most cruel torments, without shrinking or fear; such courage and strength the Lord gave them to withstand the violent rage of all their adversaries. Secondly, he defends his Church by limiting the power and rage of all enemies. And hence it is, that although the power of the Church of God on earth be weak & slender in itself, & contrariwise the power of the devil exceeding great, yet can he not so much as touch the people of God. And he more prevails by inward suggestions and temptations, then by outward violence. And if it were not the power of Christ that doth bridle his rage, there were no abode for the Church of Christ in this world. Thus we have seen what are the works of Christ in governing his Church: and we that profess ourselves to be members thereof, must show ourselves to be so indeed, by an experience of these works of his in our own hearts. And we must suffer him to gather us under his own wing, and to guide us by his word & spirit, & we are to acquaint ourselves with those spiritual exercises, whereby his good pleasure is to nurture us to all obedience. Lastly, we must depend on his aid and protection in all estates. And seeing we in this land have had peace and rest with the Gospel of Christ among us a long time, by God's especial goodness, we must now after these days of peace look for days of tribulation: we must not imagine that our ease and liberty will continue always. For look as the day and night do one follow another; so likewise in the administration of the Church here upon earth, Christ suffereth a continual intercourse between peace and persecution. Thus he hath done from the beginning hitherto, and we may resolve ourselves that so it will continue till the end: and therefore it shall be good for us in these days of our peace, to prepare ourselves for troubles and afflictions: and when troubles come, we must still remember the fourth work of Christ in the government of his Church, namely that in all dangers he will defend us against the ●age of our enemies, as well by giving us power & strength to bear with patience and joy whatsoever shall be laid upon us, as also bridle the rage of the world, the flesh, and the devil, so as they shall not be able to exercise their power and malice to the full against us. Thus much of the dealing of Christ toward his own Church and people. Now followeth the second point, namely his dealing toward his enemies; and here by enemies I underanstd all creatures, but especially men that as they are by nature enemies to Christ and his kingdom, so they persevere in the same enmity unto the end. Now his dealing towards them is in his good time to work their confusion, as he himself saith, Those mine enemies that would not that I should reign over them, Luk. 19.27. bring them hither and slay them before me. And David saith, The Lord will bruise his enemies with a rod of iron, Psal. 2.9. and 110.1. and break them in pieces like a potter's vessel. And again, I will make thine enemies thy footstool. As josuah dealt with the five kings that were hid in the cave, josu. 10.24. he first makes a slaughter of their armies, than he brings them forth and makes the people to set their feet on their necks, and to hang them on five trees. So Christ deals with his enemies: he treads them under his feet, and makes a slaughter not so much of their bodies as of their souls. And this the Church of God finds to be true by experience, as well as it finds the love of Christ towards itself. Now he confounds his enemies two ways. The first is by hardness of heart, which ariseth when God withdraweth his grace from man, and leaveth him to himself, so as he goeth on forward from sin to sin, and never repenteth to the last gasp. And we must esteem of it as a most fearful and terrible judgement of God, for when the heart is possessed there with, it becomes so flinty and rebellious, that a man will never relent and turn to God. This is manifest in Pharaoh, for though god sent most grievous plagues both upon him and all the land of Egypt, yet would he not submit himself, save only for a fit, while the hand of God was upon him: but after he returned to the former obstinacy in which he continued till he was drowned in the sea. And this judgement of God is the more fearful, because when a man is in the midst of all his misery, he feels no misery. And as in some kind of sickness a man may die languishing; so where hardness of heart reigns wholly and finally, a man may descend to the pit of hell triumphing and rejoicing. And to come near to ourselves, it is to be feared lest this judgement of all judgements be among us in these our days. For where is any turning to God by repentance. Still men go forward in sin without remorse. We have had the word preached among us a long time, but it taketh no place in men's hearts. They are not softened with the hammer of God's word: nay they are like the smiths stithy or anvil; which the more it is beat with the hammer, the harder it is. But in the fear of God, let us seek to be changed, and take heed: the deceitfulness of sin is wonderful. Let us not be carried away with an overweening of ourselves; a man may have good gifts of God, as the gift of knowledge, the gift of prophecy, the gift of conceiving a prayer (I say not of praying truly:) and hereupon think himself in good case; and yet for all this have nothing but an impenitent & flinty heart. For this cause it stands every man upon to look unto it, lest this judgement of God take hold on him. And that we may avoid the same, we must labour for two things: I. to feel the heavy burden of our sins, and be touched in conscience for them, even as we are troubled in our bodies with the aches and pains thereof: this is a token of grace. II. We must labour to feel in our own souls the want of Christ: we say indeed that we feel it, but it is a very great matter to have an heart that doth open itself, and as it were gape after Christ, as the dry & thirsty land where no water is. Though we have knowledge and learning never so much, and many other gifts of God, yet if we have not broken hearts that feel the burden of our sins, and the want of Christ, and that we stand in need of every drop of his blood for the washing away of all these our sins, our case is miserable. And the rather we must prevent this hardness of heart, because Christ jesus in heaven sits at the right hand of his father in full power and authority, to kill & confound all those that be his enemies, & will not submit themselves to bear his yoke. The second way is, by final desperation; I say final, because all kind of desperation is not evil. For when a man despaireth of himself and of his own power in the matter of his salvation, it tends to his eternal comfort. But final desperation is, when a man utterly despairs of the pardon of his own sins, and of life everlasting. Examples hereof we have in Saul that slew himself, and in Achitophel and judas, that hanged themselves. This sin is caused thus: So many sins as a man committeth without repentance, so many most bloody wounds he giveth unto his own soul: and either in death or life God makes him feel the smart, and the huge weight of them all: whereby the soul sinks down into the gulf of despair without recovery. God said to Cain, If thou do amiss, sin lieth at thy door. Where he useth a borrowed speech from wild beasts, who so long as they are sleeping, stir not, but being awaked, they fly in a man's face, & rend out his throat. In like manner the sins which thou committest, lie at the door of thine heart, though thou feel them not, and if thou do not prevent the danger by speedy repentance, God will make thee to feel them once before thou die, and raise up such terrors in thy conscience, that thou shalt think thyself to be in hell before thou art in hell: and therefore it is good for every man to take heed how he continues an enemy to Christ. The best course is to turn betime from our sins, and become the friends of Christ, that so we may escape these fearful judgements. And whereas Christ in this manner governs all things in heaven and earth, we are bound to perform unto him three duties, reverence, obedience, thankfulness. For the first, Paul saith: God hath exalted him and given him a name above all names, Phil. 2.10. that at the name of jesus (which name is his exaltation in heaven in full power and glory) should every knee bow. We dare not so much as speak of an earthly king unreverently, what reverence then do we owe unto Christ the king of heaven and earth? David's heart was touched in that he had cut off but the lap of saul's garment, when he might have slain him, because he was the Lords anointed. 1. Sam. 24.6. Oh then, how much more ought our hearts to be touched, if we shall in the least measure dishonour Christ jesus our Lord and king. Secondly, we are here taught to perform obedience to him, and to do him all the homage we can. The master of the family in all his lawful commandments must be obeyed: now the Church of Christ is a family: therefore we must yield obedience to him in all things: for all his commandments are just. When Saul was chosen king over Israel, certain men which feared God, 1. Sam. 10.26. whose hearts God had touched, followed him to Gibea & brought him presents, but the wicked despised him: the same is much more to be verified in us toward Christ our Lord. We must have our hearts touched with desire to perform obedience unto him: if not, we are men of Belial that despise him, and refuse to bring our presents unto him. If this obedience were put in practice, the Gospel would have better success in the hearts of the people, and the Lords sabbath would be better kept, and men would bear greater love both to God and to their neighbours then now they do. The third duty which we own unto him is thankfulness, for the endless care which he showeth in the governing and preserving of us. When David waxed old, and had made Solomon his son king in his stead, all the people shouted and cried, God save king Solomon: God save king Solomon, so as the earth rang again. 1. King. 1.34. Shall the people of Israel thus rejoice at the crowning of Solomon, & shall not we much more rejoice when as Christ jesus is placed in heaven at the right hand of his father, and hath the everlasting sceptre of his kingdom put into his hand? And we are to show this thankfulness unto him by doing any thing in this world that may tend to his honour and glory, though it be with the adventure of our lives. When David desired to drink of the water of the well of Bethlem, 1. Sam. 28.16. three of his mighty men went and broke into the host of the Philistims, and brought him water. Thus they ventured their lives for David's sake: and shall not we much more willingly venture our lives to do Christ service in token of thankfulness for his continual preserving of us? Thus much of the highest degree of Christ's exaltation in his kingdom: now followeth the last point to be believed concerning Christ, in these words, From then●e he shall come to judge the quick and the dead. And they contain a proof or a particular declaration of the former article. For as on earth those that are set at the right hand of kings do execute justice in courts or assizes for the maintenance of the state and peace of the kingdom: so Christ jesus sitting at the right hand of his father, that is, being made sovereign Lord of all things both in heaven & earth, is to hold a court or assize, in which he shall come to judge both the quick and the dead. Now in handling the last judgement, we are to consider these points: I. whether there shall be a judgement or not? II. the time of it. III. the signs thereof. iv the manner of it. V the use which is to be made thereof. Of these in order. For the first point, whether there shall be a judgement or not? the question is needful: for as Saint Peter saith, There shall come in the last days mockers, which shall walk after their lusts, and say, Where is the promise of his coming? Pet. 3.3. which days are now. The answer is set down in this article, in which we profess that the coming of Christ to the last judgement, is a point of religion specially to be held and avouched. The reasons to prove it are principally two: first the testimony of God himself in the books of the old and new testament, which afford unto us plentiful testimonies touching the last judgement, so as he which will but lightly read the same, shall not need to doubt thereof. The second reason is taken from the justice and goodness of God, the property whereof is, to punish wicked and ungodly men, and to honour and reward the godly: but in this world the godly man is most of all in misery, (for judgement beginneth at God's house) and the ungodly have their hearts ease. Wicked Dives hath the world at will, but poor Lazarus is hunger bitten, full of sores, & miserable every way. This being so, it remaineth that after this life, there must needs be a judgement and a second coming of Christ, when the godly must receive fullness of joy & glory, and the ungodly fullness of woe and misery. This second reason may stop the mouths of all gainsayer in the world whatsoever. But it may be objected, that the whole world stands either of believers or unbelievers, and that there is no last judgement for either of these; for the believer, joh. 5.24. as Christ saith, hath everlasting life, & shall not come into judgement; and the unbeliever is condemned already, and therefore needeth no further judgement. joh. 3.18. Answ. Where it is said, he that believeth shall not come into judgement, it must be understood of the judgement of condemnation, & not the judgement of absolution: & he that believeth not is condemned already in effect & substance three ways: I. in the counsel of God, who did foresee & appoint his condemnation, as it is a punishment of sin, and an execution of his justice. II. in the word of God, where he hath his condemnation set down. III. he is condemned in his own conscience: for every ungodly man's conscience is a judge unto himself, which doth every hour condemn him, and it is a forerunner of the last judgement. And notwithstanding all this, there may remain a second judgement, which is a manifestation & finishing of that which was begun in this world: & therefore the meaning of that place is this; he that believeth not is already judged in part, but so as the full manifestation thereof, shall be at the second coming of Christ. The second circumstance, is the time of his judgement: in handling whereof I. we will see what is the judgement of men: II. what is the truth. For the first, two opinions touching this time take place. The first is, that the second coming of Christ shall be about six thousand years from the beginning of the world, & that for the elects sake some of these days must be shortened: & now since the beginning of the world, are passed five thousand & almost six hundred years, so as there remain but four hundreds. The grounds of this opinion are these. First the testimony of Elias, two thousand years before the law: two thousand years under the law: and two thousand years under Christ. And for the elects sake some of these years shallbe shortened. Answ. This was not the sentence of Elias the Thisbite, but of another Elias which was a jew, no Prophet. And whereas he saith two thousand years before the law: & two thousand years under the law, he faileth. From the giving of the law to the coming of Christ, was about one thousand & five hundred years: and from the law to the creation above two thousand. Now if Elias can not set down a just number for the time past▪ which a mean man may do, what shall we think that he can do for the time to come? And if he deceive us in that which is more easy to find, how shall we trust him in things that be harder? The second reason is this: how long God was in creating the world, so long he shall be in governing the same; but he was six days in creating the world, and in the seventh he rested, and so proportionally he shall be six thousand years in governing the world; every day answering to a thousand years, as Peter saith: A thousand years are but as one day with God, and then shall the end be. Answer. This reason likewise hath no ground in God's word: as for that place of Peter, the meaning is, that innumerable years are but as a short time with God: ● certain ●umber for 〈◊〉 uncertain. and we may as well say, two thousand or ten thousand years are but as one day with God. For Peter meant not to speak any thing distinctly of a thousand years, but of a long time. Thirdly it is alleged, that within six thousand years from the creation of the world, shall appear in the heavens strange conjunctions, and positions of the stars, which signify nothing else but the subversion of the state of the world: nay, some have noted that the end thereof should have been in the year of our Lord, a thousand five hundred eighty eight: their writings are manifest: but we find by experience that this opinion is false and frivolous, and their grounds be as frivolous. For no man can gather by the ordinary course of the heavens the extraordinary change of the whole world. The second is, that the end of the world shall be three years and an half after the revealing of Antichrist. And it is gathered out of places in Daniel and the Revelation, abused. Where a time and times and halfa a time signify not three years and an half, but a short time. And therefore to take the words properly, is far from the meaning of the holy Ghost. For mark, if the end shall be three years & an half after the revealing of Antichrist, then may any man know before hand the particular month wherein the end of the world should be, which is not possibl●. Now the truth which is to be avouched against all is this, that no man can know or set down or conjecture the day, the week, the month, the year or the age, wherein the second coming of Christ and the last day of judgement shall be. For Christ himself saith, of that day and hour knoweth no man, no not the angels in heaven, but God only: nay Christ himself as he is man, Matt. 24.36 knoweth it not. And when the disciples asked Christ at his ascension, whether he would restore the kingdom unto Israel, he answered, It is not for you to know the times and seasons, Act. 1.7. which the father hath put in his own power. And Paul saith, Of the times and seasons, brethren, you have no need that I writ unto you. 1. Thess. 5.2. For you yourselves kn●w perfectly that the day of the Lord shall come, even as a thief in the night. Now we know tha● a man that keepeth his house, can not conjecture or imagine when a thief will come: and therefore no man can set down the particular time or age, when Christ shall come to judgement. This must we hold steadfastly, and if we read the contrary in the writings of men, we are not to believe their sayings, but account of them as of the devices of men, which have no ground in God's word. To come to the third point, namely the signs of the last judgement, they are of two sorts: some go before the coming of Christ, and some are joined with it. The signs that go before, are in number seven, recorded distinctly by the holy Ghost. The first, is the preaching of the Gospel through the whole world. So our Saviour Christ saith, This Gospel of the kingdom must be preached through the whole world for a witness unto all nations, Math. 24.14. and then shall the end come. Which place must thus be understood; not that the Gospel must be preached to the whole world at any one time, for that (as I take it) was never yet seen, neither shallbe; but that it shall be published distinctly and successively at several times: and thus understanding the words of Christ, if we consider the time since the Apostles days, we shall find this to be true, that the Gospel hath been preached to all the world: and therefore this first sign of Christ's coming is already past and accomplished. The second sign of his coming, is the revealing of Antichrist, as Paul saith, The day of Christ shall not come before there be a departure first, and that man of sin be disclosed, 2. Thess. 2.3. even the son of perdition, which is Antichrist. Concerning this sign, in the year of our Lord 602. Gregory the eight Pope of Rome, avouched this solemnly as a manifest 〈◊〉, that whosoever did take to himself the name of Universal Bishop, the same was Antichrist. Now five years after, Boniface succeeding him, was by P●ocas the Emperor entitled, Universal Bishop, pastor of the Catholic Church, in the year of our Lord 607. & of all Popes he was the first known Antichrist, & since him all his successors have taken unto them the same title of Universal & Catholic Bishop, whereby it doth plainly appear, that at Rome hath been and is the Antichrist. And this sign is also past. The third is, a general departing of most men from the faith. For it is said in the place before named, Let no man deceive you: 2. Thes. 2.3. for the day of Christ shall not come, except there come a departing first. General departure hath been in former ages. When Arius spied his heresy, it took such place that the whole world became an Arian. And during the space of 900 years from the time of Boniface, the popish heresy spread itself over the whole earth, and the faithful servants of God were but as an handful of wheat in a mountain of chaff, which can scarce be discerned. This sign is in part already past, nevertheless it shall continue to the end, because men shall continually departed from the faith. And the nearer the end of the world is, the more satan rageth and seeks to bring men into his kingdom. Therefore it standeth us in hand to labour for the knowledge of true religion, and having learned it, most hearty to love the same. The fourth sign is, a general corruption in manners. This point the Apostle sets down at large, saying, Toward the latter days shall come perilous times, wherein men shallbe lovers of themselves, 2. Tim. 3.1. covetous, boasters, proud, cursed speakers, disobedient to parents, unthankful, unholy, and without natural affection, truce-breakers, false accusers, intemperate, fierce, despisers of them which are good, traitors, heady, high minded, lovers of pleasures more than lovers of God, etc. This general corruption in the manners of men, is noted by our Saviour Christ, when he saith, When he cometh he shall scarce find faith upon the earth. This sign hath been in former ages, and is no doubt at this day in the world. For it is hard to find a man that walketh justly, soberly, and faithfully, doing the duties of his calling to God and man. The fifth sign of Christ's coming stands in terrible & grievous calamities. For Christ's disciples ask him a sign of his coming, & of the end of the world, he saith, There shall be wars & rumours of wars, nation shall rise against nation, Math. 24.6.16. & realm against realm: and there shallbe pestilence and famine & earthquakes in divers places, & men shallbe at their wits ends. These have been in former ages. In the first 3. hundred years after Christ, were ten most fearful persecutions: and since in Europe the Church of God hath been wonderfully persecuted by the Antichrist of Rome in the hundred years last passed. The sixth sign is, an exceeding deadness of heart, so as neither judgements from heaven, nor the preaching of the word shall move the hearts of men. So Christ saith, Luk. 17.26. It shall be in the coming of the son of man, as it was in the days of Noah, & in the days of Sodom: they knew nothing till the flood came, & fire from heaven destroyed them all. This sign undoubtedly is manifest in these our days, howsoever it hath been also in former times. For where are any almost that are moved with God's judgements, or touched at the preaching of the word; nay rather men harden their hearts, & become secure and careless. The small fruit that the word of God bringeth forth in the lives of men, shows this to be most true. The seventh & last sign, set down by the Apostle Paul is, that there shall be a calling of the jews before the Lord come to judgement: but of the time when this calling shall be, Rom. 11.25. of the manner how, or the number of them that shallbe called, there is no mention made in the word of God. Now it is likely that this sign is yet to come. These are the signs that go before the coming of Christ, all which are almost past, and therefore the end can not be far off. Now follows the sign that is joined with the coming of Christ, called the sign of the son of man. What this sign is, we find not in the Scriptures. Some think it to be the sign of the cross; but that is frivolous: some, the glory & majesty of Christ, which shall be made manifest in his appearance: which seems to be otherwise by the very words of Christ. Then (saith he) shall appear the sign of the son of man, Math. 24.30. etc. and then they shall see him come in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory; distinguishing the one from the other. But I rather conjecture it to be the burning of heaven and earth with fire, at the very instant of Christ's coming, mentioned by Peter. We must not here dispute whence this fire shall come, or how it shall be kindled, for that the word of God hath concealed: and where God hath not a mouth to speak, there we must not have an ear to hear. The uses to be made hereof, are these. When S. Peter had set down the change that shall be at the coming of Christ, and that heaven and earth must be purged with fire, he makes this use thereof. Seeing all things must be dissolved, what manner of men ought we to be in holy conversation & godliness? 2. Pet. 2.11. and the reason is good. For if heaven & earth must be changed and purged at Christ's coming, then much more ought we to be changed, & to put off the old man of sin, & to become new creatures created after the image of God in righteousness and true holiness. If the bruit creatures must be renewed by fire, then much more are we to labour that the fire of God's spirit may burn up sin & corruption in us, & so change us that we may be ready for him against his coming: else heaven & earth itself shall stand up in judgement against us to our condemnation. Secondly the consideration of this, that the world shall be consumed with fire, teacheth us moderation and sobriety in the use of God's creatures, as in costly buildings, gorgeous attire, and such like. What madness is this, to bestow all that we have on such things, as at the day of judgement shall be consumed with fire. For look whatsoever abuse shall come to God's creatures by our folly, the same shall then be abolished. Thirdly we must consider that the cause why heaven & earth must be consumed with fire, is man's sin by means whereof they are made subject to vanity & corruption. Here then we have just occasion to acknowledge the greatness & wretchedness of our sins. If any of us had but seen the jews leprosy, it would have made us to wonder: for the contagion thereof did infect not only the whole man, but his garments also that were about him, & sometime the walls of his house: but howsoever we cannot now see that leprosy among us, yet we may see a worse. For the leprosy of our sins doth not only infect our garments, & the things about us, with our bodies, but even the high heavens & the earth are slained with the contagion thereof, and are made subject to vanity and corruption: yea by sin in us the most glorious creatures in them, as the Sun, Moon, and Stars are become subject to vanity. Oh then, how wretched is the heart of man, that makes no bones of sin, which is the most noisome thing in all the world, the stink whereof hath infected both heaven and earth. If we could consider this, we would not be so slack in humbling ourselves for the same as we are. We can not abide to look on a poor lazar full of blanes and sores, but if we could see our sins in their right colours, they would make us seem unto ourselves ten thousand times more ugly than any lazar man can be, the contagion thereof is so great & noisome, that the very heavens which are many thousand miles distant from us, are infected therewith. Yet here we are to know, that this fire shall not consume the substance of heaven and earth, but only change the quality, and abolish the corruption which our sins have brought upon them. The fourth point to be considered, is the manner of the last judgement, in which we may observe two things: I. who shall be judge: II. the proceeding of this judge. The first is expressed in this article; From thence he shall come to judge▪ He, that is▪ Christ jesus the second person in trinity: For the father hath committed all judgement unto him. It is indeed an action common to all the three persons in trinity, but yet the execution thereof appertains unto the son. The father indeed doth judge the world, but yet by the son. But some may object, Mar. 19.28. that the Apostles shall sit on ●velve thrones and judge the twelve tribes of Israel. And S. Paul saith, The saints shall judge the world. 1. Cor. 6.2. How then is this true, that Christ is the only judge of the world. Answer. The authority of judgement and giving sentence at the last day is proper to Christ alone, and doth not belong either to the Apostles, or to the saints: and they shall judge at the last day only as witnesses and apprpovers of Christ's judgement: at the great day of assize beside the judge the justices on the bench are also in a manner judges, not that they give sentence, but because by their presence they approve and witness the equity of the sentence of the judge: so the definitive sentence doth belong to Christ: and the Apostles and saints do nothing but approve his righteous sentence. The whole proceeding of the last judgement may be reduced to seven points or heads. The first is the coming of the judge in the clouds. Here at the first it may be demanded why Christ holds the last judgement rather on earth then in heaven. Answer. He doth it for two causes. One, the creature to be judged hath sinned here upon earth: and he proceeds after the manner of earthly judges, who hold their sessions and assizes there where trespasses are commonly committed. The second, because the devil and his angels are to be judged, and it is a part of their punishment to be cast out of heaven. For no unclean thing may come into this heavenly jerusalem, and therefore they now remain in the lower parts of the world, & there must be judged. Furthermore the second coming of Christ is sudden as the coming of a thief in the night. He will come when the world thinketh not of him as the snare doth on the bird. Luk. 21.35. The consideration whereof must teach us the same duties which our Saviour Christ taught the men of his time. First he teacheth them what they must not do: For he knowing all things knew also the disposition of man's heart, and therefore saith, Take heed to yourselves, least at any time your hearts be oppressed with surfeiting and drunkenness, and the cares of this life; lest that day come upon you unawares. For these sins benumb the heart, and steal away all grace. This exhortation in these our days is most needful. For men's hearts are like the smiths sti●hie, the more they are beaten with the hammer of God's word, the harder they are. Secondly he teacheth them what they must do: Watch therefore (saith he) and pray continually: That ye may be counted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and that ye may stand before the son of man. But you will say: how may we be found worthy to stand before Christ at that day? Answer. Do but this one thing: for your lives passed be humbled before God, and come unto him by true, hearty, and unfeigned repentance, be changed and become new creatures: pray unto him earnestly for the pardon of your sins in Christ, and pray continually that God will turn your hearts from your old sins every day more and more: and then come the last judgement when it will, ye shall be found worthy to stand before Christ at his coming. The repentant sinner is he, that shall find favour in the sight of God at that day. The consideration hereof may move us to change our lives. Those which were never yet humbled for their sins, let them now begin: and those which have already begun, let them go forward and continue. But the devil will cry in the hearts of some men, that this exhortation is as yet needless: for the day of judgement is not near, because all the signs thereof are not yet passed. Answer. Suppose the day of judgement be far off, yet the day of thy death can not be so: for the common saying is true, to day a man, to morrow none. Now look as death leaveth thee, so shall the day of judgement find thee. Impenitent Cain died long since, and yet the day of judgement when it cometh, shall find him impenitent still. The same thing may be said of Saul, Achitophel, and judas. They died desperately and impenitent, and the Lord shall find them so at his coming. So it will be with thee, whatsoever thou art that repentest not. Death may come upon thee the next day or the next hour, therefore watch and pray. Prepare thyself against the day of death, that at the day of judgement thou mayest be ●ounde worthy to obtain favour in the sight of the Lord. Security doth overwhelm the world, but let us for our parts learn to prepare ourselves daily: For if the day of death do leave thee unworthy, than the Lord jesus at his coming shall find thee unworthy: and the devil shall stand before thee & accuse thee, thy conscience shall condemn thee, & hell shallbe ready to swallow thee up. If this admonition take no place in thy heart, then at the day of judgement it shall stand against thee, and be a bill of indictment to thy further condemnation. The second point followeth, that Christ after that he is come in the clouds shall sit in a throne of glory as the sovereign judge of heaven and earth, Mat. 25.31. after the manner of earthly kings, who when they will show themselves unto their subjects in majesty, power, and glory, use to ascend into the thrones of their kingdoms, and there to show themselves and appear in state unto all the people. Now what this throne is▪ and how Christ sits in the same, the scripture hath not revealed, and therefore I will not stand to search. Yet here must we further mark, that this appearance of his in endless glory and majesty shallbe most terrible and dreadful to the ungodly, Dan. 7.9. and therefore in Daniel his throne is said to be like a flame of fire, and at the very sight hereof men shall desire the mountains to fall upon them and the hills to cover them. The third point is the citing of all men and of the angels before his majesty in that day, there to answer for themselves. This citing shall be done by the voice of Christ, as he himself saith: joh. 5.28. In that day all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, and they shall come forth. And here we are to consider two things: I. the power of this voice: II. the ministery whereby it shall be uttered. For the first, No doubt the power of this voice shall be unspeakable, and therefore it is compared to a trumpet, Mat. 24.31. 1. Thes. 4.6. the loudest and shrillest of all musical instruments; and to the cry of the mariners, whose manner hath been in the doing of any business with all their strength at one instant to make a common shout. And sensible experience shall manifest the force thereof. For it shall cause all the dead even from the beginning of the world to rise again, though they have lain rotten in the earth many thousand years: and all unclean spirits shall be forced and compelled will they nill they to come before Christ, who shallbe unto them a most fearful and terrible judge, neither man nor angel shall be able to absent or hide himself: all without exception must appear as well high as low, rich as poor: none shallbe able to withdraw themselves, no not the mighty monarchs of the earth. Furthermore this voice shall be uttered by angels. As in the Church Christ useth men as his ministers by whom he speaks unto his people: Mat. 24.31. so at the last day he shall use the ministery of angels, whom he shall send forth into the four winds to gather his elect together: and therefore it is likely that this voice shallbe uttered by them. And by this which hath been said, we must be moved to make conscience of all sin. For there is no avoiding of this judgement, we can not absent ourselves, no excuse will serve the turn: even the most rebellious of all creatures whether man or angel shall be forced to appear: and therefore it stands us in hand, while we have time in this life, to look unto our estates, and to practise the duties of Christianity, that when we shall be cited before his glorious majesty at the last day, we may be cleared and absolved. The fourth point is the separation of the sheep from the goats, the good from the bad; for when all the kindreds of the earth, & all unclean spirits shall stand before Christ, Mat. 25 32. sitting in the throne of his glory: then as a good shepherd he shall separate them one from another, the righteous from the wicked, & the elect from the reprobate. He which knoweth the hearts of all men, knoweth also how to do this, and he will do it. This full and final separation is reserved to Christ, and shall not be accomplished till the last day. For so it is in the parable, that the tars must grow with the wheat till harvest, Mat. 13.30. and then the reapers must separate them, and gather the wheat into the barn, but the tars must be burned with unquenchable fire. By the consideration of this one point, we learn divers things: I. that in the Church of God in this world good and bad are mingled together, elect and reprobate: and we are not to imagine any perfection of the Church of God upon earth, as many have dreamt, which when they could not find, they have therefore forsaken all assemblies. I confess indeed that the preaching of the word is the Lords fan, whereby he cleanseth his Church in part, but yet the finishing of this work shall not be before the last judgement. For when the ministers of God have done all that they can, yet shall the wicked be mingled with the godly. Therefore the Church is compared to a barn store, where is both wheat and chaff: & a corn field where there is both tars and good corn: and a draw net, wherein is both good fish and bad. Secondly, whereas this separation must not be before the end of the world, hence we learn the state of God's church in this life. It is like a flock of sheep mingled with goats, & therefore the condition of God's people in this world is to be troubled many ways by those with whom they live. For goats use to strike the sheep, to annoy their pasture, & to make their water muddy that they can not drink of it: Eze. 34.18. therefore we must prepare ourselves to bear all annoyances, crosses, and calamities that shall befall us in this world by the wicked ones, among whom we live. Thirdly we are taught, that howsoever the goats and the sheep be very like, & feed in one pasture, & lie in one fold all their life time: yet Christ can & will sever them asunder at the last day. Therefore considering as we are borne of Adam we have the nature of the goat, yea of the wild beast, & not of the sheep, it stands us in hand to lay aside our goatish conditions, and to take unto us the properties of the sheep of Christ which he expresseth in these words, My sheep (saith he) hear my voice, I know them, & they follow me. And the properties are three; joh. 10.27. to know him, to be known of him, and to follow him, namely in obedience: and he that finds them all in himself, weareth the brand and mark of the true sheep of Christ: but contrariwise they that make profession of Christ, & yet therewithal join not obedience, howsoever the world may account of them, they are but goats & no sheep. Let us therefore with the knowledge of Christ join obedience to his word, that when the day shall come that the goats must be separated from the sheep, we may be found to be in the number of the true sheep of Christ. We may deceive men both in life & death, & bear them in hand that we are sheep, but when the judgement shall come, we can not deceive Christ: he it is that form us, he knows our hearts, & therefore can easily discern what we are. The fift thing is the trial of every man's particular cause, a point especially to be considered. For as at the bar of an earthly judge, the malefactor is brought out of prison and set before the judge and there examined: even so in that great day shall every man without exception be brought before the Lord to be tried. But how shall this trial be made. Ans. By works: as the Apostle saith, We must all appear before the judgement seat of Christ, 2. Cor. 5.10. that every man may receive the things which are done in his body according to that he hath done, whether it be good or evil. And the reason is, because works are the outward signs of inward grace and godliness. And though we be justified by faith alone without works, yet may we be judged both by faith and works. For the last judgement doth not serve to make men just that are not, but only to manifest them to be just indeed, which were just before and in this life truly justified. The consideration of this very point should move us all to repent us of our sins past & to reform ourselves throughout, & to be plentiful in all good works. And undoubtedly if we seriously think upon it, it will hold us more straightly to all good duties, then if with the Papists we held justification by works. Furthermore in this trial two things must be scanned: I. how all men's works shall be made manifest. II. by what means they shall be examined. Of the manifestation of every man's work S. john speaketh, Rev. 20.12. And I saw (saith he) the dead both great and small stand before God, and the books were opened: and another book was opened, which is the book of life, and the dead were judged of these things which were written in the books according to their works. God is said to have books not properly, but because all things are as certain and manifest to him, as if he had his Registers in heaven to keep rolls and records of them. His books are three; the book of Providence, the book of judgement, the book of Life. The book of his providence is the knowledge of all particular things passed, present, to come. Of this the Psalmist speaketh, Thine eyes did see me when I was without form: for in thy book were all things written which in continuance were fashioned, Psa. 159.16. when there was none of them before. The book of judgement is that whereby he gives judgement: and it is twofold. The first is God's knowledge or prescience, in which all the affairs of men, their thoughts, words, and deeds are as certainly known and set down, as if they were put in books of record. We may forget our sins, but God keeps them in a register; he knows them every one. The second book is every man's particular conscience, which also brings to remembrence and testifies what men have done and what they have not done. The book of life is nothing else but the decree of God's election, Isa●. 4.3. in which God hath set down who be ordained to life eternal. Now the opening of these books is a thing wherein the endless power of God shall most notably show itself. For when we shall stand before the judgement seat of Christ, he then knowing all things in his eternal counsel, shall reveal unto every man his own particular sins, whether they were in thought, word, or deed, and then also by his mighty power he shall so touch men's consciences, that they shall a fresh remember what they have done. Now indeed the wicked man's conscience is shut up as a closed book, but than it shall be so touched, and as it were, opened, that he shall plainly see and remember all the particular offences which at any time he hath committed; & his very conscience shall be as good as a thousand witnesses; whereupon he shall accuse and utterly condemn himself. The consideration of this aught to terrify all those that live in their sins: For howsoever they may hide them from the world, yet at the last day God will be sure to reveal them all. Now after that men's works are made manifest, they must further be tried whether they be good or evil. And that shall be done on this manner. They that never heard of Christ must be tried by the law of nature, which serves to make them inexcusable before God. As for those that live in the Church they shall be tried by the Law and the Gospel, as Paul saith, As many as have lived in the law, shall be judged by the law. And again, Rom. 2.12 vers. 16. At the day of judgement God shall judge the secrets of our hearts according to his gospel. And By faith Noah builded an ark, Heb. 11.7. whereby he condemned the old world. If this be true, than we must in the fear of God hear his word preached & taught with all reverence & make conscience to profit by it. For otherwise in the day of judgement when all our works shallbe tried by it, the same word of God shall be a bill of indictment, and the fearful sentence of condemnation against us. Therefore let us be humbled by the doctrine of the law, and willingly embrace the sweet promises of the gospel: considering it is the only touchstone, whereby all our words, thoughts & works must be examined. The sixth point in the proceeding of the last judgement, is the giving of sentence, which is twofold: the sentence of absolution, and the sentence of condemnation, both which are to be observed diligently, that we may receive profit thereby. And first of all Christ shall begin his judgement with the sentence of absolution, which shows, that he is ready to show mercy & slow to wrath. In this sentence we are to consider four points: I. a calling of the elect to the kingdom of heaven: II. the reason thereof: III. a reply of the elect: IU. the answer of Christ to them again. The calling of the elect is set down in these words, Mat. 25.34. Come ye blessed of my father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the beginning of the world. And the words are to be observed one by one. Come ye blessed] Though Christ now sit in glory and majesty in judgement, yet he ceaseth not to show his tender affection of love unto his chosen. And this overthroweth the opinion of the Church of Rome, which would have us rather to come unto Christ by the intercession of saints, then by ourselves immediately, because he is now exalted in glory and majesty. But mark, when he was hear on earth, he said, Come unto me all ye that are heavy laden and I will ease you. And when he shall be most glorious in majesty and power at the day of judgement, he will then also say, Come ye blessed of my father: and therefore we may resolve ourselves, that it is his will now, that we should come unto him without any intercession of saints. Ye blessed of my father] The elect are here called the blessed of God, because their righteousness, salvation, and all that they have springs of the mere blessing of God. Nothing therefore must be ascribed to the works of man. Inherit] that is, receive as your inheritance: therefore the kingdom of heaven is Gods mere gift. A father giveth no inheritance unto his son of merit, but of his free gift: whereupon it follows, that no man can merit the kingdom of heaven by his works. The kingdom] that is, the eternal estate of glory and happiness in heaven: therefore in this life we must so use this world, as though we used it not: all that we have here is but vain and transitory: and all our study and endeavour must be to come to the kingdom of heaven. Prepared) Here note the unspeakable care of God for the faithful. Had he such care to provide a kingdom for his children before they were? then we may assure ourselves, he will have greater care over them now when they have a being. For you) that is, for the elect and faithful. Hence it appears that there is no universal election whereby God decrees that all and every man shall be saved. Indeed if he had said, Come ye blessed of my father, inherit the kingdom prepared for all but received of you, it had been something, but he saith only, Prepared for you: and therefore all were not chosen to salvation. The reason of this calling, is taken from works as from signs, in these words, For I was hungry and ye gave me meat, etc. When he saith, for I was hungry, he means his poor members upon earth: and thereby he signifies unto us that the miseries of his members are his own miseries. Thus the Lord saith in Zachary, Zach. 2.8. He which toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye. And when Saul was going to persecute them that called on the name of Christ in Damascus, Act. 9.4. he cried from heaven, Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me? And this is a notable comfort to God's Church and people, Heb. 4.15. that they have an high priest that is touched with the feeling of our infirmities: and if he account our miseries his own miseries, than no doubt he will pity our estate and make us able to bear the worst. And ye gave me meat) Here we note, that the principal works of men are those which are done to the poor members of Christ: we are indeed to help all in as much as they are our very flesh and the creatures of God; the rule of S. Paul being remembered, Do good to all, but especially to those that are of the household of faith. Gal. 6.10. Many are of mind that the best works are to build Churches & Monasteries, but Christ tells us here, that the best work of all is to relieve those that be the living members of his mystical body. The third point is the reply of the saints to Christ again in these words, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, and fed thee? etc. They do not deny that which Christ avouched, but do, as I take it, standing before the tribunal seat of God, humble themselves, having still an after consideration of the infirmities and offences of their lives past. Here note then, that it is a Satanical practice for a man to brag of works and to stand upon them in the matter of justification before God. And we must rather do as the saints of God do, abase ourselves in regard of our sins past. The last point is the answer of Christ to them again, in these words, Verily, I say unto you, in as much as ye did it to the least of these my brethren, you did it to me. A most notable sentence: and it serveth to teach us, how we should and ought to behave ourselves in doing works of mercy, which are duties to be performed in this life. We are not to do them of any sinister respect, as for praise of men or commodity, but we must propound unto ourselves the party to whom we do any good, and in him look on Christ, and so do it, as unto Christ and for Christ's sake only; and this is a good work indeed. Christ saith, Whosoever shall give a cup of cold water to a disciple in the name of a disciple, shall not lose his reward. It is but a small gift, but yet the manner of doing it, Mar. 10.42. namely in the name of a disciple, that is, in respect that he is a member of Christ, doth make it an excellent work of mercy. It is a special mark of a child of God to show mercy on a christian because he is a christian. If any would know whether he be a christian or no, let him search himself, whether he love a man, and can do good unto him, because he is a child of God, and a member of Christ: For this is a plain argument, that he also is the child of God. Many can love, because they are loved again, but to lo●e for Christ his sake, is a work of Christ in us and a special gift of God. The sentence of condemnation follows in the second place: and it contains four points: I. the rejection of the ungooly: II. the reason of their rejection: III. the defence which the wicked make for themselves: lastly, the answer of Christ to them again. The rejection of the wicked is uttered by a terrible sentence, Away from me ye cursed into hell fire. The use hereof in general is twofold. First it serves to awake and excite all men and women in the world whosoever they be that shall hear it, to look unto their own estates. It is wonderful to see what great security reigneth every where in these our days. Men go on in sin from day to day and from year to year without repentance, nothing at all fearing the sentence of condemnation at the last day; like unto many which for the obtaining of other men's goods are neither by the fear of arraignment or imprisonment kept in good order. The occasions of security are twofold: I. the prosperity of the wicked who of all men live most at ease without trouble, either in body or in mind. II. Gods patience and long suffering, as Solomon saith, Because sentence against an evil work is not executed speedily, Eccles. 8.9. therefore the hearts of the children of men is fully set in them to do evil. But to awake all those which live in this security, they must remember that howsoever the Lord God doth now defer his judgement, yet there is a day wherein he will no way show mercy & long suffering, when they shall hear this fearful sentence of condemnation pronounced against them, Away from me ye● cursed. The second use is to the godly: It serves to nurture them & to keep them in awe before god: & no doubt, this was a principal cause why this sentence▪ was here penned by the holy ghost. A wise master of a family will check his servant, and if the cause require, correct him in his child's presence, that the child itself may learn thereby to fear and stand in awe of his father: so Christ the most careful and wise governor of his Church hath set down this sentence of condemnation against the wicked, that the children of God in this world whensoever they shall hear or read the same, might be moved thereby to stand in great fear of God, and more dutifully perform obedience to his commandments. Away from me] Here we may learn, what a blessed thing it is for a man to have true fellowship with Christ in this world. For in the day of judgement the punishment of the wicked is to be cut off from him, and driven away from his presence. Now he that would have fellowship with God after this life, and escape that punishment, must seek to have it in this life: and he that will not seek to have fellowship with him in this life, shall never have it after in the day of judgement. Again, let us mark that it is nothing to draw near unto Christ with our lips, if the heart be not with him: for such as come near with the lip and have kept aloof in the heart, shall hear the sentence pronounced▪ Away f●om me ye cursed▪ & shall be severed as far from Christ as hell from heaven. Therefore let us not content ourselves with formal profession, but open the doors of our hearts that the king of glory may come in. Ye cursed.] They are cursed who are borne in sin and live in their sins, and all the days of their lives so persevere to the last gasp without seeking recovery. Whosoever he be that is in this estate, the curse of God hangeth over his head, and will so do till he get reconciliation with God in Christ. This being so, above all things in this world we must labour to be at peace with God, and never cease nor be quiet with ourselves till we have the same wrought and sealed in our hearts. For before such time as we be in God's favour, his fearful curse hangs over our heads, & if we so persevere without repentance, the day will come when we shall hear this fearful sentence pronounced against us: Away from me ye cursed into hell fire. What hell fire is, we must not curiously search, but rather give our whole endeavour to learn how we may avoid it: as when a man's house is on fire, his care must be, not to search how it came, but rather how to quench it: yet we are to know thus much, that by hell fire is not meant any bodily flame, but it signifies the seizing of the fearful & terrible wrath of God both on body and soul for ever. For howsoever the body be subject to burning with fire, yet the soul being spiritual can not burn; & therefore hell fire is not a material fire, but a grievous torment fit resembled thereby. Prepared for the devil and his angels.) There is in every man's heart by nature this corruption: whereby when he sinneth, he thinks that there is no danger but all is well, having as Esai saith, made a covenat with hell. But here consider, that although the devil was once an angel of light, yet when he had sinned, he could not escape hell: it was prepared even for him. Now then shall ungodly men which are not half so wily think to escape? Now followeth the reason of their rejection in these words: For I was an hungered and ye gave me no meat, etc. Hence we learn these two points: I. that all man's religion & serving of God is in vain, if so be we show no compassion toward the poor members of Christ, in feeding, clothing, lodging, & visiting of them. For we must think, that many of those against whom this reason shallbe brought, did know religion & profess the same, yea they prophesied in the name of Christ, & called on him, saying, Lord, Lord: & yet the sentence of condemnation goeth against them, because they showed no compassion toward the members of Christ, & therefore it is a principal virtue, & a special note of a christian, to show the bowels of compassion towards his needy brethren. Here again we note, that it is not sufficient for us to abstain from evil, but we must also do good. For it is not said, I was an hungered and ye took meat from me, but, When I was hungry ye gave me no meat. They are not charged with doing evil, Mat. 3. but, for not doing good. S. john saith, The axe is laid to the root of the tree, & the reason follows, not because the tree bore evil fruit, but because it bore not good fruit: therefore it must be cast into the fire. This condemns a bad opinion of all worldly men, who think that all is well, & that God will be merciful unto them, because they do no man harm. Thus we see how the devil blinds the eyes of men▪ for it will not stand for payment at the day of judgement to say, I have hurt no man, unless we further do all the good we can. The third point is the defence which impenitent sinners make for themselves in these words, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, or thirsty, or naked, or in prison, or sick, and did not minister unto thee? Thus in their own defence, that which Christ saith they gainsay, & justify themselves. Here mark the nature of all impenitent sinners, which is to sooth & flatter themselves in sin, & to maintain their own righteousness, like to the proud Pharisie in his prayer, who bragged of his goodness & said, Lord, I thank thee, Luk. 1●. 10. that I am not as other men are, extortioners, etc. and in the very same manner ignorant persons of all sorts among us, justify themselves in their strong faith, and brag of their zeal of god's glory, and of their love to their brethren, and yet indeed show no signs thereof. And truly we are not to marvel when we see such persons to justify themselves before men, whereas they shall not be ashamed to do it at the day of judgement before the Lord jesus himself. The last point, is Christ's answer to them again in these words: Verily, I say unto you, in as much as ye did it not to one of the least of these, ye did it not to me. This sentence being repeated again, doth teach us the lesson which we learned before, that when we are to show compassion to any man, especially if he be a member of God's Church, we must not consider his outward estate or his baseness, in that he wants food or raiment, but behold Christ in him, not respecting him as a man, but as a member of Christ. This it is that must move us to compassion, and cause us to make a supply of his wants more than any respect in the world beside. And surely when Christ in his members comes to our do●es and complains that he is hungry and sick, and naked, if our bowels came not towards him, there is not so much as a dramine of the love of God in us. The seventh point in the proceeding of the last judgement is, the retribution or reward in these words: and they shall go into everlasting pain, and the righteous into life eternal. How do the wicked enter into hell and the godly into heaven? Answ. By the powerful & commanding voice of Christ, which is of that force, that neither the greatest rebel that ever was among men, nor all the devils in hell shall be able to withstand it. And seeing that after the day of judgement we must remain for ever either in heaven or in hell, we are to look about us, and to take heed unto our hearts. Indeed if the time were but a thousand or two thousand years, then with more reason men might take liberty to themselves: but seeing it is without end we must be most careful through the whole course of our lives so to live & behave ourselves, that when the day of judgement shall come, we may avoid that fearful sentence of everlasting woe & condemnation, which shallbe pronounced against the wicked. And whereas all wicked men shall go to hell at Christ's commandment, it teacheth us, willingly to obey the voice of Christ in the ministery of the word. For if we rebel against his voice in this world, when in the day of judgement sentence shall be pronounced against us, we shall hear another voice, at the giving whereof, we must obey whether we will or no, and thereupon go to everlasting pain, whither we would not. Let us therefore in time deny ourselves for our sins past, and only rely upon Christ jesus for the free remission of them all, and for the time to come lead a new reformed life. Thus much of the order of Christ his proceeding at the day of judgement. Now follow the uses thereof, which are either comforts to gods church or duties for all men. The first comfort or benefit is this, that the same person which died for us upon the cross to work ou● redemption, must also be our ●udge. And hence we reap two special comforts. I. The people of God shall hereby enjoy full redemption from all miseries and calamities which they had in this life. So Christ himself speaking of the signs of the end of the world saith to his disciples: When you see th●se things, lift up your heads for your redemption draweth near. Luk 21.18. Then he shall wipe all tears from their eyes. Secondly, we shall hereby have a final deliverance from all sin. Now what a joyful thing it is to be freed from sin, may plainly appear by the cry of Saint Paul: Oh wretched man that I am, who shall deliver me from this body of death? And certain i● is, that he which knows what sin is, and seriously reputes him of the same, would wish with all his heart to be ou● of this world, that he might leave off to sin, and thereby to displease God. The second comfort is this: the godly in this world have many enemies: they are reviled, slandered, and oftentimes put to death: well, Christ jesus at the day of judgement will take every man's case into his own hand: he will then hear the complaint of the godly, howsoever in this world they found no remedy: and then he will revenge their blood that is shed upon the earth, Apoc. 6.10. according to their prayer. This comfort is to be considered especially of all those that are any way persecuted or molested by the wicked of this world. Now follow the duties to be learned of every one of us, and they are diverse. First, the consideration of the last judgement serveth to teach all ignorant persons and impenitent sinners, repentance and humiliation for their sins, and to move them with all speed to seek unto Christ for the pardon of the same. When Paul preached to the Athenians, he willed them to repent upon this ground & reason, because the Lord hath appointed a day wherein he will judge the world in righteousness. To speak plainly; Act. 17.31. we can be content to hear the word, and to honour him with our lips, yet for the most part all is done but for fashion's sake: for still we live in our old sins: our hearts are not turned: but in the fear of God let us bethink ourselves of the time, when we shall come before the judge of heaven and earth, and have all our sins laid open, and we must answer for them all. This is the point which the holy Ghost useth as a reason to move men unto repentance: and assuredly if this will not move us, there is nothing in the world will. Secondly, to this purpose Paul saith, If we would judge ourselves, we should not be judged. wouldst thou then escape the judgement of Christ at the last day? 1. Cor. 11.31 then in this life judge thyself. Now a man in judging of himself, must perform four things: I. he must examine himself of his own sins: II. he must confess them before the Lord. III. he must condemn himself, and as a judge upon the bench give sentence against himself. Lastly, he must plead pardon, and cry unto God as for life and death, for the remission of all his sins: and he that doth this unfeignedly shall never be judged of the Lord at the last day: but if we slack and neglect this duty in this life, then undoubtedly there remains nothing but eternal woe in the world to come. Thirdly, by this we may learn one not to judge or condemn another, as Paul saith, judge nothing before the time until the Lord come, 1. Cor. 4.3. who lighten things that are hid in darkness, and make the counsels of the hearts manifest. And Christ saith, judgement is mine: and, judge not, and ye shall not be judged. And again Paul saith to the Romans, Why dost thou judge thy brother? Rom. 14.10. for we must all appear before the judgement seat of Christ: but some will ask, how doth one judge another? Answer. Thus: I. when a man doth well, to say of him that he doth evil: II. when a man doth evil, then to make it worse: III when a thing is doubtful, to take it in the worst part. And by any of these three ways we are not to judge either of men's persons, or of their actions. Fourthly, we must endeavour ourselves to keep a good conscience before God and before all men. This is the practice of Saint Paul, who in consideration and hope of a resurrection unto judgement as well of the just as of the unjust, Act. 24.15. endeavoured himself to have always a clear conscience both towards God and towards men. His example is worthy our marking and imitation; for few there be that upon this occasion make any conscience either of duty to God or to their brethren. Fifthly, the last judgement must stir us up to a reverend fear of God, and cause us to glorify him: as the angel saith in the Revelation, Fear God and give glory to him: for the hour of his judgement is come. Rev. 14.17. And doubtless if any thing in the world will move a man to fear the Lord it is this, to remember the fearful and terrible day of judgement. Now having spoken hitherto of the first person the father, and also of the son, it followeth in the next place to speak of the third person, in these words, I believe in the holy Ghost. In which we may consider two things, the title of the person, and the action of faith repeated from the beginning. The title is, holy Ghost, or Spirit. It may here be demanded, how this title can be fit to express the third person, which seems to be common to the rest: for the father is holy, and the son is holy: again the father is a spirit, and the son is a spirit. Answer. Indeed the father and the Son are as well to be termed holy in respect of their natures, as the third person: for all three subsisting in one and the same Godhead, are consequently holy by one and the same holiness: but the third person is called holy, because beside the holiness of natures, his office is to sanctify the Church of God. Now if it be said that sanctification is a work of the whole Trinity, the answer is, that although it be so, yet the work of sanctification agrees to the holy Ghost in special manner. The father sanctifieth by the Son and by the holy Ghost: the Son sanctifieth from the father and by the holy Ghost: the holy Ghost sanctifieth from the father and from the son by himself immediately: and in this respect is the third person termed holy. Again the third person is termed a Spirit, not only because his nature is spiritual (for in that respect the father is a spirit and the son is a spirit;) but because he is spired or breathed from the father and from the son, in that he proceeds from them both. Thus we see there is special cause why the third person is called the holy Ghost. Now the action of faith which concerns the third person, is to believe in him. Which is, I. to acknowledge the H. Ghost as he hath revealed himself in the word. II. In special to believe that he is my sanctifier and comforter. III. To put all the confidence of my heart in him, for that cause. In these words are comprised four points of doctrine, which are to be believed concerning the H. Ghost. The first, that he is very God. For we are not to put our affiance or confidence in any but in God alone. And no doubt the pennars of the Creed in that they prefixed these words, I believe in, before the article of the third person, meant thereby to signify that he is true God, equal with the father and the son, according to the tenor of the Scriptures themselves. Peter saith to Ananias: Why hath satan filled thine heart, Act. 5.3.4. that thou shouldest lie unto the holy Ghost? and continuing the same speech, he changeth the term only, and saith, Thou hast not lied unto men, but unto God. Whereby he insinuateth that the holy Ghost is very God. In the vision of the Prophet Isai, the words by him set down are thus: I heard the voice of jehova, saying, whom shall I send, Isa. 6.9. etc. and he said, go and say to this people: Ye shall hear in deed, but ye shall not understand. But Paul quoting the same place, spoke on this manner: Well spoke the H. Ghost by Esay the Prophet, Act. 28.15. saying, go unto this people and say unto them. Now these places being compared together make it plain, that the title of jehovah, agreeth to the holy Ghost. But yet the enemies of this truth which think, that the holy Ghost is nothing else but the action or operation of God, object out of the Scriptures to the contrary: I. God knoweth the Son: the holy Ghost knoweth not the Son: for none knoweth the son but the father: Mat. 11.27. ergo the holy Ghost is not God. Answer. That place excludeth no person in Trinity, but only creatures, and false gods, and the meaning is this: None, that is, no creature, or idol god, knoweth the son of God, but the father. And the opposition is made to exclude creatures, not to exclude the holy Ghost. Again they object, that the holy Ghost maketh request for us with groans and sighs that cannot be uttered: Rom. 8.26. ergo the holy Ghost is not God, but rather a gift of God. For he that is true God can not pray, groan, or sigh. Answer. Paul's meaning is thereby to signify that the holy Ghost causeth us to make requests, and stirreth up our hearts to groan and sigh to God: for he said before, we have received the spirit of adoption, whereby we cry, Abba, father. Rom. 8.15. Yet further, they object the words of the angel Gabriel to the virgin Marie, saying, Luk. 1. 3●. The virtue of the most high hath overshadowed thee: and hence they gather, that if the holy Ghost be the virtue of God, than he is not God indeed. Answ. As Christ is called the word of God, not a word made of letters or syllables, but a substantial word, that is, being for ever of the same substance with the father: so in this place the holy Ghost is called the virtue of the most highest, not because he is a created quality, but because he is the substantial virtue of the Father & the son: & therefore God equal with them both. Furthermore they allege, that neither the Scriptures nor the practice of the Primitive Church doth warrant us to pray to the holy Ghost. Ans. It is not true. For whensoever we direct our prayer to any one of the three persons, in him we pray to them all. Besides, we have example of prayer made to the holy Ghost in the word of God. For Paul saith to the Corinthians, 2. Cor. 13.13. The grace of our Lord jesus, the love of God the father, and the fellowship of the holy Ghost be with you all. And the words are as if Paul had said thus; O father, let thy love, O son, let thy grace, O holy Ghost, let thy fellowship be with them all. And therefore this first doctrine is true, and as well to be believed as any other, that the holy Ghost is God. The second point is, that the holy Ghost is a distinct person from the father and the son. Hereupon the articles touching the three people are thus distinguished, I believe in the father, I believe in the son, I believe in the H. Ghost. This point also is consonant to the Scriptures which make the same distinction. In the baptism of Christ, the father uttereth a voice from heaven, saying, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased: & not the Son, Math. 15.16. or the holy Ghost. Secondly the Son stood in the water, and was baptized by john, and not the Father, or the holy Ghost. Thirdly, the holy Ghost descended from heaven upon Christ in the form of a dove; and not the father, or the son, but the holy Ghost alone. Christ in his commission unto his disciples, saith, Go teach all nations, baptizing them into the name of the father, Matt. 28.19. the son, and the holy Ghost. Now if the holy Ghost had been the same person either with the father, or with the son, than it had been sufficient to have named the father and the son only. And the distinction of the third person from the rest, may be conceived by this, that the holy Ghost is the holy Ghost, and not the father or the son. The third point to be believed is, that the holy Ghost proceedeth from the father and the son. For a further proof hereof, consider these places. Paul saith, Ye are not in the flesh but in the spirit: Rom. 8.9. for the spirit of God dwelleth in you. But if any man have not the spirit of Christ, he is not his, & again, Gal. 4.6. Because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the spirit of the son into your hearts: where we may observe that the holy Ghost is the spirit both of the father and of the son. Now the holy Ghost is called the spirit of the father, not only because he is sent of him, but because he proceedeth from the father; as Christ saith to his disciples: When the comforter will come, whom I shall send unto you from the father, joh. 15.26. even the spirit of truth, which proceedeth of the father, he shall testify of me. And therefore likewise he is the spirit of the son, not only because he is sent of the son, but also because he proceedeth from him. Again, in the trinity the person sending doth communicate his whole essence and substance to the person sent. As the father sending the son doth communicate his essence and substance to the son. For sending doth presuppose a communication of essence. Now the father and the son send the holy Ghost: therefore both of them communicate their substance and essence unto the same person. Thirdly Christ saith, The holy Ghost hath received of mine, joh. 14.16. which he shall show unto you, namely knowledge and truth, to be revealed unto his Church. Whence we may reason thus: the person receiving knowledge from an other, receives essence also: the H. Ghost receiveth truth & knowledge from Christ to be revealed unto the Church: & therefore first of all he hath received substance and essence from the son. But some peradventure will say, where is it written in all the Bible in express words, that the holy Ghost proceeds from the son as he proceeds from the father. Ans. The Scripture saith not so much in plain terms; yet we must know that that which is gathered forth of them by just consequent, is no less the truth of God, then that which is expressed in words. Hereupon all Churches, save those in Greece, with one consent acknowledge the truth of this point. The fourth and last point is, that the holy Ghost is equal to the father & the son. And this we are taught to acknowledge in the Creed, in that we do as well believe in the holy Ghost as in the father and the son. And though the holy Ghost be sent of the father & the son, yet (as I have said before) that argues no inequality (for one equal may send an other by consent) but order only, whereby the Holy Ghost is last of all the three persons. Again in that the H. Ghost receiveth from the son, it proves no inferiority. Because he receives from the son whatsoever he receives by nature, and not by grace. And he receives not a part, but all that the son hath, saving the propriety of his person. Now follow the benefits which are given by th' H. ghost, & they are of 2. sorts: some are common to all creatures, & some are proper to men. The benefit of the H. Ghost common to all creatures, is the work of creation & preservation▪ For all things were created & made, & afterward preserved by the H. Ghost. So Elihu saith, The spirit of God hath made me. And Moses saith, job 33.4. Gen. 1▪ 2. In the beginning the spirit moved upon the waters. The phrase is borrowed from a bird, who in hatching of her young ones sits upon the eggs, moves herself upon them, and heats them. And so likewise the holy Ghost in the beginning did by his own power cherish and preserve the mass or lump whereof all things were made, and caused it to bring forth the creatures. This being evident that the holy Ghost hath a stroke in the work of creation and preservation, we must unfeignedly acknowledge that we were first created, and since that time continually preserved by the benefit even of the third person. The benefits proper unto men, are of two sorts: some are common to all men both good and bad, and some proper to the elect and faithful. The benefits common to all men are diverse: I. the gift of practising a particular calling. As in the body several members have several uses; so in every society several men have several offices and callings, and the gifts whereby they are enabled to perform the duties thereof, are from the holy Ghost. When Gedeon became a valiant captain to deliver the Israelites, it is said he was clothed with the spirit. jud. 6.34. Bezaleel and Aholiab being set apart to build the tabernacle, were filled with the spirit of God in wisdom and in understanding, Exod 31.3. and in all workmanship, to find out curious works, to work in gold and in silver and in brass; also in the art to set stones, and to carve in timber, etc. By this it is manifest, that the skill of any handicraft is not in the power of man, but comes by the holy Ghost. And by this we are taught to use all those gifts well, whereby we are enabled to discharge our particular callings, that they may serve for the glory of God, and the good of his Church: and those that in their callings use fraud and deceit, or else live inordinately, do most unthankfully abuse the gifts of the holy Ghost, which one day they must answer for. The second gift common to all, is Illumination, whereby a man is enabled to understand the will of God in his word. Heb. 6.4. The jews in the reading of the old testament had a vail over their hearts: and the like have all men by nature, to whom the word of God is foolishness. Paul at his conversion was smitten blind, and scales were upon his eyes: the like also be over the eyes of our minds; and they must fall away before we can understand the will of God. Now it is the work of the holy Ghost to remove these scales and films from our eyes. And for this very cause he is called the anointing and eyesalue: for as it doth clear the eyes, 1. joh. 2.20. Apoc. 3▪ 18. and take away dimness from them; so doth the holy Ghost take away blindness from our minds, that we may see into the truth of God's word. This being a common gift, and received both of good and bad, it standeth us in hand not to content ourselves with the bare knowledge of the word, but therewithal we must join obedience, and make conscience thereof, or else that will befall us which Christ foretold, Luk. 12. 4●. that he which knoweth his masters will and doth it not, shall be beaten with many stripes. The third gift of the holy Ghost, is the gift of prophecy, 1. Cor. 12. 1●. whereby a man is made able to interpret and expound the Scriptures. Now albeit this gift be very excellent and not given to every man, yet is it common both to good and bad. For in the day of judgement when men shall come to Christ and say, Master we have prophesied in thy name, he shall answer again, I never knew you, depart from me ye workers of iniquity. Hereupon those that are in the calling of the ministery, and have received the gift of prophecy, must not herewithal be puffed up. For if they be not as well doers of Gods will, as teachers, their gifts will turn to their further condemnation. As the carpenters that built Noah's ark when the flood came were drowned, because they would not obey Noah's preaching: so those that have the gifts of prophecy, and are builders in God's house, if they build not themselves as well as others, for all their preaching at the day of judgement, they shall be condemned▪ and therefore it standeth them in hand, not to content themselves with this, that they know and teach others Gods will, but they themselves must be the first doers of the same. The fourth common gift of the holy Ghost, is Ability to bridle and restrain some affections, so as they shall not break out into outrageous behaviour. Haman a wicked man, & an enemy to God's Church, when he saw Mordecai the jew sitting in the king's gate, & that he would not stand up nor move for him, he was full of indignation, nevertheless the text saith, that he refrained himself. And when Abimelech an heathen king had taken Sara Abraham's wife, Hest. 5.10. God said unto him: I know that thou didst this with an upright heart: and the text addeth further, I have kept thee, Gen. 20.6. that thou shouldest not sin against me. And thus the Lord giveth to men, as yet without the spirit of sanctification, this gift to bridle themselves, so as in outward action they shall not practise this or that sin. For why did not Abimelech commit adultery? surely because God kept him from it. Again, in the histories of the heathen we may read of many that were just, liberal, meek, continent, etc. and that by a general operation of the holy Ghost that represseth the corruption of nature for the common good. Here than if any man ask, how it cometh to pass that some men are more modest and civil than others, seeing all men by nature are equally wicked, the answer may be▪ not as the common saying is, because some are of better nature than others (for all the sons of Adam are equal in regard of nature: the child new borne in that respect is as wicked as the eldest man that ever lived) but the reason is, because God giveth this common gift of restraining the affections more to some then to others. This must be considered of us all. For a man may have the spirit of God to bridle many sins, and yet never have the spirit to mortify the same, and to make him a new creature. And this being so, we must take heed that we deceive not ourselves. For it is not sufficient for a man to live in outward civility, & to keep in some of his affections upon some occasion (for that a wicked man may do) but we must further labour to feel in ourselves the spirit of God, not only bridling sin in us, but also mortifying and killing the same. In deed both of them are the good gifts of God's spirit, but yet the mortification of sin is the chiefest, being an effectual sign of grace, and proper to the elect. The fifth grace and gift of the holy Ghost is, to hear and receive the word of God with joy. In the parable of the sour, one kind of bad ground are they, which when they have heard, Luk. 8.13. receive the word with joy. And this is that which the author of the Hebrues calls the tasting of the good word of God, and of the powers of the world to come. We know that there is great difference between tasting of meat and eating of it. They that sit down at the table do both taste and eat, but they that dress the meat do only see and taste thereof: so it is at the Lords table. Many there be that have this gift, truly both to taste and eat of the body and blood of Christ offered in the word and sacraments: and some again do only taste and feel the sweetness of them and rejoice therein, but yet are not indeed partakers thereof. Now if this be so, than all those which hear the word of God must take heed how they hear, and labour to find these two things in themselves by hearing: I. that in heart and conscience they be thoroughly touched and humbled for their sins: II. that they be certainly assured of the favour and love of God in Christ, and that the sweet promises of the Gospel do belong to them: and in consideration hereof they must make conscience of all sin both in thought word & deed, through the whole course of their lives. And this kind of hearing bringeth that joy which vanisheth not away. Thus much of the benefits of the holy Ghost common to all men both good and bad: now follow such as are proper to the Elect▪ all which may be reduced unto one▪ namely the Inhabitation of the spirit, whereby the elect are the temples of the H. Ghost: who is said to dwell in men, not in respect of substance (for the whole nature of the H. Ghost cannot be comprised in the body or soul of man) but in respect of a particular operation: and this dwelling stands in two things. The first that the holy Ghost doth abide in them, not for a time only, but for ever: for the word, dwelling, noteth perpetuity. Secondly, that the holy Ghost hath the full disposition of the heart, as when a man cometh to dwell in an house, whereof he is lord, he hath liberty to govern it after his own will: now this disposition of the hearts of the faithful by the holy Ghost, standeth in five special & notable gifts, every one worth our observation. The first is a certain knowledge of a man's own reconciliation to God in Christ. As it is said in Isai, By his knowledge my righteous servant shall justify many. Esa. 53.11. And Christ saith, This is life eternal that they know thee to be the only very God, and whom thou hast sent Jesus Christ. joh. 17.3. This knowledge is not general, for then the devils might be saved; but it is particular, whereby a man knoweth God the father to be his father, and Christ the redeemer, to be his redeemer, and the holy Ghost to be his sanctifier and comforter. And it is from the special work of the H. Ghost, as Paul saith, Rom. 8.16. The spirit of God beareth witness to our spirits, that we are the children of God. And, we have received the spirit which is of God, 1. Cor. 2.12. that we might know the things that are given unto us of God. The second gift is regeneration, whereby a man of a limb of the devil is made a member of Christ, and of a child of satan (whom every one of us by nature do as lively resemble as any man doth his own parent) is made the child of God. Except a man (saith our Saviour Christ) be born again by water and the spirit, joh. 3.5. Math. 3.11. he cannot enter into the kingdom of heaven. john Baptist in saying that Christ baptised with the H. Ghost and fire, compares the spirit of God to fire and water. To fire for two causes: I. as it is the nature of fire to warm the body that is benumbed and frozen with cold: so when a man is benumbed and frozen in sin, yea when he is even stark dead in sin, it is the property of the holy Ghost to warm and quicken his heart, and to revive him. II. Fire doth purge and eat out the dross from the good metal: now there is no dross nor canker that hath so deeply eaten into any metal as sin into the nature of man, and therefore the holy Ghost is as fire to purge and eat out the hidden corruptions of sin out of the rebellious heart of man. Again the holy Ghost is compared to clear water for two causes: I. man by nature is as dry wood without sap, and the property of the holy Ghost is as water to supple and to put sap of grace into the dead and rotten heart of man. II. the property of water is to cleanse and purify the filth of the body: even so the holy Ghost doth spiritually wash away our sins, which are the filth of our nature; and this is the second benefit of the H. Ghost. By this we are taught that he which would enter into the kingdom of God, & have the H. Ghost to dwell in him, must labour to feel the work of regeneration by the same holy spirit: and if a man would know whether he have this work wrought in him or no, let him mark what S. Paul saith, They that are of the spirit, savour the things that are of the spirit: but they that live after the flesh, Rom. 8.5. savour the things of the flesh. If therefore a man have his heart continually affected with that which is truly good, either more or less; it is a certain token that his wicked nature is changed, and he regenerate: but contrariwise if his heart be always set on the pleasures of sin, and the things of this world, he may justly suspect himself that he is not regenerated. As for example: if a man have all his mind set upon drinking & gulling in of wine and strong drink, having little delight nor pleasure in any thing else, it argues a carnal mind and ungerenerate, because it affects the things of the flesh; & so of the rest. And on the contrary, he that hath his mind affected with a desire to do the will of God, in practising the works of charity & religion, he I say, hath a spiritual and a renewed heart, and is regenerate by the holy Ghost. The third work of the holy Ghost is, to govern the hearts of the elect: this may be called spiritual regiment. A man that dwelleth in a house of his own, orders & governs it according to his own will: even so the holy Ghost governs all them in whom he dwelleth, as Paul saith, they that are the sons of God are led by his spirit, Rom. 8.14. a most notable benefit: for look where the holy Ghost dwelleth, there he will be Lord, governing both heart, mind, will, and affections; and that two ways: I. by repressing all bad motions unto sin, arising either from the corruption of man's nature, from the world, or from the devil. II. by stirring up good affections and motions upon every occasion: so it is said, The flesh (that is, the corruption of man's nature) lusteth against the spirit: Gal. 5.17. and the spirit (that is, grace in the heart) lusteth against the flesh; and that after a double sort: first by labouring to overmaster and keep down the motions thereof: secondly by stirring up good motions and inclinations to piety and religion. In Esay the holy Ghost hath most excellent titles: The spirit of the Lord: the spirit of wisdom and understanding: the spirit of counsel, and of strength: Esa. 11▪ 2. the spirit of knowledge, and of the fear of the Lord. Now he is so called, because he stirreth up good motions in the godly, of wisdom, of knowledge, of strength, of understanding, of counsel, and of the fear of the Lord. And Saint Paul saith, that the fruits of the spirit are joy, peace, love, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance, etc. all which are so termed, Gal. ●. 22. because where the H. Ghost ruleth, there he engendereth these good gifts and motions of grace: but among all the inward motions of the spirit, the most principal are these: I. an utter disliking of sin, because it is sin. And that is, when a man hath an eye not so much to another man's sins, as to his own, and seeing them▪ is truly sorrowful for them, and disliketh them, and himself for them, not so much because there is a place of torment, or a day of judgement to come, wherein he must answer to God for them all: but as if there were no hell or judgement, because God is displeased by them, who hath been unto him a most loving and merciful father in redeeming him by Christ. The second is an hungering desire above all things in this world, to be at unity with God in Christ for the same sins. This is a motion of the H. Ghost, which no man can have but he in whom the H. Ghost doth dwell. The third, the gift of hearty prayer. For this cause the H. Ghost is called the spirit of supplications, because it stirreth up the heart, ●ach. 12.10. & makes it fit to pray: & therefore Paul saith, that the spirit of God helpeth our infirmities: for we know not what to pray as we ought, Rom. 8.26. but the spirit itself maketh request for us with sighs which cannot be expressed. This is an ordinary work of the holy Ghost in all that believe: and he that would know whether he have the spirit dwelling truly in his heart, shall know it by this: A mother carrieth her child in her arms, if it cry for the dug and sucks the same, it is alive: being observed many days together if it neither cry nor stir, it is dead. In like manner it is an unfallible note of a true child of God to cry to his father in heaven by prayer, but he that never crieth nor feeleth himself stirred up to make his moan to God, is in a miserable case, and he may well be thought to be but a dead child: and therefore let us learn in prayer unfeignedly to power out our souls before God, considering it is a special gift of the holy Ghost bestowed on the children of God. The fourth work of the holy Ghost in the heart of the elect is, comfort in distress, and therefore our Saviour Christ calleth him the comforter whom he w●ll send: and in the Psalm he is called the oil of gladness, joh. 15.26. Psal. 45.9. because he maketh glad the heart of man in trouble and distress. There be two things that fill the heart full of endless grief: I. outward calamities, as when a man is in any danger of death, when he looseth his goods, his good name, his friends, and such like. The second thing is, a troubled conscience, whereof Solomon saith, A troubled spirit, who can bear it? and of all other it is the most heavy and grievous cross that can be. When as the hand of God was heavy upon job, this was the soarest of all his affliction, and therefore he crieth out that the arrows of the almighty did stick in his soul. Now what is the comfort in this case? Answer. In the midst of all our distresses the holy Ghost is present with us, to make us rejoice and to fill us with comforts that no tongue can express. And hereupon, the ungodly man when afflictions befall him, is ready to make away himself, because he wanteth the comfort of the holy Ghost. The last benefit wrought in the hearts of the elect is, the strengthening of them to do the weightiest duties of their callings: and hence the holy Ghost is called the spirit of strength. Esa. 11.2. There be diverse things to be done of a Christian man that are far beyond the reach of his power; as first, when he seethe his own sins and is truly humbled for them, then to lift up the hand of faith to heaven, and thereby to catch hold on the mercy of God in Christ, is the hardest thing in the whole world: and this do all those know to be true in some part, which know what it is to believe. Secondly it is as hard a thing in the time of temptation to resist temptation, as for dry wood to resist the fire when it gins to burn. Thirdly, when a man is put to his choice, either to lose his life, goods, friends, and all that he hath, or else to forsake religion; even then to forsake all and to stick unto Christ, is a matter of as great difficulty as any of the former. Fourthly, when a man wanteth the ordinary means of God's providence, as meat, drink, and clothing, then at the very same instant to acknowledge God's providence, to rejoice in it, and to rely thereon, is as much as if a man should shake the whole earth. It is against our wicked nature to trust God, unless he first lay down some pawn of his love and mercy towards us. How then, will some say, shall any one be able to do these things? Answer. The holy Ghost is the spirit of strength, and by him we do all things, as Paul saith, I am able to do all things through the help of Christ which strengtheneth me. ●hil. 4.12. Concerning these gifts of the holy Ghost, two questions may be moved. First, what is the measure of grace in this life. Answer. Small in respect. In this world, we receive, as Paul saith, but the first fruits of God's spirit: and the earnest of the spirit. ●om. 8.23. ●. Cor. 1.22. Now the first fruits properly are but as an handful or twain of corn, to a whole corn field, containing many acres and furlongs of ground. And the earnest in a bargain it may be is but a penny laid down for the paying of twenty thousand pound. The second question is, whether the graces of the H. Ghost may be wholly lost or not. Answer. The common gifts of the spirit may be lost and extinguished: But the gifts proper to the Elect can not. Indeed they may be diminished and covered as coals under ashes, and as the sap in the root of the tree in the winter season, not appearing at all in the branches; and the feeling of them may be lost: but they cannot either finally or totally be abolished. It is true that God doth forsake his children; but that is only in part, as he left Ezechias to prove & try what was in his heart. A mother that loves her child most tenderly, ●. Chr. 32.31 sets it down in the flore, lets it stand & fall & break the face, and all this while she hides herself, not because her purpose is to leave her child quite, or to make it hurt itself; but that when she taketh it up again, it may love her the better. So dealeth the Holy Ghost with men to make them see their own weakness & frailty: he hides himself as it were in some corner of the heart for a season, that they may the more earnestly hunger after grace, the want whereof they felt. The use of this article whereby we confess that we believe in the Holy Ghost is manifold. First, considering that all the gifts which any man hath, whether they be gifts of knowledge in the word of God, or of human learning, or again gifts whereby men are enabled to practise their trades or handicrafts, do come not from ourselves but from the holy ghost, we are taught this duty. Look what gifts soever we for our parts have received of the spirit of God, we must use them so, as they may ever serve for the glory of God and good of our brethren, and not to the practising & setting forth of any manner of sin, and by consequent to the service of the devil. For that is as if a man receiving riches and revenues of his prince should strait way go to the prince's enemy & employ them for his benefit; which were a point of exceeding treachery. Furthermore in every place the greater part of men are blind and ignorant persons both young and old: and aged folks as they are ignorant themselves, so they nuzzle up their youth in ignorance. Confer with them, you shall find that they can say nothing but that which may be learned by common talk, as that there is a God, and that this God must be worshipped: but ask them further of the means of their salvation, and of their duties to God and man, and they will answer you that they are not book-learned: tell them further that the ordinary means to bring men to knowledge is the preaching of the word, which if they will not use, they shallbe inexcusable; they will say, alas, we are dull of memory and can not learn. Well, for all this, thou sayest thou believest in the holy ghost, and he is thy schoolmaster to teach thee: though thy capacity be dull, yet he is able to open thine understanding: for as there is outward teaching by the minister, so the work of the holy ghost is joined withal to enlighten the conceit of the mind, that they which hear the word with reverence may profit thereby and get knowledge. But if for all this men will not learn, but remain ignorant still, then let them mark the example of the sons of Eli: he in some part did rebuke them for their wickedness, but yet they would not obey; and the reason is there set down, because the Lord would destroy them. In the same manner howsoever we may not judge of any man's person, 1. Sam. 2.25. yet this may be said, that if men refuse to hear the word of God when they may, or if in hearing they will not obey, it is a fearful sign that God will at length destroy them. When a trumpet is sounded in a man's ear, and he lies still, not stirring at all, he is certainly dead. And surely when the trumpet of the gospel is sounded in the ears of our hearts, if we awake not out of our sins to newness of life, we are no better then dead men before God. Wherefore the case being thus dangerous and the punishment so great, let us labour in time for the knowledge of God's will, and prevent God's judgements before they light upon us. Thirdly, as the Apostle saith, If we live in the spirit, we must walk in the spirit, Gal. 5.25. that is, if we be dead unto sin by the power of the holy ghost, and be raised up to newness of life, than we must walk in the spirit. Now to walk in the spirit, is to lead our lives in showing forth the fruits of the spirit. Esa. 44.3, 4. In Esai the holy ghost is compared unto water powered forth on the dry land, which maketh the willows to blossom and to bear fruit: wherefore those that have the gifts of the spirit must be trees of righteousness bringing forth the fruits of the spirit, which (as they are set down by Paul) are principally nine. The first fruit is love, which respects both God and man. Love unto God is an inward and spiritual motion in the heart, whereby God is loved absolutely for himself. This love shows itself in two things. I. when a man's heart is set and disposed to seek the honour and glory of God in all things. II. when a man by all means strives and endeavours himself to please God in every thing, counting it a most miserable estate to live in the displeasure of God: and the heart that is thus affected, can have no greater torment then to fall into sin, whereby God is offended and his displeasure provoked. By these two signs a man may know whether he love God or no, and by them also must he testify his love. Now our love to man is a fruit of this love of God: for God is to be loved for himself: man is loved for God. This love must not be in show only, but in deed and action. Saint john biddeth us not to love in word and tongue only, 1. joh. 3.18. but in deed and truth. Brotherly love doth not always lie hid, but when an occasion is offered, it doth break forth into action; it is like fire, which though for a time it be smothered, yet at length it breaks forth into a flame. And so much love a man showeth to his neighbour as he hath, and where none is showed, none is. The second fruit is joy, when a man is as glad at the good of his neighbour as at his own good: & this is a special work of the holy ghost. For the nature of man is to pine away and to grieve at the good of another; and it is a work of grace to rejoice thereat. Paul saith, Rejoice with them that rejoice. Rom. 12.15. And this was the holy practice of the friends and neighbours of Zacharias and Elizabeth, when john Baptist was borne, Luk. 1.58. They came and rejoiced with them. The third fruit of the spirit is Peace. Of this Paul speaketh most excellently, saying, If it be possible, as much as in you is have peace with all men. It is nothing else, but concord which must be kept in an holy manner, with all men, Rom. 12.18. both good & bad so far forth as can be. Isai the Prophet speaking of the fruits of the gospel saith, The wolf shall dwell with the lamb, & the leopard with the kid, etc. Where note▪ Esai. 11.6. that in the kingdom of Christ, when a man is called into the state of grace, howsoever by nature he be as a wolf, as a leopard, as a lion, or as a bear, yet he shall then lay away his cruel nature, and become gentle and live peaceably with all men. Now for the practising of this peace, there are three duties especially to be learned & performed: I. rather than peace should be broken, a man must yield of his own right. When Publicans came to our Saviour Christ for tribute, he had a lawful excuse: for howsoever he lived in low estate among them, yet he was the right heir to the kingdom, & therefore was free: nevertheless he stood not on his privilege, but calleth Peter, saying, Lest we offend them, go to the sea and cast in an angle, and take the first fish that comes up: Mat. 17.26, 27. and when thou hast opened his mouth, thou shalt find a piece of twenty pence: take it, and give it to them for thee and me. Here we see that our Saviour Christ, rather than he would break the common peace, yields of his own right: and so we must do if we will be good followers of him. Secondly when any man shall sin either in word or in deed, specially if it be upon infirmity, we must avoid bitter invectives and mildly tell him of his fault, and in all meekness and love labour for his amendment. Gal. 6.1. So Paul teacheth us, saying, If any man be fallen into any fault by occasion, restore such an one with the spirit of meekness, considering thyself, lest thou be also tempted, etc. Bear ye one another's burden. Thirdly every man within the compass of his calling, must be a peacemaker between them that are at variance. This is a special duty of godliness and christianity, and therefore our Saviour Christ doth highly commend such, and pronounceth this blessing upon them, Mat. 5.9. that they shall be called the children of God. The fourth fruit of the spirit is long suffering: and it standeth in two points: I. when a man deferreth his anger and is hardly brought to it: II. being angry doth yet moderate the same, and stay the hotness of that affection. For the first, to bridle anger, it is a special work of the H. ghost, and the means to attain unto it are these: I. not to take notice of the injuries and wrongs done unto us, if they be not of great moment, but to let them pass, as not knowing them. Solomon saith, It is a man's discretion to defer his anger. Prov. 19.11. Now how is that done? It is added in the next words: It is the glory of a man to pass by infirmity: that is, when a man shall overshoot himself, either in word or in deed, to let it pass either wholly, or till a time convenient, as though we knew not of it. The second way to defer and bridle anger is, when a man hath injuried us either in word or deed, to think with ourselves that we have injured others in the same manner: and for this cause Solomon saith, Give not thine heart● to all the words that men speak, Eccles. 7.23. lest thou do hear thy servant cursing thee: For oftentimes thine heart also knoweth that thou hast cursed others. A man must not listen to every man's words at all times: but he is to think that he hath spoken or done the same to other men, and that now the Lord meeteth with him by the like, as it is said, With what measure ye meet, Mat. 7.2. it shallbe measured to you again. This is a thing which few consider. Evil men desire good report and would have all men speak well of them, whereas they can speak well of none: but indeed they must begin to speak well of others before others shall speak well of them. Thirdly, a man must consider how God dealeth with him. For so often as he sinneth he provoketh god to cast him away and to confound him eternally, yet the Lord is merciful and long suffering. Even so when men do offend and injury us, we must do as God doth: not be angry but fight against our affections, endeavouring to become patiented & long suffering as God is with us. The second property of long suffering is to keep the affection of anger in moderation and compass. It is not always a sin to be angry, and therefore it is said of Christ (in whom was no blemish of sin) that he was angry: Mar. 3.5. yet we must look that our anger be moderate and not overlong, as Paul saith, Let not the son go down upon your wrath. The fift fruit of the spirit is gentleness, whereby a man behaveth and showeth himself friendly and courteous to every man, as Paul saith to Titus, Put them in remembrance that they speak evil of no man, that they be no fighters but soft, Tit. 3. ●. showing all meekness unto all men, whether they be good or bad. This gentleness standeth in these points: First to speak to every man friendly and lovingly. II. to salute friendly and courteously. III. to be ready upon every occasion to give reverence and honour to every man in his place. It is made a question of some whether a man is to salute & speak unto them that are known to be lewd & wicked men: but here we see what our duty is in that we are taught to be courteous to all men both good and bad, yet so as we approve not of their sins: as for that which S. john saith of false Prophets, Receive them not, neither bid them God speed, 2. john. 10. it is to be understood of giving an outward approbation to false teachers. The sixth fruit is goodness, which is, when a man is ready to do good and become serviceable in his calling to all men at all times upon all occasions. This was to be seen in that holy man job▪ he saith, that he was eyes to the blind, and feet to the lame, job. 36.15. a father unto the poor, and when he kn●w not the cause, he sought it out. And S. Paul showed this fruit most notably after his conversion, for he saith, that he was made all things to all men that he might save some. 1. Cor. 9.22. He was content to undergo any thing for the good of any man. And as we have heard, the godly are trees of righteousness bearing fruit not for themselves but for others, and therefore Paul in the Epistle to the Galatians giveth this rule, Gal. 5.13. Do service one to another in love. In these days it is hard to find these duties performed in any place. For both practice and proverb is commonly this, Every man for himself, and God for us all: but it is a graceless saying, and the contrary must be practised of all that desire to be guided by the spirit. The seventh fruit is faith: Faith or fidelity standeth in these two duties. One to make conscience of a lie, and to speak every thing whereof we speak, as we think it is, and not to speak one thing and think another. A rare thing it is to find this virtue in the world now a days: who is he that maketh conscience of a lie? and is not truth banished out of our coasts, considering that for gains and outward commodities men make no bones of glozing and dissembling? but alas, the practice is damnable, & the contrary is the fruit of the Holy Ghost, namely to speak the truth from the heart: and he that can do this by the testimony of God himself shall rest in the mountain of his holiness, Psal. 15. even in the kingdom of heaven. The second point wherein fidelity consisteth is, when a man hath made a promise that is lawful and good, to keep and perform the same. Some think it is a small matter to break promise, but indeed it is a fruit of the flesh; and contrariwise a fruit of the spirit to perform a lawful promise: and a man's word should be as sure as an obligation: and in conscience a man is bound to keep promise so far forth as he will, to whom the promise is made. Indeed if a man be released of his promise, he is then free: otherwise if we promise and do not perform, we do not only crack our credit before men, but also sin before God. The eighth fruit of the spirit is meekness, which is a notable grace of God, when a man provoked by injuries doth neither intend nor enterprise the requital of the same. And it stands in three duties. The first is to interpret the sayings and doings of other men in better part as much as possibly may be. The second when men mistake and misconstrue our sayings and doings, if the matter be of smaller moment, to be silent and patiented as Christ was when he was accused before the high priests and pharisees: this being withal remembered, that if the matter be of weight and moment, we may defend ourselves by soft and mild answers. The third is not to contend in word or deed with any man, but when we are to deal with others to speak our mind and so an end. The last fruit of the spirit is temperance, whereby a man bridleth his appetite or lust in meat, drink, and apparel. In bridling the lust, these rules must be observed. I. Eating and drinking must be joined with continual fasting, after this manner. We must not glut ourselves, but rather abstain from that which nature desireth, and as some use to speak, leave our stomachs craving. II. A man must so eat and drink, as afterward he may the better be enabled for God's worship. Creatures are abused when they make us unfit to serve God. The common fault is; on the sabbath day men so pamper themselves, as that they are made unfit both to hear and learn God's word, and fit for nothing but to slumber and sleep: but following this rule of temperance these faults shall be amended. III. This must be a caveat in our apparel, that we be attired according to our callings in holy comeliness. The Lord hath threatened to visit all those that are clothed in strange apparel. Tit. 2.3. And holy comeliness is this, when the apparel is both for fashion and matter so made and worn, that it may express and show forth the graces of God in the heart, as sobriety, temperance, gravity, etc. and the beholder may take occasion by the apparel, to acknowledge and commend these virtues. But lamentable is the time, look on men and women in these days, and you may see and read their sins written in great letters on their apparel, as intemperance, pride, and wantonness. Every day new fashions please the world, but indeed that holy comeliness which the Holy Ghost doth commend to us is the right fashion when all is done. And these are the nine fruits of the spirit, which we must put in practice in our lives and conversations. Fourthly if we believe in the holy ghost, and thereupon do persuade ourselves, that he will dwell in us: we must daily labour as we are commanded to keep our vessels in holiness and honour unto the Lord: 1. Thess. 4.4. and the reason is good. If a man be to entertain but an earthly prince or some man of state, he would be sure to have his house in a readiness, & all matters in order against his coming, so as every thing might be pleasing unto so worthy a guest: well now, behold, we put our confidence and affiance in the holy ghost, and do believe that he will come unto us, and sanctify us, and lodge in our hearts. He is higher than all states in the world whatsoever, and therefore we must look that our bodies and souls be kept in an honourable and holy manner, so as they may be fit temples for him to dwell in. S. Paul biddeth us not to grieve the holy spirit, Eph. 4▪ 30. where the holy ghost is compared to a guest, & our bodies and souls unto Inns: and as men use their guests friendly and courteously, showing unto them all service and duty: so must we do to god's spirit which is come to dwell and abide in us, doing nothing in any case, which may disquiet or molest him. Now there is nothing so grievous unto him as our sins, and therefore we must make conscience of all manner of sin, least by abusing of ourselves, we do cause the holy ghost as it were with grief to departed from us. When the ark of the covenant which was a sign of the presence of God, was in the house of Obed Edom, the text saith, that the Lord blessed him and all his house: 2. Sam. 6.11. but wh●n the holy ghost dwells in a man's heart, there is more than the ark of the Lord present, even God himself: and therefore may we look for a greater blessing. Now then shall we grieve the holy ghost by sinning, seeing we reap such benefit by his abode? It is said, that our Saviour Christ was angry when he came into the temple at jerusalem, and saw the abuses therein. Now shall he be angry for the abuses that are done in a temple of stone, and seeing the temples of our bodies which are not made of stone, but are spiritual, figured by that earthly temple, seeing them (I say) abused by sin, will he not be much more angry? Yea we may assure ourselves, he can not abide that. And therefore if we believe in the holy ghost, we must hereupon be moved to keep our bodies and souls pure & clean. And further to persuade us hereunto, we must remember this, that when we pollute our souls and bodies with any manner of sin, we make them even stables and sties for our wretched enemy the devil to harbour in. For when Satan is once cast out, if afterward we fall again to our old sins and looseness of life, and so defile our bodies, they are then most clean and neat for him to dwell in: whereupon he will come and bring seven other devils worse than himself, and so a man's last end shall be worse than his beginning. Now what a fearful thing is this, that the body which should be a temple for the holy ghost, by our sins should be made a stable for the devil. Further S. Paul biddeth us, not to quench the spirit. The graces of the holy spirit in this life are like sparks of fire, 1. Thes. 5.1. which may soon be quenched with a little water. Now so oft as we sin, we cast water upon the grace of God, and as much as we can put out the same: therefore it stands us in hand to make conscience of every thing wherein we may offend and displease God. And we may assure our selves, that so long as we live and lie in our corruptions and sins, the Holy Ghost will never come and dwell with us. He is a pure spirit, and therefore must have an undefiled temple to dwell in. Thus we have heard what is to be believed concerning the father, son, & holy ghost: now look as we believe in God distinguished into ●. persons: so we must remember that when we perform divine worship to him, we may distinguish the persons, but we are not to sever them: when we pray to the father, we must not omit the son or the Holy Ghost, but make our prayers to them all: for as in nature they are one, and in person not divided but distinguished: so in all worship we must never confound or sever the persons, but distinguish them, and worship the trinity in unity and untie in trinity: one God in three persons, and three persons in one God. Hitherto we have entreated of the first part of the Creed concerning God: now followeth the second part thereof concerning the Church: and it was added to the former upon special consideration. For a August. in enchir. c. 56. the right order of a confession did require, that after the Trinity the Church should be mentioned, as the house after the owner, the temple after God, and the city after the builder. Again the Creed is concluded with points of doctrine concerning the Church, because whosoever is out of it is also forth of the number of God's children: b Idem lib. 4. cap. 10. de symb. ad Catech. and he cannot have God for his father, which hath not the Church for his mother. Question is made what the words are which are to be supplied in this article, the holy Catholic Church, whether, I believe, or, I believe in: and ancient expositors have sufficiently determined the matter. One c Ruffin. in symb. saith, In these words in which is set forth our faith of the godhead, it is said, In God the father, in the son, and in the holy ghost: but in the rest where the speech is not of the godhead but of creatures and mysteries, the preposition In is not added that it should be, in the holy Church, but, that we should believe there is an an holy Church not as God, but as a company gathered to God. And men should believe that there is remission of sins, not, in the remission of sins: and they should believe the resurrection of the body, not, in the resurrection of the body: therefore by this preposition the Creator is distinguished from the creatures, and things pertaining to God from things pertaining to men. Another upon these words, Aug. tract. 29. in joh. This is the work of God that ye believe in him, saith, If ye believe in him, ye believe him; not if ye believe him, ye believe in him, for the devils believed God, but did not believe in him. Again of the Apostles, we may say, we believe Paul, but we do not believe in Paul: we believe Peter, but we believe not in Peter. For his faith that believeth in him which justifieth the ungodly, is imputed to him for righteousness. What is it therefore to believe in him? by believing to love and like, and as it were to pass into him, and to be incorporated into his members. Now the reasons which some Papists bring to the contrary to prove that we may believe in the creatures, and in the Church, are of no moment. First they allege the phrase of scripture, Exod. 14.31. They believed in God, and in Moses. 1. Sam. 27.12. And Achis believed in David. 2. Chron. 20.20. Believe in the Prophets and prosper. Answer. The Hebrew phrase in which the servile letter Beth is used, must not be translated with a preposition that ruleth an accuseth or ablative case, but with a dative case on this manner, Believe Moses, David, the Prophets: and it doth not import any affiance in the creature, but only a giving of credence by one man to another. Secondly they allege, that ancient fathers read the article on this manner, I believe in the holy Catholic Church. Answer. Epiphan. in Anchor. Indeed some have done so: but by this kind of speech they signified no more but thus much, that they believed that there was a Catholic Church. Thus having found what words are to be supplied, let us come to the meaning of the article. And that we may proceed in order, let us first of all see what the Church is. The Church is a peculiar company of men, predestinate to life everlasting and made one in Christ. First I say, it is a peculiar company of men, for Saint Peter saith, Ye are a chosen generation, 1. Pet. 2.9. a royal priesthood, an holy nation, and a peculiar people. He speaks indeed of the Church of God on earth, but his saying may be also extended to the whole Church of God, as well in heaven as in earth. Now because there can be no company unless it have a beginning & a cause whereby it is gathered: therefore I add further in the definition, predestinate to life everlasting. Noting thereby the ground and cause of the Catholic Church, namely God's eternal predestination to life everlasting: and to this purpose our Saviour Christ saith, Fear not little flock, for it is your father's will to give you the kingdom: Luk. 12.32. signifying thereby, that the first and principal cause of the Church, is the good pleasure of God whereby he hath before all works purposed to advance his elect to eternal salvation. Therefore one saith well, a Bernard. in Cant. only the elect are the Church of God. And further, because no company can continue and abide for ever, unless the members thereof be joined and coupled together by some bond, therefore I add in the last place, made one with Christ. This union maketh the Church to be the Church: and by it the members thereof, whether they be in heaven or in earth, are distinguished from all other companies whatsoever. Now this conjunction between Christ and the Church is avouched by Saint Paul when he saith, Christ is the head to his body, which is his Church: Col. 1.18. and when he ascribes the name of Christ not only to the person of the son but to the Church itself, as in the Epistle to the Galatians. To Abraham and his seed were the promises made: Gal. 16. he saith not, and to his seeds, as speaking of many, but, and unto his seed, as speaking of one, which is Christ: that is, not the redeemer alone, but also the Church redeemed. For Christ as he is man is not the only seed of Abraham. And this definition of the Church is almost in so many words set down in the Scriptures in that it is called the Family of God, partly in heaven, and partly in earth, named of Christ: Eph. 3.15. and it is also called the heavenly jerusalem, the mother of us all: and, the celestial jerusalem: and, Gal. 4.26. Heb. 12.22. the congregation of the first borne. Now for the better understanding of the nature, estate, and parts of the Church, two points among the rest must be considered; the efficient cause thereof, God's predestination; and the form, the mystical Union. In handling the doctrine of Predestination, my meaning is, only to stand on such points as are revealed in the word and necessary, tending to edification. And first I will show what is the truth, and secondly the contrary falsehood. In the truth I consider four things: I. what Predestination is: II. what is the order of it: III. what be the parts of it: FOUR what is the use. Predestination may thus be defined: It is a part of the counsel of God, whereby he hath before all times purposed in himself to show mercy on some men, and to pass by others, showing his justice on them for the manifestation of the glory of his own name. First, I say, it is a part of his counsel, because the counsel or decree of God, universally extends itself to all things that are: and Predestination is God's decree so far forth as it concerns the reasonable creatures, especially man. Now in every purpose or decree of God, three things must be considered; the beginning, the matter, the end. The beginning is the will of God whereby he willeth and appointeth the estate of his creatures: and it is the most absolute, supreme, and sovereign cause of all things that are, so far forth as they are: having nothing either above itself or out of itself, to be an impulsive cause to move or incline it; and to say otherwise, is to make the will of God to be no will. Indeed men's wills are moved & disposed by external causes, out of themselves borrowed from the things whereof deliberation is made, because they are to be ruled by equity and reason: and a man's bare will without reason is nothing. Now Gods will is not ruled by any other rule of reason or justice, but itself is an absolute rule both of justice and reason. A thing is not first of all reasonable & just, & then afterward willed by god: bu● it is first of all willed by God & thereupon it becomes reasonable and just. The manner of his purpose is a decreed manifestation of two of the most principal attributes of the godhead, mercy and justice: & that with a limitation or restraint of mercy to some of the creatures, & justice to some others, because it was his good will and pleasure. And we are not to imagine that this is a point of cruelty in God: for his very essence or nature is not justice alone, or mercy alone, but justice and mercy both together: and therefore to purpose the declaration of them both upon his creatures over whom he is a sovereign Lord; & that without other respects, upon his very will & pleasure is no point of injustice. The supreme end of the counsel of God is the manifestation of his own glory partly in his mercy, & partly in his justice. For in common equity, the end which he propounds unto himself of all his doings must be answerable to his nature, which is majesty & glory, & (as I have said) justice & mercy itself. And because Paul's disputation in the 9 to the Romans gives light & sufficient confirmation to this which I now teach, I will stand a little in opening & resolving of the same. Fron the 1. verse to the 6. he sets down his grief conceived for his brethren the jews, & therewithal▪ that it might not be thought that he spoke of malice, he doth only in close and obscure manner insinuate the Rejection of that nation. This done, in the 6. verse he answers a secret objection which might be made on this manner. If the jews be rejected then the word of God is of none effect: that is, than the covenant made with the forefathers is void, but the covenant can not be void, therefore the jews are not rejected. The assumption he takes for granted, and denies the consequence of the proposition. And the ground of his denial is, because there is a distinction between man and man even among the jews, whereby some are indeed in the covenant, some not. And this distinction is proved by 3. examples: the first in this ver. that of the children of jacob the common parent of all the jews, some are Israel, that is, truly in the covenant as jacob was: & some are not Israel. Now it might be further objected that the jews are not only the posterity of jacob, but the seed of Abraham in whom all nations of the earth are blessed: and therefore not to be rejected. And to this Paul answers vers. 7. alleging a second example of the distinction between man and man out of the family of Abraham in which some were indeed sons▪ some were not. For the proof of this, first he sets down the words of the text in Moses, In Isaac shall thy seed be called: & secondly makes an exposition of them with a collection on this manner. All they which are the sons of the promise are the seed of Abraham or the sons of god: but Isaac is a son of promise & not Ishmael: therefore Isaac is the seed of Abraham & heir of the blessing, & not Ishmael. The proposition is in the 8. ver. the assumption in the 9 ver. the conclusion in the 7. ver. Here mark, I. how he makes a double seed, one according to the flesh, the other spiritual: & two kind of sons, one of the flesh, the other the son of the promise or the son of God: for he puts the one for the other. II. that the distinction between Isaac & Ishmael whereby one is in the covenant of grace, the other not; stands not in their foreseen faith & unbelief, & the fruits of them: but in the purpose & will of God itself. For Isaac is called the child of promise, because by the virtue of it he was borne & believed & was adopted the child of God, & made heir of the covenant given to Abraham: & therefore consequently the right of adoption befell him by the mere good pleasure of God which is the first cause of our salvation, without respect of any thing in the person of Isaac. For what God by his promise brings to pass in time, that he most freely decreed before all times. Now considering the jews might say, that Ishmael was rejected because he was born of the handmaid Hagar, whereas they, for their parts descend of Abraham & Sara by Isaac the lawful son, Paul adds a third example of the distinction between man & man out of the family of Isaac in which jacob was a true son and heir of the promise, and Esau was not. Now the distinction of these two persons is propounded in the 10. ver. & confirmed v. 11▪ 12, 13. In which are set down 3. things. I. the time of this distinction▪ yer the children were born, & therefore when they had neither don good nor evil. And this circumstance is noted to show, that God was not moved by any prevision or preconsideration of jacobs' godliness and Esau's profaneness to prefer the one before the other. II. The end why the distinction was made at this time and not afterward when they were borne is, that the purpose of God which is according to his election might remain sure, not of works but by him that calleth: that is, that by this means it might appear, that when God receives any man into the covenant of eternal life, it proceeds not of any dignity in the man whom God calleth, but from his mercy & alone good pleasure, that his decree of saving the elect might remain firm and sure for ever. Hence it is manifest that there is an unchangeable decree of election of some men (for he that takes all and excepts none can not be said to choose) to salvation, depending upon the alone will of God: and therefore necessarily by the law of contraries, there is an opposite decree of reprobation: for in that God ordaineth some to eternal salvation, he testifies thereby, that his purpose is to pass by some without showing of mercy. III. The author of this distinction, God himself by his purpose before all times, which purpose he made manifest by testimony given to Rebecca, saying, The greater shall serve the younger: that is, the first borne and more excellent according to the flesh, shall lose his birthright & the blessing of his father, and in respect of title to the covenant, be subject to the younger. And because this testimony concerning the freedom and servitude of jacob and Esau might seem insufficient to prove the election of the first & the rejection of the second, therefore Paul adds a second testimony out of Malachi, I have loved jacob and hated Esau: that is, I have purposed to love jacob & to hate Esau. And these words no doubt, are alleged to expound the former place out of Moses, and show that the bondage of Esau was joined with the hatred of God, & the freedom of jacob with the love of God as tokens thereof. Against this received exposition of the former words which I have now propounded, sundry exceptions are made. First, that the prerogative of Isaac above Ishmael, & jacob above Esau, was only in temporary blessings in that God vouchsafed unto them the right of the land of Canaan. Ans. If these places are to be understood of temporal blessings & not spiritual, than the Apostle hath not fitly alleged the former examples, to prove the rejection of the jews from the Covenant. For though it be granted there be a difference between man and man, in respect of earthly blessings, yet doth it not follow that there shall be the same difference in things concerning the kingdom of heaven. If a father for some cause disinherit one or two of his children, it were absurd thereupon to conclude that he might therefore kill any of the rest. Again, the land of Canaan was not only an earthly inheritance, but also a pledge and figure unto our forefathers of a better inheritance in heaven: and therefore the excluding of Ishmael and Esau from the land of Canaan was a sign that they were excluded from the covenant of grace, and the right of eternal life. Some others say, that by jacob and Esau are not meant two persons, but the two nations of the Idumeans and the Israelites. Answer▪ It is a manifest untruth. For it was not possible for two nations to strive in the womb of Rebecca, unless we consider them as they were comprehended under there two heads, to wit, the very persons of jacob and Esau. And whereas they say that Esau in person never served jacob, but only in his posterity, the answer is, that jacobs' freedom and prerogatives were spiritual, and not temporal which by faith he saw a far off, but enjoyed not: Heb. 11.13. and therefore proportionally Esau was debased to the condition of a servant in respect of his younger brother; not so much in respect of his outward estate and condition, as in regard of the covenant made with his ancestors from which he was barred. And though it be granted that by jacob and Esau two nations and not two persons are to be understood, yet all comes to one head, for the receiving of the nation of the Israelites into the covenant, and the excluding of the nation of the Edomites both descending of jacob and ●sau, serve as well to prove Gods eternal election and reprobation, as the receiving and rejecting of one man. Others say that these words, I ha●e hated Esau, are thus to be understood; I have less loved Esau then jacob. But how then shall we say that Paul hath fitly alleged this text to prove the rejection of the jew from the favour of God and the Covenant of grace, considering that of men, whereof one is loved more of God, the other less; both may still remain in the Covenant. Lastly, it is alleged that the former exposition makes Ishmael and Esau damned persons. Answer. We must leave unto God all secret judgement of particular persons, and yet nevertheless Paul doth very fitly in there two persons, both descending of Abraham, and both circumcised; set forth examples of such as for all their outward prerogatives, are indeed barred from the covenant of life everlasting before God. And again the opposition made by Paul requires that the contrary to that which is spoken of Isaac and jacob, should be said of Ishmael and Esau. And there is nothing spoken of either of them in the Scriptures which argues the disposition of men ordained to eternal life. Ishmael is noted with the brand of a mocker, and Esau of a profane man. To proceed in the text, because the doctrine of Paul delivered in the former verses might seem strange unto the Romans, therefore in the 14. verse he lays down an objection, and answers the same. The objection is this: If God put distinction between man and man, without respect had to their persons, upon his own will and pleasure, than he is unjust: but he is not unjust: therefore he makes no such distinction. The answer is, God forbidden. Whereby he denies the consequence of the proposition, on this manner, Though God should elect some to salvation, and reject some others and that upon his will, yet were there no injustice with God. The reason of this answer follows in the 18. verse. God hath absolute power of will, whereby without being bound to any creature, he may and can first of all have mercy on whom he will, and secondly harden whom he wil For the proof of the first, that God hath mercy on whom he will, he lays down the testimony of Moses vers. 15. I will have mercy on him on whom I will show mercy, and I will have compassion on him on whom I will have compassion. And in vers. 16. makes his collection thence, that it [namely the purpose of God according to election v. 11.] is not in him that willeth or in him that runneth, but in God that showeth mercy. Whereby he teacheth that the free election of God in order goes before all things that may in time befall man: and that therefore neither the intentions and endeavours of the mind, nor the works of our life, which are the effects of election, can be the impulsive causes to move God to choose us to salvation. The second, that God hardens whom he will, is confirmed and made plain by the testimony of Scripture concerning Pharaoh, vers. 17. In the 19 vers. there follows an other objection, arising out of the answer to the former, on this manner: If God will have some to be hardened and rejected, and his will can not be resisted, then with no justice can he punish them that are necessarily subject to his decree: but God will have some to be hardened and rejected, and his will can not be resisted: therefore (saith the adversary) with no justice can he punish man that is necessarily subject to his decree. Here mark, that if there had been an universal election of all men, and if men had been elected or rejected according as God did foresee that they would believe or not believe, the occasion of this objection had been cut off. But let us come to Paul's answer. In the 20. verse he takes the assumption for granted, that some are rejected because God will: and that the will, that is, the decree of God can not be resisted: A child might answer this objection, if men were elect and refused for their foreseen faith and unbelief. and only denies the coherence of the preposition, checking the malapert pride of the adversary, and showing that the making of this wicked and blasphemous collection against the will of God, is as if a man should sue God at the law, and bring him as it were to the bar, and plead against him as his equal, whereas indeed the creature is nothing to the creator, and is absolutely to submit itself to his will in all things. In vers. 21. he proceeds to a second answer, showing that Gods will is not to be blamed, because by his absolute sovereignty and the right of creation he hath power to choose men, or to reject and harden them. And where there is right and power to do a thing, the will of the doer is not to be blamed. Now that God hath this right and power over his creature, it is proved by a comparison from the less to the greater, on this manner. The potter hath power over the clay to make of the same lump one vessel to honour, and an other to dishonour: therefore may God much more make some vessels of mercy and some vessels of wrath prepared to destruction. The first part of the comparison is vers. 21. the second part vers. 22, 23. And lest any man should think that God makes vessels of honour and dishonour without sufficient and just cause in himself, as the potter may do: therefore he sets down ends of the will of God: he makes vessels of dishonour to show his wrath, and to make manifest his power: and again he condemns no man till he have suffered him with long patience. And he makes vessels of honour that he might declare the riches of his glory upon them. Hence it is manifest, first that the end of predestination is the glory of God, which is to be made manifest partly in his justice and partly in his mercy: secondly that men are not elected or refused of God, for their foreseen corruptions or virtues: for then Paul would not have said that God made vessels of dishonour, but that being so already, he left them in their dishonour. Thus from the 6. verse of this chapter to the 24. Paul hath described unto us the doctrine of God's eternal predestination, and that by the judgement a August. Beda. Tho. Aquinas on this place. of Divines in all ages. The order of God's predestination is this. It is the property of the reasonable creature to conceive one thing after an other, whereas God conceives all things at once with one act of understanding, and all things both past and to come are present with him; and therefore in his eternal counsel he decrees not one thing after an other, but all things at once. Nevertheless for our understandings sake, we may distinguish the counsel of God concerning man into two acts or degrees: the first is, the purpose of God in himself, in which he determines what he will do, and the end of all his doings: and that is to create all things, specially man for his own glory, partly by showing on some men his mercy, and upon others his justice. The second is an other purpose whereby he decrees the execution of the former, and lays down means of accomplishing the end thereof. These two acts of the counsel of God, are not to be severed in any wise, nor confounded, but distinctly considered with some difference. For in the first God decrees some men to honour, and some to dishonour, and this man more than that, upon his will and pleasure, and there is no other cause hereof known to us. In the second, known and manifest causes are set down of the execution of the former decree. For no man is actually condemned but for their sins, and no man is actually saved but for the merit of Christ. Furthermore this latter act of the counsel of God, must be conceived of us in the second place and not in the first. For evermore the first thing to be intended is the end itself, and then afterward the subordinate means and causes whereby the end is accomplished. Again the second act of God's counsel contains two other; one which sets down the preparation of the means whereby God's Predestination gins to come in execution; and they are two, the creation of man righteous after the image of God, the voluntary fall of Adam and withal the shutting up of all men under damnation: the other appoints the applying of the several means to the persons of men, that God's decree which was set down before all times, may in time be fully accomplished; as shall afterward in particular appear. Predestination hath two parts, the Decree of Election, the Decree of Reprobation or No-election. This division is plain by that which hath been said out of the 9 cap. to the Rom. and it may be further confirmed by other testimonies. Of some it is said, that the Lord knows who are his: and of some others, 2. Tim. 2.19. Christ shall say in the day of judgement, I never knew you. Math. 7.23. Act. 13.48. In the Acts it is said, that as many of the Gentiles as were ordained to life everlasting believed. And Jude saith of false prophets, that they were ordained to condemnation. jud. 4. In handling the decree of Election, I will consider three things: I. what Election is: II. the execution thereof: III. the knowledge of particular Election. For the first, God's Election is a decree in which according to the good pleasure of his will, he hath certainly chosen some men to life eternal in Christ for the praise of the glory of his grace. This is the same which Paul saith to the Ephesians, Eph. 1.4, 5. God hath chosen us in Christ before the foundation of the world, that we should be holy and without blame before him in love: who hath predestinate us to be adopted through Jesus Christ unto himself, according to the good pleasure of his will. Now that we may the better conceive this doctrine, let us come to a consideration of the several points thereof. First of all I say Election is God's decree. For there is nothing in the world that comes to pas●e either universally or particularly, without the eternal & unchangeable decree of God. And therefore whereas men are actually chosen, & brought to life everlasting, it is because God did purpose with himself and decree the same before all worlds. Now touching the decree itself, six things are to be observed. The first, what was the motive or impulsive cause that moved God to decree the salvation of any man. Answer. The good pleasure of God. For Paul saith, he will have mercy on whom he will have mercy: Rom. 8.18. Eph. 1.5. and, he hath predestinate us according to the good pleasure of God. As for the opinion of them that say, that foreseen faith and good works are the cause that moved God to choose men to salvation, it is frivolous. For faith and good works are the fruits and effects of God's election. Paul saith, he hath chosen us, not because he did foresee that we would become holy, Eph. 1.4. but that we might be holy. And, he hath predestinate us to adoption. Which is all one as if he had said, joh. 1.12. he hath predestinate us to believe, because adoption comes by believing. Now if men are elected that they might believe, then are they not elected because they would believe. For it can not be that one thing should be both the cause & the effect of another. The second point is, that God's Election is unchangeable; so as they which are indeed chosen to salvation can not perish, but shall without fail attain to life everlasting. Rom. 9.11. Paul takes it for a conclusion, that the purpose of God according to Election must remain firm and sure; and again, that the gifts and calling of God are without repentance. and 11.29. And Samuel saith, The strength of Israel will not lie or repent. For he is not a man that he should repent. 1. Sam. 15.29. Such as God's nature is, such is his will and counsel: but his nature is unchangeable, I am jehovah, saith he, and I change not: therefore his will likewise and his counsels be unchangeable. Mal. 3.6. And therefore whensoever the spirit of God shall testify unto our spirits, that we are justified in Christ, and chosen to salvation, it must be a means to comfort us, and to 'stablish our hearts in the love of God. As for the opinion of them that say, the Elect may fall from grace and be damned, it is full of hellish discomfort, and no doubt from the devil. And the reasons commonly alleged for this purpose, are of no moment, as may appear by the scanning of them. First they object that the Churches of the Ephesians, Thessalonians, Eph. 1.4. 1. These. 1.4. 1. Pet. 1. ●. and the dispersed jews are all called Elect by the Apostles themselves, yet sundry of them afterward fell away. Answ. I. There are two kinds of judgement to be given of men, the judgement of certainty, & the judgement of charity. By the first indeed is given an infallible determination of any man's Election; but it belongs unto God principally & properly▪ & to men but in part, namely so farforth as God shall reveal the estate of one man unto an other. Now the judgement of charity belongs unto all men; & by it, leaving all secret judgements unto God, we are charitably to think that all those that live in the Church of God, professing themselves to be members of Christ, are indeed elect to salvation, till God make manifest otherwise. And on this manner, & not otherwise do the Apostles call whole churches elect. II. they are called elect of the principal part, and not because every member thereof was indeed elect; as it called an heap of corn though the bigger part be chaff. Secondly it is alleged, that David prays that his enemies may be blotted out of the book of life, which is the Election of God, Psal. 69.28. Exod. 32.32 Rom. 9.3. and that Moses and Paul did the like against themselves. Answer. David's enemies had not their names written in the book of life, but only in the judgement of men. Thus judas so long as he was one of the disciples of Christ, was accounted as one having his name written in heaven. Now hence it follows, that men's names are blotted out of God's book, when it is made clear and manifest unto the world, that they were never indeed written there. And where Moses saith, forgive them this sin: if not, blot me out of thy book: and Paul, I could wish to be accursed, etc. there meaning was, not to signify that men elected to salvation may become reprobates: only they testify their zealous affections, that they could be content to be deprived of their own salvation, rather than the whole body of the people should perish, and God lose his glory. As for that which Christ saith, Have I not chosen you twelve, and one of you is a devil, is to be understood not of election to salvation, joh. 6.70. but of election to office of an Apostle; which is temporary and changeable. The third point is, that there is an actual election made in time, being indeed a fruit of God's decree, and answerable unto it, and therefore I added in the description these words, whereby he hath chosen some men. All men by nature are sinners, and children of wrath, shut up under one and the same estate of condemnation. And actual election is, when it pleaseth God to ●euer and single out some men above the rest, out of this wretched estate of the wicked world, and to bring them to the kingdom of his own son. Thus Christ saith of his own disciples, I have chosen you out of the world. joh. 15.19. The fourth point is, the actual or real foundation of God's Election, and that is Christ: and therefore we are said to be chosen to salvation in Christ. He must be considered two ways: Eph. 1.4. as he is God, we are predestinate of him, even as we are predestinate of the father and the H. Ghost. As he is our Mediator, we are predestinate in him. For when God with himself had decreed to manifest his glory in saving some men by his mercy, he ordained further the creation of man in his own image, yet so as by his own fall he should enfold himself and all his posterity under damnation: this done, he also decreed that the Word should be incarnate actually, to redeem those out of the former misery, whom he had ordained to salvation. Christ therefore himself was first of all predestinate as he was to be our head, and as Peter saith, 1. Pet. 1.20. August. de praedest. sanct. c. 15. ordained before all worlds; and we secondly predestinate in him, because God ordained that the Execution of man's Election should be in him. Here if any demand, how we may be assured that Christ in his Passion stood in our room and stead, the resolution will be easy, if we consider that he was ordained in the eternal counsel of God, to be our surety and pledge, and to be a public person to represent all the Elect in his obedience and sufferings: and therefore it is that Peter saith, that he was delivered by the foreknowledge and determinate counsel of God. And Paul, Act. 2.23. 2. Tim. 1.9. that grace was given unto us through Christ jesus before the world was. The fifth point is, concerning the number of the Elect. And that I expressed in these words, hath chosen some men to salvation. If God should decree to communicate his glory and his mercy to all and every man, there could be no Election. For he that takes all, can not be said to choose. Therefore Christ saith, Many are called, but few are chosen. Some make this question, how great the number of the Elect is, and the answer may be this, that the Elect considered in themselves be innumerable, but considered in comparison to the whole world, they are but few. Hence it follows necessarily, that saving grace is not universal, but indefinite or particular, unless we will against common reason make the streams more large and plentiful than the very fountain itself. And this must excite us above all things in the world to labour to have fellowship with Christ, and to be partakers of the special mercy of God in him, yea to have the same sealed up in our hearts. Benefits common to all, as the light of the sun, etc. are not regarded of any. Things common to few, though they be but temporal blessings, are sought for of all. God gives not riches to all men, but to some more, to some less, to some none. And hereupon how do men like drudge's toil in the world from day to day, and from year to year, to enrich themselves. Therefore much more ought men to seek for grace in Christ, considering it is not common to all. We must not content ourselves to say, God is merciful, but we must go further, and labour for a certificate in the conscience, that we may be able to say that God is indeed merciful to us. When the Disciples would have known how many should be saved, he omitting the question, answers thus, Strive to enter in at the strait gate. The last point is, the end of God's Election, and that is the manifesting of the praise and excellency of the glorious grace of God. Eph. 1.5. Thus having seen what Election is, let us now come to the Execution thereof. Of which remember this rule, Men predestinate to the end, that is, eternal life, are also predestinate to the subordinate means, whereby they come to eternal life: and these are vocation, justification, sanctification, glorification. For the first, he that is predestinate to salvation, is also predestinate to be called, as Paul saith, Whom he hath predestinate, them also he calleth. Secondly, Rom. 8.30. whom God calleth, they also were predestinate to believe; therefore saving faith is called the faith of the elect. Tit. 1.1. Act. 13.48. And in the Acts, as many as were ordained to life everlasting believed. Thirdly, whom God hath predestinate to life, them he justifieth, as Paul saith, whom he hath predestinate, Rom. 8.30. them he calleth, and whom he calleth, them he justifieth. Fourthly, whom he hath predestinate to life, them he hath predestinate to sanctification and holiness of life, ●. Pet. 2.2. as Peter saith, that the jews were Elect according to the foreknowledge of God the father unto sanctification of the spirit. Lastly, they that are predestinate to life, are also predestinate to obedience, as Paul saith to the Ephesians, Ye are the workmanship of God, created in Christ jesus unto good works, Eph. 2.10. which God hath ordained that we should walk in them. This rule being the truth of God must be observed: for it hath special use. First of all it serves to stop the mouths of ungodly and profane men. They use to bolster up themselves in their sins by reasoning on this manner: If I be predestinate to eternal life, I shall be saved whatsoever come of it, and how wickedly and lewdly soever I live: I will therefore live as I list, and follow the swinge of mine own will. But, alas, like blind biards they think they are in the way, but they rush their heads against the wall, and far deceive themselves. For the case stands thus: all men that are ordained to salvation, are likewise ordained in the counsel of God to use all the good means whereby they may come to salvation. And therefore all the Elect that live in this world shall be called, justified, sanctified, and lead their lives in all good conscience before God & men: and they that live and continue in their own wicked ways disputing on this manner, If I be ordained to salvation, I shall not be damned, overshut themselves, and as much as they can plunge themselves headlong into the very pit of hell. And for a man to live and die in his sins, let the world dispute as they will, it is an unfallible sign of one ordained to damnation. Secondly, there be others that think that the preaching of the word, the administration of the Sacraments, admonitions, exhortations, laws, good orders, and all such good means are needless, because God's counsels be unchangeable: if a man shall be condemned, nothing shall help: if a man be saved, nothing shall hinder. But we must still for our part remember that God doth not only ordain the end, but also the means whereby the end is compassed: and therefore the very use of all prescribed means is necessary. And for this cause we must be admonished with diligence to labour and use all good means, that we may be called by the ministery of the Gospel, and justified, and sanctified, and at length glorified. If a king should give unto one of his subjects a princely palace, upon condition that he shall go unto it in the way which he shall prescribe, oh what pains would the man take to know the way, and afterward to keep & continue in it: but behold, the kingdom of heaven is the most glorious and royal palace that ever was; and God hath bestowed the same on his Elect: and he requires nothing at their hands but that they would turn their faces from this world, and walk unto it in the way which he hath chalked forth unto them in his word. Therefore if we would have life everlasting, we must come forth of the broad way that leads to destruction, and enter into the strait way that leads to eternal life. We must acquaint ourselves with the guides which are the ministers of the word, that will cry unto us, here is the way walk ye in it, when we go to the right hand or to the left. Vocation, justification, sanctification, repentance, new-obedience, are the marks of the way, and we must pass by them all: and thus our weary souls weltering a while in this world, shall at length be received into everlasting happiness. Touching the knowledge of particular Election, two special points are to be scanned: I. whether a man may know his Election: II. how it may be known. For the first, Papists are of mind that no man can certainly know his own Election unless he be certified thereof by some special revelation from God: but the thing is false and erroneous which they say. When the Disciples of our Saviour Christ returned from preaching, and showed what wonders they had done, and how devils were subject unto them, the text saith they rejoiced greatly. But Christ answered them again, saying, In this rejoice not, Luk. 10.20. but rather rejoice that your names are written in heaven. Whereby he signifies that men may attain to a certain knowledge of their own Election. For we can not, neither do we rejoice in things either unknown or uncertain. Saint Peter saith, Give all diligence to make your election sure. 2. Pet. ●. 10. Now in vain were it to use diligence if the assurance of Election could not be compassed without an extraordinary revelation. And Paul saith to the Corinthians, Prove yourselves whether ye be in the faith or not. Where he takes it for granted, 2. Cor. 13.5. that he which hath faith may know that he hath faith, and therefore may also know his Election: because saving faith is an unfallible mark of Election. The second point is, how any man may come to know his own Election. And there be two ways of knowing it. The one is by ascending up as it were into heaven, there to search the counsel of God, and afterward to come down to ourselves. The second by descending into our own hearts to go up from ourselves, as it were by jacobs' ladder, to Gods eternal counsel. The first way is dangerous, and not to be attempted. For the ways of God are unsearchable and past finding out. The second way alone is to be followed, which teacheth us by signs and testimonies in ourselves, to gather what was the eternal counsel of God concerning our salvation. And these testimonies are two: the testimony of God's spirit, and the testimony of our spirits, as Paul saith, the spirit of God beareth witness together with our spirits, that we are the sons of God. Rom. 8.16. Touching the testimony of God's spirit, two questions may be demanded. The first is, by what means the spirit of God giveth a particular testimony in a man's conscience of his adoption. Answer. It is not done by any extraordinary revelation, or enthusiasm, that is, an ordinary revelation without the word; but by an application of the promises of the Gospel in the form of a practical syllogism, on this manner: Whosoever believeth in Christ, is chosen to life everlasting. This proposition is set down in the word of God, and it is further propounded, opened, and applied to all that be in the Church of God by the ministers of the Gospel set apart for this end. Now while the hearers of God's word give themselves to meditate and consider of the same promise, comes the spirit of God and enlightens the eyes, and opens the heart, and gives them power both to will to believe, & to believe indeed: so as a man shall with freedom of spirit, make an assumption and say, but I believe in Christ, I renounce myself, all my joy and comfort is in him. Flesh and blood cannot say this, it is the operation of the holy Ghost. And hence ariseth the blessed conclusion which is the testimony of the spirit, therefore I am the child of God. The second question is, how a man may discern between the illusion of the devil, and the testimony of the spirit. For as there is a certain persuasion of God's favour from God's spirit; so there be sleights and frauds of the devil, whereby he flatters and soothes men in their sins: and there is in all men natural presumption in show like faith, indeed no faith. And this counterfeit mocke-faith is far more common in the world then true faith is. Take a view hereof in our ignorant and careless people; ask any of them whether he be certain of his salvation or no, he will without any bones making protest that he is fully persuaded and assured of his salvation in Christ: that if there be but one man in a country to be saved, it is he: that he hath served God always, & done no man hurt: that he hath evermore believed, and that he would not for all the world so much as doubt of his salvation. These and such like presumptuous conceits in blind and ignorant persons, run for currant faith in the world. Now the true testimony of the spirit is discerned from natural presumption, and all illusions of the devil by two effects and fruits thereof, noted by Paul in that he saith, that the spirit makes us cry Abba, that is father. The first is, to pray so earnestly with groans and sighs, as though a man would even fill heaven and earth with the cry not of his lips, but of his heart, touched with sense and feeling of his manifold sins and offences. And this indeed is a special and principal note of the spirit of adoption. Now look upon the lose and careless man, that thinks himself so filled with the persuasion of the love and favour of God, ye shall find that he very seldom or never prays: and when he doth, it is nothing else but a mumbling over the Lord's prayer, the Creed, and the ten Commandments for fashions sake. Which argues plainly that the persuasion which he hath of God's mercy, is of the flesh and not of the spirit. The second fruit is, the affection of a dutiful child to God a most loving father: and this affection makes a man stand in fear of the majesty of God wheresoever he is, and to make conscience of every evil way. Now those that are carried away with presumption, so soon as any occasion is given, they fall strait into sin without mislike or stay, as fire burns with speed when dry wood is laid unto it. In a word, where the testimony of the spirit is truly wrought, there be many other graces of the spirit joined therewith, as when one branch in a tree buddeth the rest bud also. The testimony of our spirit is the testimony of the heart and conscience, purified and sanctified in the blood of Christ. And it testifieth two ways, by inward tokens in itself, by outward fruits. Inward tokens are certain special graces of God imprinted in the spirit, whereby a man may certainly be assured of his adoption. These tokens are of two sorts, they either respect our sins, or God's mercy in Christ. The first are in respect of sins past, present, or to come. The sign in the spirit which concerneth sins past, is godly sorrow, which I may term a beginning and mother grace of many other gifts and graces of God. 2. Cor. 7.10. It is a kind of grief conceived in heart in respect of God. And the nature of it may the better be conceived, if we compare it with the contrary. Worldly sorrow springs of sin, and it is nothing else but the horror of conscience, and the apprehension of the wrath of God for the same: now godly sorrow, it may indeed be occasioned by our sins, but it springs properly of the apprehension of the grace and goodness of God. Worldly sorrow is a grief for sin only in respect of the punishment: godly sorrow is a lively touch and grief of heart for sin because it is sin, though there were no punishment for it. Now that no man may deceive himself in judging of this sorrow, the holy Ghost hath set down seven fruits or signs thereof whereby it may be discerned. The first is Care to leave all our sins past: the second is Apology whereby a man is moved and carried to accuse and condemn himself for his sins past, both before God and men. The third is indignation, whereby a man is exceedingly angry with himself for his offences. The fourth is fear, lest he fall into his former sins again. The 5. is desire, whereby he craveth strength and assistance, that his sins take not hold on him as before. The sixth is zeal, in the performance of all good duties contrary to his special sins. The seventh is revenge, whereby he subdues his body lest it should hereafter be an instrument of sin as it hath been in former time. Now when any man shall feel these fruits in himself, he hath no doubt the godly sorrow which here we speak of. The token which is in regard of sins present, is the combat between the flesh and the spirit, Gal 5.17. proper to them that are regenerate, who are partly flesh and partly spirit. It is not the check of conscience which all men find in themselves both good and bad, so oft as they offend God: but it is a fight and striving of the mind, will, and affections with themselves, whereby so farforth as they are renewed, they carry the man one way, and as they still remain corrupt, they carry him flat contrary. Men having the disease called Ephialies, when they are half asleep feel as it were some weighty thing lying upon their breasts, and holding them down: now lying in this case, they strive with their hands and feet and with all the might they have to raise up themselves, and to remove the weight▪ and cannot. Behold here a lively resemblance of this combat. The flesh which is the inborn corruption of man's nature, lies upon the hearts of the children of God, and presseth them down as if it were the very weight of a mountain: now they, according to the measure of grace received, strive to raise up themselves from under this burden, & to do such things as are acceptable to God; but can not as they would. The token that respects sin to come is Care to prevent it. That this is the mark of God's children, appeareth by the saying of john, He that is borne of God sinneth not, 1. joh. 5. 1●. but keepeth himself that the wicked one touch him not. And this care shows itself not only in ordering the outward actions, but even in the very thoughts of the heart. For where the Gospel is of force it brings every thought into captivity to the obedience of Christ: and the Apostles rule is followed, 2. Cor. 10.5. whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are honest, Philip. 4.8. etc. think on these things. The tokens which concern God's mercy are especially two. The first is, when a man feels himself distressed with the burden of his sins, or when he apprehends the heavy displeasure of God in his conscience for them: then further to feel how he stands in need of Christ, & withal hearty to desire, yea to hunger and thirst after reconciliation with God in the merit of Christ, and that above all other things in the world. To all such Christ hath made most sweet and comfortable promises, which can appertain to none but to the elect. joh. 7.37. If any man thirst, let him come to me and drink: he that believeth in me, as saith the scripture, out of his belly shall flow rivers of water of life. Rev. 21.6. I will give unto him which is a thirst of the well of the water of life freely. Now if he that thirsteth drink of these waters, mark what followeth, joh. 4.14. Whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him, shall never be more a thirst: but the water that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water springing up unto everlasting life. The second is a strange affection wrought in the heart by the spirit of God, whereby a man doth so esteem & value, and as it were, set so high a price on Christ & his righteousness, that he accounts even the most precious things that are▪ to be but as dung in regard thereof. This affection was in Paul, Phil. 3.8. Mat. 13. 4●. and it is expressed in the parable in which after a man hath found a treasure, he first hides it, and the sells all he hath and makes a purchase of the field where it is. Now every man will say of himself, that he is thus affected to Christ, and that he more highly esteems the least drop of his blood, than all things in the world beside: whereas indeed most men are of Esau's mind, rather desiring the red broth then Isaaks blessing, and of the same affection with the Israelites which liked better the onions and flesh pots of Egypt, than the blessings of God in the land of promise. Therefore that no man may deceive himself, this affection may be discerned by two signs. The first is to love and like a christian man because he is a Christian. For he that doth aright esteem of Christ, doth in like manner esteem of the members of Christ. And of this very thing our Saviour Christ saith, He that receiveth a Prophet in the name of a prophet, Mat. 10.41. shall receive a prophets reward, and he that receives a righteous man in the name of a righteous man, shall receive the reward of a righteous man. And Saint john saith, Hereby we know that we are translated from death to life, because we love the brethren: that is, such as are members because they are so. The second sign of this affection is a love and desire to the coming of Christ, whether it be by death unto any man particularly, or by the last judgement universally, and that for this end that there may be a full participation of fellowship with Christ. And that this very love is a note of adoption, it appears by that which S. Paul saith, that the crown of righteousness is laid up for all them that love the appearing of Christ. 2. Tim. 4.8. The outward token of adoption is New-obedience, whereby a man endeavours to obey God's commandments in his life and conversation: 1. joh. 2.3. as S. john saith, Hereby we are sure that we know him, if we keep his commandments. Now this obedience must not be judged by the rigour of the moral la, for than it should be no token of grace, but rather a means of damnation: but it must be esteemed and considered as it is in the acceptation of God, who spares them that fear him as a father spares an obedient son, Mal. 3.17. Si quod vis non potes deus factum compu●at. August. esteeming things done not by the effect and absolute doing of them, but by the affection of the doer. And yet lest any man should hear be deceived, we must know that the obedience, which is an infallible mark of the child of god, must be thus qualified. First of all it must not be done unto some few of God's commandments, but unto them all without exception. Herod heard john Baptist willingly, & did many things: and judas had excellent things in him, as appears by this, that he was content to leave all and to follow Christ, and he preached the Gospel of the kingdom in jury as well as the rest: yet alas, all this was nothing: for the one could not abide to become obedient to the 7. commandment in leaving his brother Philip's wife; and the other would not leave his covetousness to die for it. Upright & sincere obedience doth enlarge itself to all the commandments, as David saith, I shall not be confounded, when I have respect to all thy commandments. Psal. 119. ●▪ jam. 2.10. And S. james saith, he which faileth in one law is guilty of all: that is, the obedience to many commandments is indeed before god no obedience, but a flat sin if a man wittingly and willingly fail in any one thing. He that reputes of one sin truly, doth repent of all: & he that lives but in one known sin without repentance, though he pretend never so much reformation of life, indeed reputes of no sin. Secondly this obedience must extend itself to the whole course of a man's life after his conversion and repentance. We must not judge of a man by an action or two, but by the tenor of his life. Such as the course of a man's life is, such is the man: though he, through the corruption of his nature fail in this or that particular action, yet doth it not prejudice his estate before God, so be it he renew his repentance for his several slips and falls, not lying in any sin; and withal from year to year walk unblameable before God & men. S. Paul saith, The foundation of God remaineth sure: the Lord knows who are his. Now some might hereupon say, it is true indeed, 2. Tim. 2.19. god knows who are his, but how may I be assured in myself that I am his? to this demand as I take it, Paul answers in the next words, Let every one that calleth on the name of the Lord depart from iniquity: that is, let men invocate the name of God, praying seriously for things whereof they stand in need, withal giving thanks, & departing from all their former sins, and this shall be unto them an infallible token that they are in the election of God. Thirdly in outward obedience it is required that it proceed from the whole man: 1. Thess. 3.23. as regeneration which is the cause of it, is through the whole man in body, soul, and spirit. Again, obedience is the fruit of love, and love is from the pure heart, the good conscience, and faith unfeigned. Thus we have heard the testimonies and tokens whereby a man may be certified in his conscience that be was chosen to salvation before all worlds: If any desire further resolution in this point, let them meditate upon the 15. Psal. and the first Epistle of Saint john, being parcels of scripture penned by the holy ghost for this end. Here some will demand how a man may be assured of his adoption if he want the testimony of the spirit to certify him thereof. Answer. Fire is known to be no painted but a true fire by two notes; by heat, and by the flame: now if the case fall out that the fire want a flame, it is still known to be fire by the heat. In like manner, as I have said, there be two witnesses of our adoption, God's spirit, & our spirit: now if it fall out that a man want the principal, which is the spirit of adoption, he must then have recourse to the second witness, and search out in himself the signs and tokens of the sanctification of his own spirit, by which he may certainly assure himself of his adoption, as we know fire to be fire by the heat though it want a flame. Again it may be demanded on this manner: how if it come to pass that after inquiry, we find but few signs of sanctification in ourselves. Answer. In this case we are to have recourse to the least measure of grace, less than which, there is no saving grace, and it stands in two things: an hearty disliking of our sins because they are sins, & a desire of reconciliation with God in Christ for them all: & these are tokens of adoption, if they be sound wrought in the heart, though all other tokens for the present seem to be wanting. If any shall say, that a wicked man may have this desire, as Balaam, who desired to die the death of the righteous: the answer is, that Balaam indeed desired to die as the righteous man doth, but he could not abide to live as the righteous: he desired the end, but not the proper subordinate means which tend unto the end; as vocation, justification, sanctification, repentance, Bernard. Look pag. 12. etc. the first is the work of nature, the second is the work of grace. Now I speak not this to make men secure and to content themselves with these small beginnings of grace, but only to show how any may assure themselves that they are at the least babes in Christ: adding this withal, that they which have no more but these small beginnings must be careful to increase them, because he which goes not forward goes backward. Lastly, it may be demanded what a man should do if he want both the testimony of God's spirit and his own spirit, and have no means in the world of assurance. Answer. He must not utterly despair, but be resolved of this, that though he want assurance now, yet he may obtain the same hereafter. And such must be advertised to hear the word of God preached: and being outwardly of the Church, to receive the sacraments. When we have care to come into the lords vineyard and to converse about the winepress, we shall find the sweet juice of heavenly grace pressed forth unto us plentifully by the word and sacraments, to the comfort of our consciences concerning God's election. This one mercy that God by these means in some part reveals his mercy, is unspeakable. When sickness or the day of death comes, the dearest servants of God, it may be must encounter with the temptations of the devil, and wrestle in conscience with the wrath and displeasure of God, as for life & death: & no man knows how terrible these things are but those which have felt them. Now when men walk thus through the valley of the shadow of death, unless God should as it were, open heaven, & stream down unto us in this world some lightsome beams of his love in Christ by the operation of his spirit, miserable were the case even of the righteous. Thus much of Election: now follows Reprobation; in handling whereof we are to observe three things. I. what it is. II. how God doth execute this decree. III. how a man may judge of the same. For the first, Reprobation is God's decree, in which because it so pleased him, he hath purposed to refuse some men by means of Adam's fall and their own corruptions, for the manifestation of his justice. First I say, it is a decree, & that is evident thus. If there be an eternal decree of God, whereby he chooseth some men, than there must needs be another decree whereby he doth pass by others & refuse them. For election always implies a refusal. Again what God doth in time, that he decreed to do before time: as the case falls out even with men of mean wisdom, who first of all intent with themselves the things to be done and after do them. But God in time refuseth some men as the scripture testifieth, and it appeareth to be true by the event. Therefore God before all worlds decreed the rejecting of some men. Now in this decree 4. points are to be considered. The first is the matter or object thereof, which is the thing decreed, namely the rejection of some men or the manifestation of his justice upon them. This may seem strange to man's reason, but here we must with all submission strike our topsails, for the word of God saith as much in plain terms. The Apostle Jude speaking of false Prophets saith, that they were of old ordained to this damnation. jud. 4. Rom. 9.22. 2. Cor. 4.3. 2. Th. 2.9, 13 And Paul saith in emphatical terms, that God makes vessels of wrath prepared to destruction: and that some are rejected, whom he opposeth to them which are elected to salvation. The second point is the impulsive cause that moved God to set down this decree concerning his creature, and that was nothing out of himself, but his very will and pleasure. He hardened Pharaoh with final hardness of heart because he would: and therefore he decreed to do so because he would. And our Saviour Christ saith, I thank thee, O father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and men of understanding, Mat. 11.25. and hast opened them unto babes. Vers. 26. But upon what cause did God so? It follows in the next words, It is so, O father, because thy good pleasure is such. And if it be in the power and liberty of a man to kill an ox or a sheep for his use, to hunt and kill the hare and partridge for his pleasure: then much more without injustice may it be in the will and liberty of the creator ●o refuse and forsake his creature for his glory. Nay it stands more with equity a thousand fold that all the creatures in heaven and earth should jointly serve to set forth the glory and majesty of God the creator in their eternal destruction, than the striking of a fly or the kill of a flea should serve for the dignity of all men in the world. For all this, it is thought by very many to be very hard to ascribe unto God that is full of bounty and mercy such a decree, & that upon his very will: but let us see their reasons. First of all they say it is a point of cruelty for God to purpose to create a great part of the world to damnation in hell fire: the answer is, that by the virtue of this decree God can not be said to create any man to damnation, but to the manifestation of his justice and glory in his due & deserved damnation: and the doing of this is absolute justice. Secondly it is alleged that by this means God shall hate his own creature, and that before it is: but it is an untruth. We must distinguish between God's purpose to hate and actual hating. Now indeed God before all worlds did purpose to hate some creatures: and that justly so far forth as his hating of them will serve for the manifestation of his justice: but he neither hates them indeed nor loves them before they are: and therefore actual hatred comes not in till after the creation. Whom God hath decreed to love, them when they are once created, he gins to love in Christ with actual love: & whom he hath decreed to hate, them being once created, he hates in Adam with actual hatred. Thirdly it is objected, that by this doctrine god shallbe the author of sin, for he which ordains to the end ordains to the means of the end▪ but God ordains men to the end that is the damnation: therefore he ordains them to the means thereof, that is, sin. Ans. The proposition being thus understood, he which ordains a man to an end, in the same order & manner ordains him to the means, is false. For one may be ordained to the end simply, the end being simply good: and yet not be simply ordained to the means, because they may be evil in themselves, and only good in part, namely so far forth as they have respect of goodness in the mind of the ordainer. Secondly, the assumption is false: for the supreme end of God's counsel is not damnation, but the declaration of his justice in the just destruction of the creature: neither doth God decree man's damnation as it is damnation, that is, the ruin of man and the putting of him forth to perishment, but as it is a real execution of justice. Thirdly we must make distinction between sin itself & the permission thereof, and between the Decree of rejection, and Actual damnation: now the permission of sin and not sin itself properly is the subordinate means of the decree of Rejection. For when God had decreed to refuse some men, he withal decreed the permission of sin, to which permission men were ordained: and sin itself is no effect, but only the consequent of the decree: yet so, as it is not only the antecedent, but also the efficient and meritorious cause of actual damnation. The third point is the real foundation of the execution of this decree, which is condemnation; and that is the voluntary fall of Adam and of all his posterity in him with the fruit thereof, the general corruption of man's nature. For howsoever God hath purposed to refuse men because it so pleased him, yet when his purpose comes to execution he condemns no man but for his sins: and sin though it were not in the counsel of God an impulsive cause that moved him to purpose a refusal, yet was it a subordinate means of damnation: God in wonderful wisdom ordering and disposing the execution of this decree, so as the whole blame and fault of man's destruction should be in himself. And therefore the Lord in the Prophet Ose saith, One hath destroyed thee, but I will help thee: that is, salvation is of God, Hos. 13.9. & the condemnation of men is from themselves. Now whereas many depraving our doctrine say, that we ascribe unto God an absolute decree in which he doth absolutely ordain men to damnation, they may here be answered. If by absolute, they understand that, which is opposed to conditional, than we hold and avouch, that all the eternal decrees of God are simple or absolute, and not limited or restrained to this or that condition or respect. If by absolute, they understand a bare and naked decree without reason or cause, than we deny God's decrees to be absolute. For though the causes thereof be not known to us, yet causes there be, known to him, and just they are: yea the very will of God itself is cause sufficient, it being the absolute rule of justice. And though men in reason can not discern the equity and justice of Gods will in this point, yet may we not thereupon conclude that therefore it is unjust. The Sun may shine clearly though the blind man see it not. And it is a flat mistaking to imagine that a thing must first of all be just in itself, and then afterward be willed of God. Whereas contrariwise, God must first will a thing before it can be just. The will of God doth not depend upon the quality and nature of the thing, but the qualities of things in order of causes follow the will of God. For every thing is as God wills it. Lastly if it be called an absolute decree, because it is done without all respect to man's sin: then we still deny it to be absolute. For as God condemns man for sin: so he decreed to condemn him for and by his sin: yet so, as if the question be made, what is the cause why he decrees rather in his justice to condemn this man then that man, no other reason can be rendered, but his will. The last point is the end of God's decree, namely the manifestation of his justice, as Solomon saith, Prov. 16.4. The Lord hath made all things for his own sake, and the wicked for the day of evil. Rom. 9.22. And Paul saith that God made vessels of wrath, to show his wrath and to make his power known. Thus we have seen what Reprobation is: Now follows the execution thereof, for that which God decrees before time, in time he executes. And here a special rule to be remembered is this▪ Those which are ordained to just damnation, are likewise ordained to be left to themselves in this world in blindness of mind and hardness of heart, so as they neither shall nor will repent of their sins. The truth of this we may see in God's word. For S. Peter speaking of the Priests and doctors, and chief of the people among the jews, saith plainly, They stumbled at the word, and are disobedient. Why so? 1. Pet. 2.8. The reason is there set down: because they were ordained unto it of old. And so Paul saith to the Corinthians, that he handled not the word of God deceitfully, but in the declaration of the truth he approved himself to every man's conscience in the sight of God. Now hereupon it might be said, how then comes it to pass that all receive not the gospel in Corinth, and to this he answers with a terrible sentence, 2. Cor. 4.3. If (saith he) our gospel be hid, it is hid to them that perish: giving us to understand, that god leaves them to themselves in this world, whom he purposeth to refuse. And the Lord by the prophet Esai saith of the jews. By hearing they shall hear and not understand, and by seeing they shall see and not perceive, Esai. 6.9. lest they should hear with their ears, and see with their eyes, and understand with their hearts, and so turn and be saved. The use of this rule is manifold: first it serveth to overthrow the opinion of carnal men which reason thus: If I be ordained to damnation, let me live never so godly and well, I am sure to be damned, therefore I will live as I list: for it is not possible for me to alter God's decree. Blasphemous mouths of men make nothing of this and like speeches, and yet they speak flat contraries. For whom God hath purposed in his eternal counsel to refuse, them also he hath purposed for their sins to leave to the blindness of their minds and hardness of their hearts, so as they neither will nor can live a godly life. Secondly, this rule doth as it were, lead us by the hand, to the consideration of the fearful estate of many people among us. We have had for the space of thirty years and more the preaching of the Gospel of Christ, and the more plentifully by reason of the schools of learning. But what hath been the issue of it, I doubt not but in many it hath been the means of their conversion and salvation: but to speak generally of the greater part there is little or no fruit to be seen. The most after this long preaching remain as blind, as impenitent, as hard hearted, and as unreformed in their lives as ever they were, though they have heard the Lord calling them to repentance from day to day, and from year to year. Well, if this rule be the truth of God, as no doubt it is, than I say plainly that there is a most fearful judgement of God amongst us. My meaning is not to determine or give sentence of any man's person, of any town or people, nevertheless this may be avouched, that it is a terrible and dangerous sign of the wrath of God, that after this long and daily preaching, there is still remaining a general hardness of heart, impenitency, and want of reformation in the lives of men. The smiths stithy, the more it is beaten the harder it is made: and commonly the hearts of men, the more they are beaten with the hammer of God's word, the more dull, secure, and senseless they are. This being so, it stands every man in hand to look to his own estate. We are careful to fly the infection of the bodily plague: oh then how careful should we be to fly the common blindness of mind and hardness of heart, which is the very plague of all plauges a thousand fold worse than all the plagues of Egypt. And it is so much the more fearful, because the more it takes place, the less it is perceived. When a malefactor on the day of assize is brought forth of the jail, with great bolts and fetters to come before the judge, as he is going all men pity him and speak comfortably unto him: But why so? because he is now to be arraigned at the bar of an earthly judge. Now the case of all impenitent sinners is far more miserable than the case of this man: for they lie fettered in bondage under sin & satan, and this short life is the way in which they are going every hour to the bar of God's justice, who is the King of kings and Lord of lords, there to be arraigned & to have sentence of condemnation given against them. Now canst thou pity a man that is before an earthly judge, and wilt thou not be touched with the misery of thine own estate who goest every day forward to the bar of God's justice; whether thou be sleeping or waking, sitting or standing, as a man on the sea in a ship goes continually toward the haven, though he himself stir not his foot. Begin now at length to lay this point to your hearts, that, so long as ye run on in your blind ways without repentance, as much as ye can, ye make post hast to hell-ward: and so long as you continue in this miserable condition, as Peter saith, Your judgement is not far off, and your damnation sleepeth not. Thirdly seeing those whom God hath purposed to refuse shall be left unto themselves, and never come to repentance, we are to love and embrace the word of God preached & taught unto us by the ministers of the gospel: withal submitting ourselves unto it, and suffering the Lord to humble us thereby, that we may come at length out of the broad way of blindness of mind and hardness of heart leading to destruction, into the strait way of true repentance and reformation of life, which leadeth to salvation. For so long as a man lives in this world after the lusts of his own heart, he goes on walking in the very same broad way to hell, in which all that are ordained to condemnation walk: and what a fearful thing is it but for a little while to be a companion in the way of destruction with them that perish: and therefore I say once again, let us all in the fear of God lay his word unto our hearts, and hear it with such reverence, as that it may be in us the sword of the spirit to cut down the sins and corruptions of our natures and work in us a reformation of life and true repentance. The third point concerning the decree of Reprobation, is the judgement to be given of it. This judgement belongeth to God principally and properly, because he knoweth best what he hath determined concerning the estate of every man, & none but he knows who they be which are ordained to due & deserved damnation. And again, he only knoweth the hearts and wills of men, and what grace he hath given them, what they are, and what all their sins be, and so doth no angel nor creature in the world beside. As for men, it belongs not to them to give judgement of reprobation in themselves or in others, unless God reveal his will unto them and give them a gift of discerning. This gift was bestowed on sundry of the Prophets in the old Testament, and in the new Testament on the Apostles. Ps. 69. & 109. David in many Psalms makes request for the confusion of his enemies, not praying only against their sins which we may do, but even against their persons, which we may not do. No doubt he was guided by god's spirit, & received thence an extraordinary gift to judge of the obstinate malice of his adversaries. And Paul prays against the person of Demetrius, saying, 2. Tim. 4.14. The Lord reward him according to his doings. And such kind of prayers were lawful in them, because they were carried with pure & upright zeal, & had no doubt a special gift whereby they were able to discern of the final estate of their enemies. Again, God sometimes gives this gift of discerning of some men's final impenitency to the Church upon earth, I say not, to this or that private person, but to the body of the Church or greater part thereof. S. john writing unto the Churches saith, There is a sin unto death (that is, 1. joh. 5.16. against the H. ghost) I say not that thou shouldest pray for it: in which words he takes it for granted, that the sin might be discerned by the Church in those days. And Paul saith, If any man believe not the Lord jesus, let him be had in execration, Mara-natha, that is, pronounced accursed to everlasting destruction. 1. Cor. 16.22. Whence it appears that the Church hath power to pronounce men rejected to everlasting damnation, upon some special occasions, though I dare not say ordinarily and usually. The primitive Church with one consent prayed against julian the Apostata, & the prayers made were not in vain as appeared by his fearful end. As for private and ordinary men for the tempering and rectifying of their judgements, in this case they must follow two rules. The one is, that every member of the Church is bound to believe his own election. It is the commandment of God binding the very conscience, 1. joh. 3. that we should believe in Christ: Now to believe in Christ is not only to put our affiance in him, and to be resolved that we are justified and sanctified and shallbe glorified by him, but also that we were elect to saluatioa in him before the beginning of the world, which is the foundation of the rest. Again, if of things that have necessary dependence one upon another, we are to believe the one, than we are to believe the other. Now election & adoption are things conjoined; & the one necessarily depends upon the other. For all the elect (as Paul saith) are predestinate to adoption: & we are to believe our own adoption: & therefore also our election. The second rule is, that concerning the persons of those that be of the Church, we must put in practise the judgement of charity, & that is to esteem of them as of the elect of God till God make manifest otherwise. By virtue of this rule the ministers of God's word are to publish and preach the Gospel to all without exception. It is true indeed there is both wheat & darnel in God's field, chaff & corn in God's barn, fish & dross in God's net, sheep & goats in Christ's fold: but secret judgements belong unto God, and the rule of love which is to think and wish the best of others is to be followed of us that profess faith working by love. It may be demanded what we are to judge of them that as yet are enemies of Christ. Ans. Our duty is to suspend our judgements concerning their final estate: for we know not whether God will call them or no: and therefore we must rather pray for their conversion then for their confusion. Again it may be demanded what is to be thought of all our ancetours & forefathers that lived & died in the times when Popery took place. Ans. We may well hope the best & think that they were saved: for though the Papacy be not the Church of God, and though the doctrine of popery race the foundation, yet nevertheless in the very midst of the Roman papacy God hath always had a remnant which have in some measure truly served him. In the old Testament when open idolatry took place in all Israel, God saith to Eliah, I have reserved 7. thousand to myself that never bowed knee to Baal: & the like is & hath been in the general apostasy under Antichrist. S. john saith, See Illyr. C●tal. test. veritatis. Rev. 12.17. that when the woman fled into the wilderness for a time, even then there was a remnant of her seed which kept the commandments of God, & have testimony of jesus Christ. And again when ordinary means of salvation fail, than God can & doth make a supply by means extraordinary, & therefore there is no cause why we should say that they were condemned. Thirdly it may be demanded whether the common judgement given of F. Spira that he is a reprobate be good or no? Ans. we may with better warrant say no; then any man say, yea. For what gifts of discerning had they which came to visit him in his extremity? & what reasons induced them to give this peremptory judgement. He said himself that he was a reprobate: that is nothing; a sick man's judgement of himself is not to be regarded. Yea but he despaired; a senseless reason: for so doth many a man year by year, & that very often as deeply as ever Spira did, & yet by the good help of the ministry of the word both are & may be recovered. And they which will avouch Spira to be a reprobate, must go further & prove 2. things, that he despaired both wholly and finally: which if they can not prove, we for our parts must suspend our judgements, and they were much to blame that first published the book. Lastly it may be demandend what is to be thought of them that make very fearful ends in raving & blaspheming. Ans. Such strange behaviours are oftentimes the fruits of violent diseases which torment the body & bereave the mind of sense & reason: & therefore if the persons lived well, we must think the best: for we are not by outward things to judge of the estate of any man. Solomon saith, that all things come alike to all & the same condition to the just & to the wicked. Thus much of the parts of predestination. Now follows the use thereof: & it concerns partly our judgements, partly our affections, & partly our lives. The uses which concern judgement are 3. And first by the doctrine of predestination we learn, that there can not be any justification of a sinner before God by his works. For God's election is the cause of justification, because whom God electeth to salvation after this life, them he electeth to be justified in this life. Now election itself is of grace and of grace alone, as Paul saith, Election is by grace, and if it be of grace, it is no more of works: Rom. 11.5. or else were grace no grace: therefore justification is of grace and of grace alone. And I reason thus. The cause of a cause is the cause of all things caused: but grace alone is the cause of predestination, which is the cause of our vocation, justification, sanctification, etc. Grace therefore is also the alone cause of all these. Therefore the scriptures ascribe not only the beginning, but also the continuance & accomplishment of all our happiness to grace. For first as election, so vocation is of grace. Paul saith, God hath called us not according to our works, 2. Tim. 1.9. but according to his purpose and grace. Again, faith in Christ is of grace. So it is said, Phil. 1.29. To you it is given to believe in Christ. Also the justification of a sinner is of grace. So Paul saith plainly to the Romans: Rom. 3.24. you are justified freely by his grace. Again, sanctification and the doing of good works is of grace: So it is said, We are his workmanship created in Christ jesus unto good works, Eph. 2.10. which God hath ordained that we should walk in them. Also perseverance in good works and godliness is of grace: So the Lord saith, I will make an everlasting covenant with them, that I will never turn away from them to do them good, jer. 32.40. but I will put my fear in their hearts, that they shall not departed from me. Lastly, life everlasting is of grace: So Paul saith, Life everlasting is the gift of God through jesus Christ: Now they of the Church of Rome teach the flat contrary: Rom. 6.26. they make two justifications; the first whereby a man of an evil man is made a good man: the second, whereby of a good man he is made better. The first they ascribe to grace, but so, as the second is by works. Secondly, hence we learn, that the art of judicial astrology is vain and frivolous. They that practise it, do profess themselves to tell of things to come almost whatsoever, and this they do by casting of figures: and the special point of their art is to judge of men's nativities. For if they may know but the time of a man's birth, they take upon them to tell the whole course of his life from year to year, from week to week, and from day to day, from the day of his birth to the hour of his death: yea that which is more, they profess themselves to tell all things that shall befall men either in body, goods, or good name, and what kind of death they shall die. But that this their practice is not of God, but indeed unlawful, it may appear by this, because it stands not with the doctrine of God's predestination. Two twins begotten of the same parents, and borne both at one and the same time, by the judgement of Astrologians must have both the same life, and the same death, and be every way alike both in goods and in good name, yet we see the contrary to be true in jacob and Esau, who were borne both at one time of the same parents. For jacob took Esau by the heel, so as there could not be much difference between them in time, yet for all this Esau was a fierce man and wild given to hunting, but jaacob was mild of nature, and lived at home: the one had favour at God's hand and was in the covenant, but God kept back that mercy from the other. Again, in a pitched field are slain a thousand men at one and the same time: now if we consider the time of their births, it may be, they were borne at a thousand sundry times, and therefore under so many diverse positions of the heavens, and so by the judgement of all Astrologers should have all divers and sundry lives and ends: but we see according to the determination of the counsel of God, they have all one and the same end: and therefore this must admonish all those that are brought up in schools of learning, to have care to spend there times in better studies: and it teacheth those that are fallen into any manner of distress, not to have recourse to these fond figure-casters. For their astrological judgements are false and foolish, as we may see by the two former examples. Thirdly, the knowledge of God is one of the most special points in Christian religion, and therefore the Lord saith, Let him that rejoice, rejoice in this, jer. 9.24. that he understandeth and knoweth me. For I am the Lord which show mercy and judgement in the earth. And our Saviour Christ saith, This is life eternal to know thee, the only very God, and whom thou hast sent Jesus Christ. joh. 17.3. Now God's predestination is a glass wherein we may behold his majesty. For first by it we see the wonderful wisdom of God, who in his eternal counsel did foresee and most wisely set down the state of every man: secondly his omnipotency, in that he hath power to save and power to refuse whom he will: thirdly his justice and mercy both joined together in the execution of election; his mercy in that he saveth those which were utterly lost; his justice in that he ordained Christ to be a mediator to suffer the curse of the law, and to satisfy his justice for the Elect. Fourthly his justice in the execution of the decree of Reprobation: for though he decreed to hold back his mercy from some men, because it so pleased him, yet he condemneth no man but for his sins. Now the consideration of these & the like points, bring us to the knowledge of the true God. The uses which concern our affections are these. First the doctrine of predestination ministers to all the people of God matter of endless consolation. For because God's election in unchangeable, therefore they which are predestinate to salvation can not perish, though the gates of hell prevail against them so as they be hardly saved, yet shall they certainly be saved: therefore our Saviour Christ saith, that in the latter days shall arise false Christ's and false prophets, which shall show great signs and wonders, so that if it were possible they should deceive the very elect. Mat. 24.24. In which words he takes it for granted, that the elect of God can never finally fall away. And hereupon he saith to his disciples when they rejoiced that the devils were subject to them, rather rejoice that your names are written in heaven. And S. Paul speaking of Hymeneus & Alexander, Luk. 10.20. which had fallen away from the faith, lest the Church would be discouraged by their fall, because they were thought to be worthy men & pillars of the Church; he doth comfort them from the very ground of election, saying, The foundation of God remaineth sure and hath this seal: The Lord knoweth who are his. 2. Tim. 2.19. Where God's election is compared to the foundation of an house, the building whereof may be shaken, but the groundwork standeth fast: & therefore Paul saith further, Who shall lay any thing to the charge of Gods elect. Rom. 8.33. Now than that we may have comfort in distress, & some thing to stay upon in all our troubles: we in this world are as strangers in a far country: our passage homeward is over the sea of this world: the ship wherein we sail is the Church: & satan stirs up many blasts of troubles & temptations, & his purpose is to sink the ship, or to drive it on the rock; but we must take the anchor of hope & fasten it in heaven upon the foundation of God's Election, which being done we shall pass in safety & rejoice in the midst of all storms & tempests. Secondly whereas God refuseth some men and leaves them to themselves, it serves to strike a fear into ●uery one of us whatsoever, as Saint Paul in the like case saith, the jews being the natural branches are broken off through unbelief, Rom. 11.20. and thou standest by faith: be not high minded but fear. This indeed was spoken to the Romans, but we must also lay it unto our hearts. For what is the best of us but a lump of clay? & how soever in God's counsel we are chosen to salvation, yet in ourselves we are all shut up under unbelief, and are fit to make vessels of wrath. Our Saviour Christ calleth judas a devil, & we know his lewd life & fearful end: now what are we better than judas by nature? If we had been in his stead, without the special blessing of God, we should have done as he did: he betrayed Christ, but if God leave us to ourselves, we shall not only betray him, but by our sins even crucify him a thousand ways. Furthermore let us bethink ourselves of this, whether there be not already condemned in hell, who in their lives were not more grievous offenders than we. Esay calleth the people of his time a people of Sodom & Gomorrha, Esa. 1.10. giving the jews then living to understand, that they were as bad as the Sodomites, & as the people of Gomorrha, on whom the Lord had showed his judgements long before. If this be true, then let us with fear and trembling be thankful to his majesty that he hath preserved us hitherto from deserved damnation. The uses which respects our lives and conversations are manifold. First, seeing God hath elected some to salvation, and hath also laid down the means in his holy word whereby we may come to the knowledge of our particular election, we must therefore as Saint Paul counseleth us, give all diligence to make our election sure. 2. Pet. 1.10. In the world men are careful and painful enough to make assurance of lands and goods to themselves and their posterity: what a shame is it then for us, that we should be slack in making sure to ourselves the election of God, which is more worth than all the world beside? and if we shall continue to be slack herein, the leases of our lands and houses and all other temporal assurances shall be bills of accusation against us at the day of judgement to condemn us. Secondly, by this doctrine we are taught to live godly and righteously in this present world, because all those whom God hath chosen to salvation, he hath also appointed to live in newness of life, as Saint Paul saith, God hath chosen us in Christ before the foundation of the world, Eph. 1.4. that we should be holy and without blame before him. And again, We are created in Christ jesus unto good works, Eph. 2.10. which God hath ordained that we should walk in them. And, God hath chosen you to salvation through sanctification of the spirit and faith of the truth. 2. Th. 2.13. The Elect are vessels of honour: Rom. 9 2. Tim. 2.21. and therefore all those that will be of the number of the Elect, must carry themselves as vessels of honour. For so long as they lie in their sins they be like vessels of dishonour, employing themselves to the most base service that can be, even to the service of the devil. The sun was ordained to shine in the day, and the moon in the night, and that order they keep, yea every creature in his kind observeth the course appointed unto it by creation, as the grass to grow, and trees to bring forth fruit: now the elect were ordained to this end to lead a godly life; and therefore if we would either persuade ourselves or the world, that we are indeed chosen to salvation, we must be plentiful in all good works, & make conscience of every evil way: and to do otherwise is as much as to change the order of nature, and as if the sun should cease to shine by day and the moon by night. Thirdly, when God shall send upon any of us in this world crosses and afflictions, either in body or in mind, or any way else (as this life is the vail of misery and tears, and judgement must begin at God's house) we must learn to bear them with all submission and contentation of mind. For whom God knew before, Rom. 8.29. them he hath predestinate to be made like unto his son. But wherein is this likeness? Paul saith, in the fellowship of his afflictions, Phil. 3.10. and in a conformity to his death. And the consideration of this, that afflictions were ordained for us in the eternal predestination of God, must comfort our hearts, and restrain our impatience so oft as we shall go under the burden of them. Hence again we learn that they which persuade themselves that they are in the favour of God, because they live at ease in wealth and prosperity, are far deceived. For Saint Paul saith, God suffereth with long patience the vessels of wrath prepared to destruction, Rom. 9.22. to make known his power and to show forth his wrath on them. Which being so, than no man by outward blessings ought to plead that he hath the love of God. Sheep that go in fat pastures come sooner to the slaughter-house than those which are kept upon the bare 〈◊〉 and they which are pampered with the wealth of this world, sooner forsake God, and therefore are sooner forsaken of God than others. Solomon saith, Eccles. 9.1. No man knoweth love or hatred, that is, by outward things: for all things come alike to all: the same condition is to the just and to the unjust, to the wicked and good, to the pure and polluted. Lastly, it may be an offence unto us, when we consider that the doctrine of the Gospel is either not known, or else despised and persecuted of the whole world; but we must stay ourselves with this consideration, that nothing comes to pass by chance, that God knows who are his; and that there must be some in the world, on whom God hath in his eternal counsel purposed to manifest his power and justice. Again Ministers of the Gospel may be discouraged, when after long preaching they see little or no fruit of their labours: the people whom they teach remaining as blind, impenitent, and unreformed as ever they were. But they must also consider, that it is the purpose of God to choose some to salvation and to refuse others: and that of the first some are called sooner some later, and that the second being left to themselves never come to repentance. To this Paul had regard when he said, If our Gospel be hid it is hid to them that perish. And again, We are unto God the sweet savour of Christ in them that are saved and in them that perish. Hitherto I have delivered the truth of this weighty point of religion, which also is the doctrine of the Church of England: now it followeth that we should consider the falsehood. Sundry Divines have devised, and in their writings published a new frame or platform of the doctrine of Predestination: the effect and substance whereof is this. The nature of God (say they) is infinite love, goodness, and mercy itself: and therefore he propounds unto himself an end answerable thereunto, and that is the communication of his love and goodness unto all his creatures. Now for the accomplishing of this supreme & absolute end, he did four things. First he decreed to create man righteous in his own image: secondly, he foresaw the fall of man after his creation, yet so, as he neither willed nor decreed it: thirdly, he decreed the universal Redemption of all & every man effectually by Christ, so be it they will believe in him: four, he decreed to call all & every man effectually, so as if they will they may be saved. This being done, he in his eternal counsel foreseeing who would believe in Christ, did thereupon Elect them to eternal salvation: and again foreseeing who would not believe but contemn grace offered, did thereupon also decree to reject them to eternal damnation. This platform howsoever it may seem plausible to reason, yet indeed it is nothing else but a Devise of man's brain: as will appear by sundry defects and errors that be in it. For first whereas it is avouched that Adam's fall came by the bare prescience of God, without any decree or will of his, it is a flat untruth. The putting of Christ to death was as great a sin as the fall of Adam, nay in some respects greater. Act. 2.23. Now that came to pass not only by the foreknowledge of God, but also by his determinate counsel. And therefore as the Church of jerusalem saith, Herod and Pontius Pilate with the Gentiles and the people of Israel gathered themselves together to do whatsoever thine hand and thy counsel had determined before to be done: so may we say, Act. 4.28. that Adam in his fall did nothing but that which the hand of God and his counsel had determined before to be done. And considering the will of God extends itself to the least things that are even to sparrows, whereof none do light upon the ground without our heavenly father, how can a man in reason imagine that the fall of one of the most principal creatures that are, shall fall out altogether without the will and decree of God. And there can be nothing more absurd then to sever the foreknowledge of God from his counsel or decree. For by this means, things shall come to pass God nilling, or not knowing, or not regarding them. Nolenie, nesciente, non curan●e. Now if any thing come to pass God nilling it, then that is done which God would not have done; and to say so is to bereave him of his omnipotency. And if we shall say that things fall out God not knowing of them, we make him to be imprudent, and deny his omniscience: lastly, if we shall say that a thing is done God not regarding it, we bring in an idol of our own brains, and 'stablish the idle-god of the Epicures. But it is objected to the contrary, that if God any way decreed and willed the fall of Adam, than he was the author of sin: which once to say is blasphemy. Answer. The argument follows not. There be three actions in the will of God; one whereby he doth absolutely will any thing and delight in it: 1. Volendo velle. and of all such things God himself is the author. The second is, wholly or absolutely to Nill a thing: 2. Nolendo nolle, or penitus nolle. and all things thus nilled can not possibly come to pass or have the least being in nature. 3. Remissè & velle & nolle, or nolendo velle. There is also a third action which comes as a mean between the two former, which is remissly or in part both to nill and will a thing; whereby though God approve not evil as it is evil, and therefore doth it not: yet he willeth the permitting of it to be done by others, or the being of it; because in respect of God that decreeth the permitting of evil, it is good that there should be evil. And on this manner and no otherwise God willed the fall of Adam: and therefore in the reason of any indifferent man, though he decreed the fall, yet shall he be free from the blame thereof, which lies wholly upon the doer; these two caveats always remembered: first that God by his will did not constrain or force the will of Adam to sin, or infuse into it any corruption; and that therefore he sinned willingly and freely, only by the a Decretum dei non tollit libertatem voluntatis sed ordinat. necessity of immutability, & not by the necessity of coaction: secondly that God willed the fall for a most worthy end, which was to lay down a way tending to the manifestation both of his justice and mercy. Again it is alleged that if God willed Adam's fall, than his will is flat contrary to itself, because he wills that which he had by express commandment forbidden. Answer. In deed if God should both will and forbid one and the same thing, in one and the same respect, there should be a contradiction in Gods will: but that God doth not. He forbade Adam's fall as it was a sin: for so in every commandment sin as it is sin is condemned and punished: and yet because it was in a new respect, a means of manifesting his glory, who is able to bring light out of darkness, therefore he willingly decreed the permission of it. Incest as it is a sin, it is condemned in the seventh commandment, and punished with death: yet as incest was a punishment of David's adultery, God is said to take his wives and to give them to his son Absolom. 2. Sam. 12.11. Some again, as it appears by their writings, fear to ascribe unto God so much as a permission of Adam's fall: but no doubt they are deceived. For if these rules be true; that God is omnipotent: that he works all things that are by the counsel of his will, and governs them: that he hath care and regard over man: that nothing is hid from him: that he is unchangeable, there must needs be permission of will. If the devil could not enter so much as into an heard of swine without Christ's permission, Mark. 5.12. shall we think that he could compass the fall and overthrow of man, without a permission? Indeed to permit, is not to hinder evil when one may; and with men this is a fault, but not with God, because he is not bound to hinder the evil which he permits. The second fault is, that they make the Prescience of man's faith & unbelief, to be the impulsive causes of God's decree. For they say that God eternally decrees to save or refuse men, because he did foresee that they would believe or not believe. But indeed it is a manifest untruth. Among the causes of all things that are, there is an order set down by God himself, in which order some causes are highest some lowest, some in the midst. Now the highest cause of all is that, which overrules all and is overruled of none: and that is God's will, beyond which there can be no higher cause: for God is placed above all, and subject to none. And this very will of his is the cause of all things that have being: for we must not imagine that a thing first of all existeth, and then afterward is willed of God; but first of all God wills a thing, and then afterward it comes to have being. Now to say that foreseen faith or unbelief are the moving causes whereby God was induced to ordain men either to salvation or to just damnation, is to undo this divine order of causes, and to displace the links; in that Gods will is made a secondary or middle cause subordinate to others causes placed above it: and this is to make the will of God to depend upon the quality and condition of the creature, whereas all things depend upon it. Again, Paul saith that God hath opened the mystery of his will, according to his good pleasure, which he had purposed in himself: whereby he makes a distinction between the creature and the Creator. Men, Eph. 1.9. when they purpose the doing of any thing, borrow reasons of their purposes and wills out of themselves from the things to be done; because man's bare will is no sufficient cause to warrant the doing of this or that, in this or that manner, unless there be just reason. But Gods will is a simple and absolute rule of righteousness, and a thing is good so far forth as Gods wills it. Therefore there is no cause, why he should go forth of himself for external inducements and reasons of his eternal counsel: his very will in himself is a sufficient reason of all his purposes and decrees. And hereupon Paul saith, that God's purpose was in himself, to show that there is no dependence of his will upon the creature, and that in ordering and disposing of his decrees he had no reference or respective consideration of the qualities and works of men. Thirdly by this doctrine, there is fastened upon God want of wisdom, who is wisdom itself: and that is very absurd. A simple man that hath in him but a spark of the wisdom of God, first of all intends with himself the end and event of the business to be done, and then afterward the means whereby the end is accomplished: but in this platform God is brought in, in the first place to foresee and consider with himself the means which tend to the end, namely the faith and unbelief of men, and then afterward to determine with himself what shall be the end and final condition of every man either in life or death: as if a man should purpose with himself to build an house without any consideration of the end why; and afterward conceive with himself the particular uses to which he will apply it. Fourthly, hence it followeth that faith shall not only be an instrument, but also an efficient cause in the act of justification of a sinner before God. For the cause of a cause is also the cause of the thing caused; but foreseen faith is an impulsive cause whereby God was moved to choose some men to salvation (as it is said:) and therefore it is not only an instrument to apprehend Christ's righteousness, but also a cause or means to move God to justify a sinner; because justification proceeds of Election which comes of foreseen faith: which is erroneous by the doctrine of all Churches, unless they be Popish. Fifthly, this doctrine takes it for granted, that all both young and old, even infants that die in there infancy have knowledge of the Gospel, because both faith and unbelief in Christ presuppose knowledge of our salvation by him: considering that neither ordinarily, nor extraordinarily men believe or contemn the thing unknown. But how false this is, even common experience doth show. Lastly, this platform quite overthrows itself. For whereas all men equally corrupt in Adam are effectually both redeemed and called, the difference between man and man, stands not in believing or not believing, for all believe: but in this properly that some are confirmed in faith, some are not. Now when all without exception are endued with grace sufficient salvation, I demand why some men are confirmed in grace, and others not confirmed, as also of Angels some were confirmed and stand, and some not confirmed, fell? No other reason can be rendered but the will of God. And to this must all come, strive as long as they will, that of men being in one and the same estate some are saved, some justly forsaken, because God would. Again, as the foreseeing of faith doth presuppose Gods giving of faith, unless men will say it is natural: so the foreseeing of faith in some men alone, doth presuppose the giving of faith to some men alone. But why doth not God confer the grace of constant faith to all? because he will not: so than those men whose faith was foreseen, are saved, not because their faith was foreseen, but because God would. The third fault is, that they ascribe unto God a conditional Purpose or counsel, whereby he decrees that all men shall be saved, so be it they will believe. For it is every way as much against common sense, as if it had been said, that God decreed nothing at all concerning man. A conditional sentence determines nothing simply but conditionally, and therefore uncertenly: and when we speak of God, to determine uncertenly, is as much as if he had determined nothing at all, specially when the thing determined is in the power of man's will, and in respect of God, the decree may come to pass or not come to pass. Men, if they might always have their choice, desire to determine of all their affairs simply without condition: and when they do otherwise it is either because they know not the event of things, or because things to be done are not in their power. No reason therefore that we should burden God with that, whereof we would disburden ourselves. Again the Majesty of God is disgraced in this kind of decree. God for his part would have all men to be saved: why then are they not? men will not keep the condition and believe. This is flat to hang Gods will upon man's will, to make every man an Emperor, and God his underling, and to change the order of nature by subordinating Gods will which is the first cause to the will of man which is the second cause: whereas by the very law of nature the first cause should order and dispose the second cause. But for the justifying of a conditional decree it is alleged, that there is no eternal and hidden decree of God beside the Gospel, which is God's predestination revealed. Answ. It is an untruth. There be two wills in God, a quid vult fieri de nobis, or, in nobis. one whereby he determineth what he will do unto us or in us: the other, b quid vult fieri à nobis. whereby he determineth what we shall do to him. Now Predestination is the first: whereupon it is commonly defined to be the preparation of the blessings of God, whereby they are delivered which are delivered, and the Gospel is the second. Again, Predestination determines who they are, and how many which are to be saved, and hereupon Christ saith, I know whom I have chosen: joh. 13.18. but the Gospel rather determines what kind of ones and how they must be qualified which are to be saved. Lastly Predestination in God's decree itself: and the Gospel is an outward means of the execution of it: and therefore though the Gospel be propounded with a condition, yet the decree of God itself may be simple and absolute. The fourth defect, is the opinion of Universal saving grace appertaining to all and every man: which may be fitly termed the School of universal Atheism. For it pulls down the pale of the Church, and lays it wast as every common field: it breeds a carelessness in the use of the means of grace, the word & sacraments; when as men shall be persuaded that grace shall be offered to every one effectually, whether he be of the Church or not at one time or other, wheresoever or howsoever he live: as in the like case; if men should be told that whether they live in the market town or no, there shall be sufficient provision brought them, if they will but receive it and accept of it, who would then come to the market? Universal grace hath three parts. Universal Election: universal Redemption: universal Vocation. Universal Election of all and every man, is a witless conceit: for if men universally be appointed to grace without exception, than there is no Electing or choosing of some out of mankind to grace: and if some alone be appointed to grace, as it must needs be in Election, then is not grace universal. And it is flat against the word of God. For Christ avoucheth plainly that fewer be chosen then called, Math. 22.14. and (as afterward we shall see) all are not called. And he further saith, that all which are given unto him shall be one with him and have life everlasting: joh. 17.2, 11, 24. but all men shall not be one with him and have life everlasting: and therefore all men are not given to Christ of the father, that is, ordained to salvation. And the Scripture saith, that all men's names are not written in the book of life: Apoc. 17.8. and 20.12. Math. 25.34. and that the kingdom of heaven was not prepared for all. And whereas men build this their universal Election upon the largeness of the promise of the Gospel▪ upon the like ground they might as well make an universal decree of Reprobation, whereby God decrees all men to be damned indefinitely upon this condition, if they do not believe. Now if universal Reprobation be absurd, as it is indeed, then universal Election must take part therewith. As for the Universal redemption of all & every man, it is no better than a forgery of man's brain. There shall be many in the day of judgement of whom Christ shall say, that he never knew them. Again he saith, Math. 7.23. joh. 3.36. He which believeth not is already judged, and the wrath of God abides upon him. But if all were effectually redeemed, and only condemned for not believing in Christ, it should have been said that they are already judged, and that the wrath of God not abides but returns upon them. Christ makes no intercession for the world: joh. 17.9. and therefore his redemption is not effectual to all men▪ For the intercession is the means of applying the satisfaction. If it be said that by the world is meant only contemners of grace, it appears to be otherwise in that Christ opposeth the world to them which are the fathers, and are gi●en to Christ by him: thereby signifying that by the world he means all su●h as are not the fathers, and were never given to Christ. And he lays down his life for his sheep: joh. 10.27. now the sheep have all these brands or marks; they hear his voice, they know him, they follow him, they shall not perish, none shall pluck them out of Christ's hands: and these are only such of whom Paul saith; Rom. 8.33. Who shall lay any thing to the charge of Gods elect: it is God that justifieth, who shall condemn? And if this should be true that Christ was crucified and died no less to make satisfaction for the sins of the damned, then for the sins of Peter and Paul and the rest of the Saints, it follows necessarily that all their sins are forgiven: considering that remission of sin depends inseparably upon satisfaction made to God's justice for sin: and satisfaction doth necessarily abolish all fault. We grant that Christ's death is sufficient to save many thousand worlds: we grant again it is every way most effectual in itself: but that it is effectual in, or unto the person of every man, that we deny. For if it were thus effectual, than it should be applied to the person of every man, as to Cain, judas, Nero, Heliogabalus, etc. even as the plaster is laid to the sore: being applied, Christ's righteousness should be imputed for the justification and sanctification of all and every man: and thus some justified before God and sanctified should after go to hell and be damned, whereas David never so much as dreaming of this divinity saith, that they are blessed which have the pardon of their sins; Psal. 32.1. Rom. 5.1. and Paul, that they which are justified have peace with God. But let us hear what reasons may be alleged to justify the Universality of redemption: I. Ezechiel 33. vers. 11. As I live, saith the Lord, I will not the death of the wicked: but, that the wicked return from his wicked way. Answer. The place is to be understood not simply but in respect; of the twain God rather wills the repentance of the sinner than his death. Again, he wills not death as it is the destruction of his creature, and so this place may be understood: yet nevertheless he will● the same as it is a means of manifestation of his justice: and therefore the Prophet Isai saith, Isai 45.7. that God createth evil. II. 1. Tim. 2. God would have all men to be saved and come to the acknowledgement of the truth. Answer. The place is meant not of the persons of all particular men, but of the orders and kinds of men. For in the first verse Paul exhorted Timothy that prayer should be made for all men: and in the second verse opening his own meaning, he addeth these words, for Kings and all that be in authority: as though he should say, we must pray not only for private men and for the common people, but also for public persons, though they persecute the Gospel. But why? because in that very order God hath his Elect which shall be saved. And on this manner Paul expounds himself else where. There is neither jew nor Grecian: Gal. 5.27. there is neither bond nor free: there is neither male nor female: for ye are all one in Christ. III. Rom. 11. vers. 32. God hath shut up all in unbelief that he might have mercy on all. Answer. The word all, must be understood of all that are to be saved, both of jews and Gentiles, as the article added to all importeth, and the meaning is, that God will save all whom he purposeth to save of his mercy, and not of their merit, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. because all are sinners as well jews as Gentiles: thus Paul expounds himself Galat. 3.22. The Scripture hath concluded all under sin, that the promise by the faith of jesus Christ should be given to them that believe. And if we should expound the word all▪ for every particular man▪ as some would have 〈◊〉▪ Paul must contradict himself, who said before that God would have mercy on whom he will have mercy, & whom he will he hardeneth, and in this very chapter his drift is to prove the rejection of the jews, and the calling of the Gentiles. IV. joh. 3.16. God so loved the world that he hath given his only begotten son, that whosoever believeth in him shall not perish, but have everlasting life. and joh. 6.51. I will give my flesh for the life of the world. Answer. By world, we must no● understand every particular man in the world, but the Elect both among the jews and Gentiles: for in both these places Christ doth overthwart the conceit of the jews, which thought that they alone were loved of God, and not the Gentiles. And how this word is to be understood in the new Testament Paul doth fully declare Rom. 11. verse▪ 12. If (saith he) the fall of them, that is, the jews, be the riches of the world, and the diminishing of them the riches of the Gentiles, etc. and vers. 15. If the casting away of them be the reconciling of the world, what shall the receiving be but life from the dead. Where by the world, he understands the body of the Gentiles in the last age of the world. And thus he fully declares his own meaning, when he saith to the Corinthians God was in Christ reconciling the world unto himself. 2. Cor. 5.18. V Rom. 14. vers. 15. Destroy not him with thy meat for whom Christ died. 2. Pet. 2.1. Denying the Lord that bought them, and bring upon themselves swift damnation. Therefore Christ died for them also which are condemned. Answ. The reason is not good. For in these and such like places the Scripture speaks of men not as they are indeed before God, but as they are in appearance and profession, and as they are in the acceptance of men. For so long as a man holds and embraces the Christian faith, so long in the judgement of charity we must esteem him to be one that is redeemed by Christ, though in deed he be not. And this is the meaning of Peter when he saith, that false prophets deny the Lord that bought them. VI In the preaching of the gospel grace is freely offered not only to the Elect, but to all men indifferently: and God in offering grace deludes no man: and therefore Christ's death appertains and belongs to all men indifferently. Answer. The preaching of the Gospel is an ordinance of God appointed for the gathering together and the accomplishment of the number of the elect: and therefore in the ministery of the word grace and salvation is offered principally and directly to the elect, and only by consequent to them which are ordained to just damnation: because they are mingled with the elect in the same societies: & because the ministers of God not knowing his secret counsel, in charity think all to be elect. And though God in offering grace do not confer it to all, yet is there no delusion. For the offering of grace doth not only serve for the conversion of a sinner, but also to be an occasion by men's fault of blinding the mind and hardening the heart, and of taking away excuse in the day of judgement. To conclude this point; Universal redemption of all men, we grant: the Scripture saith so: and there is an universality among the elect and believers: but universal Redemption of all and every man as well the damned as the elect and that effectually, we renounce as having neither footing in the scripture, nor in the writings of any ancient and orthodox divine, for many hundred years after Christ, his words not depraved and mistaken. As for universal vocation, it is of the same kind with the former: because it is flat against the word of God in which is fully set down a distinction of the whole world from the creation to the days of Christ, into two parts: one, the people of God being received into the covenant: the other, being the greatest part of the world, No-people, and forth of the covenant. From the beginning of the world to the giving of the law, the Church was shut up in the families of the patriarchs: and the covenant in the very family of Abraham was restrained to Isaak: and the members of these families for this cause were called the sons of God; the rest of the world beside being termed as they were indeed, the sons of men. Gen. 6. From the giving of the law till Christ the nation of the jews was the Church of God, and the rest of the world beside, no people of God. Esai. 49.9. And therefore Esai calls them prisoners and them that are in darkness: and Ose, Such as are without mercy and no people: and Zacharie, Ose▪ 2.23. & 1.10. Zach. 2.11. Act. 14.16. Eph. 2.13. Such as are not joined to the Lord: and Paul, Such as are set to walk in their own ways, being without God and without Christ in the world. And this distinction between jew and Gentile stood till the very ascension of Christ. And hereupon when he was to send his disciples to preach, he charged them not to go into the way of the Gentiles, & not to enter into the cities of the Samaritans, but rather to go to the lost sheep of the house of Israel: Mat. 10.6, 7. & when the woman of Canaan made request for her daughter, he gives a denial at the first upon this distinction, saying, It is not meet to take the children's bread and give it unto dogs: Mat. 15.22. and again, I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of Israel. It will be said, that this distinction arose of this, that the Gentiles at the first fell away from the covenant, and contemned the Messiah. It is true indeed of the first heads of the Gentiles the sons of No: but of their posterity it is false, which in times following did not so much as hear of the covenant, and the Messiah. The Prophet Esai saith of Christ, Esai. 55.5. A nation that knew not thee shall run unto thee. And Paul speaking to the Athenians saith, that the times of this their ignorance God regarded not: Act. 17.30. but now admonisheth all men every where to repent: & to the Romans he saith, Rom. 16.26. 1. Tim. 3.16. that the mystery touching Christ and his benefits was kept secret since the world began, & now opened & published among all nations. And if the Gentiles had but known of the Messiah, why did not their Poets and Philosophers who in their writings notoriously abuse the jews with sundry a Apella, Verpus Recutitus, Sabbatarius, Cultor nabium. nicknames, at the least signify the contempt of the Redeemer. Wherefore to hold and much more to avouch by writing, that all and every one of the heathen were called, it is most absurd: and if it were so, the Cannibals and the savage nations of America should have known Christ without preaching, which by the histories of the discovery of those countries is known to be false. Again, if the Vocation of every man be effectual, than faith must be common to all men either by nature or by grace, or both: now to say the first, namely that the power of believing is common to all by nature, is the heresy of the Pelagians, & to say it is common to all by grace, is false. All men have not faith, saith Paul: 2. Thes. 3.1. nay many to whom the gospel is preached, do not so much as understand it and give assent unto it; 2. Cor. 4.4. Satan blinding their minds that the light of the glorious gospel of Christ should not shine unto them: and to say that faith is partly by nature & partly by grace, is the condemned heresy of the semi-Pelagian: for we can not so much as think a good thought of ourselves. 2. Cor. 3.5. The last defect in the platform is, that they ascribe unto God a wrong end of his counsels: namely the communication of mercy or goodness in eternal happiness. For the absolute & sovereign end of all gods doings must be answerable to his nature, which is not mercy and love alone, but also justice itself: and that is the manifestation of his glory both in justice and mercy by the express testimony of scripture. Again, if this were so, all men without exception should be saved, because God can not be frustrated of his end & purpose: & if but one man be damned, he is damned, either because God will not save him, or because he cannot. If they say he will not, than he is changeable; if he can not, than he is not omnipotent, considering his purpose was to convey happiness to all creatures. Thus much of the efficient cause of the Church, namely God's predestination: which doctrine could not here be omitted considering no man can believe himself to be a member of the Church, unless withal he believe that he is predestinate to life everlasting. Now we come to the second point, namely the Mystical union, which is the very form of the Church, Gal. 3. 2●. whereby all that believe are made one with Christ. To the causing of this union 2. things are required, a Donation or giving of Christ unto that man which is to be made one with him: & a Conjunction between them both. Of the first, the Prophet Esai saith, Unto us a child is borne, Esai. 9.16. & unto us a son is given: & Paul, who spared not his own son, but gave him for us all: Rom. 8.32. how shall he not with him give us all things also? And touching it sundry points must be considered. The first is, what is meant by this Giving? Answer. It is an action or work of God the Father by the holy ghost, whereby Christ as redeemer in the appointed time is really communicated to all ordained to salvation in such manner, that they may truly say that Christ himself with all his benefits is theirs, both in respect of right thereto, and in respect of all fruit redounding thence, and that as truly as any man may say that house and land given him of his ancetours is his own both to possess and to use. The second point is, what is the very thing given? Answer. Whole Christ God and man is given, because his humanity without his godhead, or the godhead without the humanity doth not reconcile us to God. Yet in this giving there must be a divers consideration had of the two natures of Christ: for the communication of the godhead is merely energetical, that is, only in respect of operation: in that it doth make the manhood personally united unto it to be propitiatory for our sins and meritorious of life eternal. And to avouch any communication of the godhead in respect of essence, were to bring in the heresy of the Manichees, and to maintain a composition & a commixtion of our natures with the nature of God. Again, in the manhood of Christ, we must distinguish between the subject itself, the substance of body and soul, and the blessings in the subject which tend to our salvation. And the communication of the aforesaid manhood is in respect of both without separation: for no man can receive saving virtue from Christ, unless first of all he receive Christ himself, as no man can have the treasure hid in the field, unless first of all he have the field: and no man can be nourished by meat and drink unless first of all he receive the substance of both. joh. 6.53, 54. And this is the cause why not only in the preaching of the word but also in the institution of the lords supper express mention is made, not only of Christ's merit, but also of his very body and blood, whereby the whole humanity is signified, as appears by that place where it is said, joh. 1.14. that the Word was made flesh. And though the flesh of itself profit nothing as S. john saith, yet as it is joined to the godhead of the son and doth subsist in his person, it receiveth thence quickening virtue, to revive and renew all those to whom it shall be given. Lastly, among the blessings that are stored up in the manhood of Christ for our salvation, some are given unto us by imputation, as when we are justified by the righteousness indeed inherent in his manhood but imputed unto us: some by infusion, as when holiness is wrought in our hearts by the spirit, as a fruit of that holiness which is in the manhood of Christ, & derived from it as the light of one candle from another. The third point is, in what manner Christ is given unto us. Answ. God the father giveth Christ unto his Church not in any earthly or bodily manner, as when a King bestoweth a gift with his own hand, and puts it into the hand of his subject: but the manner is altogether celestial and spiritual: partly because it is brought to pass by the mere divine operation of the Holy Ghost: and partly because in respect of us this gift is received by an instrument which is supernatural, namely faith, whereby we lay hold of & apply unto ourselves the evangelical promises. And this manner of giving may be conceived thus. A man that never stirred foot out of England holds and enjoys land in Turkey: but how comes it to be his? Thus: the Emperor was willing and content to bestow it; and the man for his part as willing to accept and receive it: and by this means that which at the first was the Emperors, by mutual consent becomes the man's. In the same manner God the Father hath made an evangelical covenant with his Church: in which of his mercy he ha●h made a grant of his own son unto us, with righteousness and life everlasting in him: and we again by his grace accept of this grant and receive the same by faith: and thus by mutual consent according to the tenor of the covenant, any repentant sinner may truly say, though I now have mine abode upon earth, & Christ in respect of his manhood be locally in heaven; yet is he truly mine to have & to enjoy, his body is mine, his blood is mine. As for the giving & receiving of the body & blood of Christ in bodily manner (which the Papists maintain in avouching the real transubstantiation of bread and wine in the sacraments into the body & blood of Christ, and the Lutherans also in teaching that his body and blood is substantially either in, or with, or under the bread and wine) is an erroneous conceit flat opposite to sundry points of the Christian faith. For Christ to this very hour retaineth still the essence and essential properties of a true body, and we believe that really and visibly he ascended into heaven, and there abides till his second coming to the last judgement: who then having but common reason would imagine a communication of the body of Christ penned up in the element of bread, and conveyed into our bodies by the mouth and stomach. The third point is, whether we are not Lords of Christ he being thus given unto us. Ans. No: for this donation is not single but mutual. As Christ is given to us so we again are given to Christ, as he himself saith, Those whom thou hast given me, joh. 17.2 Father, I have kept. And we are given unto him in that our bodies and souls are made his not only as he is God, but also as he is our redeemer: and our sins with the guilt thereof are made his by imputation, & the punishment thereof is wholly laid upon him. This is all the dowry which the Church being the spouse of Christ hath brought unto him. The fift point is, how any man in particular may know that Christ is given unto him of the Father. Ans. When God gives Christ to man, he withal gives man grace and power to receive Christ, and to apprehend him with all his benefits: and this we do when we utterly renounce ourselves, this world and all things therein, bewail our sins past, resting on the death of Christ for the pardon of them all, and as it were with both the arms of faith catching hold upon him in all estates both in life and death. When the heart of any man is truly disposed and inclined to do these and the like things, we may truly say, that God hath given him grace to receive Christ. The second thing required to make us one with Christ is, the Mystical union, which is a Conjunction whereby Christ and his Church are actually coupled into one whole Mystical body. Now that we may the better conceive the nature of it, sundry questions are to be moved. The first, what kind of Conjunction this is. Answer. In the scripture we meet with three kind of Conjunctions. The first is, conjunction in nature, when sundry things are coupled all by one and the same nature. As the Father, the Son, and the holy ghost being three distinct subsistances are all one, and therefore joined in one godhead or divine nature. Now Christ and the believer are not joined in nature: for than they twain should have one body & soul. The second conjunction is in person, when things in nature different, so concur together, that they make but one person, as body and soul make one man: and the godhead of the son with his manhood make but one Christ: in whom there is an union of distinct natures with unity of person. Now Christ and a Christian are not joined in person: for Christ is one person, Peter a second, and Paul a third distinct from them both: and so many men as there be, so many several persons. The third conjunction is in spirit; and this is the conjunction meant in this place, whereby Christ and his Church are joined together: for the very same spirit of God that dwelleth in the manhood of Christ and filleth it with all graces above measure, is derived thence and dwelleth in all the true members of the church, and filleth them with the like graces in measure, and therefore S. john saith, Hereby we know that we dwell in him and he in us, because he hath given us of his spirit. Hence it follows, that the bond of this conjunction is one & the same spirit descending from Christ the head to all his members, creating also in them the instrument of faith whereby they apprehend Christ and make him their own. The second is, what are the things united? Answ. Not the body of the believer to the body of Christ, or the soul to his soul, but the whole person of the man to the whole person of Christ: yet in this order; we are first of all & immediately joined to the manhood of Christ, and by the manhood to the godhead. The third question is, what is the manner of this conjunction. Answ. We must not think that Christ and his Church are joined by imagination, as the mind of man and the thing whereof he thinks: or by consent of heart as one friend is joined with another, and as the jews converted were all of one heart and soul: Act. 2.42. or by any abode in one place, or by touching as sea and land are both joined together and make one globe: or by any composition or commixtion of substances, as when many ingredients are put together to make one medicine. But this conjunction is altogether spiritual as the former giving was, and incomprehensible to man's reason: and therefore we must rather labour to feel it by experience in the heart, then to conceive it in the brain. Yet nevertheless it shall not be amiss to consider a semblance of it in this comparison. Suppose a man having the parts of his body disjoined far asunder, his head lying in Italy, one arm in Germany, the other in Spain, and his legs with us in England: suppose further all these parts or quarters have all one soul extending itself unto them all and quickening each of them severally as though they were nearly joined together: and though the parts be severed many hundred miles asunder, yet the distance of place doth not hinder the conjunction, considering one and the same soul doth enlarge itself and give life unto them all. In the same manner the head of the Mystical body Christ our Saviour is now in heaven, and some of his members in heaven with him and some in earth: and of these, some in England, some in Germany, some in Italy, some in Spain, distant many thousand miles asunder: and the spirit of God is as it were the soul of this body which giveth spiritual life to all the members: distance of place doth not hinder this conjunction, because the Holy ghost which linketh all the parts together, is infinite. The benefits which we receive by this Mystical union are manifold. For it is the ground of the conveyance of all grace. The first that by means hereof every Christian as he is a Christian or a man regenerate hath his beginning and being in Christ, howsoever as he is a man he hath his being & subsisting in himself, 1. Cor. 1.30. as Paul saith, Ye are of God in Christ. And, We are members of his body, of his flesh, and of his bones. How will some say can this be? After this manner. Ephes. 5.30. The comparison is taken from our first parents. Eve was made of a rib taken out of Adam's side he being cast into a slumber: this being done, Adam awaked & said, This now is bone of my bone, and flesh of my flesh. Christ was nailed on the cross and his most precious blood was shed, and out of it arise and spring all true Christians, that is, out of the merit of Christ's death and passion, whereby they become new creatures. Secondly every one that believeth in Christ by reason of this union hath an unspeakable prerogative, for hereby he is first united to Christ, and by reason thereof is also joined to the whole trinity, the father, the son, and the holy ghost, and shall have eternal fellowship with them. Thirdly, sundry men specially Papists deride the doctrine of justification by imputed righteousness; thinking it as absurd that a man should be just by that righteousness which is inherent in the person of Christ; as if we should say, that one man may live by the soul of another, or be learned by the learning of another. But here we may see that it hath sufficient foundation. For there is a most near and strait union between Christ and all that believe in him: and in this union Christ with all his benefits according to the tenor of the covenant of grace, is made ours really: & therefore we may stand just before God by his righteousness; it being indeed his, because it is in him as in a subject; yet so, as it is also ours because it is given unto us of God. Now there is no such union between man & man, & for that cause one man can not live by the soul of another, or be learned by the learning of another. Fourthly, from this fountain springs our sanctification, whereby we die to sin & are renewed in righteousness and holiness. Worms and flies that have lain dead all winter, if they be laid in the sun in the spring time, begin to revive by virtue thereof: even so when we are united to Christ, & are as it were laid in the beams of thi● blessed son of righteousness virtue is derived thence which warmeth our benumbed hearts dead in sin, and reviveth us to newness of life: whereby we begin to affect and like good things, and put in practise all the duties of religion. Firstly, hence we have the protection of God's angels: for they always wait and attend on Christ, and because we are made one with him, they attend upon us also. Lastly by reason of this union with Christ, every believer cometh to have interest and to recover his title in the creatures of God, and to have the holy and lawful use of them all. For we must consider, that although Adam created in the image of God was made Lord over all things in heaven & earth; yet when he fell by ea●ing the forbidden fruit; he, and in him all mankind lost the title and use of them all. Now therefore that a man may recover his interest, he must first of all be united and made one with Christ: and then by Christ who is Lord and King over all, shall he recover that title in the creatures of God which he had by creation, and be made Lord over them again. But some will say, if this be so, than a Christian man may have and enjoy all creatures at his pleasure, and therefore the goods of other men. Ans. The reason is not good, for in this life we have no more but a Jus ad rem. right unto the creature, & b Jus in re. right in it, that is, actual possession is reserved for the life to come. Therefore we content ourselves with our allowed portions given unto us by God, by his grace using them in holy manner, expecting by hope the full fruition of all things till after this life. Again, if all title to the creatures be recovered by Christ, it may be demanded, whether infidels have any interest to their goods or no? Ans. Infidels before men are right lords of all their lands and possessions which they have obtained by lawful means, and in the courts of men they are not to be deprived of them: but before God they are but usurpers because they hold them not in capite, that is, in Christ▪ neither have they any holy and right use of them, for to the unclean all things are unclean. And they must first of all become members of Christ before they can hold & enjoy them aright, & use them well. The duties which are to be learned of the doctrine of this union are manifold. And first of all we are taught to purge our hands and hearts of all our sins, and especially to avoid all those sins whereby men's bodies are defiled, as drunkenness, uncleanness, fornication: for they drive away the spirit of God from his own house, and dissolve the bond of the conjunction between Christ and us. Secondly we must every one of us, which profess ourselves to be members of Christ, labour to become conformable unto him in holiness of life, and to become new creatures: for this union requireth thus much. Let a man take the griftes of a crabbe-tree and set them into good stocks, yet will they not change their sap, but bring forth fruit according to their own nature even sour crabs: but it must not be so with us: we are indeed wild olives, and the branches of wild vines, yet seeing we are persuaded that we are grafted into Christ and made one with him, we must lay aside our wild and sour nature, and take upon us the nature of the true vine, bear good fruit, have good juice in us, and render sweet wine. Thirdly, we are taught hence to be plentiful in all good works, consideriag we are joined to him that is the fountain of grace. And therefore Christ saith, I am the true vine, and my Father is the husband man: joh. 15.1. every branch that beareth not fruit in me, he taketh away; and every one that beareth fruit he purgeth it that it may bear more fruit. And the Prophet Esai compares the Church of God to a vinyeard with a tower and a winepress in it. Esai. 5.7. And God himself comes often down unto it, to see the fruits of the valley, to see if the vine bud, Cant. 6.10. and the Pomegranates flourish. And further we must bring forth fruit with patience. Luk. 8.15. For the Lord of this vinyeard comes with crosses and afflictions, as with a pruning knife in his hand to pair and to dress us that we may be fit to bring forth fruit plentifully in duties of piety to God, and in duties of love to all men, yea to our enemies. Crhistian men are trees of righteousness growing by the waters of the sanctuary: but what trees? not like ours: Ezec. 47.12. for they are rooted upward in heaven in Christ, and their grains and branches grow downward that they may bear fruit among men. Hitherto we have heard what the Church is: now to believe the Church is nothing else but to believe that there is a company of the predestinate made one in Christ, and that withal we are in the number of them. Before we proceed any further, three rules must be observed touching the Church in general. The first, that Christ alone is the head of the Catholic Church, Eph. 2.22. Coloss. 2.19. & that he neither hath nor can have any creature in heaven or earth to be his fellow herein. For the Church is his body, and none but he can perform the duty of an head unto it: which duty stands in two things; the first is, to govern the Church by such power and authority whereby he can and doth prescribe laws properly binding the consciences of all his members; the second is, by grace to quicken and put spiritual life into them, so as they shall be able to say, that they live not, but Christ in them. As for the Supremacy of the sea of Rome whereby the Pope will needs stand ministerial head to the Catholic Church, is a satanical forgery. For the headshippe (as I may term it) of Christ is of that nature or quality, that it can admit no deputy, whether we respect the commanding or the quickening power of Christ before named. Nay Christ needs no vicar or deputy; for he is all-sufficient in himself and always present with his Church, as he himself testifieth, saying, Where two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst among them. And whereas all commissions cease in the presence of him that gives the commission: it is as much pride and arrogancy for the Pope to take unto himself the title of the head and universal Bishop of the Church, as it is for a subject to keep himself in commission in the presence of his King. The second rule is, that there is no salvation out of the Church, and that therefore every one which is to be saved must become a member & a citizen of the Catholic and Apostolic Church: & such as remain for ever out of the same perish eternally. Therefore S. john saith, They went out of us, they were not of us, for if they had been of us, 1. joh. 2.19. they would have remained with us: but this cometh to pass that it might appear, that they are not all of us. And again, that such as be holy are in the city of God, but without, that is, forth of the Church are dogs, enchanters, Rev. 22.15. whoremongers, adulterers, etc. And the Ark out of which all perished, figured the Church, out of which all are condemned. And for this cause Saint Luke saith, that the Lord added to the Church from day to day such as should be saved. Act. 2.47. And the reason hereof is plain: for without Christ there is no salvation, but out of the militant Church there is no Christ nor faith in Christ: and therefore no salvation. Again, forth of the militant Church there are no means of salvation, no preaching of the word, no invocation of God's name, no sacraments, and therefore no salvation. For this cause every man must be admonished evermore to join himself to some particular Church being a sound member of the Catholic Church. The third rule is, that the Church which here we believe is only one. As Christ himself speaketh, My dove is alone, Cant. 6.8. and my undefiled is the only daughter of her mother. And as there is only one God and one Redeemer, one faith, one baptism, and one way of salvation by Christ only, so there is but one Church alone. The Catholic Church hath two parts: the Church Triumphant in heaven, and the Church Militant on earth. The Triumphant Church may thus be described: It is a company of the spirits of just men, triumphing over the flesh, the devil, and the world, praising God. First I say it is a company of the spirits of men as the Holy Ghost expressly termeth it, Heb. 12.23. because the souls only of the godly departed, as of Abraham, Isaac, jacob, David, etc. are as yet ascended into heaven, and not their bodies. Furthermore the properties of this company are two. The first is, to make triumph over their spiritual enemies the flesh, the devil, the world: for the righteous man so long as he lives in this world is in continual combat without truce with all these enemies of his salvation: and by constant faith obtaining victory, in the end of his life he is translated in glorious and triumphant manner into the kingdom of glory. This was signified to john in a vision in which he saw an innumerable company of all sorts of nations, kindreds, people, and tongues stand before the lamb clothed in long white robes with palms in their hands, Rev. 7.10. in token that they have been warriors, but now by Christ have gotten the victory and are made conquerors. Their second property is to praise and magnify the name of god, as it followeth in the former place, saying, Amen: praise and glory, and wisdom, and thanks, honour, power, and might be unto our God for evermore. Hence it may be demanded whether Angels be of this triumphant Church or no? Answer. The blessed Angels be in heaven in the presence of God the father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, but they are not of the mystical body of Christ, because they are not under him as he is their Redeemer, considering they can not be redeemed which never fell: and it can not be proved that they now stand by the virtue of Christ's redemption: but they are under him as he is their Lord and King, and by the power of Christ as he is God, and their God, are they confirmed. And therefore as I take it, we can not say, that angels are members of the mystical body of Christ or of the triumphant Church. The Church Militant may be thus described: It is the company of the elect or faithful, living under the cross, desiring to be removed and to be with Christ. I say not that the Militant Church is the whole body of the elect, but only that part thereof which liveth upon earth: and the infallible mark thereof is that faith in Christ which is taught and delivered in the writings of the Prophets and Apostles▪ and this faith again may be discerned by two marks. The first is, that the members of this company live under the cross, and profit by it in all spiritual grace. And therefore it is said, that we must through many afflictions enter into the kingdom of heaven. Act. 14.22. And our Saviour Christ saith, If any man will come after me, Luk. 9.23. let him deny himself, and take up his cross every day and follow me. The second mark is a desire to departed hence and to be with Christ, as Paul saith, 2. Cor. 5.8. We love rather to be removed out of this body and to be with Christ. And again. I desire to be loosed and to be with Christ, Phil. 1.23. which is best of all. Where yet we must remember, that the members of Christ do not desire death simply and absolutely, but in two respects: I. that they might leave off to sin, and by sinning leave to displease God. II. That they might come to enjoy happiness in heaven, and to be with Christ. Touching the general estate of the Militant Church, two questions are to be considered. The first, how far forth God is present with it assisting it by his grace. Answer. God gives his spirit unto it in such a measure, that although the gates of hell cannot prevail against it, yet nevertheless it remains still subject to error both in doctrine and manners. For that which is true in every member of the Church is also true in the whole: but every member of the militant Church is subject to error both in doctrine and manners: because men in this life are but in part enlightened and sanctified, and therefore still remain subject to blindness of mind and ignorance, and to the rebellion of their wills and affections: whereby it comes to pass that they may easily fail either in judgement or in practice. Again that which may befall one or two particular Churches may likewise befall all the particular Churches upon earth, all being in one and the same condition, but this may befall one or two particular Churches to fail either in doctrine or manners. The Church of Ephesus failed in leaving her first love, whereupon Christ threateneth to remove from her the candlestick. Rev. 2.4. And the Church of Galatia was removed to an other Gospel from him that had called them in the grace of Christ: Gal. 1.6. now why may not the same things befall twenty yea an hundred Churches which befell these twain. Lastly experience showeth this to be true, in that general counsels have erred. The counceil of Nicene being to reform sundry behaviours among the Bishops & Elders would with common consent have forbidden marriage unto them, thinking it profitable to be so; unless Paphnutius had better informed them out of the scriptures. In the third council at Carthage certain books Apocrypha, as the book of Syrach, Toby, and the Macchabees are numbered in the Canon, and yet were excluded by the council of Laodicea. And the saying of a divine is received, that former councils are to be reform and amended by the latter. August. de Baptis. lib. 2. cap. 3. joh. 16.13. But Papists maintaining that the Church can not err, allege the promise of Christ: How be it when he is come which is the spirit of truth, he will lead you into all truth. Answer. The promise is directed to the Apostles, who with their Apostolical authority had this privilege granted them, that in the teaching and penning of the Gospel they could not err: and therefore in the council at jerusalem they conclude thus, It seems good unto us and to the holy Ghost. And if the promise be further extended to all the Church, it must be understood with a limitation: that God will give his spirit unto the members thereof to lead them into all truth, joh. 3.34. Act. 20.20, 27. so far forth as shall be needful for their salvation. The second question is, wherein stands the dignity & excellency of the Church. Answer. It stands in subjection and obedience unto the will & word of his spouse and head, Christ jesus. And hence it followeth, that the Church is not to challenge unto herself authority over the scriptures, but only a ministery or ministerial service whereby she is appointed of God to preserve and keep, to publish & preach them, and to give testimony of them. And for this cause, 1. Tim. 3.11. it is called the pillar and ground of truth. The Church of Rome not content with this, saith further that the authority of the Church in respect of us is above the authority of the scripture, because (say they) we can not know scripture to be scripture but by the testimony of the Church. But indeed they speak an untruth. For the testimony of men that are subject to error can not be greater and of more force with us then the testimony of God who cannot err. Again, the Church hath her beginning from the word: (for there can not be a Church without faith, and there is no faith without the word, and there is no word out of the Scriptures) and therefore the Church in respect of us, depends on the Scripture, and not the Scripture on the Church. And as the lawyer which hath no further power but to expound the law, is under the law: so the Church which hath authority only to publish and expound the Scriptures, can not authorize them unto us, but must submit herself unto them. And whereas it is alleged that faith comes by hearing, Rom. 10. and this hearing is in respect of the voice of the Church, and that therefore faith comes by the voice of the Church: the answer is, that the place must be understood not of that general faith whereby we are resolved that Scripture is Scripture, but of justifying faith, whereby we attain unto salvation. And faith comes by hearing the voice of the Church, not as it is the church's voice, but as it is a ministry or means to publish the word of God, which is both the cause & object of our believing. Now on the contrary we must hold, that as the carpenter knows his rule to be strait, not by any other rule applied unto it, but by itself: for casting his eye upon it, he presently discerns whether it be strait or no: so we know and are resolved that Scripture is Scripture, even by the Scripture itself, though the Church say nothing; so be it we have the spirit of discerning when we read, hear, and consider of the Scripture. And yet the testimony of the Church is not to be despised, for though it breed not a persuasion in us of the certainty of the Scripture, yet is it a very good inducement thereto. The militant Church hath many parts. For as the Ocean sea which is but one, is divided into parts according to the regions and countries against which it lieth, as into the English, Spanish, Italian sea, etc. so the Church dispersed over the face of the whole earth, is divided into other particular Churches according as the countries are several in which it is seated, as into the Church of England and Ireland, the Church of France, the Church of Germany, etc. Again, particular Churches are in a twofold estate: sometime they lie hid in persecution, wanting the public preaching of the word, and the administration of the sacraments: & sometimes again they are visible, carrying before the eyes of the world an open profession of the name of Christ: as the moon is sometime eclipsed & sometime shineth in the full. In the first estate was the Church of Israel in the days of Eliah, when he wished to die: because the people had forsaken the covenant of the Lord, 1 King 19.14, 18. broken down his altars, slain his Prophets with the sword, and he was left alone and they sought to take away his life also. Behold a lamentable estate, when so worthy a Prophet could not find an other beside himself that feared God: yet mark what the Lord saith unto him, I have left seven thousand in Israel, even all the knees that have not bowed unto Baal, and every mouth that hath not kissed him. Again it is said, that Israel had been a long season without the true God, without priest to teach, 2. Chron. 15.3. and without the law. Neither must this trouble any that God should so far forth forsake his Church: for when ordinary means of salvation fail, he than gathereth his Elect by extraordinary means; as when the children of Israel wandered in the wilderness wanting both circumcision and the Passeover, he made a supply by Manna and by the pillar of a cloud▪ Hence we have direction to answer the Papists, who demand of us where our Church was threescore years ago before the days of Luther: we say that then for the space of many hundred years an universal Apostasy overspread the face of the whole earth, and that our Church then was not visible to the world, but lay hid under the chaff of Popery. And the truth of this, the Records of all ages manifest. The second estate of the Church is, when it flourisheth and is visible, nor that the faith and secret Election of men can be seen (for no man can discern these things but by outward signs) but because it is apparent in respect of the outward assemblies gathered to the preaching of the word and the administration of the Sacraments, for the praise and glory of God and their mutual edification. And the visible Church may be thus described: It is a mixed company of men professing the faith, assembled together by the preaching of the word. Math. 13.25▪ 47. First of all I call it a mixed company, because in it there be true believers and hypocrites, Elect and Reprobate, good and bad. The Church is the Lords field in which the enemy soweth his tars: it is the corn floor in which lieth wheat and chaff: it is a band of men in which beside those that be of valour & courage, there be white liuered soldiers. And it is called a Church of the better part, namely the Elect whereof it consisteth, though they be in number few. As for the ungodly, though they be in the Church, yet they are no more parts of it indeed, than the superfluous humours in the veins, are parts of the body. But to proceed, how are the members of the visible Church qualified and discerned? the answer followeth in the definition, professing the faith▪ whereby I mean the profession of that religion which hath been taught from the beginning, and is now recorded in the writings of the Prophets and Apostles. And this profession is a sign and mark whereby a man is declared and made manifest to be a member of the Church. Again, because the profession of the faith is otherwhiles true and sincere, and otherwhiles only in show: therefore there be also two sorts of members of the visible Church, members before God and members before men. A member of the Church before God is he, that beside the outward profession of the faith, hath inwardly a pure heart, good conscience, and faith unfeigned, whereby he is indeed a true member of the Church. Members before men, whom we may call reputed members, are such as have nothing else but the outward profession wanting the good conscience and the faith unfeigned. The reason why they are to be esteemed members of us is, because we are bound by the rule of charity to think of men as they appear unto us: leaving secret judgements unto God. I added in the last place, that the Church is gathered by the word preached, to show that the cause whereby it is begun and continued, is the word: which, 1▪ Pet. 1.23. Hebr. 5.13. 1. Cor. 3.2. for that cause is called the immortal seed whereby we are borne anew, and milk, whereby we are fed and cherished to life everlasting. And hence it followeth necessarily, that the preaching of the doctrine of the Prophets and Apostles, joined with any measure of faith and obedience, is an unfallible mark of a true Church. Indeed it is true, there be three things required to the good estate of a Church, the preaching of the Gospel, the administration of the Sacraments, and due execution of Discipline according to the word: yet if the two latter be wanting, if there be preaching of the word with obedience in the people, there is for substance a true Church of God. For it is the banner of Christ displayed, under which all that war against the flesh, the devil, the world, must range themselves. As the Lord saith by the Prophet Isai, I will lift up my hand to the Gentiles, and set up my standard unto the people, Isai 49.22. and they shall bring their sons in their arms, and their daughters shall be carried upon their shoulders. Hence it followeth that men which want the preaching of the Gospel, must either procure the same unto themselves, or if that cannot be, because they live in the midst of idolatrous nations, as in Spain and Italy, it is requisite that they should join themselves to those places where with liberty of conscience they may enjoy this happy blessing. Men are not to have their hearts glued to the honours and riches of this world, but they should be of David's mind, and rather desire to be dorekeepers in the house of God, then to dwell in the tents of ungodliness. In the Canticles, the spouse of Christ saith, Show mercy, O thou whom my soul loveth, Cant. 1.6. where thou feedest, where thou liest at noon: for why should I be as she that turneth aside to the flocks of thy companions. To whom he answereth thus: If thou know not, O thou the fairest among women, get thee forth by the steps of the flock, vers. 7. and feed thy kids by the tents of the shepherds: that is, in those places where the doctrine of righteousness and life everlasting by the Messiah is published. When the Shunamites child was dead, she told her husband that she would go to the man of God, to whom he answered thus; Why wilt thou go to him to day, it is neither new moon nor sabbath day: 2. Kin. 4.23. whereby is signified that when teaching was scarce in Israel, the people did resort to the Prophets for instruction and consolation. And David saith, that the people wheresoever their abode was, went from strength to strength till they appeared before God in Zion. And oftentimes, they being Proselytes, Psal. 84.7. there abode must needs be out of the precincts of jewrie. Thus we see what the visible Church is: now further concerning it, three questions are to be skamned. The first is, how we may discern whether particular men and particular Churches holding errors, be sound members of the Catholic Church or no. For the answering of this, we must make a double distinction, one of errors, the other of persons that err. Of errors, some are destroyers of the faith, some only weakners of it. A destroyer is that, 2. Tim. 2.12. which overturneth any fundamental point of religion; which is of that nature, that if it be denied, religion itself is overturned; as the denial of the death of Christ, & the immortality of the soul, a justification by works. and such like: and the sum of these fundamental points is comprised in the Creed of the Apostles and the Decalogue. A weakening error is that, the holding whereof doth not overturn any point in the foundation of salvation; as the error of free will, and sundry such like. This distinction is made by the holy Ghost, who saith expressly that the doctrines of repentance, and faith, Gal. 5.2, 3. Hebr. 6.1. 1. Cor. 3.10. and baptisms, and laying on of hands, and the resurrection, and the last judgement, are the foundation, namely of religion: and again, that Christ is the foundation, and that other doctrines consonant to the word, are as gold and silver laid thereupon. Secondly persons erring▪ are of two sorts: some err of weakness, being carried away by others; or of simple ignorance, not yet being convicted and informed concerning the truth. Some again err of obstinacy, or affected ignorance, which having been admonished and convicted, still persevere in their forged opinions. This being said, we now come to the point. If any man or Church, shall hold an error of the lighter kind, he still remains a member of the Church of God, and so must be reputed of us. As when a Lutheran shall hold, that images are still to be retained in the Church; that there is an Universal Election of all men, etc. for these and such like opinions may be maintained, the foundation of salvation unraced. This which I say is flatly avouched by Paul, If any man (saith he) build on this foundation gold, silver, precious stones; timber, hay, or stubble, his work shall be made manifest by the fire, etc. and if any man's work burn, he shall lose, but yet he shall be safe himself. 1. Cor. 3▪ 15. And therefore the hay and stubble of men's errors beside the foundation on which they are laid, do not debar them from being Christians or members of the Church. A man breaks down the windows of his house; the house stands: he breaks down the roof or the walls; the house yet stands, though deformed: he pulls up the foundation; the house itself falls and ceaseth to be an house. Now religion which we profess is like an house or building: and some points thereof are like windows, doors, walls, roofs, and some are the foundation: and the former may be battered, the foundation standing. Again, if the error be directly or by necessary consequent, even in common sense against the foundation, consideration must be had whether the Church or party erreth of weakness or malice▪ if of weakness, the party is to be esteemed as a member of the Catholic Church. And thus Paul writes unto the Church of Galatia, as to a Church of God, though by false teachers it had been turned a way to another Gospel, and embraced the fundamental error of justification by works. But when any man or Church shall hold fundamental errors in obstinacy or affected ignorance, we are then not bound to repute them any longer as Churches or Christians, but as such to whom condemnation belongs, as Paul showeth by the example of jannes' and jambres. And as jamnes and jambres, saith he, withstood Moses, so do these also resist the truth, 2. Tim. 3.8. men of corrupt minds, reprobate concerning the faith. Yet withal this caveat must ever be remembered, that we rather condemn the error than the person that erreth, because God's mercy is like a bottomless sea, whereby he worketh what he will and when he will in the hearts of miserable sinners. The second question is, where at this day we may find such visible Churches as are indeed sound members of the Catholic Church. And for the resolving of it, we are to go through all countries and religions in the world. And first to begin with Turks and jews, we are not in any wise to acknowledge their assemblies for Churches, because they worship not God in Christ who is the head of the Church. As for the Assemblies of Papists which have been a great part of the world, if thereby we understand companies of men holding the Pope for their head, and believing the doctrine established in the council of Trent; in name they are called churches, but indeed they are no true or sound members of the Catholic Church. For both in their doctrine & in the worship of God they raze the very foundation of religion, which will appear by these three points. First of all they hold justification by works of grace: avouching that they are not only justified before god by the merit of Christ, but also by their own doings. Which opinion flatly ouer●urneth justification by Christ. For as Paul saith to the Galatians, If ye be circumcised Christ profiteth you nothing, that is, if ye look to be justified by the works of the ceremonial law, ye are fallen from Christ: Gal. 5.2. join Circumcision & Christ together in the matter of justification, and ye do quite overthrow justification by Christ. Now if this be true, which is the word of God that can not lie, than we say to the Papists, If ye will needs be justified by works of grace, ye are fallen from grace. The second point is, that they maintain a daily real sacrifice of the body of Christ in the Mass for the sins of the quick and dead. And this is also a fundamental heresy. For Christ's sacrifice on the cross must either be a perfect sacrifice or no sacrifice: and if it be often iterated and repeated by the masspriest, it is not perfect but imperfect. The third point is, that they worship the Images of the Trinity and of Saints departed, and their Breaden-god, which is as vile an abomination as ever was among the Gentiles: all being directly against the true meaning of the second Commandment, and defacing the worship of God in the very substance thereof. Thus than it appears that the old Church of Rome is changed, and is now at this day, of a spouse of Christ become an harlot: and therefore no more a Church of Christ indeed, than the carcase of a dead man that weareth a living man's garment is a living man, though he look never so like him. And whereas they plead for themselves that they have succession from the Apostles, the answer is, that succession of person is nothing without succession of doctrine, which they want: and we see that Heretics have succeeded lawful Ministers. Secondly, whereas it is alleged that in the Popish assemblies the Sacrament of Baptism is rightly for substance administered; and that also it is a note of a Church, three things may be answered. First, that Baptism severed from the preaching of the Gospel, is no more a sign of a Church, than the seal severed from the Indenture is of force; and that is nothing. Circumcision was used in Colchis yet no Church, Herodot. & among the Samaritans, & yet no people. Secondly Baptism is in the assemblies of the Church of Rome, Hos. 1.9. as the purse of the true man in the hand of the thief: & indeed it doth no more argue them to be churches, than the true man's purse argues the thief to be a true man. For baptism though it be in their assemblies, yet doth it appertain not unto them, but unto an other hidden Church of God, which he hath in all ages gathered forth of the midst of them. Thirdly, though they have the outward Baptism, yet they by necessary consequent of doctrine, overturn the inward baptism that stands in justification and sanctification. Moreover, whereas it is alleged that they maintain the book of the old and new Testament penned by the Prophets and Apostles; the answer is, that they do it with adding to the Canon, and by corrupting the native sense of the Scriptures in the very foundation: and therefore they are but as a lantern that shows light to others and none to itself. Fourthly, it is further said that they hold the Creed of the Apostles, and make the same confession of faith that we do. I answer that in show of words they do so indeed: but by necessary consequents in the rest of their doctrine they overturn one of the natures and all the offices of Christ, and therewithal most of the articles of the Creed. And herein they deal as a father, that in outward show tenders the body of his child, and will not abide the least blemish upon it: and yet by secret conveyances inwardly annoys the heart, the brain, or the liver, and so in truth destroys the same. Fifthly it is alleged, that Antichrist must sit in the Temple of God, that is, the Church: therefore say some that desire an union between us and the Papists, popish assemblies are true Churches: but the argument is not good. For it is one thing to be in the Church, an other thing to be of it. And Antichrist is said to sit in the Church, not as a member thereof, but as an usurper, or as the pirate in the ship of the merchant: & hence it cannot be proved, that assemblies of Papists are Churches, but that in them and with them there is mingled an other hidden Church in the midst whereof Antichrist the Pope ruleth, though himself hath no part therein. Lastly, whereas some, being no Papists, think their Churches to be like a body diseased and full of sores and wounds from the head to the foot, & the throat also cut, yet so as life is still remaining; we may better think, (their foul errors considered & their worship of God, which is nothing else but a mixture of judaisme and Paganism) that it is a rotten and dead corpse void of spiritual life. And therefore we have severed ourselves from the Church of Rome upon just cause: neither are we schismatics in so doing, but they rather; because the ground & the proper cause of the schism is in them. As for the Assemblies of Anabaptists, Libertines, Antinomies, Trit●eits, Arrians, Samosa●eniās, they are no churches of God▪ but conspiracies of monstrous heretics judicially condemned in the primitive Church, and again by the malice of Satan renewed and revived in this age. The same we are to think and say of the Family of love. As for the Churches of Germany commonly called the Churches of the Lutherans, they are to be reputed of us as the true Churches of God. Though their Augustane Confession have not satisfied the expectation of other Reformed Churches: yet have they all the same enemies in matter of religion, and do alike confess the Father, the Son, and the holy Ghost: and of the office of the Mediator, of faith and good works, of the Word, the Church and the Magistrate, are all of one judgement. They differ indeed from us in the question of the Sacrament, but it is no sufficient cause to induce us to hold them as no Church: for that there is a true or real receiving of the body and blood of Christ in the lords supper, we all agree; and we jointly confess that Christ is there present so far forth that he doth truly feed us with his very body and blood to eternal life: and all the controversy lies in the manner of receiving; we contenting ourselves with that spiritual receiving which is by the hand of faith, they adding thereto the corporal, whereby they imagine themselves to receive Christ with the hand and mouth of the body. And though to maintain this their opinion, they be constrained to turn the ascension of Christ into a disparition, whereby his body being visible becomes invisible, yet in the main points we agree: that Christ ascended into heaven: that he entered into his kingdom in our name and for us: that we are governed and preserved by his power and might: and that whatsoever good thing we have or do, proceeds wholly from the grace of his spirit. Indeed the opinion of the Ubiquity of the body of Christ reviveth the condemned heresies of Eutiches and Nestorius, and it overturneth by necessary consequent most of the articles of faith: but that was private to some men, as Brentius and others, and was not received of whole Churches: and whereas the men were godly and learned, and we are uncertain with what affection, and how long they held this error, we rest ourselves in condemning it, leaving the persons to God. Again Popish Transubstantiation, and Lutherian Consubstantiation, are both against the truth of the manhood of Christ; yet with great difference. Transubstantiation is flat against an article of faith: for if Christ's body be made of bread, and his blood of wine (which must needs be if there be a conversion of the one into the other) then was not he conceived and borne of the Virgin Marie: for it can not both be made of bakers bread and of the substance of the Virgin. Again it abolisheth the outward sign in the lords supper, and the a and so ouerturnes the sacrament. analogy between the sign and the thing signified: but Consubstantiation doth not so, neither doth it overturn the substance of any article of Religion, but only a main point in Philosophy, which is, that A body doth occupy only one place at once. Furthermore the Churches of Helvetia, & Savoie, & the free cities of France, & the low Countries, & Scotland▪ are to be reverenced as the true churches of God, as their Confessions make manifest. And no less must we think of our own Churches in England and Ireland. For we hold, believe, and maintain, and preach the true faith, that is, the ancient doctrine of salvation by Christ, taught and published by the Prophets and Apostles, as the Book of the articles of faith agreed upon in open Parliament do fully show: & withal now we are, and have been ready to testify this our faith, by venturing our lives even in the cause of religion against foreign power, and especially the Spainard: and hereupon all the Churches in Europe give unto us the hand of fellowship. And whereas sundry among us that separate and indeed excommunicate themselves, give out that there is no Church in England, no Ministers, no Sacraments: their peremptory asseverations wanting sufficient ground, are but as paper-shot. They allege that our assemblies are full of grievous blots and enormities. Answ. The defects and corruptions of Churches must be distinguished: and they be either in doctrine, or manners. Again corruptions in doctrine must be further distinguished: some of them are errors indeed, but beside the foundation; & some errors directly against the foundation: and these overturn all religion, whereas the former do not. Now it can not be showed that in our Churches is taught any one error that raceth the foundation, and consequently annihillateth the truth of God's Church. Indeed there is controversy among us touching the point of Ecclesiastical regiment: but mark in what manner. We all jointly agree in the substance of the regiment, confessing freely that there must be preaching of the word, administration of the sacraments according to the institution, and the use of the Power of the keys in admonitions, suspentions, excommunications: the difference between us is only touching the persons, and the manner of putting this government in execution: and therefore men on both parts, though both hold not the truth in this point; yet because both hold Christ the foundation, they still remain brethren and true members of Christ. As for corruptions in manners, they make not a Church to be no Church, but a bad Church. When as the wicked Scribes and pharisees sitting in Moses Chair, Math. 23.2. taught the things which he had written, the people are commanded to hear them, and to do the things which they say, not doing the things which they do. And whereas it is said, that we hold Christ in word, and deny him in deed; that is answered thus: denial of Christ is double, either in judgement, or in fact: denial in judgement joined with obstinacy, makes a Christian to be no Christian; denial in fact, the judgement still remaining sound, makes not a man to be no Christian, but a bad Christian. When the jews had crucified the Lord of life, they still remained a Church, if any upon earth: Rom. 9.4. Act. 2.39. and notwithstanding this their fact, the Apostles acknowledged that the covenant & the promises still belonged unto them: and they never made any separation from their Synagogues, till such time as they had been sufficiently convicted by the Apostolical ministery, that jesus Christ was the true Messiah. Thus we see where at this day we may find the true Church of God. Now I come to the third question: and that is, at what time a man may with good conscience make separation from a Church? Answer. So long as a Church makes no separation from Christ, we must make no separation from it: and when it separates from Christ, we may also separate from it: and therefore in two cases there is warrant of separation. The one is, when the worship of God is corrupt in substance. And for this we have a commandment, Be not, saith Paul, unequally yoked with infidels: 2. Cor. 6.14. for what fellowship hath righteousness with unrighteousness, or what communion hath light with darkness, or what concord hath Christ with Belial? or what part hath the believer with the infidel? or what agreement hath the temple of God with idols? wherefore come out from among them and separate yourselves, saith the Lord. And we have a practice of this in the old testament. When jeroboam had set up idols in Israel, 2. Chr. 11.14. than the Priests and Levites came to judah and jerusalem to serve the Lord. The second is, when the doctrine of religion is corrupt in substance: as Paul saith, If any man teach otherwise, and consent not to the wholesome words of our Lord jesus Christ, 1. Tim. 6.3. and to the doctrine which is acdording to godliness, he is puffed up; from such separate yourselves. A practice of this we have in the Apostle Paul, who being in Ephesus in a Synagogue of the jews, spoke boldly for the space of three months, disputing and exhorting to the things which concern the kingdom of God: but when certain men were hardened and disobeyed, speaking evil of the way of God, he departed from them, and separated the disciples of Ephesus: Act. 19.9. & 28.28. and the like he did at Rome also. As for the corruptions that be in the manners of men that be of the Church, they are no sufficient warrant of separation, unless it be from private company, 1. Cor. 5.11. Psal. 17.4. 2. Pet. 2.8. as we are admonished by the Apostle Paul; and by the examples of David and Lot. By this which hath been said, it appears that the practice of such as make separation from us, is very bad and schismatical, considering our Churches fail not either in the substance of doctrine, or in the substance of the true worship of God. Now to proceed in the Creed. The Church is further set forth by certain properties and prerogatives. The properties or qualities are two, holiness and largeness. That the Church is holy, it appears by Peter, which calls it an holy nation, and a chosen people: and by Saint john, 1. Pet. 2.9. Rev. ●. 2. & 22 29. who calls it the holy city. And it is so called, that it may be distinguished from the false Church, which is termed in Scriptures the Synagogue of Satan, Rev. 2.9. & 3.9. Psal. 26.5. and the malignant Church. Now this holiness of the Church is nothing else but a created quality in every true member thereof, whereby the image of God which was lost by the fall of Adam is again renewed and restored. The author of it is God by his word and spirit, by little and little abolishing the corruption of sin and sanctifying us throughout, joh. 17. vers. 17. Father sanctify them in thy truth, thy word is truth. And holiness must be conceived to be in the Church on this manner: it is perfect in the Church Triumphant, and it is only begun in the Church Militant in this life: and that for special cause, 1. Tim. 1.17. Rom. 11.20 Phil. 2.12. Mar. 9.24. that we might give all glory to God; that we might not be high minded, that we might work ou● salvation with fear and trembling; that we might deny ourselves and wholly depend upon God. Hence we learn three things: first that the Church of Rome erreth in teaching that a wicked man, yea such an one as shall never be saved, may be a true member of the Catholic Church: for in reason every man should be answerable to the quality and condition of the Church whereof he is a member: if it be holy, as it is; he must be holy also. Secondly we are every one of us, as Paul saith to Timothy, 1. Tim. 4.7. to exercise ourselves unto godliness, making conscience of all our former unholy ways, endeavouring ourselves to please God in the obedience of all his commandments. It is a disgrace to the holy Church of God that men professing themselves to be members of it, should be unholy. Thirdly our duty is, to eschew the society of Atheists, drunkards, fornicators, blasphemers, and all wicked and ungodly persons, as Paul saith, Be no companions of them and have no fellowship with the unprofitable works of darkness. Eph. 3.7. And he chargeth the Thessalonians, that if any man among them walk inordinately they have no company with him that he may be ashamed. 2. Thess. 3.14. The largeness of the Church is noted in the word Catholic▪ that is, general or universal. And it is so called for three causes. For first of all it is general in respect of time; because the Church hath had a being in all times and ages ever since the giving of the promise to our first parents in Paradise. Secondly it is general, in respect of the persons of men: for it stands of all sorts and degrees of men, high and low, rich and poor, learned and unlearned, etc. Thirdly it is Catholic or universal in respect of place; because it hath been gathered from all the parts of the earth, specially now in the time of the new Testament; when our Saviour Christ saith, Math. 26.23. that the Gospel shall be preached in the whole world. To this purpose john saith in the Revelation, Rev. 7.9. Catholica. i. per totum orbe● diffusa, August. epist. 170. I beheld and lo a great multitude which no man could number of all nations and kindreds, and peoples and tongues, stood before the throne and before the lamb, clothed with long white robes and palms in their hands. And the Church which we here profess to believe, is called Catholic, that we may distinguish it from particular Churches, which are not believed, but seen with eye, whereof mention is made often in the Scriptures. Rom. 16.5. 1. Cor. 16.19. the Church in their house: and the Churches of Asia. Coloss. 4.15. Salute Nymphas and the Church in his house. Act. 11.22. the Church of jerusalem. Act. 13.1. the Church at Antioch, etc. That the Church is Catholic in respect of time, place, person, it ministers matter of endless comfort unto us. For hereby we see that no order, degree, or state of men are excluded from grace in Christ, unless they will exclude themselves. Saint john saith, If any man sin, we have an advocate with the father, jesus Christ the righteous. joh. 2.1, 2. Now it might be answered, it is true indeed Christ is an advocate to some men, but he is no advocate to me: Saint john therefore saith further, and he is the reconciliation for our sins, and not for our sins only, but for the whole world, that is, for all believers of what condition or degree soever. Thus much of the properties of the Church: now follow the prerogatives or benefits which God bestoweth on it, which are in number four. The first is expressed in these words, The communion of Saints. Where communion signifieth that fellowship or society that one hath with an other: and by Saints we understand not dead men enrolled in the Pope's Calendar, but all that are sanctified by the blood of Christ, whether they be living or dead: as Paul saith, unto the Church of God which is at Corinthus, to them that are sanctified in jesus Christ Saints by calling. And God is the God of peace in all the Churches of the Saints. 1. Cor. 1.2. and 14.33. Now if we add the clause I believe, unto these words, the meaning is this; I confess and acknowledge that there is a spiritual fellowship and society among all the members of Christ, being the faithful servants and children of God: and withal I believe that I am partaker of the same with the rest. This communion hath two parts, fellowship of the members with the head, and of the members with themselves. The communion of the members with their head is not outward, but altogether spiritual in the conscience: and for the opening of it we must consider what the Church receiveth of Christ, and what he receives of it. The Church receives of Christ four most worthy benefits. The first, that Christ our Mediator, God and man, hath truly given himself unto us, and is become our lot and portion, and withal God the father, and the holy Spirit in him, as David saith, jehovah is the portion of mine inheritance, and of my cup: Psal. 16.5. thou shalt maintain my lot: the lines are fallen unto me in pleasant places: yea I have a fair heritage. And, My flesh faileth and my heart also: Psal. 73.26. but God is the strength of my heart, and my portion for ever. The second is, the Right of adoption, whereby all the faithful whether in heaven or earth are actually made the children of God. The benefit is wonderful, howsoever carnal men esteem not of it. If a man should either by election or birth, or any way else be made the son & heir of an earthly prince, he would think himself highly advanced: how highly then are they extolled which are made the sons of God himself. The third benefit is a title and right to the righteousness of Christ in his sufferings, and his fulfilling of the law. The excellency of it is unspeakable, because it serves to award the greatest temptations of the devil▪ when the devil replieth thus, thou art a transgressor of the law of God, therefore thou shalt be damned; by means of that communion which we have with Christ we answer again: that Christ suffered the curse of the law to free us from due and deserved damnation: and when he further replies, that seeing we never fulfilled the law, we can not therefore enter into heaven: we answer again, that Christ's obedience is a fulfilling of the law for us and his whole righteousness is ours to make us stand righteous before God. The fourth benefit is a right to the kingdom of heaven, as Christ comforting his disciples saith, Fear not little flock it is your father's pleasure to give you a kingdom: and hence it is sundry times called a Act. 26.18. Coloss. 1.12. Eph. 1.18. the inheritance and the lot of the saints. Furthermore for the conu●iance of these benefits unto us, God hath ordained the preaching of the word and the administration of the sacraments, specially the Lords supper: and hath commanded the solemn and ordinary use of them in the Church. And hereupon the Lords supper is called the Communion. The cup of blessing (saith Paul) which we bless, is it not the communion of the blood of Christ: & the bread which we break, 1. Cor. 10.16. is it not the communion of the body of Christ: that is, a sign and seal of the communion. Again the things which Christ receiveth of us are two: our sins with the punishment thereof made his by application or imputation: and our afflictions with all the miseries of this life which he accounts his own, & therefore doth as it were put under his shoulder to bear the burden of them. And this communion between Christ and us is expressed in the scriptures by that blessed and heavenly bargain in which their is mutual exchange between Christ and us: he imparts unto us milk and wine without silver or money to refresh us, Isa. 55.1. and gold tried by the fire that we may become rich, and white raiment that we may be clothed, and eyesalve, to anoint our eyes that we may see: Rev. 3.18. & we for our parts return unto him nothing but blindness and nakedness, and poverty, and the loathsome burden of our filthy sins. The second part of the communion is that which the saints have one with another. And it is either of the living with the living, or of the living with the dead. Now the communion of the living stands in three things: I. in like affection: II. in the gifts of the spirit: III. in the use of temporal riches. For the first, communion in affection is, whereby all the servants of God are like affected to God, to Christ, to their own sins, and each to other. They are all of one nature and heart alike disposed though they be not acquainted nor have any external fellowship in the flesh. As in a family children are for the most part one like another and brought up alike: even so it is in God's family which is his Church: the members thereof are all alike in heart and affection: and the reason is, because they have one spirit to guide them all: and therefore S. Peter saith, The multitude of them that believed were of one heart and of one soul, Act. 4.32. neither any of them said that any thing of that which he possessed was his own, but they had all things common. And the Prophet Esai foretelling the unity which should be in the kingdom of Christ, saith, The wolf shall dwell with the lamb, Esa. 11.6, 7. and the leopard shall lie with the kid, and the calf and the lion, and the fat beast together, and a little child shall lead them. The cow and the bear shall feed, and their young ones shall lie together: and the lion shall eat straw like the bullock. The sucking child shall play upon the hole of the asp, and the waned child shall put his hand into the cockatrice hole. By these beasts are signified, men that be of a wicked & brutish nature: which, when they shall be brought into the kingdom of Christ, shall lay aside the same & become loving, gentle, courteous, & all of one mind. And S. Peter requires of the Church the practice of brotherly love, and that is to carry a tender affection to men, 2. Pet. 1.7. not because they are of the same flesh, but because they are joined in the bond of one spirit with us. Furthermore, by reason of this that all the children of God are of one heart, there follows another duty of this communion, Gal. 6.2. whereby they bear one the burdens of another, & when one member of the Church is grieved all are grieved, when one rejoiceth all rejoice; as in the body when one member suffereth all suffer. The second branch of their communion is in the gifts of God's spirit, as love, hope, fear, etc. And this is showed, when one man doth employ the graces of God bestowed on him, for the good and salvation of another. As a candle spendeth itself to give light to others: so must God's people spend those gifts which God hath given them for the benefit of their brethren. A christian man howsoever he be the freest man upon earth, yet is he servant to all men, especially to the Church of God to do service unto the members of it by love for the good of all. Gal. 5.13. And this good is procured, when we convey the graces of God bestowed on us to our brethren: and that is done five ways. I. by example: II. by admonition: III. by exhortation: FOUR by consolation: V by prayer. The first which is, good example, we are enjoined by Christ saying, Let your light so shine before men, Mat. 5. that they may see your good works and glorify your Father which is in heaven. And that our hearts might be touched with special care of this duty, the Lord sets before us his own blessed example, saying, Levit. 11▪ 44. Mat. 11.28. 1. Cor. 11.1. Be ye holy as I am holy: and, Learn of me that I am meek and lowly. And Paul saith, Be ye followers of me as I follow Christ: and the higher men are exalted, the more careful aught they to be in giving good example. For let a man of note or estimation do evil, and he shall presently have many followers. Evil example runs from one to another like a leprosy or infection: and this Christ signified when he said that the figtree planted in the vinyeard If it bear no fruit makes all the ground barren. Luk 13.18. The second means of communication of the gifts of God unto others, is admonition, which is an ordinance of God whereby Christian men are to recover their brethren from their sins. A man by occasion fallen into the water is in danger of his life▪ and the reaching of the hand by another is the means to save him. Now every man when he sinneth doth, as much as in him lieth, cast his soul into the very pit of hell: and wholesome admonitions are as the reaching out of the hand to recover him again. But it will peradventure be said, how must we proceed in admonishing of others? Answer. We are to observe three things. The first is, to search whether we that are to reprove be faulty ourselves in the same thing or no: first we must take ou● the beam that is in our own eye, Mat. 7.5. and so we shall see clearly to put out the mote in our brother's eye. II. before we reprove, we must be sure that the fault is committed: we must not go upon hearsay or likelihoods: and therefore the Holy ghost saith, Let us consider or observe one another to provoke unto love or good works. Heb. 10. 24· III. before we reprove, we must in Christian wisdom make choice of time and place: for all times and places serve not to this purpose. And therefore Solomon saith, It is the glory of a man to pass by an offence. Furthermore in the act of admonishing, two things are to be observed. I. a man must deliver the words of his admonition (so far forth as he can) out of the word of God, so as the party which is admonished, may in the person of man see God himself to reprove him. II. his reproof must be made with as much compassion and fellow-feeling of other men's wants as may be. Gal 6.1. As Paul saith, If any man be fallen by occasion into any fault, ye which are spiritual a As Chirurgeons tenderly set arms & legs in joint. restore such an one with the spirit of meekness. The third way of communicating good things to others is exhortation: and it is a means to excite and stir them on forward which do already walk in the way of godliness. Therefore the Holy Ghost saith, Exhort one another daily, lest any of you be hardened through the deceitfulness of sin. But alas, the practice of this duty, as also of the former is hard to be found among men; for it is usual in families that masters and fathers in stead of admonishing their servants and children, teach them the practice of sin in swearing, blaspheming, slandering, etc. and as for exhortation, it is not used. Let a man that hath the fear of God offend never so little, in stead of brotherly exhortation he shall hear his profession cast in his teeth, and his hearing of Sermons: this practice is so general, that many beginning newly to tread in the steps of godliness are hereby daunted, and quite driven back. The fourth way is consolation, which is a means appointed by God whereby one man should with words of heavenly comfort refresh the souls of others afflicted with sickness or any other way feeling the hand of God either in body or in mind▪ And this duty is as little regarded as any of the former. In time of men's sickness neighbours come in, but what say they? I am sorry to see you in this case, I hope to see you well again, I would be sorry else, etc. Not one of an hundred can speak a word of comfort to the weary: but we are faulty herein. For with what affection do we believe the communion of Saints, when we ourselves are as dry fountains that do scarce convey a drop of refreshing to others. The last means is prayer, whereby God's Church procureth God's blessings for the several members thereof, and they again for the whole. And herein lies a principal point of the communion of Saints; which ministereth notable comfort to every Christian heart. For hence we may reason thus: I am indeed a member of the Catholic Church of God, and therefore though my own prayers be weak, yet my comfort is this, I know that I am partaker of all the good prayers of all the people of God dispersed over the face of the whole earth my fellow members, and of all the blessings which God bestows on them. This will make us in all our troubles to say with Elisha, Fear not, for they that be with us are more than they that be with them. 2. Kin. 6. ●6. When the people of Israel had sinned in worshipping the golden calf, the wrath of the Lord was kindled & made a breach into them, as canon shot against a wall: but Moses the servant of God stood in the breach before the Lord to turn away his wrath, lest he should destroy them. Psa. 106. 2●. And the prayer of Moses was so effectual that the Lord said, Exod. 32. 1●. Let me alone, as though Moses by prayer had held the hand of God that he could not punish the people. And some think that Stevens prayer for his enemies when he was stoned was a means of Paul's conversion. And surely though the●e were no other reason, yet this were sufficient to move a man to embrace Christian religion, considering that being a member of the Church he hath part in all the prayers of the saints through the world, and of the blessings of God that come thereby. The third part of this communion is in temporal things, as goods and riches: whereby I mean no a Spiritual communion doth not bar a division of temporal goods▪ Act. 2.21. 2. Cor. 8.1. anabaptistical communion, but that which was used in the primitive Church, when they had all things common in respect of use: and some sold their goods and possessions and parted them to all men, as every one had need. And by their example we are taught to be content to employ those goods which God hath bestowed on us for the good of our fellow members within the compass of our callings, and to our ability & beyond our ability if need require. Paul saith, Do good to all but specially to them which are of the household of faith. Gal. 6.10. The communion of the living with the dead stands in two things: the one is, that the saints departed in the Church Triumphant do in general pray for the Church Militant upon earth, desiring the final deliverance of all their fellow members from all their miseries. And therefore in the Apocalyps they cry on this manner, How long Lord holy and true! dost not thou judge and avenge our blood on them that dwell on the earth. Rev. 6.10. I say in general, because they pray not for the particular conditions and persons of men upon earth, considering they neither know, nor see, nor hear us: neither can they tell what things are done upon earth. The second is, that the godly on earth do in heart and affection converse with them in heaven desiring continually to be dissolved and to be with Christ. Now whereas the Papists do further enlarge this communion, avouching that the Saints in heaven make intercession to Christ for us, and impart their merits unto us; & that we again for that cause are to invocate them, & to do unto them religious worship, we descent from, being resolved that these things are but inventions of man's brain wanting warrant of the word. Lastly, to conclude, a question may be demanded, how any one of us may particularly know and be assured in ourselves, that we have part in this communion of Saints. Ans. S. john opens this point to the full when he saith, If we say that we have fellowship with him, 1. joh. 1·6. and yet walk in darkness, we lie: but if we walk in the light, as he is light, than we have fellowship one with another, and the blood of Christ purgeth us from all our sins. In which words he makes knowledge of Gods will joined with obedience to be an infallible mark of one that is in the communion: as on the contrary, ignorance of God's will, or disobedience, or both to be tokens of one that hath neither fellowship with Christ, or with the true members of Christ. And therefore to end this point, if we would have fellowship with Christ, let us learn to know what sin is & to fli● from the same as from the bane of our souls, & to make conscience of every evil way. The duties to be learned by the communion of the saints are manifold. And first of all if we do believe the fellowship which all the faithful have with Christ & with themselves, and be resolved that we have part therein, then must we separate and withdraw ourselves from all ungodly and unlawful societies of men in the world whatsoever they be. Unlawful societies are manifold, but I will only touch one, which every where annoyeth religion, and hindereth greatly this communion of saints, & that is when men join themselves in company to pass away the time in drinking, gaming, etc. Behold a large fellowship which beareth sway in all places; there is almost no town but there is at the least one knot of such companions: & he that will not be combined with such lose mates, he is thought to be a man of no good nature: he is foisted forth of every company; he is no body: & if a man will yield to run riot with them in the misspending of his time & goods, he is thought to be the best fellow in the world. But what is done in this society? and how do these cupcompanions spend their time? surely the greatest part of day & night is usually spent in swearing, gaming, drinking, surfeiting, reveling, & railing on the ministers of the word, & such as profess religion, to omit the enormities which they procure unto themselves hereby: & this behaviour spreads itself like a canker over every place, & it defiles both town and country. But we that look for comfort by the communion of saints, must not cast in our lot with such a wicked generation, but separate ourselves from them. For undoubtedly their society is not of God but of the devil: and they that are of this society, can not be of the holy communion of saints: and surely except the Magistrate by the sword, or the Church by the power of the keys do pull down such fellowship, the holy society of God's Church and people must needs decay. Excommunication is a censure ordained of God for this end, to banish them from this heavenly communion of the members of Christ that live inordinately and have communion with men in the works of darkness. Secondly by this we are taught that men professing the same religion, must be linked in society and converse together in Christian love, meekness, gentleness, & patience: as S. Paul taught the Philippians, If there be any fellowship of the spirit, Phil. 2.1. if there be any compassion and mercy, fulfil my joy, that we may be like minded, having the same love, being of one accord and of like judgement. And again, Keep (saith he) the unity of the spirit in the bond of peace. Why? Mark how his reason is fetched from this communion: Because there is one body, Ephes. 4.3. one spirit, even as you are called into the hope of your vocation, one Lord, one faith, one hope, one baptism, one God and father of all, which is above all and in all. And no doubt the same reason made David say, All my delight is in the saints which be upon earth. Psal. 16.3. Thirdly every christian man that acknowledgeth▪ this communion must carry about with him a fellow·feeling, that is, an heart touched with compassion in regard of all the miseries that befall either the whole Church or any member thereof, as Christ our head teacheth us by his own example, when he called to Saul, & said Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me? giving him to understand, that he is touched with the abuses done to his Church as if they had directly been done to his own person. The Prophet Amos reproveth the people, because they drank wine in bowls, and anointed themselves with the chief ointments: but why? was it not lawful for them to do so? yes: but the cause for which they are reproved followeth: No man (saith he) is sorry for the affliction of joseph. Amos. 6.6. In the midst of their delights and pleasures they had no regard or compassion of the miseries of the poor Church and servants of God elsewhere in affliction, which every man ought to show ●orth in the practice of all duties of love: and therefore Paul saith, Pray always with all manner of prayers and supplications in the spirit, Eph. 6.18. and watch thereunto with all perseverance and supplications for the saints. And he highly commendeth the Philippians for communicating to his afflictions. Phil. 4.14. And further he biddeth Philemon to comfort Onesimus his bowels in the Lord. And S. john saith, If a man's life would save his neighbour's soul, he must lay it down for him, if need require. 1. joh. 3.16. We have all of us daily occasion to practise this duty towards the afflicted members of God's Church in other countries. For howsoever we enjoy the gospel with peace, yet they are under persecution for the same: and so oft as we hear report of this, we should suffer our hearts to be grieved with them, and pray to God for them. We must he●e be admonished not to seek our own things, but to refer the labours of our callings to the common good especially of the Church whereof we are members. As for them that seek for nothing but to maintain their own estate and wealth, and therefore in their trades use false weights and measures; the engrossing, corrupting, mingling of wares; glozing, lying, smoothing, swearing, forswearing, dissembling, griping, oppressing of the poor, etc. they may plead for themselves what they will, but in truth they never yet knew what the communion of Saints meant. Lastly, considering we are all knit into one mystical body, and have mutual fellowship in the same, our duty is both to redress the faults of our brethren and to cover them, as the hand in the body lays the plaster upon the sore in the foot or in the leg, and withal covers it. Love covers the multitude of sins. And when men disgrace their brethren for their wants, and blaze them to the world, they do not the duty of fellow members. Thus much for the first benefit bestowed on the Church: the second is, Forgiveness of sins: which may be thus described, Forgiveness of sins is a blessing of God upon his Church procured by the death & passion of Christ, whereby God esteems of sin as no sin, or, as not committed. In this description I have couched five points, which we are severally to consider. The first, who is the author of forgiveness of sins? Answ. God, whose blessing it is: for sin is only committed against God, and the violating of his laws & commandments are properly sins. And the offence done to any man or creature is no more in itself but an offence or injury: yea the breach of man's commandment is no sin, unless it do imply withal the breach of God's commandment. Therefore it is a prerogative belonging to God alone to pardon sin: and when we are taught to say▪ Forgive us our trespasses as we forgive them that trespass against us, the meaning is not, that we forgive sins as they are sins, but only as trespasses, that is, losses, hurts, and damages done unto us by men. It may be further said, God hath given this power and commandment to his ministers to forgive sins, saying, Whose sins ye remit, they are remitted. joh. 20.23. Answer. God's ministers do not properly forgive sins, but only in the name of God according to his word pronounce to a penitent sinner that his sins are pardoned and forgiven of God: and therefore it is a most certaen truth that none can forgive sins but God only: Mar. 2.7. it was avouched by the pharisees and not denied by Christ. Hence it followeth, that remission of sin being once granted remains for ever, because God's love unto the elect is unchangeable, and his decree concerning their salvation can not be altered. The second point is, to whom remission of sins is given? Answer. To the Catholic Church, that is, to the whole company of men predestinate to salvation: as Esai saith, The people that devil therein (that is, Esa. 33.24. in the Church) shall have their sins forgiven. And, they shall call them the holy people, the redeemed of the Lord: Esa. 62.12. and thou shalt be named, a city sought out and not forsaken. And if there had been an universal remission of sins to all men as some do dream, it should not here have been made a peculiar prerogative of the Church. The third point is, what is the means whereby pardon of sin is procured at God's hand? ●om. 4.25. Ans. The death & passion of Christ: so Paul saith, Christ died for our sins: that is, Christ died to be a payment & satisfaction to God's justice for our sins. And S. john saith, 1. joh. 1.7. The blood of jesus Christ his son cleanseth us from all sin. And Peter saith, Knowing that ye were not redeemed with corruptible things, 1. Pet. 1.18. as silver & gold from your vain conversation, etc. but with the precious blood of Christ as of a lamb undefiled & without spot. The fourth point is, after what manner sin is forgiven? Answ. By an action of God, whereby for the merit of Christ, he esteems and accounts sin as no sin, or, as if it had never been committed. Therefore David saith, Psal. 32.1. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord imputeth no sin. And in Esai the Lord saith, I have put away thy transgressions like a cloud, Esa. 44.22. and thy sins as a mist. Now we know that clouds and mists which appear for a time are afterward by the sun utterly dispersed. And king Hezekias when he would show that the Lord had forgiven him his sins, saith, God hath cast them behind his back, alluding to the manner of men, Esa. 38.17. who when they will not remember or regard a thing, do turn their backs upon it. And Micheas saith, that God doth cast all the sins of his people into the bottom of the sea, Mich. 7.19. alluding to Pharaoh, whom the Lord drowned in the bottom of the red sea. And Christ hath taught us to pray thus: Forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtor: in which words is an allusion to creditors, who then forgive debts, when they account that which is debt as no debt, and cross the book. Hence it appears, that damnable & vile is the opinion of the Church of Rome which holdeth that there is a remission of the fault without a remission of the punishment: & withal, the doctrines of human satisfactions, & indulgencies, and purgatory, & prayer for the dead, built upon this foundation, are of the same kind. Moreover, we must remember to add too this clause, I believe, and then the meaning is this. I do not only believe that god doth give pardon of sin to his church & people (for that the very devils believe) but withal I believe the forgiveness of mine own particular sins. Hence it appears that it was the judgement of the Primitive Church that men should believe the forgiveness of their own sins. By this prerogative we reap endless comfort: for the pardon of sin is a most wonderful blessing, and without it every man is more miserable and wretched than the most vile creature that ever was. We loath the serpent or the toad; but if a man have not the pardon of his sins procured by the death and passion of Christ, he is a thousand fold worse than they. For when they die, there is the end of their woe and misery: but when man dieth without this benefit, there is the beginning of his. For first in soul till the day of judgement, and then both in body and soul for evermore he shall enter into the endless pains and torments of hell; in which if one should continue so many thousand years as there are drops in the Ocean sea, and then be delivered, it were some ●ase: but having continued so long (which is an unspeakable length of time) he must remain there as long again, and after that for ever and ever without release: and therefore among all the benefits that ever were or can be thought of, this is the greatest & most precious. Among all the burdens that can befall a man, what is the greatest? Some will say, sickness, some ignominy, some poverty, some contempt: but indeed among all, the heaviest and the greatest is the burden of a man's own sins, lying upon the conscience and pressing it down, without any assurance of pardon. David being a King had no doubt all that heart could wish; and yet he, laying aside all the royalties and pleasures of his kingdom, saith this one thing above all, that he is a blessed man that is eased of the burden of his sins. Psal. 32.1. A lazar man full of sores is ugly to the sight, and we can not abide to look upon him: but no lazar is so loathsome to us, as all sinners are in the sight of God: & therefore David counted him blessed, whose sins were covered. It may be some will say, there is no cause why a man should thus magnify the pardon of sin, considering it is but a common benefit. Thus indeed men may imagine which never knew what sin meant: but let a man only as it were, but with the tip of his finger have a little feeling of the smart of his sins, he shall find his estate so fearful, that if the whole world were set before him on the one side, and the pardon of sins on the other, he would choose the pardon of his sin before ten thousand worlds. Though many drowsy protestants esteem nothing of it, yet to the touched conscience it is a treasure, which when a man finds, he hides it, and goes home and sells all that he hath and buys it. Therefore this benefit is most excellent, and for it the members of God's Church have great cause to give God thanks without ceasing. The duties to be learned hence are these. And first of all here comes a common fault of men to be rebuked. Every one will say, that he believeth the remission of sins, yet no man almost laboureth for a true & certain persuasion hereof in his own conscience: & for proof hereof, propound this question to the common Christian; Dost thou persuade thyself that God gives remission of sins unto his Church? The answer will be, I know and believe it. But ask him further: Dost thou believe the pardon of thine own sins? and than comes in a blind answer, I have a good hope to God ward, but I can not tell; I think no man can say so much: for God saith to no man, thy sins are pardoned. But this is to speak flat contraries, to say they believe, and they can not tell: and it bewrays exceeding negligence in matters of salvation. But let them that fear God, or love their own soul's health, give all diligence to make sure the remission of their own sins: withal, avoiding hardness of heart and drowsiness of spirit, the most fearful judgements of God which every where take place. The foolish virgins went forth to meet the bridegroom with lamps in their hands as well as the wise, but they never so much as dreamt of the horn of oil, till the coming of the bridegroom. So many men live in the Church of God as members thereof, holding up the lamp of glorious profession: but in the mean season they seek only for the things of this life, never casting how they may assure themselves in conscience touching their reconciliation with God, till the day of death come. Secondly, if we be here bound to believe the pardon of all our sins, than we must every day humble ourselves before God, and seek pardon for our daily offences: for he gives grace to the humble or contrite; he f●●les the hungry with good things when the rich are sent empty away. When Benhadad the king of Syria was discomfited and overcome by the king of Israel, 1. Kin. 20.32 by the counsel of his servants, who told him that the kings of Israel were merciful men, he sent them clothed in sackcloth with ropes about their necks to entreat for peace and favour. Now when the king saw their submission, he made covenant of peace with him. We by our sins must justly deserve hell, death, and condemnation every day, and therefore it standeth us in hand to come into the presence of God and to humble ourselves before him in sackcloth and ashes, craving and entreating for nothing in the world so much as for pardon of our sins, and that day by day without ceasing till the Lord give this blessed answer to our consciences, that all our sins are put out of his remembrance. We must not think that God putteth grace into men's hearts when they lie snurting upon their elbows, and either not use or despise the means: but we must first use the means partly by making confession of our sins to God, and partly by crying to heaven for pardon: and then when by his grace we begin to desire grace, he gives further grace. Lastly, if we believe the pardon of our sins, than we must change the tenor and course of our lives, and take heed of breaking Gods commandments by doing any of those things, whereof our consciences do accuse us, and tell us, that by them we have displeased God heretofore. A man that for some misdemeanour hath been cast into prison and lain there many years winter and summer in cold irons: when he obtains liberty, he will often bethink himself of his old misery▪ and take heed for eue● lest he fall into the same offence again: and he which hath seen his own sins and felt the smart of them, and withal by God's goodness obtained assurance touching the pardon of them, will never wittingly and willingly commit the like sins any more, but in all things change the course of his life. As for such as say, that they have the pardon of their sins and yet live in them still, they deceive themselves and have no faith at all. Thus much for the second benefit which God bestoweth on his Church, namely remission of sins: now followeth the third in these words: The resurrection of the body. In the handling whereof sundry points must be considered. The first, whether there be a resurrection or no? This question must needs be handled, because Epicures and Atheists in all ages, and at this day some do call this article in question. Now that there is a resurrection of the body after death, it may be proved by many arguments, whereof I will only touch the principal. The first is taken from the work of redemption. Saint john writeth, that Christ came to dissolve the works of the devil: which are sin, and by sin, death: 1. joh. 3.8. and hence I reason thus: If sin and death are to be dissolved utterly, than the bodies of the faithful which are dead in the grave, must needs be made alive: otherwise death is not abolished: but sin and death must be utterly abolished, therefore there shall be a resurrection. Secondly, God had made a covenant with his church, the tenor whereof is this, I will be thy God & thou shalt be my people. This covenant is not for a day or an age, or for a thousand years or ages, but it is everlasting & without end, so as God's people may say of God for ever, God is our God: & likewise God will say of his Church for evermore, this people is my people▪ Now if God's covenant be everlasting, than all the faithful departed from the beginning of the world must be raised again to life. And if god should leave his people in the grave under death for ever, how could they be called the people of God? for he is a God of mercy and of life itself: & therefore though they abide long in the earth, yet they must at length be revived again. This argument Christ useth against the Sadduces, which denied the resurrection: Mat. 22.32. God is not the god of the dead but of the living, but god is the god of Abraham, Isaac & jacob, which are dead, and therefore they must rise again. The third argument may be taken from the tenor and order of God's justice. It is an especial part of God's glory to show forth his mercy on the godly▪ and his justice upon the wicked in rewarding them according to their works, as the Apostle saith, Rom. 2.6. God will reward every man according to his works: to them that by continuance in well doing, seek glory, and honour, and immortality, life eternal: but unto them that disobey the truth, that be contentious and obey unrighteousness, shall be indignation and wrath. But in this life God rewardeth not men according to their doings: and therefore Solomon speaking of the estate of all men in this world saith, All things come alike to all, and the same condition is to the just and unjust, Eccles. 9.2. to the good and bad, to the pure and polluted, to him that offereth sacrifice, and to him that offereth none. Nay, which is more, here the wicked flourish, and the godly are afflicted. The ungodly have hearts ease and all things at will, whereas the godly are oppressed and overwhelmed with all kind of miseries, and are as sheep appointed for the slaughter. It remains therefore that there must needs be a general resurrection of all men after this life, that the righteous may obtain a reward of God's free mercy, and the wicked utter shame and confusion. But some will say, It is sufficient that God do this to the soul of every man, the body needeth not to rise again. I answer, that the ungodly man doth not work wickedness only in his soul, but his body also is an instrument thereof: and the godly do not only practise righteousness in their souls, but in their bodies also. The bodies of the wicked are the instruments of sin, and the bodies of the righteous are the weapons of righteousness: and therefore their bodies must rise again, that both in body and soul they may receive a reward according to that which they have wrought in them. The fourth argument, which is also used by Paul is this: Christ himself is risen, and therefore all the faithful shall rise again: ●. Cor. 25. for he rose not for himself as a private man, but in our room and stead and for us. If the head be risen, than the members also shall rise again: for by the same power whereby Christ raised himself, he both can & will raise all those that be of his mystical body, he being the first fruits of them that sleep. The fifth argument is taken from express testimony of Scripture. job hath an excellent place for this purpose, I am sure (saith he) that my Redeemer liveth, and he shall stand the last on the earth, job 19.25. and though after my skin worms destroy this body, yet I shall see God in my flesh, whom I myself shall see and mine eyes shall behold, and none other for me. And Saint Paul to the Corinthians avoucheth and proveth this point at large, by sundry arguments which I will not stand to repeat; this one remembered: If (saith he) the dead rise not again, than your faith is vain, our preaching is in vain, and the godly departed are perished. vers. 14. & 18. The sixth argument may be taken from the order of nature, which ministereth certain resemblances of the resurrection; which though they be no sufficient proofs, yet may they be inducements to the truth. Both Philosophers and also Divines have written of the Phoenix, that first she is consumed to ashes by the heat of the sun, and that afterward of her ashes riseth a young one: and on this manner is her kind preserved. Again swallows, worms, and flies, which have lain dead in the winter season, in the spring, by virtue of the suns heat, revive again: so likewise men fall in sons and traunses, being for a time without breath or show of life, and yet afterward come again: and (to use Paul's example) before the corn can grow and bear fruit it must first be cast into the ground and there rot. And if this were not seen by experience, men would not believe it. Again every present day is as it were dead and buried in the night following, and yet afterward it returns again the next morning. Lastly we read how the old Prophet● raised some from death: and our Saviour Christ raised Lazarus among the rest, that had lain four days in the grave and stank: why then should any think it impossible for God to raise all men to life? But let us see what reasons may be alleged to the contrary. First it is alleged that the resurrection of bodies resolved to dust and ashes, is against common sense & reason. Answer. It is above reason, but not against reason. For if impotent and miserable men, as experience showeth, can by art even of ashes make the most curious workmanship of glass, why may we not in reason think that the omnipotent and everliving God is able to raise men's bodies out of the dust. Secondly it is said, that men's bodies being dead, are turned into dust, and so are mingled with the bodies of beasts and other creatures, and one man's body with another, and that by reason of this confusion men cannot possibly rise with their own bodies. Answ. Howsoever this is impossible with men, yet it is possible with God. For he that in the beginning was able to create all things of nothing, is much more able to make every man's body at the resurrection of his own matter, & to distinguish the dust of men's bodies from the dust of beasts, and the dust of one man's body from another. The goldsmith by his art can sunder divers metells one from another: & some men out of one metell can draw another, why then should we think it unpossible for the almighty God to do the like? It may be further objected thus: A man is eaten by a wolf, the wolf is eaten by a lion, the lion by the fowls of the air, and the fowls of the air eaten again by men: again one man is eaten of another, as it is usual among the Cannibals. Now the body of that man which is turned into so many substances, especially into the body of another man, cannot rise again: & if the one doth the other doth not. Ans. This reason is but a cavil of man's brain: for we must not think that whatsoever entereth into the body, & is turned into the substance thereof, must rise again, & become a part of the body at the day of judgement; but every man shall then have so much substance of his own as shall make his body to be entire & perfect; though another man's flesh once eaten be no part thereof. Again it is urged, that because flesh and blood cannot enter into the kingdom of God: therefore the bodies of men shall not rise again. Answ. By flesh & blood, is not meant the bodies of men simple, 1. Cor. 15.50. but the bodies of men as they are in weakness, without glory, subject to corruption. For flesh & blood in scripture, signifies sometime the original sin & corruption of nature, & sometime man's nature subject to miseries & infirmities, or the body in corruption before it be glorified, and so it must be understood in this place. Lastly it is objected, that Solomon saith, The condition of the children of men, Eccles. 3.19. and the condition of beasts are even as one condition. Now beasts rise not again after this life: & therefore there is no resurrection of men. Answer. In that place Solomon expoundeth himself: They are like in dying: for so he saith, as the one dieth, so dieth the other: he speaketh not of their estate after death. The second point to be considered, is the cause of the resurrection. In mankind we must consider two parts, the Elect & the Reprobate; and they both shall rise again at the day of judgement, but by divers causes. The godly have one cause of their resurrection, & the ungodly another. The cause why the godly rise again, is the Resurrection of Christ, yea it is the proper cause which procureth and effecteth their resurrection. In the Scripture Adam & Christ are compared together, & Christ is called the second Adam: these were two roots. The first Adam was the root of all mankind, and he convaieth sin, & by sin death to all that sprang of him, Christ only excepted: the second Adam which is the root of all the Elect, convaieth life both in body & soul to all that are united to him: & by the virtue of his resurrection they shall rise again after this life. For look as the power of the Godhead of Christ when he was dead in the grave, raised his body the third day: so shall the same power of Christ his Godhead, convey itself unto all the faithful, which even in death remain united unto him, & raise them up at the last day. And for this cause Christ is called a quickening spirit. Now the cause why the wicked rise again, is not the virtue of Christ's resurrection, but the virtue of God's curse, set down in his word: In the day that thou shalt eat of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt die the death, that is, a double death both of body and soul. And therefore they arise only by the power of Christ as he is a judge, that this sentence may be verified on them; and that they may suffer both in body and soul eternal punishment in hell fire. Furthermore, Saint john setteth down the outward means whereby the dead shallbe raised, namely the voice of Christ: The hour shall come (saith he) in which all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, joh. 5.28. and they shall come forth. For as he created all things by his word, so at the day of judgement by the same voice all shallbe raised again. This may be a good reason to move us to hear the ministers of God reverently: for that which they teach is the very word of God: and therefore we are to pray that it may be as effectual in raising us up from the grave of sin in this life, as it shallbe after this life in raising us up from the grave of death unto judgement. Thirdly, we are to consider what manner of bodies shall rise at the last day. Answer. The same bodies for substance: this job knew well, when he said: I shall see him at the last day in my flesh, whom I myself shall see and none other for me, job 19.25. with these same eyes. Nevertheless the bodies of the Elect shallbe altered in quality, being made incorruptible and filled with glory. 1. Cor. 15.43. The last point to be considered, is the end why these bodies shall rise again. The principal end which God intendeth is his own glory, in the manifestation of his justice and mercy. Now at the last day when all men shall be raised to judgement by the voice of Christ, the godly to life, and the wicked to condemnation; there shall be a full manifestation both of his mercy and justice: and therefore by consequent a full manifestation of his glory. Thus much for the doctrines touching the Resurrection: now follow the uses. First it serveth wonderfully for the comfort of all Christian hearts. David speaking not only of Christ, but also of himself, saith most notably: Mine heart is glad, my tongue rejoiceth, and my flesh also doth rest in hope. Psal. 16.9. Why so? For (saith he) thou shalt not leave my soul in grave, neither wilt thou suffer thine holy one to see corruption. Though the days of this life be days of woe and misery, yet the day of the resurrection shall be unto all the children of God a time of rejoicing and felicity, and as Peter saith, Act. 3.19. it is the time of refreshing. Whosoever is now an hungered, shall then eat and be filled with the fruit of the tree of life: and whosoever is now naked, shallbe then clothed with the white garments dipped in the blood of the lamb: and August. in Enchir. cap. 91. whosoever is now lame, shall have all his members restored perfectly. And as this day is joyful to the godly, so on the contrary it is a day of woe and misery to the ungodly: as Saint john saith, joh. 5.29. they that have done evil shall come forth to the resurrection of condemnation. If they might cease to live after this life, and die as the beast doth, O then it would be well with them, for than they might have an end of their misery: but the wicked must after this life rise again to condemnation, which is the accomplishment of their eternal woe and wretchedness; a rueful and doleful case to consider, and yet is it the state of all unbelieving and unrepentant sinners. If a man were bidden to go to bed, that after he had slept and was risen again he might go to execution, it would make his heart to ache within him: yet this, yea a thousand fold worse is the state of all impenitent sinners: they must sleep in the grave for a while, and then rise again, that a second death may be inflicted upon them in body and soul, which is the suffering of the full wrath of God both in body and soul eternally. This being so, let us embrace the good counsel of Saint Peter, who saith, amend your lives and turn, that your sins may be done away, Act. 3.19. when the time of refreshing shall come from the presence of the Lord. If a man die repentant for his sins, it is a day of refreshing; but if he die in his sins, impenitent and hard hearted, it is a day of eternal horror, desperation, and confusion. Again, if we believe that our bodies shall rise again after this life, and stand before God at the last day of judgement, we must daily enter into a serious consideration of this time, and have in mind that one day we must meet the Lord face to face. A travailer comes into an Inn having but a penny in his purse, he sits down and call for all store of provision and dainties: now what is to be thought of him? surely in the judgement of all men his behaviour bekens folly, or rather madness. But why? because he spends freely and hath not regard to the reckoning which must follow: how foolish then and mad is the practice of every man that liveth in his sins, & bathing himself in his pleasures in this world, never bethinking how he shall meet God at the last day of judgement, & there make reckoning for all his doings. An ancient Divine writes of himself that this saying ran in his mind, Hierome. and sounded always in his ears: Arise ye dead and come unto judgement. And this aught always to be sounding in our ears, that while we have time we should prepare ourselves to meet God at the last day. Thirdly, if we believe the resurrection of the body, we are not to weep and mourn immoderately for our friends deceased. Our Saviour Christ did weep for Lazarus: and when Stephen was stoned to death, certain men that feared God buried him, and made great lamentation for him: and therefore mourning is not condemned: & we must not be as stocks, that are bereft of all compassion: yet remember we must what Saint Paul saith to the Thessalonians: I would not, 1. Th. 4.13. brethren, have you ignorant concerning those which are asleep, that ye sorrow not, as others which have no hope. For the godly man properly dieth not, but lays himself down to take a sleep after his manifold labours in this life; which being ended he must rise again to joys everlasting: and therefore we must moderate and mingle our mourning for the deceased with this and such like comforts. Fourthly, we are taught hence to labour and strive against the natural fear of death: for if there be a resurrection of our bodies after this life, than death is but a passage or middle way from this life to eternal life. If a beggar should be commanded to put off his old rags, that he might be clothed with rich and costly garments, would he be sorry because he should stand naked a while till he were wholly bestripped of his rags? No surely; well, thus doth God when he calls a man to death: he bids him put off his old rags of sin & corruption, & be clothed with the glorious rob of Christ's righteousness: & our abode in the grave is but for a space, while corruption be put off. This is Paul's argument, saying, We know that when our earthly house of this tabernacle shallbe dissolved, we have a building given of God, which is an house, not made with hands, but eternal in the heavens. Fifthly, whereas the godly are subject to manifold afflictions & miseries, both in body and mind in this life, here they shall find a sufficient stay to quiet & calm their minds, if they consider that after this short life is ended, there will ensue a joyful resurrection. job 19.25. job in the extremity of all his temptations, made this the comfort to his soul, that one day he should rise again, in which he should enjoy the glorious presence of his Creator. And the H. Ghost saith, Hebr. 11.35. that the servants of God in the days of Antiochus were racked and tormented, and would not be delivered: why so? because they looked for a better resurrection. Lastly, the consideration of this point serveth to be a bridle to restrain a man from sin, & a spur to make him go forward in all godliness of life and conversation. S. Paul had hope toward God, that the resurrection of the dead should be both of the just & unjust. Now what did this move him unto? Act. 24.16. Mark: herein (saith he, that is, in this respect) I endeavour myself to have always a clear conscience towards God and towards man. And let us for our parts likewise remember the last judgement, that it may be a means to move us so to behave ourselves in all our actions, that we may keep a good conscience before God and before men: and let it also be a bridle unto us to keep us back from all manner of sin. For what is the cause why men daily defile their bodies & souls with so many damnable practices, without any remorse of conscience? Surely they never seriously remember the day of the resurrection after this life, wherein they must stand before Christ to give an account of that which they have done in this life, whether it be good or bad. Thus much of the duties: now mark it is further said, The resurrection of the body. If the body rise, it must first fall. Here then this point is wrapped up as a confessed truth, that all men must die the first death. And yet considering that the members of the Church have the pardon of their sins which are the cause of death, it may be demanded, why they must die? Answe●re. We are to know that when they die, death doth not seize upon them, as it is in his own nature, a curse: for in that respect it was borne of Christ upon the cross, and that for us: but for two other causes, which we must think upon, as being special means to make a man willing to die. I. They must die that original corruption may be utterly abolished: for no man living on earth is perfectly sanctified; and original sin is remaining for special causes to the last moment of this life, & then it is abolished, and not before. II. The godly die that by death as by a strait gate they may pass from this vale of misery to eternal life. And thus Christ by his death makes death to be no death, and turns a curse into a blessing. And to proceed: It is not here said, the resurrection of the soul, but of the body only; what then (will some say) becometh of the soul? divers have thought, that the souls then, though they do not die, yet are still kept within the body (being as it were a sleep) till the last day. But God's word saith to the contrary. For in the Revelation it is said, The souls of the godly lie under the altar, and cry, Rev. 6.9. How long Lord jesus? And in the Gospel of Luke, Dives in soul did suffer woe and torments in hell: Luk. 16.23. and Lazarus had joy in Abraham's bosom. Again some others think▪ that men's souls after this life do pass from one man's body to another: and Herod may seem to have been of this opinion: Math. 14.2. for when news was brought him of Christ, he said, that john Baptist being beheaded was risen again, thinking that the soul of john Baptist was put into the body of some other man. And for proof hereof, some allege the example of Nabuchadnezzar, who forsaking the society of man, lived as a beast, and did eat grass like a beast: and they imagine that his own soul went out of him, and that the soul of a beast entered in the room thereof. But this indeed is a fond conceit: for even then he had the soul of a man when he lived as a beast, being only strike by the hand of God with an exceeding madness, whereby he was bereft of common reason; as doth appear by that clause in the text, Dan. 4.33. where it is said, that his understanding or knowledge returned to him again. Again, some other think, that the soul neither dieth nor sleepeth, nor passeth out of one body into an other, but wandereth here on earth among men, & oftentimes appeareth to this or that man: & this is the opinion of some heretics, & of the common people, which think that dead men walk: and for proof hereof some allege the practice of the witch of Endor, who is said to make Samuel to appear before Saul: but the truth is, it was not Samuel in deed, but only a counterfeit of him. For not all the witches in the world, nor all the devils in hell are able to disquiet the souls of the faithful departed, which are in the keeping of the Lord without wandering from place to place. For when men die in the faith, their souls are immediately translated into heaven, & there abide till the last judgement: and contrariwise if men die in their sins, their souls go strait to the place of eternal condemnation, and there abide as in a prison, as Peter saith. In a word, when the breath goeth out of the body, the soul of every man goeth strait either to heaven or hell; and there is no third place of abode mentioned in scripture. To conclude, the resurrection of the body is expressly mentioned in the Creed, to show that there is no resurrection of the soul, which neither dieth, nor sleepeth, but is a spiritual and invisible substance, living and abiding for ever as well forth of the body as in the same. Thus much of the third prerogative or benefit: now followeth the fourth & last, in these words, And life everlasting. To handle this point to the full, and to open the nature of it as it deserveth, is not in the power of man. For both the Prophet Esai and Saint Paul say, that the eye hath not seen, and the ear hath not heard, Isa. 64.4. 1. Cor. 2.9. neither came it into man's heart to think of those things which God hath prepared for those that love him. Again Paul when he was wrapped into the third heaven saith, that he saw things not to be uttered. 2. Cor. 12.4. Nevertheless we may in some part describe the same, so far forth as God in this case hath revealed his will unto us. Wherefore in this last prerogative, I consider two things; the first is life itself, the second is the continuance of life, noted in the word everlasting. Life itself is that whereby any thing acteth, liveth, & moveth itself: & it is twofold, uncreated or created. Uncreated life is the very godhead itself, whereby God liveth absolutely in himself, from himself, & by himself, giving life and being to all things that live and have being: & this life is not meant here; because it is not communicable to any creature. Created life is a quality in the creature; and it's again twofold: natural, spiritual. Natural life is that whereby men in this world live by meat & drink, & all such means as are ministered by God's providence. Spiritual life is that most blessed and happy estate, in which all the Elect shall reign with Christ their head in the heavens after this life, & after the day of judgement for ever and ever. And this alone is the life which in the Creed we confess and believe: & it consisteth in an immediate conjunction and communion or fellowship with God himself: as Christ in his solemn prayer to his father a little before his death signifieth: I pray not for these alone, joh. 17.21. but for them also which shall believe in me through thy word, that they all may be one as thou O father art in me & I in thee, even that they may be one also in us. And when Saint john in the Revelation saith, Rev. 21.3. Behold the tabernacle of God is with men, he will dwell with them, and they shall be his people, and God himself shall be there God with them: he showeth that the very foundation of that happiness which God hath prepared for his servants stands in a society between God & them, whereby God shall dwell with them in heaven, and they again shall there enjoy his glorious presence. Touching this Communion three points must be considered. The first is, in what order men shall have fellowship with God? Ans. This communion shallbe first of all with Christ as he is man; and by reason that the manhood of Christ is personally united to the Godhead of the son, it shall also be with Christ as he is God; and consequently with the father & the H. Ghost. The reason of this order is, because Christ, though he be the author and the fountain of eternal life as he is God, yet he conuaies the same unto us only in & by his flesh or manhood. Yet must we not here think that life proceedeth from the manhood itself, as from a cause efficient: for the flesh quickeneth not by any virtue from itself, but by the Word to which it is personally united; it being as it were a pipe eternally to convey life from the the Godhead unto us. The second point is, in what thing this communion consisteth? Ans. S. Paul openeth this point to the very full, when he saith, that after Christ hath subdued all things unto him, than God shall be all in all, that is, 1. Cor. 15.28. God himself immediately shallbe all good things that heart can wish to all the Elect. But some men may say, What? is not God all in all unto us even in this life? for whatsoever good things we have, they are all from him. Answ. It is true indeed, God is all in all even in this life: but how? not immediately but by outward means; and that also in small measure. For he conuaies his goodness & mercy unto us so long as we live on earth, partly by his creatures and partly by his word and sacraments: but after this life is ended, all helps and outward means shall cease: Christ shall give up his kingdom, and as he is Mediator shall cease to put in execution the office of a Priest, a Prophet, or a King: all authority and power shallbe abolished: and therefore all callings in the three main estates of the Church, the Commonwealth, the family shall have an end; there shallbe no more Magistrate and subject, Pastor & people, Master and servant, father and son, husband and wife: there shallbe no more use of meat, drink, clothing, respiration, physic, sleep: and yet for all this, the condition of men shallbe many thousand fold more blessed then ever it was. For the Godhead in the Trinity immediately without all means shallbe all things to all the chosen people of God in the kingdom of heaven, world without end. This may seem strange to man's reason, but it is the very flat truth of the word of God. Saint john in the description of the heavenly Jerusalem, saith that there shall be no Temple in it. Why, how then shall God be worshipped? mark what followeth, the Lord God almighty and the Lamb are the temple of it. Rev. 21.22. Whereby is signified that although now we use the preaching of the word, and the administration of the sacraments, as means of our fellowship with God: yet when this life is ended, they must all cease, God and Christ being instead of all these means unto us. And he adds further, The city hath no need of the sun, neither of the moon to shine in it. What then will some say, must there be nothing but darkness? Not so. For the glory of God doth lighten it, vers. 23. and the Lamb is the light of it. Again he saith, that in the Paradise of God, there is the river of water of life, and the tree of life bearing fruit every month, Cap. 22.1. and that is Christ. And therefore we shall have no need of meat, drink, apparel, sleep, etc. but Christ himself our head and redeemer shallbe in stead of them all unto us: on whom, all the Elect shall feed, and by whom both in body and soul they shall be preserved evermore. If a man would have glory, the Father, Son, and holy Ghost shall be his glory: if a man desire wealth and pleasure, God himself shall be wealth and pleasure unto him, and whatsoever else the heart of man can wish. Hence it appears, that this communion is most admirable, and that no tongue can tell, nor heart conceive the least part of it. The third point is, touching the benefits or prerogatives that proceed of this communion, and they are in number six. The first is, an absolute freedom from all wants. In the mind there shall be no ignorance, no unbelief, no distrust in God, no ambition, no envy, anger, nor carnal lust, nor terror in conscience, or corrupt affection. In the body there shallbe no soar, no sickness, nor pain: for God shall▪ wipe away all tears from their eyes: Rev. 21.4. nay then all defects or wants in body or soul or in both shallbe supplied, and the whole man made perfect every way. The second is perfect knowledge of God. In this life the Church & all the servants of God know him but in part. Moses would have seen God's face, but he was permitted to see only his hinder parts; 1. Cor. 13.12. & as Paul saith, now we know in part, and darkly as through a glass. In this life▪ we can ●o otherwise discern but as an old man through spectacles: and the creatures, but specially the word of God & the sacraments are the spectacles of our mind, wherein we behold his justice, mercy, love, etc. & without them we can discern little or nothing: yet after this life, when that which is perfect is come, and that which is imperfect is abolished; we shall see God as he is to be seen, not as through a glass, but face to face, and we shall know him as we are known of his majesty, so far forth as possibly a creature may. God in deed is infinite, and therefore the full knowledge of his majesty can no more be comprehended by the understanding of a creature, which is finite, than the sea by a spoon: yet nevertheless God shall be known every way of man, so far forth as a creature may know the Creator. Now upon this that the Elect have such fullness of knowledge, it may be demanded, whether men shall know one an other after this life or no. Answer. This question is oftener moved by such as are ignorant, then by them that have knowledge: and oftentimes it is tossed in the mouths of them that have little religion in their hearts: and therefore I answer first, men should rather have care to seek how they may come to heaven, then to dispute what they shall do when they are there: the common proverb is true, it is not good counting of chickens before they be hatched. Secondly, I say that men in heaven shall know each other: yea they shall know them which were never known or seen of them before in this life, which may be gathered by proportion out of God's word. Adam in his innocency knew Eve, whom he had never seen before, Gen. 2.23. and gave her a fit name so soon as she was created. And when our Saviour Christ was transfigured in the mount, Peter knew Moses and Elias, Math. 17.4. whom before he had never seen: and therefore it is like that the Elect shall know each other in heaven, where their knowledge & their whole estate shallbe fully perfected. But whither they shall know one an other after an earthly manner, as to say this man was my father, this was mine uncle, this my teacher, etc. the word of God saith nothing: and therefore I will be silent, and must be content a while to be ignorant in this point. The third prerogative of everlasting blessedness is, that the Elect shall love God with as perfect love as a creature possibly can. The manner of loving God, is to love him for himself, and the measure is to love him without measure: and both shall be found in heaven: for the Saints of God shall have an actual fruition of God himself, and be as it were swallowed up with a sea of his love, and wholly ravished therewith: for which cause as far as creatures can, they shall love him again. Again the love of a thing is according to the knowledge thereof, but in this life God ●s known of man only in part, and therefore is loved only but in part: but after this life, when the Elect shall know God fully, they shall love him without measure: and in this respect love hath a prerogative above faith or hope, howsoever in some respects again they go beyond love. The fourth prerogative is, that the Saints of God keep a perpetual Sabbath in heaven. In this life it is kept but every seventh day, and when it is best of all sanctified, it is done but in part; but in heaven every day is a Sabbath: as the Lord saith by the Prophet Isai, From month to month, and from sabbath to sabbath, all flesh shall come and worship before me: Isai 66.23. Hebr. 4.9. and therefore the life to come shallbe spent in the perpetual service of God. Fifthly, the bodies of all the Elect after this life in the kingdom of heaven shall be like the glorious body of Christ: so Paul saith, Christ jesus our Lord shall change our vile bodies that they may be like his glorious body. Phil. 3.21. Now the resemblance between Christ's body and ours, standeth in these things: as Christ's body is uncorruptible, so shall our bodies be void of all corruption: as Christ's body is immortal, so ours in the kingdom of heaven shall never die: as Christ's body is spiritual, so shall ours be made spiritual, as the Apostle saith, 1. Cor. 15.44. It is sown a natural body, it is raised a spiritual body, not because the body shall be changed into a spirit, for it shall remain the same in substance, and that for ever: but because it shall be preserved by a spiritual and divine manner. For in this life it is preserved by meat, drink, clothing, sleep, physic, rest, and diet, but afterward without all these means the life of the body shallbe continued, and body and soul keep together by the immediate power of God's spirit for ever and ever: thus the body of Christ is now preserved in heaven, and so shall the bodies of all the Elect be after the day of judgement. Furthermore as Christ's body is now a shining body, as doth appear by his transfiguration in the mount, so in all likelihood after the resurrection the bodies of the Elect shall be shining and bright, always remaining the same for substance. Lastly as Christ's body after it rose again from the grave, had this property of agility beside swiftness, to pass from the earth to the third heaven, being in distance many thousand miles from us, and that without violence: so shall the bodies of the saints. For being glorified, they shall be able as well to ascend upward, as to go downward, and to move without violence, and that very swiftly. The sixth and last prerogative, is an unspeakable and eternal joy, as David saith: In thy presence is fullness of joy: Psal. 16.11. at thy right hand there are pleasures for evermore. It is said that when Solomon was crowned King, 1 King. 1.40. the people rejoiced exceedingly: if there were such great joy at his coronation, which was but an earthly prince, what joy then shall there be when the Elect shall see the true Solomon crowned with glory in the kingdom of heaven. It is said that the wise men which came from the East to worship Christ, when they saw the star standing over the place where the babe was, were exceeding glad: how much more shall the Elect rejoice, when they shall see Christ, not lying in a manger, but crowned with immortal glory in the kingdom of heaven? Wherefore this joy of the Elect after this life is most wonderful, and can not be uttered. The property of life eternal is to be an inheritance which God bestoweth on them which are made his sons in Christ, who is the only begotten son of the father. Math. 25.34. Rom. 8.17. Hence it follows necessarily, that in the Scriptures it is called a reward, not because it is deserved by our works, as the Church of Rome erroneously teacheth: but for 2. other causes. First because life eternal is due to all that believe by virtue of Christ's merit. For as his righteousness is made ours by imputation, so consequently the merit thereof is also ours: and by it, (all personal merits in ourselves utterly excluded,) we deserve or merit eternal happiness as a reward; which nevertheless in respect of ourselves is the free and mere gift of God. The second is, because there is a resemblance between eternal life and a reward. Rom. 6.23. For as a reward is given to a workman after his work is done; so everlasting life is given unto men after the travails and miseries of this life are ended. The degrees of life are three. The first is in this life, when men being justified and sanctified, have peace with God. Many imagine, that there is no eternal life till after death: but they are deceived, for it gins in this world: as our Saviour Christ testifieth, saying, Verily, verily I say unto you, he that heareth my words, and believeth him that sent me, joh. 5. 24· hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation, but hath passed from death to life. This being so, we are hence to learn a good lesson. Considering we look for life everlasting after this life, we must not deceive ourselves, lingering and deferring the time till the last gasp, but we must lay the foundation of life eternal in ourselves in this world, and have the earnest thereof laid up in our hearts against the day of death. But how is that done? we must repent us hearty of all our sins, and seek to be assured in conscience that God the father of Christ is our father, God the son our redeemer, and God the holy Ghost our comforter. For as Christ saith, this is life eternal to know thee the only God, joh. 17.3. and whom thou hast sent jesus Christ. And we must go further yet, endeavouring to say with Paul, that we live not, but that Christ liveth in us: Gal. 2.20. which when we can say, we have in us the very seed of eternal life. The second degree is in the end of this life, when the body freed from all diseases, pains, and miseries, is laid to rest in the earth, and the soul is received into heaven. The third is after the day of judgement, when body and soul reunited shall both be advanced to eternal glory. Again in this third degree of life, there be in all likelihood sundry degrees of glory. Daniel speaking of the estate of the elect after this life, saith, They that be wise shall shine as the brightness of the firmament, Dan. 12.3. and they that turn many to righteousness shall shine as the stars for evermore. Now we know there is difference between the brightness of the firmament and the brightness of the stars. Again there be degrees of torments in hell, as appears by the saying of Christ, Mat. 11.22. It shall be easier for Tyrus and Sydon in that day then for this generation: and therefore there be proportional degrees of glory. And Paul saith, There is one glory of the Sun, another glory of the moon, 1. Cor. 15.41. another glory of the Stars: for one star differeth from another in glory: so is the resurrection of the dead. In which words he applies the differences of excellency that be in the creatures, to set forth the differences of glory that shall be in men's bodies after the resurrection. Furthermore, if we may conjecture; it may be, the degrees of glory shall be answerable to the divers measures of gifts and graces bestowed on men in this life, and according to the imployance of them to the glory of God and edification of the Church. And therefore the twelve Apostles who were exceedingly enriched with the gifts of the spirit, and were master-builders of the Church of the new Testament, shall sit on 12. thrones and judge the twelve tribes of Israel. But it may be objected, that if there be degrees of glory in heaven, some shall want glory. Answer. Not so: though some have more, and some less, yet all shall have sufficient. Take sundry vessels whereof some are bigger, and some less, and cast them all into the sea: some will receive more water and some less, and yet all shall be full and no want in any: and so likewise among the saints of God in heaven, some shall have more glory some less, and yet all without exception full of glory. And whereas it is alleged that all the labourers in the vinyeard receive each of them a penny equally for their hire; the answer is, that our Saviour Christ in that parable intends not to set forth the equality of celestial glory, Mat. 20.9. and what shall be the estate of the godly after this life: but the very drift of the parable is to show, that they which are called first, have no cause to brag or insult over others which as yet are uncalled, considering they may be made equal or be preferred before them. Thus much of life itself: now follows the continuance thereof, which the scriptures have noted in calling it eternal or everlasting. And to this end Paul saith, that Christ hath abolished death, 2. Tim. 1.10. and brought not only life, but also immortality to light by the gospel. And this very circumstance serves greatly to commend the happiness of the godly: in that, after they have made an entrance into it, they shall never see term of time or end. Suppose the whole world were a sea, and that every thousand years expired, a bird must carry away or drink up one only drop of it: in process of time it will come to pass that this sea though very huge, shall be dried up: but yet many thousand millions of years must be passed before this can be done. Now if a man should enjoy happiness in heaven only for the space of time in which the sea is in drying up, he would think his case most happy and blessed: but behold the elect shall enjoy the kingdom of heaven not only for that time, but when it is ended, they shall enjoy it as long again: and when all is done, they shall be as far from the ending of this their joy, as they were at the beginning. Having thus seen what life everlasting is, let us now come to the use of the article. And first of all, if we believe that there is an eternal happiness, and that the same belongs unto us, than we must use this present world and all the things therein as though we used them not: and whatsoever we do in this world, yet the eyes of our minds must be always cast toward the blessed estate prepared for us in heaven. As a pilgrim in a strange land hath always his eyes toward his journeys end, and is then grieved, when by any means he is out of the way: so much we always have our minds and hearts set on everlasting life, and be grieved when we are by any way hindered in the straightway, that leadeth thereunto: we have a notable pattern of this duty set out unto us in the patriarch Abraham, who being called of God obeyed to go out into a place, which he should afterward receive for inheritance, and he went out, not knowing whither he went: and by faith abode in the land of Canaan, Heb. 11.8. as in a strange country, and as one that dwelled in tents. Now the cause that moved him was life everlasting: for the text saith, He looked for a city having a foundation, Vers. 10. whose builder and maker is God. And we ought every one of us for our parts to be like affected to all the things of this life, never setting our hearts upon them, but using them as a pilgrim doth his staff in the way: so long as it is an help and stay for him in his journey, he is content to carry it in his hand, but so soon as it beginneth to trouble him, he casteth it away. Secondly all that profess the Gospel of Christ, may hence learn to bear the crosses and afflictions which God shall lay on them in this world. It is Gods usual manner to begin corrections in his own family upon his own children; and as Peter saith, judgement beginneth at God's house. Look as a mother that wanes her child, layeth wormwood or some other bitter thing upon her breast to make the child loath the milk: so likewise God makes us often feel the miseries and crosses of this life, that our love and liking might be turned from this world and fixed in heaven. As raw flesh is loathsome to the stomach: so is every sinner and unmortified man loathsome unto God, till the Lord by afflictions mortify in him the corruptions of his nature, and specially the love of this world. But when a man is afflicted, how shall he be able to endure the cross? Surely by resolving himself that the Lord hath prepared life everlasting for him. Heb. 11.24. Thus we read that Moses by faith when he was come to age, refused to be called the son of Pharaohs ' daughter, and choosed rather to suffer adversity with the people of God, then to enjoy the pleasures of sin for a season, esteeming the rebuke of Christ greater riches than the treasures of Egypt. But I pray you, what moved Moses to be of this mind? The reason is added: Because he had respect to the recompense of reward, that is, he had always a special regard to life everlasting, & that was it that made him content and willing to suffer affliction with God's people in the land of Goshen. Here then behold a notable precedent for us to follow. In which we are taught that the best way to endure afflictions with patience, is to have an eye to the recompense of reward: this is it that makes the yoke of Christ easy and lightsome. When it shall please God to bring unto us a cup of affliction and bid us drink a draft thereof to the very bottom, the meditation of life eternal must be as sugar in our pockets to sweeten the cup withal. Lastly, if this be true, that God of his goodness & endless mercy towards mankind, hath prepared life everlasting, yet not for all men, but for the elect whose names are written in the book of life, we must above all things in this world seek to be partakers of the same. Let us receive this as from the Lord, and lay it to our hearts: whatsoever we do evening or morning, day or night, whether we be young or old, rich or poor; first we must seek for the kingdom of heaven and his righteousness. If this benefit were common to all and not proper to the Church, less care might be had: but seeing it is proper to some alone, for this very cause let all our studies be to obtain the beginnings of life everlasting even in this life. For if we have it not, whosoever we be, it had been better for us that we had never been borne, or that we had been borne dogs and toads than men: for when they die, there is an end of their misery; but man, if he lose everlasting happiness, hath ten thousand millions of years to live in misery and in the torments of hell: and when that time is ended, he is as far from the end of his misery as he was at the beginning. Wherefore, I pray you, let not the devil steal this meditation out of your hearts, but be careful to repent of all your sins, and to believe in Christ for the pardon of them all; that by this means ye may come to have the pawn and earnest of the spirit concerning life everlasting, even in this world. What a miserable thing is it, that men should live long in this world, and not so much as dream of another life till the last gasp. But we must not suffer satan thus to abuse and bewitch us: for if we have not eternal life in this world, we shall never have it. Hitherto by God's goodness I have showed the meaning of the Creed: now to draw to a conclusion, the general uses which are to be made of it follow. And first of all we learn by it, that the Church of Rome hath no cause to condemn us for heretics: for we do truly hold and believe the whole Apostolical Symbol or Creed, which is an epitome of the scriptures and the very key of faith. It will be said, that we deny the Pope's supremacy, justification by works, purgatory, the sacrifice of the Mass for the sins of the quick and the dead, the invocation and intercession of saints, etc. which are the greatest points of religion. It is true indeed, we deny and renounce them as doctrines of devils: persuading ourselves that if they indeed had been Apostolical, and the very grounds and pillars of religion, as they are now avouched to be; they should in no wise have been left forth of the Creed. For it is an oversight in making a confession of faith, to omit the principal points and rules of faith. It will be further said, that in the Creed we believe the Church, & so consequently are to believe all these former points which are taught and avouched by the Church: but this defence is foolish. For it takes this for granted, that the Church of Rome is the Church here meant which we deny, unless they can prove a particular Church to be universal or Catholic. Nay, I add further, that the principal grounds of popish faith, for which they contend with us as for life and death, are not mentioned in any other Creeds which were made by the Churches & counsels for many hundred years after Christ. Secondly the Creed serves as a storehouse of remedies against all troubles & temptations whatsoever. I. If a man be grieved for the loss of earthly riches, let him consider that he believes God to be his Creator, who will therefore guide and preserve his own workmanship, & by his providence minister all things needful unto it. And that he hath not lost the principal blessing of all, in that he hath God to be his father, Christ to be his redeemer, & the H. ghost to be his comforter: and that, considering he looks for life eternal, he is not to be overmuch careful for this life: & that Christ being our Lord will not forsake us being the servants in his own house, but will provide things needful for us. II. If any man be grieved in respect of outward disgrace and contempt, let him remember that he believes in Christ crucified, and that therefore he is to rejoice in contempt for righteousness sake. III. They which are troubled for the decease of friends are to comfort themselves in the communion of saints, and that they have God the father & Christ and the holy ghost for their friends. FOUR Against bodily captivity, let men consider that they believe in Christ their Lord whose service is perfect liberty. V Against the fear of bodily diseases, we must remember the resurrection of the body in which all diseases and infirmities shallbe abolished. VI If a man fear the death of the body, let him consider that he believes in Christ which died upon the cross, who by death hath vanquished death. VII. The fear of persecution is restrained, if we call to remembrance that God is a Father almighty, not only able but also willing to repress the power of the adversary, so far forth as shall be for the good of his children. VIII. Terrors arising of the consideration of the last judgement are delayed by remembrance of this, that Christ shall be our judge who is our redeemer. IX. Fear of damnation is remedied by consideration that Christ died to make satisfaction for us, and now sits at the right hand of his father to make intercession for us: & by the resurrection of the body to life everlasting. X. Terrors of conscience for sin are repressed, if we consider that God is a Father, and therefore much in sparing, & that it is a prerogative of the Church to have remission of sins. Trin uni Deo gloria. FAULTS TO BE AMENDED in the words. Pag. Line. Blot out. Put in. 8 25 studies study 9 32 into in 13 24 couse course 13 37 after about that time 15 2 faint feign 15 36 no nature in nature 16 36 God both God, & do him service both 24 15 First 26 14 and we we 29 32 Mystery Mystery 37 19 which cut which are cut 55 27 bonum & bonum est 66 34 S. Paul S. Peter. 75 1 is the is known the 84 35 at time at some time 95 21 as by as 103 20 have upon have mercy upon. 104 2 that is bound that is, bound 135 28 that 140 26 doubtings doubting. 148 ult· most highest most high 161 30 Mictell. Missell, or mistletoe. 166 15 you he 171 25 comes come 172 7 he man he is man 175 23 agreeth argueth 178 12 or are 206 5 many things: I. 263 25 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉▪ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 279 26 hath have 279 1 2. eleventh 290 22 as then 308 31 him his 407 14 ungerenerate unregenerate Faults of the Cotations in the margin are thus to be mended. Pag. 6. Tit. 1.1. p. 7. Act. 19.15. p. 13. Rev. 21. p. 20. Ephes. 4.6. Ibid. joh. 17.3. p. 21. Marc. 9.24. p. 38. Isai. 52. p. 44. 1. Pet. 5.6. p. 47. 2. Cor. 9 p. 67. Isai. 45.12, 13. p. 70. 1. Pet. 2.11. p. 71. 1. joh. 3.3. p. 77. Matt. 25. p. 87. 1. Cor. 10. p. 105. Rom. 5.12. p. 118. Gal. 3.22. p. 121. Malac. 3.1. Ibid. Act. 10.43. p. 122. Hebr. 7.25. p. 126. Mat. 15.24. p. 128. Luk. 2.10, 11. p. 129. Dan. 9.25. p. 130. 2. Cor. 2.16. p. 131. Act. 2.17. Ibid. Psal. 133.2. p. 132. Heb. 5.12. p. 133. Psal. 4.5. p. 137. Phil. 2.6. Ibid. Psalm. 102.25. ibid. & joh. 8.58. p. 138. Joh. 5.17. p. 148. lin. ult. Rom. 1.3. p. 156. Heb. 2.17. Ibid. Matth. 1.20. p. 169. Marc. 3.35. p. 174. Rev. 15.3. p. 177. & Joh. 15.13. p. 192. Luk. 23. p. 196. Mat. 26.51. p. 203. Mat. 21.13. p. 205. Mar. 14.58. ibid. joh. 2.19. p. 207. Matth. 26.25. p. 212. Mark. 5.41. p. 215. Luk. 23. p. 219. 2. Tim. 2. p. 221. Matth. 27.19. p. 230. Lev. 24.14. p. 237. Gal. 5.24. p. 238. 1. Tim. 1.15. p. 240. Mark. 15.24. p. 314. 2. Cor. 5.16. p. 324. Act. 1.12. p. 364. Isai. 30.21. p. 371. 2. Sam. 23.15, 16. p. 378. 2. Pet. 3.11. p. 386. Psal. 139. p. 390. Eccles. 8..11. p. 395. Luc. 21.28. p. 422. Galat. 3.16. p. 458. Rom. 6.23. p. 522. 1. Cor. 15. p. 526. job. 19.27.